summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 18:52:15 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 18:52:15 -0800
commit4cab92a52c286a3ef5b511d0ce1aded56a7ca9bd (patch)
tree6a3e3f9fa0023325b363461912a76d5b00039209
parent7121c63fc633f6290a784ffa029f77865fae470f (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/66070-0.txt13417
-rw-r--r--old/66070-0.zipbin214741 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h.zipbin5367648 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/66070-h.htm16252
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/cover.jpgbin245233 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_001.jpgbin249490 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_002.jpgbin258454 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_004.pngbin223411 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_006.jpgbin260392 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_010.jpgbin259588 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_018.jpgbin248986 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_020.jpgbin260109 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_034.jpgbin258633 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_068.jpgbin252424 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_096.jpgbin256727 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_102.jpgbin252239 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_136.jpgbin247272 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_170.jpgbin250540 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_188.jpgbin249405 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_196.jpgbin258276 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_220.jpgbin252030 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_238.jpgbin252392 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_258.jpgbin257889 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_304.jpgbin256386 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_310.jpgbin255603 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66070-h/images/i_348.jpgbin252069 -> 0 bytes
29 files changed, 17 insertions, 29669 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5eabe25
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #66070 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66070)
diff --git a/old/66070-0.txt b/old/66070-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index ac7b71a..0000000
--- a/old/66070-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13417 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Story of Greece: Told to Boys and Girls,
-by Mary Macgregor
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Story of Greece: Told to Boys and Girls
-
-Author: Mary Macgregor
-
-Illustrator: Walter Crane
-
-Release Date: August 15, 2021 [eBook #66070]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Turgut Dincer, Charlie Howard, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The Internet
- Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF GREECE: TOLD TO BOYS
-AND GIRLS ***
-
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF GREECE
-
-
-[Illustration: She changed her into a spider.]
-
-
-
-
- THE
- STORY OF GREECE
-
- TOLD TO BOYS AND GIRLS BY
-
- MARY MACGREGOR
-
- AUTHOR OF ‘THE STORY OF ROME’
- ‘THE STORY OF FRANCE,’ ETC.
-
- WITH NINETEEN PLATES IN COLOUR
- BY WALTER CRANE
-
- [Illustration]
-
-
- LONDON: T. C. & E. C. JACK, LTD.
- 35 PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C., & EDINBURGH
-
-
-
-
- TO
- JOYCE MOFFAT SCOTT
-
-
-
-
-DEAR LITTLE JOYCE,--One of the reasons why this book is to be your very
-own is that the story it tells begins in Wonderland, and that is a land
-in which you and all other little people wander at will.
-
-Grown up children, men and women as we call them, do not know the
-secrets of this strange land, yet there are a few who can always find
-their way across its border, as they used to do when they were small
-like you. Some few others there are who remember its secrets well.
-
-Shall I tell you some of the things you hear and see and do in
-Wonderland?
-
-Why, when the wind blows soft, faint whispers reach your ear, but you
-alone know what the whispers tell. When the brooks gurgle you hear
-joyous laughter, and in the springs of water you see the sparkle of
-elfin eyes.
-
-As the bluebells shake in the breeze, your tiny feet march to the music
-of fairy bands, as the raindrops fall you gather pearls with your
-little hands.
-
-The secrets of this strange Wonderland make you so glad that you laugh
-and dance and sing.
-
- ‘Great, wide, beautiful, wonderful world,
- With the wonderful water round you curled,
- And the wonderful grass upon your breast,
- World you are wonderfully drest.’
-
-The ancient Wonderland of Hellas, of which this story tells, was unlike
-your Wonderland in this, that men and women dwelt in it as well as
-boys and girls, and they, too, saw and heard its secrets. And this was
-because, in a way not known to-day, each had kept the heart of a little
-child.
-
-So it was that these men and women heard voices in the wind and
-laughter in the streams, so it was that they saw eyes in water springs
-and pearls in raindrops.
-
-More even than these things the Hellenes saw. For across lone
-hillsides, through busy fields, in sacred groves and flower-sweet
-meadows, radiant figures sped. And the simple folk catching glimpses
-of these flitting forms said one to the other, ‘The gods have come to
-live among us. Their presence it is that makes the earth so fair, so
-wonderful.’ As the years passed and the Hellenes grew older, sterner
-times came. Cities sprang up on hillsides and by river-banks, and the
-gods were seldom seen. Men went to war, battles were lost and won.
-
-But never, in victory or in defeat, did the people lose their early
-love of beauty, or that strange, dreamy sense of wonder, which from the
-beginning was ever plucking at their hearts.
-
-They longed to fulfil their dreams of beauty, they wished to re-shape
-the world.
-
-But, because the world was so great, so wide, they began with one of
-their cities, the one of which a poet sang,
-
- ‘O rich and renowned and with violets crowned,
- O Athens the envied of nations.’
-
-Here they built temples which became the wonder of the world, and in
-them they placed statues of the old gods of Hellas, beautiful statues
-wrought by master hands out of ivory and gold.
-
-Poets and philosophers lived in Athens, too, and so literature and art
-spread the glory of Greece far and wide, moulding the thoughts and
-quickening the deeds of many peoples.
-
-Before the glory of Greece faded, Europe had learned from her to follow
-truth, to love beauty.
-
-This story tells but a small part of the wonder of this land, yet
-I hope that it will make you love her and wish to learn more about
-her.--Your friend,
-
- MARY MACGREGOR.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAP. PAGE
- I. WONDERLAND 1
-
- II. THE GREAT GOD PAN 3
-
- III. THE SIX POMEGRANATE SEEDS 6
-
- IV. THE BIRTH OF ATHENE 11
-
- V. THE TWO WEAVERS 13
-
- VI. THE PURPLE FLOWERS 16
-
- VII. DANAE AND HER LITTLE SON 18
-
- VIII. THE QUEST OF PERSEUS 22
-
- IX. ANDROMEDA AND THE SEA-MONSTER 26
-
- X. ACRISIUS IS KILLED BY PERSEUS 29
-
- XI. ACHILLES AND BRISEIS THE FAIRCHEEKED 32
-
- XII. MENELAUS AND PARIS DO BATTLE 38
-
- XIII. HECTOR AND ANDROMACHE 41
-
- XIV. THE HORSES OF ACHILLES 44
-
- XV. THE DEATH OF HECTOR 48
-
- XVI. POLYPHEMUS THE GIANT 54
-
- XVII. ODYSSEUS ESCAPES FROM THE CAVE 58
-
- XVIII. ODYSSEUS RETURNS TO ITHACA 61
-
- XIX. ARGUS THE HOUND DIES 64
-
- XX. THE BOW OF ODYSSEUS 67
-
- XXI. THE LAND OF HELLAS 72
-
- XXII. LYCURGUS AND HIS LITTLE NEPHEW 76
-
- XXIII. LYCURGUS RETURNS TO SPARTA 79
-
- XXIV. THE TRAINING OF THE SPARTANS 82
-
- XXV. THE HELOTS 85
-
- XXVI. ARISTOMENES AND THE FOX 89
-
- XXVII. THE OLYMPIAN GAMES 94
-
- XXVIII. THE LAST KING OF ATHENS 97
-
- XXIX. CYLON FAILS TO MAKE HIMSELF TYRANT 100
-
- XXX. SOLON FREES THE SLAVES 102
-
- XXXI. THE ATHENIANS TAKE SALAMIS 106
-
- XXXII. PISISTRATUS BECOMES TYRANT 109
-
- XXXIII. HARMODIUS AND ARISTOGITON 113
-
- XXXIV. THE LAW OF OSTRACISM 116
-
- XXXV. THE BRIDGE OF BOATS 118
-
- XXXVI. DARIUS REWARDS HISTIAEUS 121
-
- XXXVII. HISTIAEUS SHAVES THE HEAD OF HIS SLAVE 123
-
- XXXVIII. SARDIS IS DESTROYED 126
-
- XXXIX. THE SANDAL SEWN BY HISTIAEUS 129
-
- XL. DARIUS DEMANDS EARTH AND WATER 131
-
- XLI. THE BATTLE OF MARATHON 134
-
- XLII. MILTIADES SAILS TO THE ISLAND OF PAROS 137
-
- XLIII. ARISTIDES IS OSTRACISED 140
-
- XLIV. THE DREAM OF XERXES 145
-
- XLV. XERXES ORDERS THE HELLESPONT TO BE SCOURGED 148
-
- XLVI. ‘THE BRAVEST MEN OF ALL HELLAS’ 153
-
- XLVII. THE BATTLE OF THERMOPYLAE 156
-
- XLVIII. THE BATTLE OF ARTEMISIUM 161
-
- XLIX. THEMISTOCLES URGES EURYBIADES TO STAY AT SALAMIS 163
-
- L. THEMISTOCLES TRICKS THE ADMIRALS 167
-
- LI. THE BATTLE OF SALAMIS 169
-
- LII. THE BATTLE OF PLATAEA 173
-
- LIII. THE DELIAN LEAGUE 178
-
- LIV. THEMISTOCLES DECEIVES THE SPARTANS 182
-
- LV. THEMISTOCLES IS OSTRACISED 185
-
- LVI. THE ELOQUENCE OF PERICLES 189
-
- LVII. PERICLES AND ELPINICE 194
-
- LVIII. THE CITY OF ATHENS 196
-
- LIX. GREAT MEN OF ATHENS 200
-
- LX. THE THEBANS ATTACK THE PLATAEANS 202
-
- LXI. ATTICA IS INVADED BY THE SPARTANS 205
-
- LXII. THE LAST WORDS OF PERICLES 207
-
- LXIII. THE SIEGE OF PLATAEA 210
-
- LXIV. THE SENTENCE OF DEATH 214
-
- LXV. BRASIDAS LOSES HIS SHIELD 218
-
- LXVI. THE SPARTANS SURRENDER 221
-
- LXVII. BRASIDAS THE SPARTAN 225
-
- LXVIII. AMPHIPOLIS SURRENDERS TO BRASIDAS 228
-
- LXIX. ALCIBIADES THE FAVOURITE OF ATHENS 232
-
- LXX. SOCRATES THE PHILOSOPHER 237
-
- LXXI. ALCIBIADES PRAISES SOCRATES 240
-
- LXXII. THE IMAGES OF HERMES ARE DESTROYED 244
-
- LXXIII. ALCIBIADES ESCAPES TO SPARTA 247
-
- LXXIV. THE SIEGE OF SYRACUSE 249
-
- LXXV. THE ATHENIAN ARMY IS DESTROYED 252
-
- LXXVI. ALCIBIADES RETURNS TO ATHENS 255
-
- LXXVII. ANTIOCHUS DISOBEYS ALCIBIADES 258
-
- LXXVIII. THE WALLS OF ATHENS ARE DESTROYED 261
-
- LXXIX. THE MARCH OF THE TEN THOUSAND 264
-
- LXXX. PELOPIDAS AND EPAMINONDAS 269
-
- LXXXI. THE SEVEN CONSPIRATORS 273
-
- LXXXII. THE BATTLE OF LEUCTRA 277
-
- LXXXIII. THE DEATH OF EPAMINONDAS 281
-
- LXXXIV. THE TWO BROTHERS 286
-
- LXXXV. TIMOLEON SENDS DIONYSIUS TO CORINTH 289
-
- LXXXVI. ICETES TRIES TO SLAY TIMOLEON 293
-
- LXXXVII. THE BATTLE OF CRIMISUS 296
-
- LXXXVIII. DEMOSTHENES WISHES TO BECOME AN ORATOR 300
-
- LXXXIX. DEMOSTHENES THE GREATEST ORATOR OF ATHENS 303
-
- XC. THE SACRED WAR 306
-
- XCI. ALEXANDER AND BUCEPHALUS 309
-
- XCII. ALEXANDER AND DIOGENES 312
-
- XCIII. THE BATTLE OF GRANICUS 315
-
- XCIV. THE GORDIAN KNOT 318
-
- XCV. DARIUS GALLOPS FROM THE BATTLEFIELD 321
-
- XCVI. TYRE IS STORMED BY ALEXANDER 325
-
- XCVII. THE BATTLE OF GAUGAMELA 328
-
- XCVIII. ALEXANDER BURNS PERSEPOLIS 331
-
- XCIX. ALEXANDER SLAYS HIS FOSTER-BROTHER 334
-
- C. PORUS AND HIS ELEPHANT 338
-
- CI. ALEXANDER IS WOUNDED 342
-
- CII. THE DEATH OF ALEXANDER 345
-
- CIII. DEMOSTHENES IN THE TEMPLE OF POSEIDON 349
-
- INDEX 353
-
-
-
-
-LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-
- She changed her into a spider, _Frontispiece_
-
- AT PAGE
- Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe, 6
-
- Demeter rejoiced for her daughter was by her side, 10
-
- The Wind-god sent a gust from the South, 18
-
- For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither and
- thither, 20
-
- Often she would stand upon the walls of Troy, 34
-
- ‘Yea, verily, thou art Odysseus,’ 68
-
- In the earliest times, a simple foot-race was the only event, 96
-
- Solon, the wise lawgiver of Athens, 102
-
- They crashed into the Persian army with tremendous force, 136
-
- Ship dashed against ship, till the Persian dead strewed the deep
- ‘like flowers,’ 170
-
- He stood silent before the king, 188
-
- The figure of the goddess was a colossal one, 196
-
- He became a target for every arrow, 220
-
- He drank the contents as though it were a draught of wine, 238
-
- The multitude saluted him with loud acclamations, 258
-
- He left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak, 304
-
- He ran toward the horse and seized the bridle, 310
-
- With an effort he looked at them as they passed, 348
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF GREECE
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-WONDERLAND
-
-
-The story of Greece began long, long ago in a strange wonderland of
-beauty. Woods and winds, fields and rivers, each had a pathway which
-led upward and onward into the beautiful land. Sometimes indeed no path
-was needed, for the rivers, woods, and lone hill-sides were themselves
-the wonderland of which I am going to tell.
-
-In the woods and winds, in the trees and rivers, dwelt the gods and
-goddesses whom the people of long ago worshipped. It was their presence
-in the world that made it so great, so wide, so wonderful.
-
-To the Hellenes, for that is the name by which the Greeks called
-themselves, there were eyes, living eyes in flowers, trees, and water.
-‘So crowded full is the air with them,’ wrote one poet who lived in the
-far-off days, ‘that there is no room to put in the spike of an ear of
-corn without touching one.’
-
-When the wind blew soft, the Hellenes listened to the whispering of a
-voice. When it blew rough, and snatched one of the children from their
-midst, they did not greatly grieve. The child had but gone to be the
-playmate of the gods.
-
-The springs sparkled clear, for in them dwelt the Naiads or freshwater
-nymphs, with gifts as great as the river gods, who were ofttimes seen
-and heard amid the churning, tossing waters.
-
-In the trees dwelt the Dryads, nymphs these of the forest, whom the
-Hellenes saw but seldom. Shy nymphs were the Dryads, born each one at
-the birth of a tree, in which she dwelt, fading away when the tree was
-felled, or when it withered and died.
-
-Their revels were held in some wooded mountain, far from the haunts of
-men. Were a human footfall heard, the frolics ceased on the instant,
-while each Dryad sped swift for shelter to the tree of her birth.
-
-So the gods wandered through the land, filling the earth with their
-presence. Yet there was one lofty mountain in central Greece, named
-Mount Olympus, which the Hellenes believed was the peculiar home of the
-gods. It was to this great mount that the actual roads on which the
-Hellenes walked each day seemed ever to lead.
-
-On the sides of the mountain, green trees and dark pines clustered
-close. The summit reached high up, beyond the clouds, so used the
-ancient people to tell. Here, where no human foot had ever climbed, up
-beyond the twinkling stars, was the abode of the gods.
-
-What the Hellenes never saw with their eyes, they saw quite clear
-with their imagination. Within the clouds, where the gods dwelt, they
-gazed in this strange way, upon marble halls, glistening with gold and
-silver, upon thrones too, great white thrones, finer far than those on
-which an earthly king might sit. The walls gleamed with rainbow tints,
-and beauty as of dawns and sunsets was painted over the vast arches of
-Olympus.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-THE GREAT GOD PAN
-
-
-The supreme god of the Hellenes was Zeus. He dwelt in the sky, yet on
-earth, too, he had a sanctuary amid the oak-woods of Dodona.
-
-When the oak-leaves stirred, his voice was heard, mysterious as the
-voice of the mightiest of all the gods.
-
-In days long after these, Phidias, a great Greek sculptor, made an
-image of Zeus. The form and the face of the god he moulded into
-wondrous beauty, so that men gazing saw sunshine on the brow, and in
-the eyes gladness and warmth as of summer skies.
-
-Even so, if you watch, you may catch on the faces of those whose home
-is on the hill-side, or by the sea, a glimpse of the beauty and the
-wonder amid which they dwell.
-
-It was only in very early times that the chief sanctuary of Zeus was
-at Dodona. Before they had dwelt long in Hellas, the Hellenes built a
-great temple in the plain of Olympia to their supreme god and named it
-the Olympian temple.
-
-Here a gold and ivory statue of the god was placed, and to the quiet
-courts of the temple came the people, singing hymns and marching in
-joyous procession.
-
-Zeus had stolen his great power from his father Kronus, with the help
-of his brothers and sisters. To reward them for their aid the god gave
-to them provinces over which they ruled in his name. Hera, Zeus chose
-as queen to reign with him. To Poseidon was given the sea, and a palace
-beneath the waves of the ocean, adorned with seaweed and with shells.
-
-Pluto was made the guardian of Hades, that dark and gloomy kingdom of
-the dead, beneath the earth, while Demeter was goddess of the earth,
-and her gifts were flowers, fruits, and bounteous harvests.
-
-Athene was the goddess of war and wisdom, yet often she was to be seen
-weaving or embroidering, while by her table sat her favourite bird, an
-owl.
-
-Hermes was known as the fleet-footed, for on his feet he wore winged
-sandals to speed him swift on the errands of the gods.
-
-Apollo, the Sun-god, was the youngest of all the Olympian deities. He
-dwelt at Parnassus on the eastern coast of Greece, and his sanctuary
-was at Delphi.
-
-The fairest of the goddesses was Aphrodite, Queen of Love. Her little
-son was named Eros, and he never grew up. Always he was a little rosy,
-dimpled child, carrying in his hands a bow and arrows.
-
-Many more gods and goddesses were there in the wonder days of long ago,
-but of only one more may I stay to tell you now.
-
-The great god Pan, protector of the shepherds and their flocks, was
-half man, half goat. Every one loved this strange god, who yet ofttimes
-startled mortals by his wild and wilful ways. When to-day a sudden,
-needless fear overtakes a crowd, and we say a panic has fallen upon it,
-we are using a word which we learned from the name of this old pagan
-god.
-
-Down by the streams the great god Pan was sometimes seen to wander--
-
- ‘What was he doing, the great god Pan,
- Down in the reeds by the river?
- Spreading ruin and scattering ban,
- Splashing and paddling with hoofs of a goat,
- And breaking the golden lilies afloat,
- With the dragon-fly on the river.
-
- ‘He tore out a reed, the great god Pan,
- From the deep cool bank of the river,’
-
-and then sitting down he ‘hacked and hewed, as a great god can,’ at the
-slender reed. He made it hollow, and notched out holes, and lo! there
-was a flute ready for his use.
-
-Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe as the god placed his
-mouth upon the holes.
-
- ‘Blinding sweet, O great god Pan!
- The sun on the hill forgot to die,
- And the lilies revived, and the dragon-fly
- Came back to dream on the river.’
-
-On the hill-sides and in the fields of Hellas, the shepherds heard the
-music of their god and were merry, knowing that he was on his way to
-frolic and to dance among them.
-
-Pan lived for many, many a long year; but there is a story which tells
-how on the first glad Christmas eve, when Jesus was born in Bethlehem,
-a traveller, as he passed Tarentum, the chief Greek city in Italy,
-heard a voice crying, ‘The great god Pan is dead.’
-
-And when this same Jesus had grown to be a Man, and ‘hung for love’s
-sake on a Cross,’ one of our own women poets sings that all the old
-gods of Greece
-
- ‘fell down moaning,
- Each from off his golden seat;
- All the false gods with a cry,
- Rendered up their deity,
- Pan, Pan was dead.’
-
-And the reason that the old gods fell was that the strange Man upon the
-Cross was mightier than they. But in the days of ancient Greece the
-gods were alive and strong; of that the Hellenes were very sure.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE SIX POMEGRANATE SEEDS
-
-
-Demeter, the goddess of the earth, was often to be seen in the fields
-in springtime. As the Greek peasants sowed their seed they caught
-glimpses of her long yellow hair while she moved now here, now there,
-among them. It almost seemed to these simple folk as though already
-the bare fields were golden with the glory of harvest, so bright
-shone the yellow hair of the goddess. Then they smiled hopefully one
-to the other, knowing well that Demeter would give them a bounteous
-reaping-time.
-
-In the autumn she was in the fields again, the peasants even dreamed
-that they saw her stoop to bind the sheaves. Certainly she had been
-known to visit their barns when the harvest was safely garnered. And
-stranger still, it was whispered among the womenfolk that the great
-Earth-Mother had entered their homes, had stood close beside them as
-they baked bread to feed their hungry households.
-
-It was in the beautiful island of Sicily, which lies in the
-Mediterranean Sea, that the goddess had her home. Here she dwelt with
-her daughter Persephone, whom she loved more dearly than words can tell.
-
-Persephone was young and fair, so fair that she seemed as one of the
-spring flowers that leaped into life when her mother touched the earth
-with her gracious hands.
-
-[Illustration: Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe]
-
-Early as the dawn the maiden was in the fields with Demeter, to gather
-violets while the dew still lay upon them, to dance and sing with her
-playmates. At other times she would move gravely by the side of her
-mother to help her in her quiet labours.
-
-All this time, Pluto, King of Hades, was living in his gloomy kingdom
-underground, longing for some fair maiden to share his throne. But
-there was not one who was willing to leave the glad light of the sun,
-no, not though Pluto offered her the most brilliant gems in his kingdom.
-
-One day the dark king came up out of the shadows, riding in his chariot
-of gold, drawn by immortal horses. Swifter was their pace than that of
-any mortal steeds.
-
-Persephone was in a meadow with her playfellows when the king drew
-near. The maiden stood knee-deep amid the meadow-grass, and, stooping,
-plucked the fragrant sweet flowers all around her--hyacinth, lilies,
-roses, and pale violets.
-
-Pluto saw the group of happy maidens, beautiful each one as a day in
-spring, but it was Persephone who charmed him more than any other.
-
-‘She shall be my queen and share my throne,’ muttered the gloomy king
-to himself. Then, for he knew that to woo the maiden would be vain,
-Pluto seized Persephone in his arms, and bore her weeping to his
-chariot.
-
-Swift as an arrow the immortal steeds sped from the meadow, where
-Persephone’s playmates were left terror-stricken and dismayed.
-
-On and on flew the chariot. Pluto was in haste to reach Hades ere
-Demeter should miss her daughter.
-
-A river lay across his path, but of this the king recked naught, for
-his steeds would bear him across without so much as lessening their
-speed.
-
-But as the chariot drew near, the waters began to rise as though driven
-by a tempest. Soon they were lashed to such fury that Pluto saw that it
-was vain to hope to cross to the other side. So he seized his sceptre,
-and in a passion he struck three times upon the ground. At once a great
-chasm opened in the earth, and down into the darkness plunged the
-horses. A moment more and Pluto was in his own kingdom, Persephone by
-his side.
-
-When the king seized the maiden in the meadow, and bore her to his
-chariot, she had cried aloud to Zeus, her father, to save her. But Zeus
-had made no sign, nor had any heard save Hecate, a mysterious goddess,
-whose face was half hidden by a veil.
-
-None other heard, yet her piteous cry echoed through the hills and
-woods, until at length the faint echo reached the ear of Demeter.
-
-A great pain plucked at the heart of the mother as she heard, and
-throwing the blue hood from off her shoulders, and loosening her long
-yellow hair, Demeter set forth, swift as a bird, to seek for Persephone
-until she found her.
-
-To her own home first she hastened, for there, she thought, she might
-find some trace of the child she loved so well. But the rooms were
-desolate as ‘an empty bird’s nest or an empty fold.’
-
-The mother’s eyes searched eagerly in every corner, but nothing met her
-gaze save the embroidery Persephone had been working, ‘a gift against
-the return of her mother, with labour all to be in vain.’ It lay as
-she had flung it down in careless mood, and over it crept a spider,
-spinning his delicate web across the maiden’s unfinished work.
-
-For nine days Demeter wandered up and down the earth, carrying blazing
-torches in her hands. Her sorrow was so great that she would neither
-eat nor drink, no, not even ambrosia, or a cup of sweet nectar, which
-are the meat and drink of the gods. Nor would she wash her face. On the
-tenth day Hecate came towards her, but she had only heard the voice of
-the maiden, and could not tell Demeter who had carried her away.
-
-Onward sped the unhappy mother, sick at heart for hope unfulfilled,
-onward until she reached the sun. Here she learned that it was Pluto
-who had stolen her daughter, and carried her away to his gloomy
-kingdom.
-
-Then in her despair Demeter left all her duties undone, and a terrible
-famine came upon the earth. ‘The dry seed remained hidden in the soil;
-in vain the oxen drew the ploughshare through the furrows.’
-
-As the days passed the misery of the people grew greater and greater,
-until faint and starving they came to Demeter, and besought her once
-again to bless the earth.
-
-But sorrow had made the heart of the goddess hard, and she listened
-unmoved to the entreaties of the hungry folk, saying only that until
-her daughter was found she could not care for their griefs.
-
-Long, weary days Demeter journeyed over land and sea to seek for
-Persephone, but at length she came back to Sicily.
-
-One day as she walked along the bank of a river, the water gurgled
-gladly, and a little wave carried a girdle almost to her feet.
-
-Demeter stooped to pick it up, and lo! it was the girdle that
-Persephone had worn on the day that she had been carried away. The
-maiden had flung it into the river as the chariot had plunged into the
-abyss, hoping that it might reach her mother. The girdle could not help
-Demeter to recover her daughter, yet how glad she was to have it, how
-safe she treasured it!
-
-At length, broken-hearted indeed, Demeter went to Zeus to beg him to
-give her back her daughter. ‘If she returns the people shall again have
-food and plenteous harvests,’ she cried. And the god, touched with the
-grief of the mother and the sore distress of the people, promised that
-Persephone should come back to earth, if she had eaten no food while
-she had lived in the gloomy kingdom of Hades.
-
-No words can tell the joy with which Demeter hastened to Hades. Here
-she found her daughter with no smile upon her sweet face, but only
-tears of desire for her mother and the dear light of the sun. But alas!
-that very day Persephone had eaten six pomegranate seeds. For every
-seed that she had eaten she was doomed to spend a month each year
-with Pluto. But for the other six months, year after year, mother and
-daughter would dwell together, and as they clung to one another they
-were joyous and content.
-
-So for six glad months each year Demeter rejoiced, for her daughter was
-by her side, and ever it was spring and summer while Persephone dwelt
-on earth. But when the time came for her to return to Hades, Demeter
-grew ever cold and sad, and the earth too became weary and grey. It was
-autumn and winter in the world until Persephone returned once more.
-
-[Illustration: Demeter rejoiced, for her daughter was by her side]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-THE BIRTH OF ATHENE
-
-
-One day Zeus was ill. To us it is strange to think of the gods as
-suffering the same pains as mortals suffer, but to the Hellenes it
-seemed quite natural.
-
-Zeus was ill. His head ached so severely that he bade all the gods
-assemble in Olympus to find a cure for his pain. But not one of them,
-not even Apollo, who was god of medicine as well as Sun-god, could ease
-the suffering deity.
-
-After a time Zeus grew impatient with the cruel pain, and resolved at
-all costs to end it. So he sent for his strong son Hephaestus, and bade
-him take an axe and cleave open his head.
-
-Hephaestus did not hesitate to obey, and no sooner had the blow
-descended than from his father’s head sprang forth Athene, the goddess
-of war and wisdom. She was clad in armour of pure gold, and held in
-her hand a spear, poised as though for battle. From her lips rang a
-triumphant war-song.
-
-The assembled gods gazed in wonder, not unmixed with fear at the
-warrior goddess, who had so suddenly appeared in their midst. But she
-herself stood unmoved before them, while a great earthquake shook the
-land and proclaimed to the dwellers in Hellas the birth of a new god.
-
-Athene was a womanly goddess as well as a warlike one. She presided
-over all kinds of needlework, and herself loved to weave beautiful
-tapestries.
-
-Soon after the birth of the goddess a man named Cecrops came to a
-province in Greece, which was afterwards known as Attica. Here he
-began to build a city, which grew so beautiful beneath his hands that
-the gods in Olympus marvelled. When it was finished, each of the gods
-wished to choose a name for the city Cecrops had built.
-
-As only one name could be used, the gods met in a great council to
-determine what was to be done. Soon, one by one, each gave up his wish
-to name the city, save only Athene and Poseidon.
-
-Then Zeus decreed that Athene and Poseidon should create an object
-which would be of use to mortals. To name the city and to care for it
-should be the prize of the one who produced the more useful gift.
-
-Poseidon at once seized his three-pronged fork or trident, which was
-the sign that he was ruler of the sea. As he struck the ground with it
-lo! a noble horse sprang forth, the first horse that the gods had seen.
-
-As Poseidon told the gods in how many ways the beautiful animal could
-be of use to mortals, they thought that Athene would not be able to
-produce anything that could help men more.
-
-When she quietly bade the council to look at an olive-tree, the gods
-laughed her to scorn. But they soon ceased to laugh. For Athene told
-them how the wood, the fruit, the leaves, all were of use, and not only
-so, but that the olive-tree was the symbol of peace, while the horse
-was the symbol of war. And war did ever more harm than good to mortals.
-
-So the gods decided that it was Athene who had won the right to name
-the city, and she gave to it her own name of Athene, and the citizens
-ever after worshipped her as their own peculiar goddess.
-
-Of this city, which we know as Athens, you will hear much in this
-story.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-THE TWO WEAVERS
-
-
-Athene could not only wield the sword, she could also ply the needle.
-
-In these olden days there lived in Greece a Lydian maid who could weave
-with wondrous skill. So beautiful were the tapestries she wrought that
-her fame spread far and wide. Lords and ladies both came from distant
-towns to see the maiden’s skilful hands at work.
-
-Arachne, for that was the maiden’s name, lived in a cottage with her
-parents. They were poor folk, and had often found it hard to earn their
-daily bread. But now that their daughter was famous for her embroidery
-their troubles were at an end. For not only lords and ladies, but
-merchants, too, were glad to pay well to secure the young maid’s
-exquisite designs.
-
-And so all would have been well with Arachne and her parents had not
-the foolish girl become vain of her work. Soon her companions began
-to weary of her, for of nothing could she talk save of her own deft
-fingers, of her own beautiful embroideries.
-
-Those who loved Arachne grew sad as they listened to her proud words,
-and warned her that ‘pride ever goes before a fall.’
-
-But Arachne only tossed her pretty head as she listened to the wisdom
-of older folk. Nor did she cease to boast, even saying that she could
-do more wonderful work than the goddess Athene.
-
-Not once, but many times did Arachne say that she wished she might
-test her skill against that of the goddess. And should a prize be
-offered, proudly she declared that it was she who would win it.
-
-From Olympus Athene heard the vain words of the maid. So displeased was
-she with her boldness that she determined to go to see Arachne, and if
-she did not repent to punish her.
-
-She changed herself into an old white-haired dame, and came to earth.
-Leaning upon a staff she knocked at the door of the cottage where
-Arachne lived, and was bidden to enter.
-
-Arachne was sitting in the midst of those who had come to see and to
-praise her work. Soon she began to talk, as she was quick to do, of her
-skill, and of how she believed that her work surpassed in beauty any
-that Athene could produce.
-
-The old woman pushed her way through the group that surrounded the
-maid, and laying her hand upon the shoulder of Arachne she spoke kindly
-to her.
-
-‘Be more modest, my child,’ she said, ‘lest the anger of the gods
-descend upon you, lest Athene take you at your word, and bid you to the
-contest you desire.’
-
-Impatiently Arachne shook off the stranger’s hand, and answered, ‘Who
-are you who dare speak to me? I would Athene might hear my words now,
-and come to test her skill against mine. She would soon see that she
-had a rival in Arachne.’
-
-Athene frowned at the insolence of the maiden. Then the little company
-were startled to see the old woman suddenly change into the glorious
-form of the goddess Athene. As they gazed they were afraid and fell at
-her feet.
-
-But Arachne did not worship the goddess. Foolish Arachne looked boldly
-in her face, and asked if she had come to accept her challenge.
-
-Athene’s only answer was to sit down before an empty loom. Soon each,
-in silence, had begun to weave a wondrous tapestry.
-
-Swift and more swift moved the fingers of the weavers, while the group
-of strangers, gathered now near to the door, watched the webs as they
-grew and grew apace.
-
-Into her tapestry Athene was weaving the story of her contest with
-Poseidon for the city of Cecrops. The olive-tree, the horse, the gods
-in the council, all seemed to live as they appeared on the web of the
-goddess.
-
-The tapestry woven by Arachne was also beauteous as her work was wont
-to be. In it you saw the sea, with waves breaking over a great bull, to
-whose horns clung a girl named Europa. And Europa’s curls blew free in
-the wind.
-
-At length Athene rose from the loom, her work complete. Arachne, too,
-laid down her spindle, and as she turned to look upon the tapestry of
-the goddess her courage suddenly failed.
-
-A glance had been enough to show her that her skill was as nothing
-before the wonder and the beauty of Athene’s work.
-
-Too late the maiden repented that she had defied the goddess. In her
-despair she seized a rope and tied it round her neck to hang herself.
-
-But the goddess saw what Arachne meant to do, and at once she changed
-her into a spider, bidding her from henceforth never cease to spin.
-
-And so when you see a spider weaving its beautiful embroidery on a
-dewy morning in the garden, or when you find a delicate web in your
-lumber-room, you will remember how Athene punished poor foolish Arachne
-in the days of old.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-THE PURPLE FLOWERS
-
-
-Apollo, the youngest and most beautiful of all the gods, dearly loved a
-lad named Hyacinthus.
-
-Ofttimes he would leave the other gods sipping nectar in Mount Olympus,
-ofttimes he would forsake the many beautiful temples in which he was
-worshipped on earth, that he might be free to wander through the woods
-with his little friend.
-
-For Hyacinthus was only a merry little lad, who loved to roam over hill
-and dale, and when the fancy seized him to hunt in the woods.
-
-Apollo was never happier than when he was with the boy. Sometimes he
-would go hunting with him, and then Hyacinthus was merrier than ever,
-for the world seemed more full of brightness when the Sun-god was by
-his side. Sometimes the friends would walk together over hill and dale,
-followed by the dogs Hyacinthus loved so well.
-
-One day they had wandered far, and the little lad was tired, so he
-flung himself down in a grassy meadow to rest, Apollo by his side. But
-the Sun-god was soon eager for a game. He sprang to his feet, crying,
-‘Hyacinthus, let us play at quoits before the shadows fall.’
-
-Quoits were flat, heavy discs, and the game was won by the player who
-could fling the quoits the farthest through the air.
-
-Hyacinthus was ever willing to do as Apollo wished, and the game was
-soon begun. After a throw of more than usual skill and strength the
-friends laughed gleefully.
-
-O but it was good to be alive in such a happy world, thought
-Hyacinthus. And Apollo, as he looked at the merry face of the little
-lad, rejoiced that he was not sitting in the cold marble halls of
-Olympus, but was here on the glad green earth.
-
-By and by while they still played, Zephyrus, the god of the south wind,
-came fleeting by. He saw the Sun-god and his little playmate full of
-laughter and of joy.
-
-Then an ugly passion, named jealousy, awoke in the heart of the god,
-for he too loved the little hunter Hyacinthus, and would fain have been
-in Apollo’s place.
-
-Zephyrus tarried a while to watch the friends. Once as Apollo flung his
-disc high into the air, the Wind-god sent a gust from the south which
-blew the quoit aside. He meant only to annoy Apollo, but Hyacinthus was
-standing by, so that the quoit struck him violently on the forehead.
-
-The lad fell to the ground, and soon he was faint from loss of blood.
-
-In vain Apollo tried to staunch the wound; nothing he could do was
-of any use. Little by little the boy’s strength ebbed away, and the
-Sun-god knew that the lad would never hunt or play again on earth.
-Hyacinthus was dead.
-
-The grief of the god was terrible. His tears fell fast as he mourned
-for the playmate he had loved so well.
-
-At length he dried his tears and took his lyre, and as he played he
-sang a last song to his friend. And all the woodland creatures were
-silent that they might listen to the love-song of the god.
-
-When the song was ended, Apollo laid aside his lyre, and, stooping,
-touched with his hand the blood-drops of the lad. And lo! they were
-changed into a cluster of beautiful purple flowers, which have ever
-since been named hyacinths, after the little lad Hyacinthus.
-
-Year by year as the spring sun shines, the wonderful purple of the
-hyacinth is seen. Then you, who know the story, think of the days of
-long ago, when the Sun-god lost his little friend and a cluster of
-purple flowers bloomed upon the spot where he lay.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-DANAE AND HER LITTLE SON
-
-
-The stories I have told you are about the gods of ancient Greece; the
-story I am going to tell you now is about a Greek hero.
-
-When you think of a hero, you think of a man who does brave, unselfish
-deeds. But to the Hellenes or Greeks a hero was one who was half god,
-half man--whose one parent was a god while the other was a mortal. So
-the god Zeus was the father of Perseus, the hero of whom I am going to
-tell, while his mother was a beautiful princess named Danae.
-
-From morning to night, from night till morning, Acrisius, the father of
-Danae, was never happy. Yet he was a king.
-
-A king and unhappy? Yes, this king was unhappy because he was afraid
-that some day, as an oracle had foretold, he would be slain by his
-grandson.
-
-The ancient Greeks often sent to sacred groves or temples to ask their
-gods about the future, and the answer, which was given by a priestess,
-was called an oracle.
-
-Now Acrisius, King of Argos, had no grandson, so it was strange that
-the oracle should make him afraid. He hoped that he never would have a
-grandson.
-
-His one child, beautiful, gentle Danae he had loved well until he had
-heard the oracle. Now he determined to send her away from the palace,
-to hide her, where no prince would ever find her and try to win her for
-his bride.
-
-[Illustration: The Wind-god sent a gust from the south]
-
-So the king shut the princess into a tower, which was encased in
-brass and surrounded it with guards, so that no one, and least of all a
-prince, could by any chance catch a glimpse of his beautiful daughter.
-
-Very sad was Danae, very lonely, too, when she was left in the brazen
-tower, and Zeus looking down from Olympus pitied her, and before long
-sent a little son to cheer her loneliness.
-
-One day the guards saw the babe on his mother’s knee. Here was the
-grandson about whom the king had hoped that he would never be born.
-
-In great alarm they hastened to the palace to tell the king the strange
-tidings. Acrisius was so frightened when he heard their story that he
-flew into a passion, and vowed that both Danae and Perseus, as her
-little son was named, should perish. So he ordered the guards to carry
-the mother and her babe to the seashore, and to send them adrift on the
-waters in an empty boat.
-
-For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither and thither by
-the winds and the waves, while Danae, in sore dismay but with a brave
-heart, clasped her golden-haired boy tight in her arms.
-
-The child slept sound in the frail bark, while his mother cried to the
-gods to bring her and her treasure into a safe haven.
-
-On the third day the answer to her prayers came, for before her Danae
-saw an island with a shore of yellow sand. And on the shore stood a
-fisherman with his net, looking out to sea. He soon caught sight of the
-boat, and as it drew near he cast his net over it, and gently pulled it
-to the shore.
-
-It seemed to Danae almost too good to be true, to stand once again on
-dry land. She thought it was but a dream, from which she would awake to
-find herself once more tossing on the great wide sea.
-
-But there stood Dictys, the fisherman, looking at her in wonder. Then
-Danae knew that she was indeed awake. She hastened to thank him for
-his help, and to ask him where she could find shelter for herself and
-her child.
-
-Then the fisherman, who was the brother of Polydectes, king of the
-island on which Danae had landed, said that if she would go with him
-to his home he would treat her as a daughter. And Danae went gladly to
-live with Dictys.
-
-So Perseus grew up in the island of Seriphus, playing on the sands when
-he was small, and when he had grown tall and strong going voyages to
-other islands with Dictys, or fishing with him nearer home. Zeus loved
-the lad and watched over him.
-
-Fifteen years passed, and then the wife of Polydectes died, and the
-king wished to marry Danae, for he loved her and knew that she was a
-princess.
-
-But Danae did not wish to wed Polydectes, and she refused to become his
-queen, for indeed she loved no one save her son Perseus.
-
-Then the king was angry, and vowed that if Danae would not come to the
-palace as his queen, he would compel her to come as his slave.
-
-And it was even so, as a slave, that Perseus found her, when he
-returned from a voyage with Dictys.
-
-The anger of the lad was fierce. How dare any one treat his beautiful
-mother so cruelly! He would have slain the king had not Dictys
-restrained him.
-
-Subduing his anger as well as he could, Perseus went boldly to the
-palace, and taking no heed of Polydectes, he brought his mother away
-and left her in the temple of Athene. There she would be safe, for no
-one, not even the king, would enter the sanctuary of the goddess.
-
-‘Perseus must leave the island,’ said Polydectes when he was told of
-the lad’s bold deed. He thought that if her son were banished Danae
-would perchance be willing to become his queen.
-
-[Illustration: For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither
-and thither]
-
-But Polydectes was too crafty to issue a royal command bidding Perseus
-leave Seriphus. That, he knew, would make Danae hate him more than
-ever, so he thought of a better way to get rid of the lad. He arranged
-to give a great feast in the palace, and proclaimed that each guest
-should bring a gift to present to the king.
-
-Among other youths, Perseus, too, was invited, but he was poor and had
-no gift to bring. And this was what the unkind king wished.
-
-So when Perseus entered the palace empty-handed, Polydectes was quick
-to draw attention to the lad, laughing at him and taunting him that
-he had not done as the other guests and brought with him a gift. The
-courtiers followed the example of their king, and Perseus found himself
-attacked on every side.
-
-The lad soon lost his temper, and looking with defiance at Polydectes,
-he cried, ‘I will bring you the head of Medusa as a gift, O King, when
-next I enter the palace!’
-
-‘Brave words are these, Perseus,’ answered the king. ‘See that you turn
-them into deeds, or we shall think you but boast as does a coward.’
-
-Then as Perseus turned and left the banqueting-hall the king laughed
-well pleased, for he had goaded the lad until he had fallen into the
-trap prepared for him. If Perseus went in search of the head of Medusa,
-he was not likely to be seen again in Seriphus, thought the king.
-
-And Perseus, as he walked away toward the sea, was saying to himself,
-‘Yes, I shall go in search of Medusa, nor shall I return unless I bring
-her head with me, a gift for the king.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-THE QUEST OF PERSEUS
-
-
-Medusa and her two sisters were named the Gorgons. The sisters had
-always been plain and even terrible to see, but Medusa had once been
-fair to look upon.
-
-When she was young and beautiful her home was in a northern land where
-the sun never shone, so she begged Athene to send her to the south
-where sunshine made the long days glad. But the goddess refused her
-request.
-
-In her anger Medusa cried, ‘It is because I am so beautiful that you
-will not let me go. For if Medusa were to be seen who then would wish
-to look at Athene.’
-
-Such proud and foolish words might not be suffered by the gods, and the
-maiden was sharply punished for her rash speech. Her beautiful curly
-hair was changed into serpents, living serpents that hissed and coiled
-around her head. Nor was this all, but whoever so much as glanced at
-her face was at once turned into stone.
-
-Terrible indeed was Medusa, the Gorgon, whose head Perseus had vowed
-to bring as a gift to Polydectes. She had great wings like eagles and
-sharp claws instead of hands.
-
-Now as Perseus wandered down to the shore after he had defied the king,
-his heart began to sink. How was he even to begin his task? He did not
-know where Medusa lived, nor did any one on the island.
-
-In his perplexity he did as his mother had taught him to do; he prayed
-to Athene, and lo! even as he prayed the goddess was there by his
-side. With her was Hermes, the fleet-footed, wearing his winged sandals.
-
-‘The gods will aid you, Perseus,’ said Athene, ‘if you will do as they
-bid you. But think not to find their service easy. For they who serve
-the gods must endure hardship, and live laborious lives. Will this
-content you?’
-
-Perseus had no fears now that he knew the gods would help him, and with
-a brave and steadfast heart he answered, ‘I am content.’
-
-Then Pluto sent to the lad his magic helmet, which made whoever wore
-it invisible. Hermes gave to him the winged sandals he wore, so that
-he might be able to fly over land and sea, while Athene entrusted to
-him her shield, the dread Ægis, burnished bright as the sun. The shield
-was made from the hide of a goat, but the Hellenes thought of it as the
-great storm-cloud in which Zeus hid himself when he was angry. For it
-was the shield of her father Zeus that Athene used.
-
-Upon Medusa herself Perseus would not be able to cast a glance lest he
-be turned to stone, but looking at the shield he would see her image as
-in a mirror.
-
-The lad was now armed for his quest, but not yet did he know whither it
-would lead.
-
-But Athene could direct him. She said that the abode of the Gorgons was
-known to none save three sisters called the Grææ. These sisters had
-been born with grey hair, and had only one eye and one tooth between
-them, which they used in turn. Their home was in the north, in a land
-of perpetual darkness, and it was there that Perseus must go to learn
-the dwelling-place of the Gorgons. So at length the lad was ready to
-set out on his great adventure.
-
-On and on, sped by his winged sandals he flew, past many a fair town,
-until he left Greece far behind. On and on until he reached the dark
-and dreary land where the Grææ dwelt. He could see them now, the three
-grey sisters, as they sat in the gloom just outside their cave.
-
-As Perseus drew near, unseen by them, because of his magic helmet, the
-sisters were passing their one eye from hand to hand, so that at that
-moment all three were blind.
-
-Perseus saw his chance, and stretching out his hand seized the eye.
-They, each thinking the other had it, began to quarrel. But Perseus
-cried, ‘I hold the eye in my hand. Tell me where I may find Medusa and
-you shall have it back.’
-
-The sisters were startled by a voice when they had neither seen nor
-heard any one approach; they were more startled by what the voice said.
-
-Very unwilling were they to tell their secret, yet what could they do
-if the stranger refused to give back their one eye? Already he was
-growing impatient, and threatening to throw it into the sea. So lest he
-should really fling it away they were forced to tell him where he would
-find the Gorgon. Then Perseus, placing the eye in one of the eager,
-outstretched hands, sped swiftly on his journey.
-
-As he reached the land of which the Grææ had told him, he heard the
-restless beating of the Gorgon’s wings, and he knew that his quest was
-well-nigh over.
-
-Onward still he flew, and then raising his burnished shield he looked
-into it, and lo! he saw the images of the Gorgons. They lay, all three,
-fast asleep on the shore.
-
-Unsheathing his sword, Perseus held it high, and then, keeping his gaze
-fixed upon the shield, he flew down and swiftly cut off Medusa’s head
-and thrust it into a magic bag which he carried slung over his shoulder.
-
-Now as Perseus seized the terrible head, the serpents coiled around the
-Gorgon’s brow roused themselves, and began to hiss so fiercely that the
-two sisters awoke and knew that evil had befallen Medusa.
-
-They could not see Perseus, for he wore his magic helmet, but they
-heard him, and in an instant they were following fast, eager to avenge
-the death of their sister.
-
-For a moment the brave heart of the hero failed.
-
-Was he doomed to perish now that his task was accomplished?
-
-He cried aloud to Athene, for he heard the Gorgons following ever
-closer on his path. Then more swiftly sped the winged sandals, and soon
-Perseus breathed freely once again, for he had left the dread sisters
-far behind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-ANDROMEDA AND THE SEA-MONSTER
-
-
-As Perseus journeyed over land and sea on his great quest, he often
-thought of the dear mother he had left in Seriphus. Now that his task
-was done he longed to fly over the blue waters of the Mediterranean
-to see her, to know that she was safe from the cruel King Polydectes.
-But the gods had work for Perseus to do before he might return to his
-island home.
-
-Again and again the lad struggled against wind and rain, trying ever
-to fly in the direction of Seriphus, but again and again he was beaten
-back.
-
-Faint and weary he grew, tired too of striving, so that he thought he
-would die in the desert through which he was passing.
-
-Then all at once it flashed across his mind that Hermes had told him
-that as long as he wore the winged sandals he could not lose his way.
-New courage stole into his heart as he remembered the words of the god,
-and soon he found that he was being carried with the wind toward some
-high mountains. Among them he caught sight of a Titan or giant named
-Atlas, who had once tried to dethrone Zeus, and who for his daring had
-been doomed to stand,
-
- ‘Supporting on his shoulders the vast pillar
- Of Heaven and Earth, a weight of cumbrous grasp.’
-
-The face of Atlas was pale with the mighty burden he bore, and which
-he longed to lay down. As he caught sight of Perseus he thought that
-perhaps the stranger would be able to help him, for he knew what
-Perseus carried in his magic bag. So as he drew near Atlas cried to
-him, ‘Hasten, Perseus, and let me look upon the Gorgon’s face, that I
-may no longer feel this great weight upon my shoulders.’
-
-Then in pity Perseus drew from the magic bag the head of Medusa, and
-held it up before the eyes of Atlas. In a moment the giant was changed
-into stone, or rather into a great rugged mountain, which ever since
-that day has been known as the Atlas Mountain.
-
-The winged sandals then bore Perseus on until he reached a dark and
-desolate land. So desolate it was that it seemed to him that the gods
-had forsaken it, or that it had been blighted by the sins of mortals.
-In this island lived Queen Cassiopeia with her daughter Andromeda.
-
-Cassiopeia was beautiful, but instead of thanking the gods for their
-gift of beauty, she used to boast of it, saying that she was fairer
-than the nymphs of the sea.
-
-So angry were the nymphs when they heard this, that they sent a
-terrible monster to the island, which laid it waste, and made it dark
-and desolate as Perseus had seen.
-
-The island folk sent to one of their temples to ask what they could do
-to free their island from the presence of the sea-serpent.
-
-‘This monster has been sent to punish Cassiopeia for her vain boast,’
-was the answer. ‘Bid her sacrifice her daughter Andromeda to the
-sea-serpent, then will the nymphs remove the curse from your homes.’
-
-Andromeda was fair and good, and the people loved her well, so that
-they were greatly grieved at the oracle. Yet if they did not give up
-their princess their homes would be ruined, their children would perish
-before their eyes.
-
-So while the queen shut herself up in her palace to weep, the people
-took the beautiful maiden down to the shore and chained her fast to a
-great rock. Then slowly, sorrowfully, they went away, leaving her a
-prey to the terrible monster.
-
-As Perseus drew nearer to the sea he saw the maiden. The next moment
-he was gazing in horror at the sea-serpent, as with open, hungry jaws
-it approached its victim.
-
-Quick as lightning Perseus drew his sword and swooped down toward the
-monster, at the same moment holding before him the head of Medusa.
-
-As the eyes of the serpent fell upon that awful sight, it slipped
-backward, and before Perseus could use his sword, it was changed into a
-rock, a great black rock. And if you go to the shore of the Levant you
-may see it still, surrounded by the blue waters of the Mediterranean.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-ACRISIUS IS KILLED BY PERSEUS
-
-
-As soon as Perseus saw that the monster was harmless, he took off his
-magic helmet, and hastening to Andromeda he broke the chain that held
-her to the rock. Then bidding her fear no more he led her back to the
-palace, where the queen sat weeping for her lost daughter.
-
-When the door of her room was opened Cassiopeia never stirred.
-Andromeda’s arms were around her, Andromeda’s kisses were on her cheek
-before she could believe that her daughter was in very truth alive.
-Then, indeed, the mother’s joy was boundless.
-
-So fair, so good was the maiden that Perseus loved her, and thanked
-the gods who had led him to that desolate land. Before many weeks had
-passed the princess was wedded to the stranger who had saved her from
-the terrible sea-monster.
-
-Twelve months later they left Cassiopeia, and sailed away to Seriphus,
-for Perseus longed to see his mother, and to bring to her his beautiful
-bride.
-
-Seven long years had passed since Perseus set out on his quest, and
-Danae’s heart was glad when she saw her son once more.
-
-As soon as their greetings were over, Perseus left Andromeda with his
-mother, and went to the palace, carrying with him the head of Medusa in
-the magic bag.
-
-The king was feasting with his nobles when Perseus entered the
-banqueting-hall. Long, long ago he had ceased to think of Perseus, for
-he believed that he had perished on his wild adventure. Now he saw
-him, grown to be a man, entering the hall, and he grew pale with sudden
-fear.
-
-Paying no heed to any, Perseus strode through the throng of merry
-courtiers until he stood before the throne on which sat Polydectes.
-
-‘Behold the gift I promised you seven years ago, O King!’ cried
-Perseus, and as he spoke he drew forth the head of Medusa and held it
-up for the king to see.
-
-Polydectes and his startled nobles stared in horror at the awful face
-of the Gorgon, and as they gazed the king and all his followers were
-changed into figures of stone.
-
-Then Perseus turned and left the palace, and telling the island folk
-that Polydectes was dead, he bade them now place Dictys, the fisherman,
-upon the throne.
-
-He then hastened to the temple of Athene, and with a glad heart gave
-back to the goddess the gifts which had served him so well--the helmet,
-the sandals, the shield.
-
-As his own offering to Athene he gave the head of the Gorgon. She, well
-pleased, accepted it, and had it placed in the centre of her shield,
-so from that day the Ægis became more terrible than before, for the
-Gorgon’s head still turned to stone whoever looked upon it.
-
-Danae had often talked to Perseus when he was a boy of Acrisius, her
-father, and of Argos, the city from which he had been banished when
-he was a babe. Perseus now resolved to sail to Argos with Danae and
-Andromeda. During these years Acrisius had been driven from his throne
-by an ambitious prince. He was in a miserable dungeon, thinking, it
-may be, of his unkindness to his daughter Danae, when she once again
-reached Argos.
-
-Perseus soon drove away the usurper, and for his mother’s dear sake he
-took Acrisius out of his dungeon and gave him back his kingdom. For
-Danae had wept and begged Perseus to rescue his grandfather from prison.
-
-It seemed as though the oracle that long ago had made Acrisius act so
-cruelly would now never be fulfilled. But sooner or later the words of
-the gods come true.
-
-One day Perseus was present at the games that were held each year at
-Argos. As he flung a quoit into the air a sudden gust of wind hurled it
-aside, so that it fell upon the foot of Acrisius, who was sitting near.
-
-The king was an old man now, and the blow was more than he could bear.
-Before long he died from the wound, and thus the oracle of the gods was
-fulfilled.
-
-Perseus was kind as he was brave, and it grieved him that he had caused
-the death of his grandfather, although it had been by no fault of his
-own.
-
-Argos no longer seemed a happy place to the young king, so he left it,
-and going to a city called Mycenæ, he made it his capital. Here, after
-a long and prosperous reign, Perseus died. The gods whom he had served
-loyally, placed him in the skies, among the stars. And there he still
-shines, together with Andromeda and Cassiopeia.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-ACHILLES AND BRISEIS THE FAIRCHEEKED
-
-
-The story of Perseus belongs to the Heroic Age of Greek history, to the
-time when heroes were half mortal, half divine. Many other wonderful
-tales belong to the Heroic Age, but among them all none are so famous
-as those that are told in the _Iliad_ and the _Odyssey_. The _Iliad_
-tells of the war that raged around the walls of the city of Troy; the
-_Odyssey_ of the adventures of the goodly Odysseus.
-
-In the north-west corner of Asia, looking toward Greece, the ruins of
-an ancient city have been discovered. It was on this spot that Troy or
-Ilium was believed to have stood.
-
-Strange legends gathered round the warriors of the Trojan War, so
-strange that some people say that there never were such heroes as
-those of whom the _Iliad_ tells. However that may be, we know that in
-long after years, when the Greeks fought with the people of Asia, they
-remembered these old stories, and believed that they were carrying on
-the wars which their fathers had begun.
-
-The _Iliad_ and the _Odyssey_ were written by a poet named Homer, so
-many wise folk tell. While others, it may be just as wise, say that
-these poems were not written by one man, but were gathered from the
-legends of the people, now by one poet, now by another, until they grew
-into the collection of stories which we know as the _Iliad_ and the
-_Odyssey_.
-
-At first these old stories were not written in a book; they were sung
-or told in verse by the poets to the people of Hellas. And because
-what is ‘simple and serious lives longer than what is merely clever,’
-these grave old stories of two thousand years ago are still alive, and
-people are still eager to read them.
-
-Some day you will read the _Iliad_ and the _Odyssey_. In this story
-I can only tell you about a few of the mighty warriors who fought at
-Troy, about a few of their strange adventures.
-
-If you look at a map of Greece you will easily find, in the south,
-the country called Peloponnesus. In Peloponnesus you will see Sparta,
-the capital city, over which Menelaus was king, when the story of the
-_Iliad_ begins.
-
-Menelaus was married to a beautiful queen named Helen. She was the
-fairest woman in the wide world.
-
-One day there came to the court of the king a prince named Paris. He
-was the second son of Priam, King of Troy. Menelaus welcomed his royal
-guest and treated him with kindness, but Paris repaid the hospitality
-of the king most cruelly. For when affairs of State called Menelaus
-away from Sparta for a short time, Paris did not wait until he
-returned. He hastened back to Troy, taking with him the beautiful Queen
-of Sparta, who was ever after known as Helen of Troy.
-
-When Menelaus came home to find that Helen had gone away to Troy, he
-swore a great oath that he would besiege the city, punish Paris, and
-bring back his beautiful queen to Sparta; and this was the beginning of
-the Trojan War.
-
-Menelaus had not a large enough army to go alone against his enemy. So
-he sent to his brother Agamemnon, who was the chief of all the mighty
-warriors of Hellas, and to many other lords, to beg them to help him to
-besiege Troy, and, if it might be, to slay Paris.
-
-The chiefs were eager to help Menelaus to avenge his wrongs, and soon a
-great army was ready to sail across the Hellespont to Asia, to march on
-Troy.
-
-But before the army embarked, the warriors sent, as was their custom,
-to an oracle, to ask if their expedition would be successful.
-
-‘Without the help of goodly Achilles, Troy will never be taken,’ was
-the answer.
-
-Achilles was the son of Thetis, the silver-footed goddess, whose
-home was in the depths of the sea. Well did she love her strong son
-Achilles. When he was a babe she wished to guard him from the dangers
-that would surely threaten him when he grew to be a man, so she took
-him in her arms and carried him to the banks of the river Styx. Whoever
-bathed in these magic waters became invulnerable, that is, he became
-proof against every weapon. Silver-footed Thetis, holding her precious
-babe firmly by one heel, plunged him into the tide, so that his little
-body became at once invulnerable, save only the heel by which his
-mother grasped him. It was untouched by the magic water.
-
-Achilles set sail with the other chiefs for Troy, so it seemed as
-though the city would be taken by his help, as the oracle foretold.
-With him Achilles took his well-loved friend Patroclus.
-
-For nine long years was the city of Troy besieged, and all for the sake
-of Helen the beautiful Queen of Sparta. Often as the years passed, she
-would stand upon the walls of Troy to look at the brave warriors of
-Hellas, to wonder when they would take the city. But when nine years
-had passed, no breach had yet been made in the walls.
-
-When the Hellenes needed food or clothing, they attacked and plundered
-the neighbouring cities, which were not so well defended as Troy.
-
-The plunder of one of these cities, named Chryse, was the cause of the
-fatal quarrel between Agamemnon and Achilles.
-
-In Chryse there was a temple sacred to Apollo, guarded by a priest
-named Chryses. His daughter Chryseis, and another beautiful maiden
-named Briseis the Faircheeked, were taken prisoners when the town was
-sacked by the Hellenes. Agamemnon claimed the daughter of the priest as
-his share of the spoil, while Briseis he awarded to Achilles.
-
-[Illustration: Often she would stand upon the walls of Troy]
-
-When Chryses the priest found that his daughter had been carried
-away by the Greeks, he hastened to the tent of Agamemnon, taking with
-him a ransom great ‘beyond telling.’ In his hands he bore a golden
-staff on which he had placed the holy garland, that the Greeks, seeing
-it, might treat him with reverence.
-
-‘Now may the gods that dwell in the mansions of Olympus grant you to
-lay waste the city of Priam and to fare happily homeward,’ said the
-priest to the assembled chiefs, ‘only set ye my dear child free and
-accept the ransom in reverence to Apollo.’
-
-All save Agamemnon wished to accept the ransom and set Chryseis free,
-but he was wroth with the priest and roughly bade him begone.
-
-‘Let me not find thee, old man,’ he cried, ‘amid the ships, whether
-tarrying now or returning again hereafter, lest the sacred staff of
-the god avail thee naught. And thy daughter will I not set free. But
-depart, provoke me not, that thou mayest the rather go in peace.’
-
-Then Chryseis was angry with Agamemnon, while for his daughter’s sake
-he wept.
-
-Down by the ‘shore of the loud-sounding sea’ he walked, praying to
-Apollo, ‘Hear me, god of the silver bow. If ever I built a temple
-gracious in thine eyes, or if ever I burnt to thee fat flesh ... of
-bulls or goats, fulfil thou this my desire; let the Greeks pay by thine
-arrows for my tears.’
-
-Apollo heard the cry of the priest, and swift was his answer. For he
-hastened to the tents of the Greeks, bearing upon his shoulders his
-silver bow, and he sped arrows of death into the camp.
-
-Dogs, mules, men, all fell before the arrows of the angry god. The
-bodies of the dead were burned on great piles of wood, and the smoke
-rose black toward the sky.
-
-For nine days the clanging of the silver bow was heard. Then Achilles
-called the hosts of the Greeks together, and before them all he spoke
-thus to Agamemnon: ‘Let us go home, Son of Atreus,’ he said, ‘rather
-than perish, as we surely shall do if we remain here. Else let us ask
-a priest why Apollo treats us thus harshly.’
-
-But it was easy to tell why Apollo was angry, and Calchas, a seer,
-answered Achilles in plain-spoken words. ‘The wrath of the god is upon
-us,’ he said, ‘for the sake of the priest whom Agamemnon spurned,
-refusing to accept the ransom of his daughter. Let Chryseis be sent
-back to her father, and for sacrifice also a hundred beasts, that the
-anger of the god may be pacified.’
-
-Deep was the wrath of Agamemnon as he listened to the words of Calchas.
-
-‘Thou seer of evil,’ he cried, his eyes aflame with anger, ‘never yet
-hast thou told me the thing that is pleasant. Yet that the hosts of our
-army perish not, I will send the maiden back. But in her place will I
-take Briseis the Fair-cheeked, whom Achilles has in his tent.’
-
-When Achilles heard these words he drew his sword to slay Agamemnon.
-But before he could strike a blow he felt the locks of his golden hair
-caught in a strong grasp, and in a moment his rage was checked, for
-he knew the touch was that of the goddess Athene. None saw her save
-Achilles, none heard as she said to him, ‘I came from heaven to stay
-thine anger.... Go to now, cease from strife, and let not thine hand
-draw the sword.’
-
-Then Achilles sheathed his sword, saying, ‘Goddess, needs must a man
-observe thy saying even though he be very wroth at heart, for so is the
-better way.’
-
-Yet although Achilles struck no blow, bitter were the words he spoke
-to the king, for a coward did he deem him and full of greed. ‘If thou
-takest from me Briseis,’ he cried, ‘verily, by my staff, that shall not
-blossom again seeing it has been cleft from a tree, never will I again
-draw sword for thee. Surely I and my warriors will go home, for no
-quarrel have we with the Trojans. And when Hector slaughters thy hosts,
-in vain shalt thou call for Achilles.’
-
-Well did Agamemnon know that he ought to soothe the anger of Achilles
-and prevail on him to stay, for his presence alone could make the
-Trojans fear. Yet in his pride the king answered, ‘Thou mayest go and
-thy warriors with thee. Chieftains have I who will serve me as well as
-thou, and who will pay me more respect than ever thou hast done. As for
-the maiden Briseis, her I will have, that the Greeks may know that I am
-indeed the true sovereign of this host.’
-
-The Assembly then broke up, and Chryseis was sent home under the charge
-of Odysseus, one of the bravest of the Greek warriors.
-
-When the priest received his daughter again, he at once entreated
-Apollo to stay his fatal darts, that the Greeks might no longer perish
-in their camp. And Apollo heard and laid aside his silver bow and his
-arrows of death.
-
-Then Agamemnon called heralds, and bade them go to the tent of Achilles
-and bring to him Briseis of the fair cheeks. ‘Should Achilles refuse
-to give her up,’ said the angry king, ‘let him know that I myself will
-come to fetch the maiden.’
-
-But when the heralds told Achilles the words of the king, he bade
-Patroclus bring the damsel from her tent and give her to the messengers
-of Agamemnon. And the maiden, who would fain have stayed with Achilles,
-was taken to the king.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-MENELAUS AND PARIS DO BATTLE
-
-
-When the heralds of Agamemnon had led Briseis away, Achilles stripped
-off his armour, for not again would he fight in the Trojan War. Down
-to the seashore he went alone to weep for the loss of Briseis the
-Faircheeked.
-
-As he wept he called aloud to his mother Thetis. From the depths of the
-sea she heard his cry, and swift on a wave she reached the shore. Soon
-she was by the side of her son, and taking his hand, as when he was a
-boy, she asked, ‘My child, why weepest thou?’
-
-Then Achilles told how Agamemnon had taken from him Briseis, whom he
-loved.
-
-‘Go to the palace of Zeus,’ he entreated her, ‘and beseech Zeus to give
-me honour before the hosts of the Greeks. Let him grant victory to the
-Trojans until the king sends to Achilles to beg for his help in the
-battle.’
-
-So Thetis, for the sake of her dear son, hastened to Olympus, and
-bending at the knee of Zeus she besought the god to avenge the wrong
-done to Achilles.
-
-At first Zeus, the Cloud-gatherer, was silent, as though he heard her
-not. ‘Give me now thy promise,’ urged Thetis, ‘and confirm it with a
-nod or else deny me.’
-
-Then the god nodded, and thereat Olympus shook to its foundations. So
-Thetis knew that she had found favour in the eyes of Zeus, and leaving
-the palace of the gods she plunged deep into the sea.
-
-Zeus hastened to fulfil his promise, and sent to Agamemnon a ‘baneful
-dream.’
-
-As the king dreamed, he thought he heard Zeus bid him go forth to
-battle against the Trojans, for he would surely take the city. But in
-this Zeus deceived the king.
-
-When Agamemnon awoke in the morning he was glad, for now he hoped to
-win great honour among his warriors. Quickly he armed himself for
-battle, throwing a great cloak over his tunic, and slinging his sword,
-studded with silver, over his shoulder. In his right hand he bore the
-sceptre of his sires, the sign of his lordship over all the great hosts
-of Hellas.
-
-Then when he was armed, the king assembled his great army, and after
-telling his dream, he bade it march in silence toward the city.
-
-But when the Trojans saw the Hellenes drawing near, they came out to
-meet them ‘with clamour and with shouting like unto birds, even as when
-there goeth up before heaven a clamour of cranes which flee from the
-coming of winter and sudden rain.’
-
-As the Trojans approached, Menelaus saw Paris who had stolen his fair
-wife, and he leaped from his chariot that he might slay the prince. But
-Paris, when he saw the wrath of Menelaus, was afraid and hid himself
-among his comrades.
-
-Then Hector, his brother, who was the leader of the Trojans, mocked at
-him for his cowardice, until Paris grew ashamed.
-
-‘Now will I challenge Menelaus to single combat,’ he cried. And Hector
-rejoiced at his words and bade the warriors stay their arrows.
-
-‘Hearken, ye Trojans and ye Greeks,’ he cried, ‘Paris bids you lay down
-your arms while he and his enemy Menelaus alone do battle for Helen and
-for her wealth. And he who shall be victor shall keep the woman and her
-treasures, while we will make with one another oaths of friendship and
-of peace.’ So there, without the walls of the city, oaths were taken
-both by the Greeks and the Trojans. But the heart of Priam, King of
-Troy, was heavy lest harm should befall Paris, and he hastened within
-the gates of the city that he might not watch the combat. ‘I can in no
-wise bear to behold with mine eyes my dear son fighting with Menelaus,’
-he said. ‘But Zeus knoweth, and all the immortal gods, for whether of
-the twain the doom of death is appointed.’
-
-Then Menelaus and Paris drew their swords, and Menelaus cried to Zeus
-to grant him his aid, so that hereafter men ‘may shudder to wrong his
-host that hath shown him kindness.’
-
-But it seemed that Zeus heard not, for when Menelaus flung his
-ponderous spear, although it passed close to Paris, rending his tunic,
-yet did it not wound him, and when he dealt a mighty blow with his
-sword upon the helmet of his enemy, lo, his sword broke into pieces in
-his hand.
-
-Then in his wrath, Menelaus reproached the god: ‘Father Zeus,’ he
-cried, ‘surely none of the gods is crueller than thou. My sword
-breaketh in my hand, and my spear sped from my grasp in vain, and I
-have not smitten my enemy.’
-
-Yet even if Zeus denied his help, Menelaus determined to slay his foe.
-So he sprang forward and seized Paris by the strap of his helmet. But
-the goddess Aphrodite flew to the aid of the prince, and the strap
-broke in the hand of Menelaus. Before the king could again reach his
-enemy, a mist sent by the goddess concealed the combatants one from the
-other. Then, unseen by all, Aphrodite caught up Paris, ‘very easily as
-a goddess may,’ and hid him in the city within his own house.
-
-In vain did Menelaus search for his foe, yet well did he know that
-no Trojan had given him shelter. For Paris was ‘hated of all even as
-black death,’ because it was through his base deed that Troy had been
-besieged for nine long years.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-HECTOR AND ANDROMACHE
-
-
-The gods were angry with Aphrodite because she had hidden Paris from
-the king, and they determined that, in spite of their oath, the two
-armies should again begin to fight.
-
-So Athene was sent to the Trojan hosts, disguised as one of themselves.
-In and out among the soldiers she paced, until at length she spoke to
-one of them, bidding him draw his bow and wound Menelaus.
-
-The soldier obeyed, and the arrow, guided by Athene, reached the king,
-yet was the wound but slight.
-
-When the Greeks saw that the Trojans had disregarded their oath, they
-were full of wrath, and seizing their arms they followed their chiefs
-to battle. ‘You had thought them dumb, so silent were they,’ as they
-followed. But as the Trojans looked upon the enemy there arose among
-them a confused murmur as when ‘sheep bleat without ceasing to hear
-their lambs cry.’
-
-Fierce and yet more fierce raged the battle. Valiant deeds were done on
-both sides, but when Hector saw that the Greeks were being helped by
-the gods, he left the battlefield and hastened to the city.
-
-At the gates, wives and mothers pressed around him, eager to hear what
-had befallen their husbands, their sons. But Hector tarried only to bid
-them go pray to the gods.
-
-On to the palace he hastened to find Hecuba, his mother. She, seeing
-him come, ran to greet him and to beg of him to wait until she brought
-honey-sweet wine, that he might pour out an offering to Zeus, and
-himself drink and be refreshed.
-
-But Hector said, ‘Bring me no honey-sweet wine, my lady-mother, lest
-thou cripple me of my courage and I be forgetful of my might. But go
-thou to the temple with all thy women, to offer gifts to Athene and to
-beseech her aid.’
-
-Then leaving his mother, Hector went to the house of Paris, and
-bitterly did he rebuke him, because he was not in the forefront of the
-battle.
-
-‘Stay but till I arm and I will go with thee,’ answered Paris. But
-Hector heeded him not, for he was in haste to find his dear wife
-Andromache and their beautiful boy, Skamandriss. By the people the
-child was called Astyanax, the City King, for it was his father who
-guarded Troy.
-
-Andromache was not in their house, but on the wall of the city,
-watching the battle, fearing lest harm should befall her lord. With her
-was her little son, in the arms of his nurse.
-
-Hector dared not linger to search for his wife, but as he hastened back
-to the gates she saw him and ran to bid him farewell ere he returned to
-battle.
-
-Close to his side she pressed, and her tears fell as she cried:
-
- ‘Too brave! thy valour yet will cause thy death.
- Thou hast no pity on thy tender child,
- Nor me, unhappy one, who soon must be
- Thy widow. All the Greeks will rush on thee
- To take thy life. A happier lot were mine
- If I must lose thee to go down to earth,
- For I shall have no hope when thou art gone--
- Nothing but sorrow. Father have I none,
- And no dear mother....
-
- Hector, thou
- Art father and dear mother now to me,
- And brother and my youthful spouse besides,
- In pity keep within the fortress here,
- Nor make thy child an orphan nor thy wife
- A widow.’
-
-But Hector, though he dearly loved his wife, could not shrink from the
-battle. As Andromache ceased to plead with him, he held out his arms
-to his little son, but the child drew back in fear of the great plumes
-that waved on his father’s shining helmet.
-
-Then Hector took off his helmet and laid it on the ground, while he
-caught his child in his arms and kissed him, praying Zeus and all the
-gods to defend him.
-
-Andromache gazed pitifully at her husband as, at length, he gave the
-child to its nurse, and he seeing her great grief, took her hand and
-said:
-
- ‘Sorrow not thus, beloved one, for me.
- No living man can send me to the shades
- Before my time; no man of woman born,
- Coward or brave, can shun his destiny.
- But go thou home and tend thy labours there,
- The web, the distaff, and command thy maids
- To speed the work. The cares of war pertain
- To all men born in Troy, and most to me.’
-
-Then springing into his chariot, Hector drove swiftly back to the field
-of battle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-THE HORSES OF ACHILLES
-
-
-Hector and Paris reached the battlefield at the same moment. The
-Trojans were encouraged to fight yet more fiercely when they saw the
-two princes, and soon so many of the Greeks were slain that Agamemnon
-grew afraid.
-
-‘Zeus hath sent me a deceiving dream,’ he said to his counsellors. ‘If
-the gods send not their help we must perish, unless indeed Achilles
-will forget his anger and come to our aid. Verily, Zeus loveth
-Achilles, seeing that he putteth the Greeks to flight that he may do
-him honour. But even as I wronged him in my folly, so will I make
-amends and give recompence beyond all telling.’
-
-Then, casting aside his pride, the king sent messengers to the tent
-of Achilles, to say that he would send back Briseis and give to him
-splendid gifts if he would but come to the help of the Greeks, for they
-were flying before the enemy.
-
-But the heart of Achilles was too bitter to be touched by the fair
-promises of the king, for had he not taken from him Briseis, the lady
-of his love? So he bade the messengers go back to Agamemnon and say
-that he would not fight, but he would launch his ships on the morrow
-and sail away to his own land.
-
-When the king heard that Achilles spurned his gifts, and refused
-to come to his aid, he was afraid. But his counsellors said, ‘Let
-us not heed Achilles, whether he sail or whether he linger by the
-loud-sounding sea. When the gods call to him, or when his own heart
-bids, he will fight. Let us go once more against the Trojans, and do
-thou show thyself, O king, in the forefront of the battle.’
-
-Then Agamemnon rallied his men and led them against the foe, yet again
-he was driven back. Chief after chief was wounded, and at length the
-Hellenes fled to their ships to defend them from the Trojans. But
-Patroclus determined to plead with Achilles to save his countrymen from
-defeat. When he entered the tent of his friend he was weeping for pity
-of the dead and wounded.
-
-‘Wherefore weepest thou, Patroclus, like a fond little maid that runs
-by her mother’s side?’ asked Achilles as he looked up at the entrance
-of his friend and saw his tears.
-
-‘Never may such wrath take hold of me as that thou nursest, thrice
-brave, to the hurting of others,’ answered his comrade. ‘The Greeks are
-lying wounded and dead. If thou wilt not come to their help, let me
-lead thy men so that the enemy may be beaten back....’
-
- ‘And give
- The armour from thy shoulders. I will wear
- Thy mail, and then the Trojans, at the sight,
- May think I am Achilles, and may pause
- From fighting.’
-
-Even as Patroclus pleaded with his friend, a great light flared up
-against the sky. The Trojans had set fire to the Greek ships.
-
-Then, at length, Achilles was roused. He would not go himself to the
-help of Agamemnon, but he bade Patroclus put on his armour, while he
-called together his brave warriors and commanded them to follow his
-friend to battle.
-
-Quickly Patroclus donned the well-known armour of Achilles, then
-calling to Automedon, the chariot driver, he bade him harness Xanthus
-and Balius, the immortal horses of his friend, for their speed was
-swift as the wind.
-
-As Patroclus vanished from sight in the chariot drawn by Xanthus and
-Balius, Achilles prayed to Zeus. ‘O Zeus,’ he cried, ‘I send my comrade
-to this battle. Strengthen his heart within him, and when he has
-driven from the ships the war and din of battle, scathless then let him
-return to me and my people with him.’
-
-Down upon the Trojans swept the warriors led by Patroclus. They, seeing
-the armour of Achilles were afraid, and fled from the ships. But ere
-long they discovered that it was not Achilles but Patroclus who wore
-the well-known armour, and they returned to fight with new courage. And
-ever, where the battle raged most fiercely, did Patroclus bid Automedon
-drive his chariot.
-
-Then the gods bade Hector find Patroclus and slay him. Little trouble
-had the prince in finding the warrior who wore the armour of Achilles.
-Bravely the two heroes fought, but Patroclus was not able to stand
-against the great strength of Hector. Moreover, the gods betrayed him,
-striking him from behind on the head and shoulders, so that the helmet
-of Achilles fell in the dust. Apollo also snatched his shield from his
-arm and broke his spear in two.
-
-When Hector saw that his enemy was disarmed, he took his spear and
-struck him so fiercely that Patroclus fell
-
- ‘With clashing mail, and all the Greeks beheld
- His fall with grief.’
-
-The friend of Achilles was wounded to death.
-
-In his triumph Hector was merciless. He mocked at his fallen foe,
-saying, ‘Patroclus, surely thou saidst that thou wouldst sack my town,
-and from Trojan women take away the day of freedom, and bring them in
-ships to thine own dear country. Fool, ... I ward from them the day of
-destiny, but thee shall vultures here destroy.’
-
-Faint though he was, Patroclus answered, ‘It was not thou, Hector, who
-didst slay me, but Apollo, who snatched from me my shield and brake my
-sword in twain.’ Then his strength failed and he breathed his last.
-
-No pity yet showed Hector, for he stripped off the armour of Achilles
-from the body of Patroclus that he might wear it himself. But Zeus, as
-he looked upon the haughty victor, was displeased.
-
-‘Ah, hapless man,’ said the god to himself, ‘no thought is in thy heart
-of death that yet draweth nigh unto thee; thou doest on thee the divine
-armour of a peerless man before whom the rest have terror. His comrade,
-gentle and brave, thou hast slain, and unmeetly hast stripped the
-armour from his head and shoulders.’
-
-The immortal horses of Achilles wept when they knew that Patroclus was
-slain. Automedon lashed them, he spoke kindly to them, yet would they
-not move. As a pillar on a tomb, so they stood yoked to the chariot.
-From their eyes big teardrops fell, their beautiful heads hung down
-with grief so that their long manes were trailed in the dust. Thus
-sorely did the immortal steeds grieve for the death of Patroclus.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-THE DEATH OF HECTOR
-
-
-Fierce and long raged the battle around the body of Patroclus. And
-while the armies fought, a messenger hastened to the tent of Achilles
-to tell him that his comrade was slain and that the Trojans fought for
-his body as it lay naked on the ground, stripped of its armour. ‘Thy
-armour,’ said the messenger, ‘Hector has taken for himself.’
-
-When Achilles heard the bitter tidings he took dust and poured it with
-both hands upon his head. ‘As he thought thereon, he shed big tears,
-now lying on his side, now on his back, now on his face, and then anon
-he would rise upon his feet, and roam wildly beside the beach of the
-salt sea.’ As he cried aloud in his grief his mother, Thetis, heard in
-her home beneath the sea. Swiftly she sped to her son that she might
-learn why he wept.
-
-Achilles told her all that had befallen Patroclus, and how he himself
-cared no longer to live, save only that he might slay Hector who had
-killed his friend.
-
-Thetis bade her son wait but till the morrow before he went to battle,
-and she would bring him armour made by the great Fire-god.
-
-Then she left him and prayed the god Hephaestus, keeper of the forge,
-to give her armour for her dear son.
-
-Hephaestus was pleased to work for so goodly a warrior as Achilles.
-Quickly he set his twenty bellows to work, and when the fire blazed in
-the forge, he threw into it bronze and silver and gold. Then taking
-a great hammer in his hand he fashioned a marvellous shield, more
-marvellous than words can tell. Before morning a complete suit of
-armour was ready for Achilles.
-
-Meanwhile Hector had all but captured the body of Patroclus. But the
-gods spoke to Achilles, bidding him now succour the body of his friend.
-Without armour Achilles could not enter the fray, yet he hastened to
-the trenches that the Trojans might see him.
-
-Around his head gleamed a golden light, placed there by Athene. When
-the Trojans saw the flame and heard the mighty cry of Achilles, they
-drew back afraid.
-
-Three times the warrior shouted, and three times the Trojans drew back
-in fear. While they hesitated the Greeks rushed forward and carried
-away the body of Patroclus, nor did they lay it down until they laid it
-in the tent of Achilles.
-
-On the morrow Thetis came back to her son, bringing with her the armour
-made by Hephaestus. She found him weeping over the body of his friend.
-
-‘My child,’ she said, ‘him who lieth here we must let be, for all our
-pain. Arm thyself now and go thy way into the fray.’
-
-Then Achilles put on the armour of the god in haste, for he feared lest
-another than he should slay Hector.
-
-With Achilles once again at their head, the Greek warriors attacked
-the Trojans with redoubled fury. But it was Hector alone whom Achilles
-longed to meet, and soon he saw his enemy near one of the gates of
-Troy. Now he would avenge the death of Patroclus. But when Hector saw
-the great hate in the eyes of his enemy, lo, he turned and fled.
-
-‘As a hawk, fastest of all the birds of air, pursues a dove upon the
-mountains,’ so did Achilles pursue the prince until he was forced to
-stand to take breath. Then Hector, encouraged by the gods, drew near to
-him and spoke, ‘Thrice, great Achilles, hast thou pursued me round the
-walls of Troy, and I dared not stand up against thee; but now I fear
-thee no more. Only do thou promise, if Zeus give thee the victory, to
-do no dishonour to my body, as I also will promise to do none to thine
-should I slay thee.’
-
-But Achilles, remembering Patroclus, cried out in anger that never
-would he make a covenant with him who had slain his friend.
-
-Then with fierce blows each fell upon the other, until at length
-Achilles drove his spear through the armour that Hector wore, and the
-Trojan prince fell, stricken to the ground.
-
-Achilles, his anger still burning fiercely, stripped the dead man of
-his armour, while many Greek warriors standing near thrust at him with
-their spears, saying to one another, ‘Go to, for easier to handle is
-Hector now, than when he burnt the ships with blazing fire.’
-
-Then Achilles tied the dead man to his chariot with thongs of ox-hide
-and drove nine times round the city walls, dragging the fair head of
-Hector in the dust.
-
-From the tower Priam and Hecuba saw the body of their son dragged in
-the dust, and bitter was their pain.
-
-But Andromache knew not yet what had befallen her lord, for she sat
-in an inner chamber wearing a purple cloth. Soon she bade her maids
-prepare a bath for Hector, for she thought that he would return ere
-long from the battle. She knew not yet that Hector would never return,
-but as the noise of the wailing of the people reached the room in which
-she sat, her heart misgave her. In haste she ran to the wall of the
-city, only to see the chariot of Achilles as it dragged Hector down to
-the loud-sounding sea.
-
-Then fainting with grief, Andromache fell to the ground, and the diadem
-which Aphrodite had given to her on her wedding morn dropped from her
-head, to be worn by her no more.
-
-Down by the seashore Achilles burned the body of Patroclus with great
-honour, and when the funeral rites were ended, he dragged the dead
-body of Hector round the tomb, weeping for the loss of his dear comrade.
-
-But Zeus was angry with Achilles for treating the Trojan prince so
-cruelly, and he sent Thetis to bid her son give back Hector’s body to
-Priam, who would come to offer for it a ransom. ‘If Zeus decrees it,
-whoever brings a ransom shall return with the dead,’ answered Achilles.
-
-Then Zeus sent a messenger to the house of Priam, where the mother
-and the wife of Hector wept, saying, ‘Be of good cheer in thy heart,
-O Priam.... I am the messenger of Zeus to thee, who though he be afar
-off, hath great care and pity for thee. The Olympian biddeth thee
-ransom noble Hector’s body, and carry gifts to Achilles that may
-gladden his heart.’
-
-So Priam set out alone, save for the driver of the wagon which was to
-bring Hector again to Troy, for so had the messenger commanded. But
-Hecuba feared to let the old man go alone to the tent of the enemy.
-When he reached the camp of the Greeks, Priam hastened to the tent of
-Achilles, and entering it before his enemy was aware, the old king fell
-at the feet of his enemy and begged for the body of his dear son.
-
-Achilles could not look upon the grief of the old man unmoved, but
-when Priam offered him gifts he frowned and haughtily he answered,
-‘Of myself am I minded to give Hector back to thee, for so has Zeus
-commanded.’
-
-Then a truce for nine days was made between the Greeks and the Trojans,
-so that King Priam and his people might mourn for Hector and bury him
-undisturbed by fear of the enemy.
-
-Priam tarried with Achilles until night fell. Then while he and his
-warriors slept, the king arose and bade the driver yoke the horses and
-mules. When this was done they laid the body of Hector upon the wagon,
-and in the silence of the night set out on their homeward journey.
-
-At the gates of Troy stood Andromache and Hecuba watching until Priam
-returned. And when the wagon reached the city the Trojans carried
-Hector into his own house. Then Andromache took the head of her dear
-husband in her arms and said, ‘Husband, thou art gone young from life
-and leavest me a widow in thy halls. And the child is yet but a little
-one ... nor methinks shall he grow up to manhood, for ere then shall
-this city be utterly destroyed. For thou art verily perished who didst
-watch over it and guard it, and keptest safe its noble wives and infant
-little ones.’
-
-The following morning Priam bade his people go gather wood for the
-burial, and after nine days the body of Hector was laid on the pile
-and burned. Then his white bones, wrapped in purple cloth, were placed
-in a golden chest. Above the chest a great mound was raised, and thus
-Hector, the brave prince of Troy, was buried.
-
-Soon after the burial of Hector Achilles was killed by a poisoned arrow
-which Paris aimed at his heel, the one spot of his body that Thetis had
-failed to bathe in the magic waters of the river Styx. Paris himself
-perished soon after the death of Achilles.
-
-Troy still remained untaken. Then goodly Odysseus told the Greeks that
-although they could not take the city by storm, they might take her by
-a stratagem or trick.
-
-So the Greeks, as he bade them, built a huge wooden horse, which was
-hollow within. Here they hid a number of their bravest warriors, and
-then the main body of the army marched away, as though they were tired
-of trying to take the city. The wooden horse they left as an offering
-to Poseidon. Only a slave named Sinon was left behind to persuade the
-Trojans to drag the horse into the city. But the Trojans needed little
-persuasion. They came out of the city, gazed at the strange horse, half
-feared a trick, and then, like children amused with a new toy, they
-pulled it within the walls of Troy.
-
-So glad were the Trojans that the enemy had gone away, that they made
-a great feast. While they ate and drank, careless of danger, Sinon
-helped the Greek warriors out of the hollow wooden horse. They waited
-until it was late and all was quiet, then they slipped down to the
-gates and flung them open, while their comrades, who had not marched
-far away, rushed in to plunder and burn the city. Thus after many long
-years Troy was taken by the counsel of Odysseus.
-
-One of the first to sail away from the city was Menelaus, with his
-beautiful queen safe at his side. After many adventures he reached
-Sparta and lived with Helen ‘in peace, comfort, and wealth, and his
-palace shone in its splendour like the sun or the moon.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-POLYPHEMUS THE GIANT
-
-
-The Greek warriors burned and sacked the city of Troy, and then they
-set sail for the sunny isles of Greece. But storms overtook some, the
-gods sent misfortune to others, so that but few reached their own land
-in safety.
-
-Odysseus, King of Ithaca, an island on the western coast of Greece,
-suffered greater hardships than any other. For ten years he was either
-tossed by the gods on stormy seas, or kept a captive in strange
-countries. Of some of his adventures I shall tell you now.
-
-When Odysseus and his comrades sailed away from Troy, they were
-driven by a fair wind to the shore of Ismarus. Here dwelt a rich and
-prosperous people called the Cicones.
-
-The Greeks wished to take much spoil back with them to their homes, so
-they resolved to slay the Cicones and plunder their city.
-
-Some of the citizens escaped the sword of the adventurers and hastened
-to their kinsmen who dwelt farther from the shore. When they had told
-their terrible tidings, their comrades armed themselves and sped to the
-shore to punish the strangers.
-
-Odysseus had tried in vain to make his followers go back to their
-ships. They had refused to be hurried, and were now sitting on the
-seashore eating and drinking, heedless of danger.
-
-Before they were aware the kinsmen of the Cicones had fallen upon them,
-and when the sun went down they had slain six men out of each of the
-strangers’ ships. The rest barely escaped with their lives.
-
-Scarcely had the Greeks reached their vessels and sailed away from
-Ismarus, when Zeus sent a north wind against them. For nine days their
-ships were driven hither and thither. Their sails were torn to shreds,
-when on the tenth day the sailors caught sight of land. It was the land
-of the lotus-eaters, where the people fed only on the fruit of the
-lotus, a fruit that brought sleep and forgetfulness to the eater.
-
-Odysseus sent three sailors on shore to find out what manner of people
-the lotus-eaters were. No sooner had they landed than the inhabitants
-brought them fruit, which they ate with delight. But the honey-sweet
-flowers made them forget Odysseus, their comrades, and their ships.
-They had no wish save to stay for ever with the lotus-eaters to share
-their magic food.
-
-At length, Odysseus grew tired of waiting for the three sailors to
-return, and he himself with a few armed men went on shore to look for
-them. He thought that perhaps they had been taken prisoners and had
-been bound with chains, but he found them lying on the yellow sand,
-dreamy and content.
-
- ‘And sweet it was to dream of Fatherland,
- Of child, and wife, and slave; but evermore
- Most weary seem’d the sea, weary the oar,
- Weary the wandering fields of barren foam.’
-
-When the three sailors saw Odysseus they cried:
-
- ‘“We will return no more”
- And all at once they sang, “Our island home
- Is far beyond the wave; we will no longer roam.”’
-
-Odysseus and his comrades were offered fruit by the kindly
-lotus-eaters, but Odysseus waved it aside and bade his men drag away
-the three sailors who had already eaten. The sailors wept sore, for
-fain would they have dwelt for ever in the land of dreams. But when
-they were once more on their vessels and had put out to sea, the
-breezes brought back health to their bodies, vigour to their minds.
-Soon they were able to rejoice that they had left the enchanted
-lotus-land far behind.
-
-Westward sailed the fleet of Odysseus, until it reached the island of
-Sicily, where the Cyclopes dwelt. The Cyclopes were giants who had each
-but one eye, fixed in the middle of his brow.
-
-Odysseus, taking with him only his own crew, landed on the island, for
-he wished to see the Cyclopes. He had walked but a little way when he
-came to a great cave, in which stood baskets filled with cheeses and
-milkpans filled with milk. In this cave dwelt Polyphemus, one of the
-sons of Poseidon, and the fiercest of all the fierce Cyclopes.
-
-Into this cave went Odysseus and his comrades. Polyphemus was not
-within; he was out on the hills with his flocks.
-
-‘Let us take the cheeses and drive away the lambs and the kids that are
-here, before the giant returns,’ said the sailors. But Odysseus would
-not do as they wished, for, said he, ‘I greatly wish to see the giant
-shepherd who dwells in the cave.’
-
-‘Verily,’ said Odysseus, as he told the tale in after days, ‘verily,
-his coming was not to be a joy to my company.’
-
-Evening drew on apace, and Polyphemus, driving his flocks before him,
-reached the cave. When he had driven his flocks in before him, the
-giant took a huge rock and placed it in the doorway.
-
-Odysseus and his comrades had hidden themselves in the dimmest corners
-of the cave when Polyphemus entered. The giant lighted a great fire of
-pine wood and began to milk the ewes. Soon the flames lighted up every
-corner of the cave, and Polyphemus saw his unexpected guests.
-
-In a voice that struck terror even into the brave hearts of the Greeks,
-so gruff, so loud it was, the giant demanded, ‘Strangers, who are ye?
-Whence sail ye over the watery ways? On some trading enterprise or at
-adventure do ye rove, even as sea-robbers over the brine?’
-
-Boldly then answered Odysseus, ‘“_No Man_” is my name. My ship,
-Poseidon, the shaker of the earth, broke it to pieces, for he cast it
-upon the rocks at the border of your country, and brought it nigh the
-headland, and a wind bore it thither from the sea. But I, with these
-my men, escaped from utter doom. Give us, we beseech thee, food and
-shelter.’
-
-As you know, Odysseus had not been shipwrecked, his vessel, safely
-anchored, awaited his return, nor was his true name _No Man_. He dared
-not tell the giant the truth, lest he should go in search of his
-ship and take it for firewood, while he and his companions were kept
-prisoners in the cave.
-
-The giant said not a word when Odysseus ended his tale, but he
-stretched out his great hand, seized two of the strangers, and devoured
-them before the eyes of their horrified companions. Then, well
-satisfied with his meal, he fell fast asleep.
-
-In the morning the giant finished his breakfast by eating two more of
-his guests, then, moving away the stone at the entrance of the cave as
-easily as if it had been a feather, he drove his flocks to pasture. He
-did not forget to replace the stone in the doorway before he turned
-away.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-ODYSSEUS ESCAPES FROM THE CAVE
-
-
-Odysseus was determined that he and his comrades should escape from the
-cave of the dread Cyclops. Hour after hour he pondered how he might
-persuade the giant to let them go, but at length he thought, ‘I will
-not persuade him, I will force him to let us go.’
-
-At that moment, his eye fell upon a great staff or club in a corner of
-the cave. He bade his companions make a sharp point to it. When this
-was done he hardened it in the fire and then hid it from sight.
-
-The day passed slowly, but at length evening came and Polyphemus
-returned to the cave. His guests shrank into the farthest corner as the
-giant began his supper, but ere he finished, he again stretched out his
-hand, seized two of his prisoners, and devoured them. Then Odysseus
-offered him a draught of wine which he had brought with him from
-Ismarus.
-
-Deep drank the giant, and ere he fell into a sound sleep he turned to
-Odysseus saying, ‘_No Man_, thee will I eat last in return for thy gift
-of wine.’
-
-Odysseus waited until he saw that Polyphemus was fast asleep, then he
-bade his comrades put the point of the great staff in the fire. When it
-was red hot he told them to thrust it deep into the eye of the giant.
-So great was the pain that the Cyclops leaped up from his sleep and
-hurled away the staff, uttering loud cries of agony.
-
-The giants who dwelt on the mountains round about heard the voice of
-Polyphemus, and together they hastened to the doorway of the cave.
-
-‘What hath so distressed thee, Polyphemus,’ they cried, ‘that thou
-criest thus aloud through the immortal night and makest us sleepless?
-Surely no mortal driveth off thy flocks against thy will; surely none
-slayeth thyself by force or craft?’
-
-‘_No Man_ is slaying me by guile, nor at all by force,’ answered
-Polyphemus, proud even in his pain.
-
-‘If no man is harming thee, it may be that Zeus has sent sickness upon
-thee,’ answered the giants. ‘Pray thou then to thy father Poseidon for
-aid. As for us, we will go back to our slumbers.’
-
-Odysseus laughed to himself as he heard their retreating feet, for now
-he was sure that he would be able to save himself and his comrades.
-
-When morning dawned, Polyphemus, still groaning with pain, groped his
-way to the door. Having found it he pushed the stone a little way to
-the side to allow his flocks to pass out of the cave. To make sure
-that his prisoners did not escape with the animals, he sat down by the
-entrance and touched the back of each ram as it passed. But Odysseus
-had tied his followers with osier twigs beneath the rams, and so, in
-spite of the care of the giant, all his prisoners escaped. Odysseus
-himself was the last to leave the cave, holding fast to the fleece of
-the largest ram.
-
-No sooner had Odysseus rejoined his companions than he loosened the
-twigs with which he had bound them. Then together they ran to the
-shore, driving before them many of the giant’s best sheep. These they
-took on board their ship, and then rowed out some way from land.
-
-Polyphemus soon found that he had been outwitted, and he began to
-stumble down toward the sea.
-
-When Odysseus saw him, he bade his men rest on their oars, while he
-spoke to the giant in a loud voice.
-
-‘Cyclops,’ he cried, ‘so thou wert not to eat the company of a weakling
-by main might in thy hollow cave. Thine evil deeds were very sure to
-find thee out, thou cruel man, who hadst no shame to eat thy guests
-within thy gates, wherefore Zeus hath requited thee and the other gods.’
-
-In his rage Polyphemus took a great rock off the top of a mountain and
-hurled it in the direction from which the voice came. The rock fell
-near to the bow of the ship, so that the waters rose and pushed the
-vessel toward the shore.
-
-But Odysseus seized a pole and swiftly thrust the ship back from the
-land. Then he bade the sailors pull for the open sea with might and
-main.
-
-When the ship was once more some distance from the shore, Odysseus
-taunted the giant yet again with his evil deeds.
-
-‘Cyclops,’ he cried, ‘if any one of mortal men shall ask thee of the
-unsightly blinding of thine eye, say that it was Odysseus who blinded
-it, the Waster of Cities, son of Laertes, whose dwelling is in Ithaca.’
-
-Then the giant, in impotent anger, stretched out his hands to the
-heavens and cried, ‘Hear me, Poseidon, girdler of the earth, god of
-the dark hair, if indeed I be thy son.... Grant that he may never come
-to his home, even Odysseus, waster of cities, son of Laertes, whose
-dwelling is in Ithaca; yet if he is ordained to see his friends and
-come into his well-builded house and his own country, late may he come,
-and in evil case, with the loss of all his company, in the ship of
-strangers, and find sorrows in his house.’
-
-And so it came to pass, even as the Cyclops prayed, for only after many
-wanderings did Odysseus reach his home, to find it in the hands of
-those who prayed that the king might never return to Ithaca.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-ODYSSEUS RETURNS TO ITHACA
-
-
-The small island of Ithaca, of which Odysseus was king, lay on the
-western shore of Greece. His subjects deemed that their king was dead,
-for ten years had passed since Troy had been destroyed, and yet he had
-not come home.
-
-But Penelope, the wife of Odysseus, would not believe that her lord was
-dead; she clung to the hope that he would yet return. Princes came to
-the palace to beg the queen to wed, but in vain did each one urge his
-suit, for hope whispered in the heart of Penelope, ‘My lord is still
-alive.’
-
-Laertes, the father of Odysseus, was too old, her little son Telemachus
-was too young, to help the queen, when the princes rudely insisted on
-living in the palace and in wasting the goods of Odysseus. Again and
-again they entreated her to wed one among them. But the queen grew
-angry and rebuked them for their insolence in living in the palace.
-From day to day, from week to week, from month to month, even from year
-to year, Penelope mocked at the impatience of her suitors.
-
-For she set up in the hall of the palace a large loom and began to
-weave a beautiful robe. ‘Ye princely youths, my wooers,’ she said, ‘now
-that Odysseus is dead, as ye declare, do ye abide patiently, how eager
-soever on this marriage of mine, till I finish the robe.’
-
-The princes agreed to wait until the robe was finished, but little did
-they dream how long the queen would take to her task.
-
-Day after day, day after day, they watched as Penelope sat at her web
-weaving, ever weaving. But night after night, night after night, when
-the insolent princes had gone to bed, the queen carefully unravelled
-the work they had seen her do by day.
-
-For three long years did Penelope mock her suitors in this way, but
-when the fourth year came, and the robe was still incomplete, one of
-the queen’s serving-maids betrayed her secret to the princes.
-
-Then the queen could no longer refuse to wed, yet still she tried to
-put off the day as long as might be. So she promised to marry him who
-could most easily bend the great bow of Odysseus, and hit the mark on
-which she should decide. There was now but a little while until the day
-would dawn on which the trial of strength and skill was to take place.
-
-Telemachus meanwhile had grown into a tall lad, and, guided by Athene,
-he left the palace where the princes wasted his wealth to go in search
-of his father. It might be that Odysseus was a captive in some distant
-land.
-
-But Odysseus was on his way to Ithaca, sailing in the ship of a king
-who had befriended him.
-
-As the vessel glided into the harbour of the little island, Odysseus
-lay asleep on the deck. So the sailors lifted him in a rug on which he
-lay and put him down in his own kingdom by the side of the road.
-
-When he awoke Odysseus did not at first know where he was, for Athene
-had covered the land with a thick mist.
-
-‘O woe is me now, unto what mortals’ land am I now come?’ cried the
-king, well-nigh in tears with desire for his own country.
-
-Even as he spoke, Athene stood by his side disguised as a young man.
-
-‘What land is this?’ asked Odysseus, not yet knowing that it was the
-goddess to whom he spoke, but thinking that it was one of the country
-folk.
-
-‘Thou art witless, stranger, or thou art come from afar, if indeed
-thou askest of this land,’ said Athene. ‘Verily it is rough and not
-fit for the driving of horses, yet is it not a very sorry isle, though
-narrow withal. For herein is corn past telling, and herein, too, wine
-is found, and the rain is on it evermore and the fresh dew. And it is
-good for feeding goats and feeding kine; all manner of wood is here,
-and watering-places unfailing are herein. Wherefore, stranger, the name
-of Ithaca hath reached even unto Troyland.’
-
-Then Odysseus knew that it was the grey-eyed goddess Athene who spoke
-to him, and he answered, ‘Methinks that thou speakest thus to mock me
-and beguile my mind. Tell me whether, in very deed, I am come to mine
-own dear country?’
-
-The goddess did not answer, but silently she scattered the mist that
-the king might see that he was indeed in his own kingdom.
-
-Then Odysseus was glad and stooped to kiss the earth, knowing that at
-last his weary wanderings were at an end.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-ARGUS THE HOUND DIES
-
-
-Athene knew that if Odysseus went to the palace, the princes would
-pretend that he was not the king, and would perhaps even slay him. So
-she bade him go, not to the palace, but to the hut of his swineherd
-Eumaeus, who had remained loyal to him and to his house.
-
-That no one, not even the swineherd, might recognise the king, Athene
-changed him into an old beggar man, with dirty, tattered garments.
-
-In this miserable guise Odysseus reached the hut of Eumaeus. Now
-Eumaeus believed that strangers were sent by Zeus, so he welcomed the
-beggar and gave him food.
-
-As he ate, the swineherd sat beside him, bewailing the absence of his
-king, who had never returned from the Trojan War.
-
-‘His name,’ said Eumaeus, ‘even though he is not here, it shameth me to
-speak, for he loved me exceedingly, and cared for me at heart; nay, I
-call him “worshipful,” albeit he is far from hence.’
-
-Much, too, did the swineherd tell of Penelope, of Telemachus, and of
-how the insolent suitors lived at the palace and wasted the king’s
-goods. As Odysseus listened, he longed to go at once to the palace to
-avenge his wrongs.
-
-That night the king spent in the hut of his swineherd, lying before the
-fire, while over him the swineherd flung a covering of goatskins. But
-Eumaeus did not sleep. He cast over his shoulders a rough mantle, and
-taking with him a sharp sword he went out to guard his herd of swine.
-And the king was glad when he saw how well the swineherd cared for the
-flocks of his absent lord.
-
-In the morning, as Eumaeus kindled a fire and prepared breakfast for
-the stranger, footsteps were heard without. Telemachus had returned to
-Ithaca, having sought for his father in vain.
-
-Eumaeus hastened to welcome his master’s son and ‘kissed him all over
-as one escaped from death.’ Then he set before the prince the best that
-his hut could provide.
-
-When Telemachus had eaten and had drunk sweet wine out of a wooden
-goblet, he bade Eumaeus hasten to the palace to tell his mother that he
-had come safely home. So the swineherd took his sandals, bound them on
-his feet and set out for the city. Odysseus and Telemachus were left
-alone.
-
-Then Athene came to the hut unseen, and changed Odysseus into his own
-goodly form, bidding him tell Telemachus who he was.
-
-At first the prince could not believe that this stranger, so strong, so
-fair, was Odysseus. But when at length he knew that it was indeed his
-father he embraced him, while tears of joy fell down his cheeks.
-
-Then Athene bade them determine how the king should make himself known
-to Penelope, and how the greedy and insolent suitors should be punished.
-
-The father and son talked long together and they agreed that on the
-morrow Telemachus should go to the palace, but to none, no, not even to
-Penelope, was he to tell that Odysseus had returned.
-
-The arms that hung in the hall of the palace the prince was to hide in
-his own room, so that when the time for the king’s revenge should come
-the suitors might find neither sword nor shield with which to defend
-themselves. Odysseus was to follow his son to the palace when a few
-hours had passed, disguised once more as a beggar.
-
-So, on the morrow, Telemachus set out for the palace. As he entered the
-hall the first to see him was his father’s old nurse Eurycleia. She
-was busy spreading the skins upon the oaken chairs, but she left her
-work and ran to greet the prince, ‘kissing him lovingly on the head and
-shoulders.’
-
-Penelope, too, coming from her chamber, saw him, and cast her arms
-about her dear son and fell a-weeping, and kissed his face and both his
-beautiful eyes. ‘Thou art come, Telemachus,’ she said, ‘a sweet light
-in the dark. Methought I should never see thee again.’
-
-While Telemachus was still telling his lady-mother all that had
-befallen him in his search for his father, the beggar, with Eumaeus by
-his side, entered the court of the palace.
-
-In the court lay Argus, the great hound that Odysseus himself had
-trained ere he went to Troy. Old was he now and despised, for no longer
-could he run in the hunt, swift as the wind. The princes had banished
-him from the hall, while by the servants he was spurned.
-
-As the beggar drew near, Argus raised his head, looked at the stranger,
-and began to wag his tail to show his joy. For rags could not hide his
-master from the faithful hound.
-
-Odysseus turned his head away, that Eumaeus might not see his tears.
-
-‘Surely a hound so noble as this should not lie thus neglected in the
-yard,’ he said to the swineherd.
-
-‘In very truth,’ answered Eumaeus, ‘this is the dog of a man that has
-died in a far land. If he were what once he was in limb and in the
-feats of the chase, when Odysseus left him to go to Troy, soon wouldst
-thou marvel at the sight of his swiftness and his strength. There was
-no beast that could flee from him in the deep places of the wood when
-he was in pursuit of prey.’
-
-As the king and the swineherd passed on into the palace, Argus fell
-back content to die, for after watching and waiting for twenty years he
-had seen his master once again.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-THE BOW OF ODYSSEUS
-
-
-In the hall of the palace the suitors sat feasting, as was their
-custom. When Eumaeus entered, followed by the beggar, they no sooner
-caught sight of him than they began to mock at his rags. But Telemachus
-took a loaf and gave it to the stranger, bidding him go to each prince
-and beg for himself, for said he, ‘Shame is an ill mate of a needy man.’
-
-One haughty suitor, named Antinous, rebuked Eumaeus for bringing a
-beggar to the palace. ‘Have we not here vagrants enough,’ he said in
-angry tones, ‘killjoys of the feast?’ And he seized a footstool and
-struck Odysseus on the shoulder.
-
-Penelope heard how Antinous had treated the stranger in her halls and
-she was angry. Turning to her old nurse Eurycleia she said, ‘Nurse,
-they are all enemies, for they all devise evil continually, but of them
-all Antinous is the most like to black fate. Some hapless stranger is
-roaming about the house, begging alms of the men as his needs bid him;
-all the others filled his wallet and gave him somewhat, but Antinous
-smote him at the base of the right shoulder with a stool.’
-
-Then she summoned Eumaeus and bade him send the stranger to her, for
-she wished to know if he had heard aught of Odysseus as he wandered
-from place to place.
-
-So when evening came the old nurse brought a settle, spread over it a
-fleece, and placed it near to Penelope. Then the beggar was brought
-to the queen’s room, and, sitting on the settle, he told to her many
-a tale, and some were true and some were false, for he would not yet
-have her know that he himself was her lord Odysseus.
-
-Penelope wept as she listened to the stories the stranger told. For he
-had seen Odysseus, and she thought that her husband might yet return in
-time to save her from the suitors whom she despised.
-
-But at length the queen dried her tears and called to Eurycleia to come
-wash the feet of the stranger, who was of the same age as her master.
-
-The old woman answered, ‘Gladly will I wash his feet, for many
-strangers travel-worn have ere now come hither, but I say that I have
-never seen any so like another as this stranger is like Odysseus, in
-fashion, in voice, and in feet.’
-
-Then the king feared lest his old nurse should know him, and he turned
-his face from the hearth. But she, as she tended him, saw a scar on the
-spot where a boar had wounded him long years before, and she knew her
-master had come home.
-
-Tears well-nigh choked her, yet she touched his chin lightly and said,
-‘Yea, verily, thou art Odysseus, my dear child.’
-
-But when she would have told the queen, Odysseus bade her be silent,
-until he had taken revenge on the princes who were feasting in his
-palace.
-
-As she dismissed the stranger, Penelope told him that on the morrow the
-suitors held a feast, when they were to contend for her hand. ‘Him who
-shall most easily bend the bow of Odysseus I have promised to wed,’ she
-said. ‘Then will I go and forsake this house, this house of my wedlock,
-so fair and filled with all livelihood, which methinks I shall yet
-remember, aye, in a dream.’
-
-Then Odysseus answered, ‘Wife revered of Odysseus, no longer delay this
-contest in thy halls; for lo, Odysseus will be here before these men,
-for all their handling of this polished bow, shall have strung it and
-shot the arrow to the mark.’
-
-[Illustration: ‘Yea, verily thou art Odysseus’]
-
-Penelope scarce heard the stranger’s words, so troubled were her
-thoughts. She bade him farewell, then went to her room to weep for her
-absent lord until ‘grey-eyed Athene cast sweet sleep upon her eyelids.’
-
-On the morrow Odysseus awoke early, and as he thought of all that he
-hoped to do that day, he lifted up his hands to Zeus.
-
-‘O Father Zeus,’ he cried, ‘if thou hast led me to mine own country of
-good will, then give me a sign.’ And in answer the god thundered from
-Olympus, and Odysseus knew the voice of the god and was glad.
-
-Penelope too arose early on this fateful day, and when she had put on
-her royal robes she came down the wide staircase from her chamber,
-carrying in her hand the strong key of her lord’s treasure-chest.
-
-She unlocked the chest, and taking from it the great bow in its case
-she laid it upon her knees and wept over it. Then, drawing the bow from
-its case, she carried it into the hall where the suitors were feasting.
-
-‘Ye suitors,’ she said, as she laid down before them the bow and the
-quiver of arrows, ‘Ye suitors, who devour this house, making pretence
-that ye wish to wed me, lo! here is a proof of your skill. Here is the
-bow of the great Odysseus. Whoso shall bend it easiest in his hands and
-shoot an arrow nearest to the mark I set, him will I follow, leaving
-this house of my wedlock, so fair which methinks I shall yet remember,
-aye, in a dream.’
-
-Then each suitor in turn tried to bend the mighty bow, but each tried
-in vain.
-
-‘Give the bow to me,’ cried the beggar, as he saw that the suitors had
-failed to bend the mighty bow, ‘give it to me that I may prove that my
-hands are strong.’
-
-The princes laughed at the words of the stranger. How should the old
-man bend the bow which they in their youthful strength were unable to
-move?
-
-But Telemachus gave the bow into the stranger’s hands, for, said he,
-‘I would fain see if the wanderer can bend the bow of Odysseus.’ Then
-turning to his mother, the prince besought her to go to her daily tasks
-until the contest was over, for not for her eyes was the dread revenge
-of Odysseus. So Penelope with her maidens went to her room, and as she
-spun she mourned for her absent lord.
-
-In the hall Odysseus stood with his beloved bow in his hand. Carefully
-he tested it lest harm had befallen it in his absence. Then taking an
-arrow from the quiver he placed it on the bow and drew the string, and
-lo! it sped to its mark and reached the wall beyond.
-
-At once Telemachus, his sharp sword in his hand, sprang to his father’s
-side, while Eumaeus, to whom the beggar’s secret had been told,
-followed him fast.
-
-The suitors leaped to their feet in dismay as the arrows of Odysseus
-fell swiftly among them. Then they turned to the walls to seek the arms
-which usually hung there, but Telemachus had carried them away.
-
-Not until the proud suitors were slain did Odysseus cease to bend his
-mighty bow. But at length all was over and none were left to mock at
-the stranger.
-
-Then Odysseus bade Eurycleia go tell Penelope that her lord had
-returned and awaited her in the hall.
-
-The queen lay on her bed fast asleep when the old nurse broke into her
-room, and, all tremulous with joy, told her that Odysseus had come and
-slain the suitors. Too good were the tidings for Penelope to believe.
-
-‘Dear nurse,’ she cried, ‘be not so foolish. Why dost thou mock my
-sorrow? It may be that one of the gods hath slain the suitors, but
-Odysseus himself hath perished in a strange land.’
-
-‘Nay, I mock thee not, dear child,’ answered Eurycleia. ‘The stranger
-with whom thou didst talk yesterday is Odysseus.’
-
-Yet Penelope could not believe that her lord had returned. She spoke
-sadly to the old nurse, telling her that she was deceived and did not
-understand the ways of the gods. ‘None the less,’ she added, ‘let us go
-to my child, that I may see the suitors dead, and him that slew them.’
-
-Down in the hall Odysseus, clothed no longer in rags, but in bright
-apparel, awaited his wife.
-
-Then Penelope as she gazed upon him knew that it was indeed Odysseus,
-and she threw her arms around him and kissed him, saying, ‘Be not angry
-with me, Odysseus, that I did not know thee when I first saw thee. For
-ever I feared lest another than thou should deceive me, saying he was
-my husband, but now I know that thou art indeed he.’ So welcome to her
-was the sight of her lord, that ‘her white arm she would never quite
-let go from his neck.’
-
-Thus after twenty years did Odysseus come back to Ithaca.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-THE LAND OF HELLAS
-
-
-The stories of gods and heroes are not pure history. They are myths or
-legends which have grown with the ages, until sometimes they are told
-as though they were true.
-
-Although the tales I have been telling you of the early days of Greece
-are myths, yet the Greeks who lived in later times would often speak of
-them as though they had actually happened.
-
-I am going to tell you now, not of gods or heroes, but of the true
-deeds of mortal men. And first of all you will wish to hear a little
-about the land in which the ancient Greeks lived.
-
-It was named, as you already know, Hellas, while the inhabitants were
-called Hellenes.
-
-But Hellas and her people had another name given to them by the Romans,
-who called Hellas Graecia, and the Hellenes Graeci, from a tribe that
-dwelt in a part of the country known as Epirus. Epirus was not a very
-important region, but it was well known to the Romans who dwelt in the
-south of Italy. We have altered these Roman names a little and call
-Hellas Greece, the Hellenes Greeks.
-
-If you open your atlas at the map of Europe, you will find in the south
-the little country of Greece, which although it is so small has yet
-flung its influence over all the wide world.
-
-On three sides Greece is bounded by the Mediterranean Sea, and the
-country is now usually known as the Balkan Peninsula.
-
-Greece is a land of great mountains. Of its loftiest summit; Olympus,
-which in ancient days was the abode of the gods, you have already read.
-
-The coast-line is broken up much as is the coast of Scotland, by arms
-of the sea which run far inland, so far inland that it is easy to reach
-the water from any part of the country.
-
-Close to the shores of Greece lie the islands of the Ægean Sea. In
-these islands many Greeks settled, so that they became an important
-part of Greece. The Ægean Sea we now call the Archipelago.
-
-In the time of Homer all Greeks were called Achaeans. But in later
-days, only those Greeks were called Achaeans who lived in the narrow
-strip of land in northern Peloponnesus called Achaea.
-
-The ancient Achaeans dwelt in the valleys, which were cut off from one
-another by great spurs of mountains. They were united by an ancient
-league, and quarrelled less with one another than did the other peoples
-of Greece.
-
-Besides the Achaeans there were three other great races in Greece.
-
-The Dorians came from a little country called Doris, near the famous
-Pass of Thermopylae, of which you have still to hear. The Ionians dwelt
-on the east side of the Ægean Sea, that is, they lived on the coast of
-Asia, while the Æolians were scattered here and there throughout Greece.
-
-All these different tribes were Greeks, and they were proud of their
-name, counting all other peoples barbarians, and despising them because
-they were not Greeks. Many of them were traders or adventurers from
-Asia, and they entered the new country from the north-east, through
-Thessaly, and that was not a difficult journey.
-
-Others crossed over from Asia by sea to search for a new home. But
-their galleys were rough, uncomfortable vessels, in which there was
-little room for the many who embarked. When storms arose they suffered
-great misery, huddled closely together on their small and unseaworthy
-boats. Fear, too, took hold of them and the horror of death.
-
-So the wanderers were glad when they saw the many little islands that
-were studded here and there over the Ægean Sea. Some of these islands,
-it is true, were mere rocks, desolate and without water. But there were
-others where people had already settled and made a home. On these the
-strangers landed to fight with the inhabitants, until, by the help of
-the gods, they had conquered and taken possession of them. Here they
-feasted, glad of heart that the perils of the sea were now at an end.
-
-In the Heroic Age the kings of the different tribes were believed to
-have descended from the gods, and each country or state had its own
-king. And so it was when the Heroic Age had passed away. Each tribe or
-little nation, living in its own valley or plain, still had its own
-separate sovereign, and each soon built for itself a city. The city
-might be small, but it was always surrounded by a wall, which was built
-for defence. If there was no wall it was not a city but a village,
-however large it might be.
-
-In those days kings were not ashamed to work. They were often to be
-seen in the fields at harvest time, not looking idly on, but toiling
-side by side with their people.
-
-Odysseus, King of Ithaca, is said to have built his own bedroom as well
-as his own boats. He claimed too to be a skilful ploughman and reaper.
-And still, for many years after the age of Odysseus, kings worked as
-hard as he had done.
-
-The queens and princesses were as diligent as the kings. Often they
-were to be found, like Penelope, sitting at a loom weaving or working
-beautiful embroideries. They even went to the well themselves to fetch
-water, and were sometimes to be seen by the riverside, where they
-helped to wash the linen of the household.
-
-In battle the king was always on the field, riding before his army in a
-war chariot.
-
-When peace reigned he often sat in the market-place to judge his
-people. Each suppliant told his own tale and brought his own witnesses.
-The elders of the city then gave their judgment of the case, after
-which the king, taking his sceptre in his hand, stood up to pronounce
-sentence.
-
-But above all else the king was the chief priest of his people,
-offering sacrifices for them, while they, with due reverence, looked
-upon him as a god.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-LYCURGUS AND HIS LITTLE NEPHEW
-
-
-The Dorians were a brave and sturdy race, braver, perhaps, than any
-other of the Greek tribes. Apollo, the Sun-God, one of the noblest of
-the Olympians, was the god they held in greatest reverence.
-
-A band of these Dorians came from the north and settled in the valley
-of Laconia, through which flows the river Eurotas. Here they built
-villages and called themselves Lacedaemonians.
-
-Before long five of these villages joined together to form a city,
-which was named Sparta. Sparta became the capital or chief city in
-Laconia.
-
-At first the new city was weak, scarcely able to hold her own against
-the neighbouring tribes, and much less able to add to her dominion. She
-was indeed hardly able to keep order within her own borders.
-
-Sparta was ruled not by one king but by two, and so you might perhaps
-think that she would be governed better than any other city or state,
-but this was not so.
-
-The first kings were twin brothers, for an oracle had bidden the
-Spartans ‘to take both as kings, but to give greater honour to the
-elder.’
-
-Instead of helping each other to improve their country, the two kings
-often disagreed, and then spent their days in quarrelling. The people
-were content that they should do so, for while the kings quarrelled
-they had no time to frame stricter laws or to punish those who
-disturbed the peace of the city.
-
-It soon became clear that if Sparta was to grow great and prosperous a
-strong man must be found to guide the kings as well as the people. This
-strong man was found in Lycurgus the famous lawgiver.
-
-History tells little about the life of the lawgiver, but many legends
-cluster around his name. It is told that Lycurgus belonged to one of
-the royal houses, and that when his elder brother died he became for a
-short time one of the kings of Sparta.
-
-The queen-mother was an ambitious woman, and she wished still to sit
-on the throne as she had done while her husband was alive. So she said
-to Lycurgus that she would kill her tiny baby boy who would one day be
-king, if he would marry her. But the lawgiver was angry, and rebuked
-the queen-mother for wishing to do such a wicked deed.
-
-One night as he sat at supper with the chief men of Sparta, Lycurgus
-ordered his little nephew to be brought to him.
-
-When the child was carried into the room he took him in his arms and
-holding him up for all to see, he cried, ‘Men of Sparta, here is a king
-born unto us.’ Before them all he placed the babe on the throne, and as
-the child had not yet been named, he called him Charilaus, the joy of
-the people.
-
-From that time Lycurgus became the guardian of his little nephew and
-the regent of the kingdom. So upright were his ways, so honest his
-words, that he was reverenced by the people as greatly as when he was
-king.
-
-Meanwhile the queen-mother had not forgiven Lycurgus for thwarting her
-ambition, and she determined to punish him. So she spread a report
-among the people that Lycurgus meant to put his nephew to death that he
-might again become king.
-
-Before long the rumour spread by the queen-mother reached the ears
-of Lycurgus, and he at once made up his mind to leave Sparta until
-Charilaus was old enough to reign. As he journeyed from place to place
-Lycurgus studied the laws and manners of the different countries, so
-that when he returned to Sparta he might be able to improve the laws of
-his own land.
-
-At Ionia he is said not only to have read the works of Homer, but to
-have met the poet himself. So wise were many of the customs described
-in the poet’s books that he set to work to reframe those that he
-thought would be of most use in his own country.
-
-Some stories tell that Lycurgus made a copy of part of the poet’s
-works, for it is thought that the Greeks at this time (about 800 or
-900 B.C.) already knew how to write. It was thus Lycurgus who made the
-works of Homer well known to his countrymen.
-
-But in all his travels what interested Lycurgus most was the way the
-soldiers were trained in Egypt. In other countries he had seen men who
-ploughed their fields or plied their trade, leave their work to fight
-when war broke out, but the Egyptian soldiers were soldiers and nothing
-else all the year round.
-
-Lycurgus determined that he would train the youths of Sparta as
-strictly as the soldiers in Egypt were trained. They should be neither
-ploughmen nor merchants, but the best soldiers the world had ever seen.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-LYCURGUS RETURNS TO SPARTA
-
-
-While Lycurgus was journeying from country to country, Sparta was ruled
-more badly than before. The laws were not obeyed, and no one punished
-those who disobeyed them.
-
-The citizens who cared for the welfare of the State longed for the
-return of Lycurgus and even sent messengers to bid him come home.
-
-‘Kings, indeed, we have,’ they said, ‘who wear the marks and assume the
-titles of royalty, but as for the qualities of their minds they have
-nothing by which they are to be distinguished from their subjects. You
-alone have a nature made to rule and a genius to gain obedience.’
-
-Lycurgus was at length persuaded to return to Sparta, but before he
-would attempt to reform the laws of his country he went to Delphi to
-ask the help and advice of Apollo.
-
-The oracle encouraged the future lawgiver, for it told him that he was
-the beloved of the gods, who heard his prayers, and that his laws would
-make Sparta the most famous kingdom in the world.
-
-Then Lycurgus hesitated no more. He went back to Sparta determined to
-spend his life for the good of his country.
-
-His first act was to call together thirty of the chief men of Sparta
-and tell them his plans. When they had promised to support him he bade
-them assemble armed, at the market-place at break of day, for he wished
-to strike terror into the hearts of those who were ready to resist any
-change in the laws of the land.
-
-On the day appointed, the market-place was crowded with the followers
-of Lycurgus and the mob who had come to see what was going to be done.
-
-King Charilaus hearing the tramp of armed men was so frightened that he
-fled to the temple of Athene for sanctuary, or, as we should say, for
-safety. He believed that a plot had been formed against him and that
-his life was in danger.
-
-But Lycurgus soon allayed the king’s fears, sending a messenger to tell
-him that all he wished to do was to give better laws to the State, so
-that it might grow strong and prosperous.
-
-King Charilaus was a kind and gentle prince. His brother-king, who knew
-him well, said, ‘Who can say he is anything but good. He is so even to
-the bad.’
-
-When he had been reassured by his uncle, Charilaus left the temple of
-Athene, and going to the market-place he joined Lycurgus and his thirty
-followers.
-
-Lycurgus began his reforms by limiting the power of the kings, for he
-decreed that on all important matters of State they should consult the
-Senate or Council of Elders.
-
-The plans of the Senate were laid before the assembly of the people,
-the members saying ‘Yes’ if they agreed to them, ‘No’ if they
-disagreed. Nor were they allowed to talk together over the matter
-before they gave their answer.
-
-Long after the death of the lawgiver, five new rulers, called ephors or
-overseers, were chosen from the people.
-
-At first the ephors shared their power with the kings, but little by
-little they succeeded in getting more power into their own hands. They
-began their duties with this strange order to the people, ‘Shave your
-upper lip and obey the laws.’
-
-Although the kings lost some of their power through the laws that were
-made by Lycurgus, yet they kept their right as priests to offer each
-month solemn sacrifices to Apollo for the safety of the city. Before
-the army marched to battle it was usual, too, for the kings to pray to
-the gods to give them victory. But there were other priests in Sparta
-as well as those who belonged to the royal houses.
-
-The supreme command of the army belonged to the kings, who might go to
-war with any country as they pleased. If a noble or one of the people
-tried to interfere with their decision, he was punished. A bodyguard of
-a hundred always attended the royal commanders.
-
-But as the years passed, a new law was made declaring that only one of
-the kings should go to battle at the head of the army, and that one was
-forced to account to the people for the way in which he carried on the
-war.
-
-In still later times the power of the king on the battlefield was
-checked by the presence of two ephors. Sometimes a king was glad of
-their presence, and would even appeal to them to make the soldiers obey
-the royal commands.
-
-When a king died, no public work was done until ten days after the
-funeral. Herodotus, a great Greek historian, tells us how the news of
-the royal death was made known. ‘Horsemen carry round the tidings of
-the event throughout Laconia, and in the city women go about beating a
-caldron. And at this sign, two free persons of each house, a man and a
-woman, must put on mourning garb (that is sackcloth and ashes), and if
-any fail to do this great pains are imposed.’
-
-Lycurgus not only made laws to lessen the power of the kings. He tried
-also to alter the extravagant customs of the people. Gold and silver
-money was banished from the country, and large bars of iron were used
-in its place. These bars were so heavy, and took up so much room, that
-it was impossible to hoard them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-THE TRAINING OF THE SPARTANS
-
-
-Lycurgus had seen the severe discipline which soldiers in Egypt were
-forced to undergo. He had made up his mind that his own countrymen
-should be trained as thoroughly.
-
-The Spartans at this time were poor and their numbers were small,
-perhaps about ten thousand were fit to bear arms. They were surrounded
-by enemies whose attacks they found hard to repulse.
-
-But Lycurgus thought that if each citizen became a soldier, and that
-if each soldier was trained from his childhood to fight and to endure
-hardship, Sparta would soon have an army that no other power could
-conquer.
-
-So as soon as a baby boy was born in Sparta he was taken to the Council
-of Elders that they might decide if he should live or die. If the child
-was strong and healthy he was given back to his parents, if he was weak
-and ailing he was left alone on a hillside to die from cold and hunger.
-
-When he was seven years old, the Spartan boy was taken from his home
-to a public training-house. Here the strict discipline commanded by
-Lycurgus was begun.
-
-Shoes and stockings were never worn by the little lads of Sparta,
-although the hills and countryside were rough for unshod feet. In
-winter they were clad in one garment, just as in summer.
-
-Their beds were made of rushes, which they had themselves gathered from
-the banks of the river Eurotas. This was a hard task, for they were not
-allowed to cut them with a knife, but must break them with their hands.
-In winter the boys used to scatter thistle-down on the rushes to give
-a little warmth to their hard couch.
-
-Each child, from the age of seven, cooked his own food, which was
-scanty and plain. If after their meals the boys were still hungry, so
-much the better, said Lycurgus. It would teach them to hunt the more
-keenly, that they might add to their daily portion of food. It would
-teach them to steal from the neighbouring farm-yards or gardens without
-being found out.
-
-So a hungry Spartan boy would often climb into a garden undiscovered,
-or even slip into a stranger’s larder in search of fruit and food.
-
-If the lads were caught, they were punished, not, I am sorry to tell
-you, for stealing, but for being so clumsy as to be found out.
-
-Once a Spartan boy stole a young fox and hid it under his coat. It soon
-began to scratch with its claws, to bite with its teeth, until the lad
-was in terrible pain, yet he would have died rather than tell what he
-was suffering. Such was the endurance taught to the lads of Sparta.
-
-If a boy shirked any hardship or flagged at his gymnastic exercises he
-was flogged, perhaps even tortured. One test of his endurance was a
-terrible scourging, under which he would die rather than utter a cry of
-pain.
-
-In public the boys were trained to be silent, or if they were spoken
-to, to answer as shortly as possible. Their short, abrupt way of
-talking was called laconic, because the name of their country was
-Laconia. We still use the word laconic when we hear any one speak in as
-brief a way as possible.
-
-Hard as the Spartan training was, cruel as it sometimes became, it yet
-made boys into strong and hardy soldiers.
-
-Girls, too, were trained, although not so severely as boys. They ran,
-they wrestled, they boxed with one another, while boys and girls
-marched together in religious processions and danced on the solemn
-feast days.
-
-When they were twenty years of age, the girls usually married. They
-had been taught, as had the boys, that they belonged to the State,
-and that they must love their country and serve her with all their
-strength. So when Spartan mothers sent their sons forth to war, they
-handed them their shields saying, ‘Return either with your shield or
-upon it,’ for they feared death less than disgrace or defeat.
-
-The children were taught to sing in chorus as part of their drill. At
-some of the festivals three choirs took part, one of old men, one of
-young men, and one of boys.
-
-When the old men sang a song beginning, ‘We once were young and brave
-and strong,’ the young men answered, ‘And we’re so now, come on and
-try,’ while the boys’ voices rang out bravely when their turn came,
-‘But we’ll be strongest by-and-by.’
-
-The Spartan lads were twenty years old before they left the
-training-house to which they had been sent when they were seven. They
-were then fully-trained soldiers and left the training-house for the
-barracks.
-
-After they married, the men still had to take their meals in the
-barracks with their fellow-soldiers. Not until they were sixty years of
-age were the Spartans allowed to live and take their meals in their own
-house. In this way almost the whole of a Spartan’s life was given to
-the State.
-
-When war actually came and the Spartans were on the field, they were
-treated with more kindness than in time of peace. Their food was more
-plentiful and pleasant, their discipline less strict. This was done to
-make the soldiers look forward to war, and to desire it rather than
-peace.
-
-The younger soldiers, too, were allowed to curl their hair before the
-battle began, to wear gayer clothes, and to carry more costly arms. It
-is said that Lycurgus thought that ‘a large head of hair added beauty
-to a good face and terror to an ugly one.’
-
-So famous became the bravery and the endurance of the Spartans, that
-even now we call one who suffers hardships without complaint ‘a
-Spartan.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-THE HELOTS
-
-
-When Lycurgus made a law compelling soldiers to eat their meals in the
-barracks, some of the wealthier citizens were indignant.
-
-They did not wish to sit at table with their fellow-soldiers in batches
-of fifteen; they would rather have gone to their homes and taken their
-meals with their families.
-
-Nor did they enjoy the plain fare on which Lycurgus insisted, a share
-of which each citizen was forced to send to the mess table month by
-month.
-
-The most usual food in Laconia was black broth, which was not a
-palatable soup. When some one ventured to grumble at the broth, the
-cook answered, ‘It is nothing without the seasoning of fatigue and
-hunger.’ This black broth, with barley meal, cheese, and figs, was the
-Spartan’s daily fare. Meat was a luxury which they enjoyed only on
-special occasions.
-
-So great was the indignation against Lycurgus that a crowd assembled in
-the market-place to complain of his laws, and to speak harshly of his
-conduct.
-
-When they saw the great lawgiver coming toward the market-place they
-were so angry that they picked up stones to throw at him, and he was
-forced to fly for his life.
-
-His enemies followed him, but he outstripped them all save one, named
-Alexander. As he turned to see who pursued him so closely, Alexander
-struck his face with a stick and put out one of his eyes.
-
-As the others hastened up, Lycurgus showed them what Alexander had
-done, and they, ashamed of his violence, told the lawgiver to take the
-rash youth and punish him as he would. They then went with him to his
-house, to show that they were sorry for what had happened.
-
-When they reached the door Lycurgus sent them all away save his
-prisoner. Then going into his dining-room, he dismissed his attendants
-and bade Alexander wait upon him. During the meal he uttered no word of
-reproach, although the lad had done him so great an injury.
-
-Alexander lived with Lycurgus until he learned not only to admire but
-to imitate the industry and the gentleness of his host. And so Lycurgus
-had the pleasure of seeing a rash and wilful lad become a grave and
-sensible citizen.
-
-Each Spartan had a portion or ‘lot’ of land given to him, on the
-produce of which he and his family had to live. But citizen soldiers
-had no time to dig the ground, to sow, to reap, for all their days were
-spent in drill and military exercises. So their land was cultivated for
-them by the Helots, who had owned Laconia before the Spartans conquered
-them and took possession of their land.
-
-The Helots were treated very much as slaves, although they had no
-taskmasters to drive them to their work. They were even allowed to own
-property. But they had many hardships to endure, and were always ready
-to rebel against their masters.
-
-One of their greatest hardships was that their lives were never safe.
-For while the Spartans were being trained, they were often sent into
-the country with orders to kill any Helot who was suspected of wishing
-to rebel.
-
-In time of war the Helots fought as light-armed troops. If they showed
-themselves brave and loyal in the service of the State, they were
-sometimes rewarded by being made free.
-
-Once during the great Peloponnesian War between Sparta and Athens,
-of which you will read in this story, the Spartans believed that the
-Helots had plotted to rise against them. They determined that the
-rising should never take place, and to prevent it they did a cruel
-deed. For they chose two thousand of the bravest Helots, set them free,
-and gave them a great feast to celebrate the event. Then when the
-feast was over and the Helots had gone away to their homes, suspecting
-nothing, the Spartans ordered each of the two thousand freed men to be
-put to death. When the bravest were killed, the others were not likely
-to rebel.
-
-The Spartan army became strong as Lycurgus had foreseen it would,
-if it were trained according to his strict methods. It conquered
-Peloponnesus, and for a time Sparta was the chief city in that land.
-
-But there was one strange thing about these soldiers. Well as they
-had been trained, they could never learn how to attack or to take a
-town that was fortified. ‘Wall-fighting,’ as the Greeks called it, was
-beyond their power. Even an ordinary wall or fence would stop them in
-their victorious course. At sea too they were not nearly so successful
-as on land.
-
-Sparta itself was not, like other Greek cities, surrounded by a wall.
-For when the citizens once sent to ask Lycurgus if it were necessary
-to enclose their city with a wall, his answer was, ‘The city is well
-fortified which hath a wall of men instead of brick.’
-
-When, after many years, Lycurgus had finished his code of laws, he
-called the people together and told them that he was going to Delphi to
-consult the oracle on an important matter which concerned the State.
-
-Before he set out he begged them, and also the two kings and the
-Senate, to take an oath to keep his laws unaltered until his return.
-This they gladly promised to do.
-
-Then Lycurgus journeyed to Delphi, and after offering sacrifices to
-Apollo, he asked the god if the laws he had made for his country were
-good laws.
-
-The oracle answered that the laws were good, and that as long as the
-people kept them their fame would endure.
-
-Lycurgus sent this answer in writing to Sparta. Then, that the
-Spartans might not be set free from their oath he determined never to
-go back to the city. Yet it seemed that he could not live away from
-her, and so, for the welfare of the State, as he believed, the lawgiver
-starved himself to death.
-
-The Spartans kept the oath that they had taken, and when they died
-their sons and their sons’ sons observed it. For five hundred years,
-during the reigns of fourteen kings, the laws of Lycurgus were
-unaltered and strictly followed.
-
-After his death Lycurgus was worshipped as a god, and a temple was
-built for him in Sparta, where sacrifices were offered to him every
-year.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-ARISTOMENES AND THE FOX
-
-
-The Spartans were eager to fight and to add to their dominions. So they
-determined to attack the Messenians, whose country lay west of Laconia,
-close to their own borders.
-
-One day, while the Messenians were feasting and offering sacrifices to
-their gods, the Spartans sent three youths disguised as maidens across
-the borderland. Beneath their robes the young soldiers carried arms.
-They stole quietly in among the Messenians and attacked them in the
-midst of their feast.
-
-But although the Messenians were unarmed they soon captured the three
-Spartan lads. They then advanced against the Spartans, and in the
-tumult that followed, one of the kings of Sparta was slain.
-
-The war, which was thus begun in 743 B.C., lasted for many years, and
-was known as the First Messenian War.
-
-No great battle was fought until four years had passed. Even then
-neither side could claim a victory, but so many Messenians had fallen
-that Aristodemus, their chief, withdrew, with those of his followers
-who were left, to a mountain fortress called Ithomé.
-
-Then, as was their custom, when it was difficult to know what to do
-next, the Messenians sent to consult the oracle. The answer filled them
-with dismay, for the oracle declared that not until a maiden belonging
-to one of their ancient houses was sacrificed to the gods need they
-hope to conquer the Spartans. But Aristodemus loved his country so
-dearly that he did not hesitate to sacrifice his own daughter to the
-gods.
-
-When the Spartans heard what the brave chief had done, they hastened to
-make peace with the Messenians. They could not hope to conquer those
-for whom the gods would now fight.
-
-A few years passed, and then the Spartans determined to attack the
-Messenians once again, and to drive them from Ithomé their mountain
-fortress.
-
-Again a great battle was fought, and again neither side could claim the
-victory. But the king of the Messenians was killed, and Aristodemus was
-chosen to rule in his place. In the fifth year of his reign he defeated
-the Spartans and drove them from his dominions.
-
-The victory brought no happiness to the king, for omens of evil seemed
-to pursue him.
-
-In the temple a brazen shield fell from the hand of the statue of
-Artemis the goddess. The daughter of Aristodemus appeared to her father
-and bade him lay aside his armour. He obeyed, and she then placed on
-his head a crown of gold and clad him in a white robe. These things
-meant that the death of the king was near.
-
-Aristodemus believed that not only he but his country was doomed, and
-deeming that he had sacrificed his daughter in vain, he slew himself in
-his despair on her tomb.
-
-For twenty years the war still dragged on, and only then were the
-Spartans able to drive the Messenians from Ithomé and raze the fortress
-to the ground.
-
-Many of the conquered people fled, while those who remained were
-treated more harshly than were the Helots. For they were compelled to
-pay as tribute to the Spartans half the produce of their lands. This
-was the end of the First Messenian War.
-
-For almost thirty years the conquered people bore their cruel lot, then
-in 685 B.C. they rebelled, and the Second Messenian War was begun.
-
-Aristomenes, the leader of the rebels, was a bold and daring foe.
-To show how little he feared the Spartans, he secretly crossed the
-borderland into the enemy’s country, and one night he succeeded in
-entering the city of Sparta itself. He made his way to the temple of
-Athene, and walking in boldly he hung up his shield beside the statue
-of the goddess, with these words tied to it: ‘Dedicated by Aristomenes
-to the goddess from the Spartan spoils.’
-
-With a band of his bravest followers, the chief made more than one
-successful raid into the heart of the enemy’s country, and plundered
-two of their cities.
-
-As in the first war, so in this second war, no decisive victory was
-gained at first by either side. But legend tells that Aristomenes did
-many valiant deeds.
-
-Three times he offered a strange sacrifice to the king of the gods,
-which one who had slain in battle a hundred of the foe was alone
-permitted to do. The sacrifice was named the Hekatomphonia.
-
-The Spartans, alarmed at the daring of Aristomenes, sent to consult
-the oracle at Delphi. They were told to send to the famous city of
-Athens for a leader. Now the Spartans did not wish to do this, for they
-were not on good terms with the Athenians. Still, as they dared not
-disregard the oracle, they did as they were bid.
-
-The Athenians did not wish to help the Spartans any more than they
-wished to ask for help, yet they too knew they could not ignore the
-oracle. So they got out of the difficulty, as they thought, by sending
-a lame schoolmaster, named Tyrtaeus. He would not be likely to lead an
-army far.
-
-But although Tyrtaeus was a lame man, he was also a poet. His war-songs
-roused the Spartans, and inspired them to fight more bravely than
-ever. When they marched again to battle they were singing the songs of
-Tyrtaeus and marching to victory. Aristomenes was forced to retreat to
-the mountains to a fortress called Ira.
-
-For eleven years the war lingered on. The Spartans often encamped
-at the foot of Ira to keep the enemy in check. But again and again
-Aristomenes broke out of the fortress, and with a band of followers
-crossed the border and laid waste Laconia. Twice he was taken prisoner
-and twice he escaped, but the third time he was captured he was carried
-in triumph to the city of Sparta. With fifty of his countrymen he was
-flung from Mount Taygetus into a great chasm in the rock below.
-
-The fifty followers of Aristomenes were killed by the fall, but
-Aristomenes was saved by the gods. For, so the legend tells, an eagle
-with wings outspread carried him unhurt to the bottom of the pit.
-
-For three days Aristomenes lay in the cavern surrounded by the dead
-bodies of his comrades. To escape seemed impossible. But when no hope
-was left in the heart of the brave man, he noticed something move at
-the foot of the cave. At once he roused himself to look more closely at
-the moving object; it was a fox, prowling about in search of food.
-
-In an instant hope was alive in the heart of Aristomenes. If an animal
-had got into the cave, it was possible for him to get out of it.
-
-Weak though he was for want of food, Aristomenes managed to seize the
-tail of the fox, and to hold it fast when the animal tried to escape.
-
-Onward the fox struggled, until it reached a narrow hole in the rock.
-Then Aristomenes let his deliverer go, while he began at once to
-enlarge the hole.
-
-The next day, to the joy of his countrymen and to the alarm of his
-enemies, Aristomenes was again in the Messenian fortress.
-
-But there was a traitor in the camp of the Messenians, and one night,
-soon after the return of their leader, the mountain fortress at Ira was
-betrayed into the hands of the Spartans.
-
-In the battle that followed, Aristomenes was wounded, but gathering
-together the bravest of his followers, he made a desperate charge
-through the lines of the enemy and escaped. Some time after he died in
-Rome, but it is told that two hundred and fifty years later, he was
-seen on a battlefield fighting against the Spartans.
-
-The Second Messenian War ended, as had the first, in the triumph of the
-Spartans, who again treated their prisoners as slaves. In 464 B.C. war
-again broke out between the Messenians and Sparta. The Spartans were
-victorious, and the conquered people were driven from Peloponnesus. But
-in 369 B.C. a great Theban leader called Epaminondas restored freedom
-to the Messenians, and brought them back again to their own country.
-
-The history of the Messenian War was written by the poet Tyrtaeus,
-whose songs were sung for many years by the Spartans as they marched to
-battle.
-
-Some of these songs we can still read for ourselves.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII
-
-THE OLYMPIAN GAMES
-
-
-Greece was made up of many separate States, each independent of the
-other. But there were several bonds which united the States. They spoke
-the same language, they worshipped the same gods, they kept the same
-great festivals.
-
-The festivals, held by a council called the Amphictyonic Council, were
-honoured by all the States. The council was made up of men chosen from
-twelve of the most ancient Greek tribes, and met twice each year.
-
-The temple of Apollo at Delphi was under the care of the Amphictyonic
-Council, and it was at Delphi that the spring-tide festival was held.
-Another great festival of the Amphictyonic Council was celebrated in
-the temple dedicated to Demeter at Thermopylae.
-
-The Amphictyons, as the members of the council were called, did not
-govern Greece as a parliament governs a country. But they often talked
-of what could be done for the good of the States, and of how their
-interests could be united more closely.
-
-Of more power to weld the States together than the council, were the
-national games, where members of all the different countries of Greece
-met together.
-
-The chief of these games was the Olympian Games, which were believed to
-have begun far back in the shadowy past, and to have been revived by
-Lycurgus the lawgiver in 776 B.C.
-
-Olympia, where the games were held, was in the country of Elis in
-Peloponnesus. The King of Elis helped Lycurgus to renew the interest of
-the Greeks in the ancient games.
-
-It is said that when Apollo first saw the beautiful valley of Olympia
-he exclaimed, ‘Here will I make me a fair temple to be an oracle for
-men.’
-
-The ancient Stadium, or race-course, was erected in the valley, as
-well as a temple to Zeus, in which the victors of the games were given
-wreaths of wild olive. These wreaths were valued more than any other
-prize or distinction in Greece. Indeed at Olympia no other reward was
-given save the simple, wild olive branches, which were plucked from the
-sacred grove in the Olympian plain, and twined into a wreath.
-
-But when the victor returned to his own country, he was loaded with
-gifts and honours, for he had gained for his State and for his
-relations a glory which all longed to possess.
-
-In the Olympian temple, in later days, there was a marvellous statue of
-Zeus in gold and ivory, wrought by the genius of Pheidias, the greatest
-sculptor of Greece.
-
-The games were open to all, and spectators as well as competitors
-flocked to Olympia from every state in Greece. To the Greeks these
-games were part of their religion; they were rites pleasing, so they
-believed, to the gods.
-
-Should there be war between any of the Greek States at the time of the
-games, all hostile acts were forbidden in Olympia. Until the festival
-was over, those who had been in arms, one against another, might meet
-in safety and in peace. Twice or thrice an armed force made its way
-into the sacred territory of Elis to interfere with the games. This to
-the Greeks was sacrilege.
-
-In the earliest times the games lasted only for one day, and a simple
-foot-race was the only event. But soon the festival came to last for
-five days, for there were now, not only foot-races, but wrestling,
-boxing, racing in armour, and above all else chariot races. In these
-races it was not the driver who, if successful, won the wreath of
-olive, but the owner of the chariot.
-
-On the first day of the games, sacrifices were offered to the gods, on
-the following three days the races were held, while on the last day the
-people marched in procession to the temple and again offered sacrifices
-and feasted.
-
-At the end of every four years the games were celebrated; the time
-between the games being called an Olympiad. The year 776 B.C. was
-counted as the first Olympiad, the second began in 772 B.C. In ancient
-times the Greeks reckoned their dates by the Olympiads, thus an event
-was said to take place in a certain year of a certain Olympiad.
-
-Games were held at many other places as well as at Olympia, but the
-three most important celebrations, after the Olympian, were the
-Isthmian, the Pythian and the Nemean.
-
-To these festivals came the poets of Greece, prepared to celebrate in
-song the skill of the victors. During the intervals between the games,
-great numbers of the people assembled in a hall to listen to the poets
-while they recited their poems.
-
-As the years passed the great Greek dramas or plays came to be acted
-also at these festivals. At first the stage was a simple wooden
-platform in the open air, but soon wooden buildings were erected. Plays
-were performed at Athens in a splendid theatre which was hewn out of
-the solid rock of the Acropolis or citadel of the city. Tier after tier
-was cut, until the theatre could hold thirty thousand spectators.
-
-[Illustration: In the earliest times a simple foot-race was the only
-event]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII
-
-THE LAST KING OF ATHENS
-
-
-You remember how Cecrops came to Attica and built a city so beautiful
-that the gods marvelled, and how Athene made the first olive-tree and
-was therefore awarded the honour of naming the city and becoming its
-patron. The olive-tree was now said to grow on a rock in the stronghold
-or Acropolis of the city.
-
-In ancient days Sparta was a more important city than the beautiful one
-built by Cecrops, but little by little, as the years passed, Athens
-became supreme in Greece and the most glorious city of the world.
-
-At first Athens, like Sparta and the other States, was governed by
-kings. But while Sparta continued to be a monarchy, Athens became an
-oligarchy--that is, she was governed by a few, and these few were
-nobles.
-
-When Codrus, the last king of Athens, was on the throne, the State was
-invaded by the Dorians. An oracle had declared that unless the Athenian
-king was slain in the camp of the enemy, Athens would be taken.
-
-Codrus loved his city and determined to save it from the enemy. So he
-disguised himself as a peasant and went to the camp of the Dorians,
-where he killed the first soldier he met. The comrades of the dead man
-at once fell upon Codrus and, as he had hoped, he was speedily slain.
-Then as the oracle had foretold Athens was saved from the enemy.
-
-The Athenians resolved that they would no longer have kings to rule
-over them, because they were sure that they could never find any worthy
-to follow Codrus who had died for the sake of his country. This seems
-a strange reason for which to overturn the monarchy. In most countries
-it is the bad conduct of their kings which makes the people wish to get
-rid of them.
-
-As Athens would not have another king, the son of Codrus was given
-neither the power nor the title of royalty. He was named merely archon,
-or ruler. An archon ruled only for ten years.
-
-Soon the Athenians determined to choose nine archons each year, for
-they thought it would be well to divide the power among these men
-rather than entrust it to one ruler.
-
-The archons were obliged to consult a council of nobles before they
-made a new law, while the council had to lay their plans before the
-assembly of the people.
-
-In this way Athens became before long an oligarchy governed by a few
-nobles. The nobles often proved harsh rulers, taking from the people
-the rights that had been theirs when Athens was a monarchy.
-
-At length the people grew so angry that they determined to destroy the
-nobles who treated them so cruelly. But as they were helpless without
-a leader, they were glad to follow any ambitious noble who would place
-himself at their head and lead them to fight against their oppressors.
-Too often the deliverer seized the supreme power himself and oppressed
-the people more than had the oligarch.
-
-The usurper was called by the Greeks a tyrant. But the word tyrant did
-not mean to them, as it means to us, a cruel man. It meant simply one
-who had seized a power to which he had no real right.
-
-Some of the tyrants were cruel, but others used the power which they
-had seized for the good of the State.
-
-The years 700 B.C. to 500 B.C. are known as the Age of the Tyrants,
-because there were few States, save Sparta, which did not fall under
-the power of a tyrant during those years.
-
-Often the people learned to hate a tyrant as greatly as they had hated
-the nobles under whose harsh treatment they had groaned. But it was
-not easy to get rid of him, for he usually had hired soldiers to help
-him to keep the citizens from rebelling. One of the wisest and best of
-the tyrants was named Pisistratus, and he was a cousin of Solon, the
-great lawgiver of Athens.
-
-Solon was not a tyrant, although had he wished he might have become
-one.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX
-
-CYLON FAILS TO MAKE HIMSELF TYRANT
-
-
-The people of Attica were divided into three classes. There were
-the men of the Plain, who owned land and were wealthy; the men of
-the Shore, who were fisher-folk and traders; the men of the Hill or
-Uplanders, who were shepherds and herdsmen.
-
-These three parties, the Plain, the Shore, the Hill, as they were often
-called, were dissatisfied with the way in which they were treated by
-the nobles. For, little by little, they were taking possession of the
-land and making free men slaves.
-
-When the harvest failed, or when trade was bad, the poor were forced to
-borrow from the rich. And if a poor man could not pay his debt when it
-became due, his land and his goods were seized by the rich man. Nor was
-that the worst, for if the land and the goods were not enough to cover
-the debt, then the poor man himself was taken to be used or sold as a
-slave.
-
-So great was the discontent of the people, that in 632 B.C. a noble
-named Cylon determined to put himself at their head, overthrow those
-who were in power, and make himself tyrant. But Cylon did not trouble
-to gain the goodwill of the people. He succeeded in seizing the
-Acropolis, but it was by the aid of soldiers whom he had hired from the
-neighbouring city of Megara, not by the help of the people of Athens.
-The Athenians were indignant when they saw Megarian soldiers in their
-capital, and they looked on coldly and struck no blow for Cylon when
-the archons besieged the rebel noble in the citadel.
-
-Cylon did not stay to see his plans destroyed; he escaped from the city
-by night, but his followers held the Acropolis until famine stared
-them in the face. Then they gathered for sanctuary around the altar of
-Athene and threw open the gates of the citadel.
-
-Megacles, the chief archon, promised that the lives of the defenders
-should be spared, but no sooner had they left the altar than he ordered
-that they should be put to death.
-
-The Athenians punished Megacles for this treacherous deed, for he and
-the family to which he belonged were banished from Athens, while their
-property was seized by the State. It is told that the city lay under a
-curse after the treacherous deed of Megacles, nor was she freed from it
-until a priest purified her with solemn religious rites.
-
-Cylon had neither gained his own ends nor had he helped the people by
-his rebellion.
-
-Poverty and debt were hard to bear, yet these the citizens might now
-have suffered in silence, but injustice drove them to demand that the
-laws should be reformed. For the archons punished as they pleased those
-who disobeyed the law, and at the courts, sentence was often passed in
-favour of those who had bribed or befriended the judge.
-
-When the people rose in 621 B.C. demanding that justice should be done
-in the land, the task of reforming the laws was entrusted to one of the
-archons named Draco.
-
-Until now the laws had not been written, and so many of them were
-unknown to the people. Draco ordered that the laws should be inscribed
-on tablets that they might be read by the people. Sometimes he was
-blamed for the severity of these laws, although all he had done was to
-make them known.
-
-But the code of laws which Draco drew up was so severe that in later
-days, as the Athenians read them, they exclaimed in horror, ‘The laws
-of Draco seem to have been written in blood rather than with ink.’
-And indeed there was cause for dismay when the theft of a cabbage was
-punished with death. Draco was thus of little real help to the poor
-people of Athens.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX
-
-SOLON FREES THE SLAVES
-
-
-Solon, the wise lawgiver of Athens, was a descendant of King Codrus.
-His father had given away most of his wealth to help his city or
-his countrymen, so Solon became a merchant, as the sons of noblemen
-often did in these days of long ago. To increase his business, Solon
-journeyed through many of the states of Greece as well as to Asia.
-Wherever he went he studied the laws and manners of the people, just as
-Lycurgus the lawgiver of Sparta had done.
-
-Solon was not only a merchant, he was also a poet, and because he was
-both wise and learned he was counted one of the seven sages of Greece.
-
-When Solon returned from one of his journeys about 593 B.C., he was
-made an archon and asked to reform the laws.
-
-His first act was a great and unexpected one, for he proclaimed that
-henceforth no one might be made a slave because he was unable to pay
-his debts. And more than that, he said that those who were already
-slaves were at once to be set free.
-
-Hundreds of men were thus delivered from slavery, many hundreds more
-were freed from the fear of becoming slaves. As these men ploughed
-their own lands and reaped their own harvests they were full of
-gratitude to Solon. For this law alone the name of Solon might well be
-held in reverence.
-
-[Illustration: Solon, the wise lawgiver of Athens]
-
-So great was the joy of the people that the day the law was passed was
-kept each year as a festival. But the rich nobles were not pleased
-with Solon’s act, for they lost many of their slaves and found it less
-easy to add to their wealth.
-
-The lawgiver also declared that if there was war or strife in the
-State, each citizen must take one side or the other. No one was to be
-allowed to look on idly, or side now with one party, now with another.
-
-Solon restored to the assembly of the people the rights that had been
-wrested from it, and he did all he could to add to its powers.
-
-In these ways Solon made Greece less and less of an Oligarchy and more
-and more of a Democracy. That is to say, Greece began to be governed by
-the many rather than by the few.
-
-The laws made by Solon, and there were many of which I have not told,
-were written on tables of wood and placed in frames that revolved.
-These frames were called axones and were numbered.
-
-When the laws had been written on the tables of wood they were placed
-in the public hall that they might be read by all. Other copies were
-made on stone pillars and kept in the portico of the king. Each citizen
-took an oath that he would keep these laws, which were to remain
-unaltered for a hundred years.
-
-Solon had enemies, as reformers in all ages have had. Some people
-complained because his laws were not bold enough, others because they
-were too bold.
-
-Once when he was asked if he believed that he had given to the
-Athenians the best possible laws, he answered, ‘The best they could
-receive.’
-
-The complaints of his enemies did not greatly disturb him. He declared
-that neither friend nor foe influenced him as he worked. ‘I threw my
-stout shield over both parties,’ he said, and steadfastly refused to
-alter his code.
-
-When he ceased to be archon he left Athens and spent ten years seeing
-many strange people and many new places. It is said that during his
-absence he met Croesus, King of Lydia, the richest man in the world.
-As Solon and Croesus did not live at the same time, it is not possible
-that the wise lawgiver and the rich king could have met, but this is
-the story that is told.
-
-When Solon reached Lydia, he went to the court of Croesus. The nobles
-were clad in such rich garments and were attended by so many guards
-and pages that the Athenian thought that one of them must be the king
-himself. But when he actually stood in the presence of the monarch he
-must have smiled at his mistake, so gorgeously was the king arrayed in
-gold and purple, so plentifully was he bedecked with sparkling jewels.
-
-Croesus thought that Solon would be filled with awe at the sight of his
-grandeur, but he soon found that purple cloth and rare stones had no
-great interest for the Athenian.
-
-There were still his treasure-houses! These could not fail to impress
-the stranger. So the king led Solon through gallery after gallery that
-he might see his pictures, his statues, and all the wonderful things
-that his wealth had brought to him. Then in a glow of pride he turned
-to his guest, asking if he did not think that Croesus was the happiest
-man in the world.
-
-‘Nay, O king,’ answered Solon, ‘Tellus, one of my own countrymen, was
-happier than thou, for he died bravely on the battlefield in defence of
-his country.’
-
-Croesus thought Solon was foolish not to count that man happiest who
-owned the most gold. But he only said, ‘After Tellus, dost thou count
-me the happiest man in the world?’
-
-‘Nay,’ again answered the wise man, ‘but two sons who loved their
-mother well, and served her with their strength.’
-
-Then the king was angry and he said, ‘Dost thou not count me a happy
-man?’
-
-‘Call no man happy until he dies,’ replied the wise man, ‘for who knows
-what pains the gods may yet have in store for him while he lives.’
-
-Croesus was yet to learn the truth of what Solon said. For in days to
-come Cyrus, King of Persia, seized his city, took him prisoner, and
-condemned him to be burned to death.
-
-As he was being bound to the pyre, Croesus remembered the words of the
-Athenian, and he cried aloud three times, ‘O Solon, Solon, Solon.’
-
-The King of Persia had never heard of Solon, and he asked on what
-strange god his prisoner was calling.
-
-‘On no god,’ answered the miserable man, ‘but on one whom I would that
-all tyrants might meet and converse with.’ He then told Cyrus how Solon
-had said no one need count himself happy while he lived, as he could
-not know what misfortunes the gods had yet in store for him.
-
-Already the pyre had been set alight, but Cyrus, struck by the words he
-had heard and thinking that he did not know what fate might yet befall
-himself, ordered Croesus to be set free.
-
-But the flames had blazed up fiercely, and no one could quench the
-fire. Then Croesus besought Apollo to help him, and lo! the sky
-which had been clear grew dark, and a heavy downfall of rain soon
-extinguished the flames.
-
-‘Thus,’ says Plutarch, who tells this story, ‘Solon had the glory by
-the same saying to save one king and instruct another.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI
-
-THE ATHENIANS TAKE SALAMIS
-
-
-Salamis, an island lying about a mile from both Athens and Megara, was
-in the hands of the Megarians. Its position between the two States
-made it an important one. So the Athenians determined to proclaim war
-against the Megarians and try to win Salamis for themselves.
-
-But the war dragged on so long that the Athenians grew weary, and
-although the Megarians still held the island they longed for the war
-to end. The poor soldiers wished to go home to plough their fields,
-the rich wished to escape from the hardships of the camp to their own
-comfortable homes.
-
-So at length peace was made, and a law was passed by the Athenians
-forbidding any one either to say or to write, upon pain of death, that
-Athens ought still to try to win Salamis.
-
-There were many citizens both indignant and ashamed that such a law had
-been passed, yet lest they should be put to death they did not dare to
-say what they thought.
-
-Solon was away from Athens when this law was passed, and when he came
-back from his journey and found that peace had been made while Salamis
-was still in the hands of the Megarians, he was much displeased.
-
-Some time had passed since peace had been made, and Solon knew that the
-Megarians were not now as strong as they had been when the Athenians
-gave up fighting. So he determined that he would rouse his countrymen
-to try again to capture the island. Yet what could he do? He would be
-put to death if he defied the law, which said that no one must say or
-write that Athens ought still to try to win Salamis.
-
-At length he hit on a strange plan. He pretended that he was mad, and
-persuaded his own family to spread the report that this terrible fate
-had befallen him. He then wrote some verses, learned them by heart, and
-ran toward the market-place, a cap upon his head. In those days a cap
-was worn by a man only if he were ill.
-
-Solon soon attracted as much attention as he had hoped to do by his
-strange gestures and by the words he shouted.
-
-As the people crowded round him he jumped on to the platform from which
-heralds were used to announce important tidings, and began to recite
-the verses he had written.
-
-‘I came myself as a herald from lovely Salamis, but with song on my
-lips instead of common speech,’ so began the poem. It then went on to
-blame those who wished no longer to fight, and bade them ‘Arise and
-come to Salamis to win that fair island and undo our shame.’
-
-As the people listened they forgot that they had believed Solon was
-mad, and their hearts were stirred by his words.
-
-From that day so strong became the desire of the people to blot out
-their disgrace and win Salamis, that the law which had so displeased
-Solon was repealed. No one had thought of punishing the man who had
-broken it.
-
-The Athenian forces were again mustered; Solon himself being made
-commander of the troops. His cousin Pisistratus went with him to
-battle, and it was he who succeeded in taking the port of Salamis.
-
-In those days Athens had no fleet. Solon sailed toward Salamis in a
-ship, but his army followed him in a number of fishing-boats.
-
-When the Megarians caught sight of the Athenian ship, they sent one of
-their own vessels to find out the strength of the enemy’s fleet.
-
-Solon managed to capture this ship, and all on board were taken
-prisoners. The captured vessel was then manned with Athenians, and the
-men were ordered to sail slowly and quietly to the island.
-
-Solon meanwhile reached the shore and, landing with his army, at once
-attacked the Megarians. While the fight still raged, the ship manned
-by Athenians sailed unnoticed to the port. The soldiers leaped to
-the ground, sped swiftly to the city, and took it almost before the
-citizens were aware of the presence of the enemy.
-
-The island was soon in the hands of the triumphant Athenians, by
-whom it was held for many long years, until indeed Philip of Macedon
-conquered Greece.
-
-To celebrate the victory in after years, an Athenian ship used to sail
-to the island just as the victorious one had done on the actual battle
-day. When it reached the shore, a soldier, armed as though for battle,
-jumped to the ground, and with a loud shout ran toward the city, where
-he was met and welcomed by his countrymen.
-
-Close to the spot where Solon won this victory a temple was built and
-dedicated to the god of battle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII
-
-PISISTRATUS BECOMES TYRANT
-
-
-Solon did not expect the laws he made to please each of the three
-parties in Attica. So he was not greatly surprised that while the Plain
-and the Coast were more or less content, the Hill was dissatisfied and
-even rebellious.
-
-Pisistratus wished to help the Hill folk, who were shepherds and
-herdsmen, and he hoped at the same time to fulfil his own ambition,
-which was to become tyrant of Athens.
-
-Solon did not think that it was good for the State to have a tyrant at
-its head. He warned the people again and again that Pisistratus would
-take away their freedom. But it was in vain that he spoke, no one would
-listen to him.
-
-One day as Pisistratus drove in a chariot to the market-place, the
-citizens saw to their horror that he had been wounded. They crowded
-round his chariot begging to be told what had happened. This was what
-Pisistratus wished. He pointed to his wounds, telling them that the men
-of the Plain had attacked him, because he was defending the rights of
-the poor Hill folk. But Pisistratus was deceiving the people, for he
-had given himself these wounds that he might gain the sympathy of the
-people and be voted a bodyguard.
-
-Lest he should be killed outright by his enemies, the citizens agreed
-that he should have a guard of fifty clubsmen.
-
-At first Pisistratus seemed content with his guard, but after a time he
-began to add to its number now one, then another, until he knew that he
-was strong enough to defy his enemies. He then seized the Acropolis
-and soon made himself master of the State.
-
-The leaders of the Plain and the Shore were forced to flee, and the
-people, in spite of the warnings of Solon, were amazed at the cunning
-and the boldness Pisistratus had shown.
-
-Solon himself felt that all he had done for the State was undone when a
-tyrant ruled at Athens.
-
-Old as he now was, he was brave enough to go to the market-place to
-upbraid the citizens for their folly in having allowed Pisistratus
-to deceive them, and to beg them not to lose their freedom without a
-struggle. ‘You might with ease,’ he said, ‘have crushed the tyrant in
-the bud; but nothing now remains but to pluck him up by the roots.’
-
-It is said that he even begged the people to take up arms against
-Pisistratus, but they were not bold enough to defy the tyrant.
-
-So Solon went home sadly, gathered together his arms and laid them on
-the threshold of his house, saying, ‘I have done my part to maintain my
-country and my laws, and I appeal to others to do likewise.’
-
-Here is a verse from one of the poems which he wrote at this time--
-
- ‘If now you suffer do not blame the Powers,
- For they are good and all the fault is ours.
- All the strongholds you put into his hands,
- And now his slaves must do what he commands.’
-
-His friends feared that Pisistratus would punish Solon for his bold
-words and actions, perhaps even take his life, so they begged him to
-leave the country, but he refused to go.
-
-When they asked him why he was not afraid, and to what he trusted to
-save him from the anger of the tyrant, he answered simply, ‘To my old
-age.’
-
-And his trust was well founded, for Pisistratus treated Solon with
-kindness and with respect. He even asked his advice in matters of
-State.
-
-But the overthrow of his reforms was more than the old lawgiver could
-bear, and two years later, when he was eighty years of age, he died. It
-is said that by his own wish his ashes were scattered on Salamis, the
-island which he had won for Athens.
-
-Pisistratus was a good tyrant. For five years he ruled, doing all that
-he could for the welfare of the State. But his enemies, although they
-saw that Athens grew more prosperous under his control, were ever
-plotting to get rid of him. At the end of five years the Plain and the
-Coast joined together and succeeded in driving Pisistratus from the
-city.
-
-But Megacles, the leader of the Coast, quarrelled with the Plain, and
-he then offered to help Pisistratus to return to Athens.
-
-It was by a strange trick that the Athenians were persuaded once more
-to allow the tyrant to rule.
-
-In one of the villages of Attica, Megacles knew of a woman named Phya,
-who was taller and more stately than most Greek women. He ordered Phya
-to be clad in armour, such as was worn by the goddess Athene, and then
-seating her in his chariot he drove to Athens. Before the chariot went
-a herald to proclaim that the goddess Athene was herself coming to bid
-them open their gates to Pisistratus and to restore him to power.
-
-The story tells that the Athenians believed that Phya was indeed the
-goddess, and they hastened to obey her behests. Pisistratus was allowed
-to enter the city and rule it as before.
-
-For six years all went well, then the tyrant quarrelled with Megacles,
-who again joined the Plain, and Pisistratus was expelled for the second
-time.
-
-But the tyrant was a patient and a persistent man. For ten years he
-lived in a province called Thrace, keeping in touch all the time with
-the Hill. In 535 B.C. he was back again in Attica, with no goddess to
-help him, but with a band of hired soldiers to strengthen his party.
-
-The Athenian army was sent against the invaders, but Pisistratus
-pretended that he did not mean to fight. So the Athenians, thinking
-themselves safe, sat down to their midday meal. Then, while they were
-eating and drinking, the tyrant fell upon them, scattering them with
-but little loss on either side. As the Athenians fled, the sons of
-Pisistratus, Hippias and Hipparchus, rode after them, crying aloud that
-all who went quietly home would be pardoned. The citizens saw that it
-was useless to resist, so Pisistratus entered Athens as tyrant for the
-third time.
-
-During the next eight years Pisistratus devoted himself to making
-Athens the most beautiful city of the world. He ordered that a new
-feast should be held in honour of the gods, and he began to build a
-magnificent temple to Zeus, which he did not live to finish. Many
-learned men were invited to Athens, and poets and historians were
-encouraged to write and to read their works to the people. It is even
-said that Pisistratus collected a library, which he urged the citizens
-to use, but of this we cannot be sure.
-
-Then, thinking perhaps that Athens was strong enough to defy her
-enemies, the tyrant ordered the walls of the city to be pulled down. So
-that for half a century Athens, like Sparta, was an unwalled town.
-
-In many of the States where tyrants ruled, Pisistratus had formed
-allies, and he even offered his friendship to Sparta, the State that
-despised tyrants and would not allow them to rule in Peloponnesus.
-
-Pisistratus died in 527 B.C., and was succeeded by his two sons,
-Hippias and Hipparchus.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII
-
-HARMODIUS AND ARISTOGITON
-
-
-Hippias and Hipparchus were as eager as their father Pisistratus had
-been to govern Athens well. Nor did they quarrel as to the way in which
-they could best do this, as brother-tyrants might have done.
-
-But one day Hipparchus quarrelled with a citizen named Harmodius, and
-to quarrel with Harmodius meant to make an enemy of his great friend
-Aristogiton.
-
-Harmodius showed that he was angry with Hipparchus, who then used his
-power as tyrant to punish the citizen. This was unfair, as the quarrel
-was a private one.
-
-The tyrant even refused to allow the sister of Harmodius to carry a
-basket in the procession of the gods, an insult which the citizen could
-ill brook. He therefore resolved to revenge himself, and together with
-Aristogiton he made a plot to slay not only Hipparchus but his brother
-Hippias as well. Only a few friends were told of the plot, which they
-hoped to carry out on the day of the procession. As it was usual to
-carry arms at the festival, it would arouse no suspicion if the friends
-were seen to carry theirs.
-
-When the day arrived, Harmodius and Aristogiton appeared at the
-festival bearing lances, as did the other citizens. But to be the more
-certain of carrying out their plan, they also carried daggers concealed
-beneath their cloaks.
-
-The conspirators wished to kill Hippias outside the city gates, while
-he was arranging the order of the procession. But when they approached
-the tyrant he chanced to be talking to one of those who knew of the
-plot, and the conspirators fled, thinking that Hippias had learned
-their secret.
-
-Hippias was saved, but rushing to the market-place the two friends fell
-upon Hipparchus and killed him.
-
-The conspirators expected the citizens to rally round them, but they
-stood aloof, while Harmodius was seized by the guards and put to death.
-Aristogiton was tortured to make him betray the names of those who knew
-of the plot, but he too died, steadfastly refusing to speak.
-
-Although at first the Athenians paid little attention to what Harmodius
-and Aristogiton had done and had suffered, they began ere long to think
-of them as heroes who had freed Athens from the rule of one of the
-tyrants. Perhaps this was because Hippias, frightened by his brother’s
-death, brought hired soldiers into the city, raised the taxes that
-he might have money with which to pay his mercenaries, and began to
-oppress the citizens in many other ways.
-
-The discontent of the people encouraged Cleisthenes, the son of
-Megacles, to put himself at their head and lead them against Hippias,
-but they were soon crushed by the hired soldiers of the tyrant.
-
-Cleisthenes then tried to do by a trick what he had been unable to
-do by force. He knew that he was liked by the priests at Delphi, for
-he had given munificent gifts to the temple. So he begged them if a
-Spartan came to consult the oracle, no matter about what, to answer
-always, ‘Athens must be set free.’ This the priests promised should be
-done.
-
-The Spartans had been friendly with Pisistratus, and they did not wish
-to harm his son. But when the oracle’s one answer to all their requests
-was ‘Athens must be set free,’ they knew that they must march against
-the tyrant if they wished their own affairs to prosper. At first they
-were defeated by the mercenaries of Hippias, but one of their kings
-then took command of the army and defeated the tyrant, who took refuge
-in the Acropolis.
-
-The citadel would stand a long siege, as Hippias was well aware. But
-he was soon forced to surrender, for his children whom he was sending
-secretly out of the country were captured by the Spartans. On condition
-that their lives should be spared, Hippias promised to leave the state
-within five days.
-
-So the children were released and sailed with Hippias, under a safe
-conduct, to Asia, where they lived in a small town which had belonged
-to Pisistratus.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV
-
-THE LAW OF OSTRACISM
-
-
-After Cleisthenes had set Athens free from the rule of Hippias, he
-began to reform the laws and to make Athens a more democratic State
-than she had yet been.
-
-Until now the Athenians had been divided into four tribes; Cleisthenes
-split up the four tribes into ten. Each of the ten tribes he then
-arranged in ten parishes or ‘demes.’
-
-In each tribe there were demes made up of the Plain, the Shore, and the
-Hill. As these demes had to fight together in time of war, the three
-different parties grew to be friends instead of enemies. And that was
-why Cleisthenes had arranged the tribes in this way, instead of making
-one tribe consist of ten demes of Hill men and another of ten demes of
-Plain or Coast men.
-
-Members from the new tribes were sent to the assembly of the people,
-and to the assembly Cleisthenes gave new powers. It could choose its
-own rulers, and punish those who ruled unjustly. It could impose taxes,
-make war, and settle terms of peace.
-
-But of all the laws which Cleisthenes made, the one which will interest
-you most is the one that was called the law of Ostracism. The word
-ostracism comes from the Greek _ostrakon_, a shell.
-
-In Athens there were often two leaders opposed to one another, but each
-as powerful as the other.
-
-Cleisthenes thought that it would be a good plan to be able to get rid
-of one of these leaders for a time and so save the city from civil
-war, which often threatened to overtake it. So he said that when it
-was necessary to banish one of these leaders, the citizens should meet
-together, each being given an oyster-shell on which to write the name
-of the man of whom he disapproved.
-
-If six thousand votes were given against one leader he was said to be
-ostracised, and was compelled to leave the city within ten days for
-five or perhaps even for ten years. His exile was not a disgrace, it
-was enforced only for the good of the State. When the five or ten years
-had passed, the leader returned to Athens to hold as high a position as
-he had held before and to take possession of his property.
-
-The reforms of Cleisthenes displeased the nobles who wished Athens to
-be an oligarchy, and they were angry that so much power had been given
-to the assembly of the people. They said the city would soon be ruined,
-for how could the people who were unaccustomed to so much power use it
-well and wisely. But the fears of the nobles were groundless, for from
-this time Athens grew more prosperous as well as more powerful. She
-soon had a stronger army, a better fleet, and, as you shall hear, was
-victorious over her enemies both by land and by sea.
-
-Great writers and sculptors too added to the glory of Athens and made
-her the most famous city of Greece.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV
-
-THE BRIDGE OF BOATS
-
-
-Along the western shore of Asia Minor there were many Greek colonies.
-One of these was called Ionia, and the chief city of the Ionian state
-was Miletus.
-
-The Greeks who lived in these colonies owned, often against their will,
-the King of Persia as their overlord. In time of war they were forced
-to fight for him.
-
-In 521 B.C. a great monarch, named Darius, became King of Persia. He
-added many kingdoms to his dominions during the first nine years of his
-reign. In 512 B.C. he determined to conquer Greece and add it also to
-his possessions.
-
-So he assembled a great army and crossed the Bosphorus, but instead of
-going west to Thessaly which lies in the north-east of Greece, Darius
-turned first toward the north, and crossing the Balkans, he reached the
-river Danube. Beyond the river lay a wild and desolate country, the
-home of the Scythians, who wandered up and down the land, settling now
-here, now there, as their fancy pleased.
-
-The ‘great king,’ as the Persian monarchs were often called, bade the
-Ionian Greeks, who formed part of his army, throw a bridge of boats
-across the river. When this was done he bade them stay to guard the
-bridge, while he marched with the main body of his men into the wild
-Scythian country. Should he not return in sixty days, Darius told the
-Ionians that they might break up the bridge and go back to their homes.
-
-No sooner had the great king crossed the bridge and marched into
-Scythia, than his difficulties began.
-
-The foe he had come to seek was not to be found. Knowing that they were
-not strong enough to face Darius in battle, the Scythians had driven
-their herds far into the desert, while they themselves, like shadows,
-dogged the steps of the Persian army.
-
-Two months passed, and still the king had not been able to make the
-enemy fight. Their shadowy forms were sometimes seen, but they were
-never near enough to be attacked.
-
-Darius was unwilling to own that his expedition had been useless. Yet
-his men were sick from cold, and their provisions were nearly at an
-end, so he had almost made up his mind to order the retreat. But while
-he still hesitated, the story tells that the Scythians sent one of
-their number to the great king, carrying with him as gifts a bird, a
-mouse, a frog, and five arrows.
-
-The Persians demanded the meaning of these strange gifts, but the
-messenger had no answer to give. He had been but bidden to give them to
-the great king and return to his people.
-
-Then Darius called together his council to consider what the offering
-might betoken.
-
-The king himself thought that the presents were to show that the
-Scythians were ready to surrender their land, for on it the mouse found
-its home; their water, for in it dwelt the frog. The bird was a symbol
-of their war-steeds, and with the arrows showed that they were willing
-to lay down their arms. Darius was satisfied with his own explanation,
-but one of his councillors thought that the gifts had quite a different
-meaning.
-
-‘O Persians,’ he cried, ‘listen to my words and be wise. For unless ye
-become as birds and fly up into heaven, or go down like mice beneath
-the earth, or, becoming frogs, leap into the lake, ye will not escape
-being shot by these arrows.’
-
-As he listened to these alarming words, the king thought that after all
-perhaps this was the true meaning of the gifts, so he determined to
-return to the Danube. But the sick men and the beasts of burden were
-left behind when the army set out, for they could not march as quickly
-as Darius wished. The groanings of these miserable men and the cries of
-the animals were heard by the Scythians, who soon discovered what had
-happened and set out in pursuit of Darius and his army.
-
-Now the Ionians in charge of the bridge had long been tired of waiting
-for the return of the great king. He had perished, they said one to the
-other, and it would be well for them to break up the bridge and return
-to their homes.
-
-Those who longed most to throw off their allegiance to the Persians
-muttered that even if the king had not already perished, he would soon
-do so, if he reached the Danube without provisions, to find the bridge
-was no longer there.
-
-Miltiades, an Athenian, was strongly in favour of withdrawing, but
-Histiaeus, tyrant of Miletus, begged the Ionians to remain, for Darius
-would come back, of that he felt certain. Then turning to the other
-tyrants, he cried, ‘O ye tyrants, be sure of this, that if we leave
-the Persians to perish, the men of our cities will rise up against us,
-because it is the king who strengthens us in our power; and if he die,
-neither shall I be able to rule in Miletus, nor you in those cities of
-which ye are tyrants.’ Then the other tyrants agreed with Histiaeus
-that it would be for their own good to wait for the king.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI
-
-DARIUS REWARDS HISTIAEUS
-
-
-Meanwhile a band of Scythians had reached the banks of the Danube. The
-Ionians had already loosed some of the boats on the farther side, that
-the enemy might think that the bridge was useless. And they, seeing
-this, and thinking that it would be impossible for Darius to cross the
-river, turned back to meet him.
-
-But that same night, after a terrible march, the great king reached the
-river unnoticed by the Scythians. He saw at once that there were no
-boats on his side of the river. Had the Ionians gone home and left him
-to fall into the hands of his enemy?
-
-Then he bade one of his men who was noted for the strength of his voice
-to call aloud for Histiaeus of Miletus. No sooner was this done than an
-answering shout was heard, and Histiaeus sent in haste to restore the
-bridge of boats. When the boats were secure, Darius with his weary army
-crossed to the other side, and was greeted with every token of loyalty
-by the Greeks.
-
-The king was grateful to Histiaeus when he heard that it was he who had
-persuaded the other tyrants to await his return, after the sixty days
-had passed, and he bade him ask for whatever he wished.
-
-Now the tyrant longed to build a strong city far from the control of
-the Persian power. So he asked for land in the country called Thrace,
-which stretches north of Macedon to the river Danube, and Darius
-granted his request.
-
-But Megabazus, the general of the great king, did not trust Histiaeus,
-and when he came to Sardis, where the king’s court was, he said to
-Darius, ‘O king, what hast thou done? Thou hast given to a Greek who
-is wise and crafty a city in Thrace, where there is much timber for
-building ships and blades for oars, and mines of silver, and round it
-there are many people, both Greek and barbarian, who will take him for
-a chief and do his will by night and by day. See then that he make not
-war against thee in time to come.’
-
-Darius feared lest Megabazus was right, and he determined to send for
-Histiaeus and keep him at his own court. Yet as Megabazus might have
-made a mistake, the message the king sent to the Greek was a kind one.
-
-‘O Histiaeus,’ said the king, ‘I have pondered it well, and I find
-none who is better minded to me and to my kingdom than thou art. This
-I know, for I have learnt it, not by words but in deed. And now I
-purpose to do great things. Come therefore to me in any wise, that I
-may entrust them to thee.’
-
-These words pleased Histiaeus. It seemed to him that the great king was
-treating him even as one of his counsellors. But when he reached the
-king’s court and was told what the commands of Darius were, he was not
-so well content.
-
-‘O Histiaeus,’ said the king, ‘there is nothing more precious than a
-wise and kind friend, and I knew that this thou art to me. So now thou
-must leave Miletus and the new city which thou hast built, and come
-with me to my court at Susa.’
-
-The Greek found it hard to hide his anger and disappointment. Rather
-would he be tyrant at Miletus, or ruler in his new city, than a
-favoured courtier at Susa.
-
-Aristagoras, the brother-in-law of Histiaeus, was now made tyrant of
-Miletus, while Darius appointed his own brother Artaphernes to be ruler
-of Sardis.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII
-
-HISTIAEUS SHAVES THE HEAD OF HIS SLAVE
-
-
-For a few years after Histiaeus was summoned to Susa, the Greek cities
-in Asia showed no disloyalty.
-
-But about 500 B.C. the people of Naxos, an island in the Ægean Sea,
-rose and expelled the nobles from their city. This was the beginning of
-a war between Greece and Asia, known as the Ionian revolt.
-
-The nobles, when they were turned out of Naxos, went to Aristagoras,
-tyrant of Miletus, to beg him to help them to punish the rebels and to
-gain possession of the island.
-
-Aristagoras knew that alone he was not strong enough to regain Naxos
-for the nobles, but he said that he would ask Artaphernes, the Persian
-ruler in Sardis, to help him.
-
-So Aristagoras went to Sardis and begged Artaphernes to give him a
-hundred ships to sail against Naxos, promising if he would do so to
-reward him with money and with gifts.
-
-Artaphernes offered, if Darius would consent, to give not only a
-hundred, but two hundred ships. The great king bade his brother do as
-he thought well, so two hundred ships, under the command of Megabates,
-were sent from Sardis to join Aristagoras in his expedition against
-Naxos.
-
-The two leaders, Aristagoras and Megabates, had not sailed far together
-when they quarrelled, and it was because of this quarrel that the plans
-of Aristagoras went awry.
-
-One night Megabates found that no watch had been set on one of the
-ships belonging to Aristagoras. He was so angry with the captain for
-being careless that he ordered his head to be placed in one of the
-oarholes in the side of the vessel. When this was done the unhappy
-man could do nothing to set himself free, but with hanging head he was
-forced to gaze into the water.
-
-When Aristagoras found what Megabates had done he went at once to ask
-him to set the culprit free. This Megabates refused to do, and the
-tyrant himself released the captain.
-
-To have his authority flouted in this way made Megabates angry, but
-when he would have spoken, Aristagoras proudly bade him be silent,
-saying, ‘Did not Artaphernes send you to serve under me?’
-
-Perhaps it would have been wiser to allow the Persian to speak, for now
-his anger smouldered in his heart, and he resolved to be revenged on
-Aristagoras. So he sent a messenger to Naxos to warn the citizens that
-an enemy was at hand.
-
-The Naxians at once strengthened their walls and brought provisions
-into their city, so that when Aristagoras arrived, he found to his
-astonishment that the citizens had been warned and were ready to resist
-an attack.
-
-For four months the Greeks and Persians besieged Naxos, but all their
-efforts to take the city were vain. Then, their money and their
-provisions having come to an end, Aristagoras was forced to order the
-fleets to withdraw.
-
-The tyrant was now in great trouble. He had neither gold nor gifts to
-give to Artaphernes as he had promised. He had wasted Persian money on
-a useless expedition, and he had made Megabates his enemy. What would
-Darius say when he heard these things? Aristagoras was afraid that the
-king would no longer allow him to be tyrant of Miletus.
-
-It seemed to Aristagoras that the only way to save himself from
-disgrace was to persuade the Greeks in Asia Minor to revolt against
-Darius and himself to become their leader.
-
-Now just at this time Histiaeus was more than ever determined to escape
-from the court of Susa. He thought if Aristagoras would but incite the
-Greeks to rebel, Darius would send him back to Miletus to restore
-order to the city.
-
-So while Aristagoras was still hesitating about rousing the citizens,
-a slave was shown into his presence. He came from Histiaeus, and said
-that his master had bidden him tell Aristagoras to shave off his hair
-and look at the message that was branded on his head.
-
-This was a strange way to send a message! But Histiaeus had been unable
-to think of any other way to tell Aristagoras what he wished him to do.
-So he had himself first shaved the head of his slave, and branded on
-it certain signs which meant that the tyrant was to revolt against the
-Persians. He had waited only until the slave’s hair had grown again,
-when he had at once sent him to Miletus.
-
-When Aristagoras looked at the slave’s head and learned that Histiaeus
-encouraged him to revolt, he hesitated no longer. He determined to
-rouse the Ionian Greeks, and he began with his own city Miletus. When
-he had assembled the citizens he told them that the time had come to
-throw off the Persian yoke. He then gave up his position as tyrant that
-Miletus might be made into a democracy. The example of Miletus was
-quickly followed by many other cities, and the Greeks were soon in open
-rebellion against Darius.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII
-
-SARDIS IS DESTROYED
-
-
-The Ionians knew that they would not be able to throw off the Persian
-yoke without help from their kinsfolk in Greece. So Aristagoras was
-appointed to go to Sparta to beg king Cleomenes to help the Ionians,
-who were of the same race as were he and his people.
-
-When Aristagoras reached Sparta he tried to tempt the king to help the
-Ionians by telling him of the wealth he might gain for himself. After
-Artaphernes was conquered at Sardis it would, he said, be an easy
-matter to go to Susa and seize the treasures of the great king. He then
-showed Cleomenes a thing he had never seen before--a map engraved in
-bronze. Aristagoras pointed out to him all the countries he might make
-his own if he would aid the Ionians in their revolt.
-
-The king listened and looked, then he dismissed the Greek, promising to
-think over the matter. In three days he sent for Aristagoras and asked
-him how long it took to journey from Ionia to Susa.
-
-‘Three months,’ answered the messenger.
-
-‘O stranger,’ then said Cleomenes, ‘depart from Sparta before the sun
-goes down; thou art no friend to the Lacedaemonians when thou seekest
-to lead them three months’ journey from the sea.’
-
-In spite of the king’s command, Aristagoras still tarried in Sparta. He
-had made up his mind that he would see Cleomenes once again ere he left
-the country.
-
-So one day, taking an olive branch in his hand as a sign of peace,
-he went to the king’s house. He found Cleomenes alone with his little
-daughter Gorgo, a child about eight years old.
-
-Aristagoras begged the king to send his daughter away, but Cleomenes
-said, ‘Pay no heed to the child.’
-
-Then the Greek tried to bribe the king to send help to Ionia. Ten
-talents he offered, twenty, thirty, but in vain. Forty, fifty! Surely,
-thought Aristagoras, the king would be won by fifty talents.
-
-But at that moment little Gorgo interfered. ‘Father,’ she cried, ‘the
-stranger will corrupt you unless you rise up and go.’
-
-Cleomenes listened to the child’s words and knew that they were wise.
-He rose and left the room, and Aristagoras knew that he had been beaten
-by the little princess.
-
-But although Sparta would not help, Athens might. So Aristagoras went
-to the beautiful city and found that the Athenians were willing to send
-twenty ships to the aid of the Ionians. ‘These ships,’ said Herodotus,
-‘were the beginnings of evil both to the Greeks and to the barbarians.’
-
-In 498 B.C. the Athenian fleet was ready. It sailed across the Ægean
-and the troops landed at Ephesus, where they were joined by the
-Ionians. Together they marched upon Sardis.
-
-Artaphernes saw that he could not hope to hold the town against the
-force that was approaching. So he left the city to be plundered, while
-he with a small band of soldiers took refuge in the Acropolis.
-
-As they met with little resistance, the Athenians at once began to
-pillage the town. One of the soldiers set fire to a house, and as many
-of them were made of wickerwork, while all the roofs were thatched,
-the flames spread quickly through the city until Sardis was destroyed.
-Then the Greeks, loaded with plunder, began to march back to Ephesus,
-but on the way they were met by a troop of Persians and defeated.
-The Athenians now determined to go home. Aristagoras begged them to
-stay, but they paid no heed to his request, and hastening to the shore
-they embarked and set sail for Athens. Nor did the Athenians take any
-further share in the Ionic revolt.
-
-But they had already done enough to rouse the anger of Darius. The
-great king knew that it would be easy to punish Aristagoras and the
-Ionians. As for the strangers who had burned Sardis, one of his capital
-towns, they, whoever they were, should suffer most heavily. He was told
-that the strangers were the Athenians.
-
-‘The Athenians--who are they?’ he demanded haughtily. And when he had
-been told he sent for a bow and shot an arrow high into the air, saying
-as he did so, ‘O Zeus, suffer me to avenge myself on the Athenians.’ He
-then bade one of his slaves say to him three times each day as he sat
-at dinner, ‘O king, remember the Athenians.’
-
-Meanwhile Aristagoras saw that there was little chance of the revolt
-being successful against the forces of Darius. So, like a coward rather
-than like a brave leader, he deserted those whom he had encouraged to
-rebel and fled to Thrace. Here, while besieging a town, he was slain.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX
-
-THE SANDAL SEWN BY HISTIAEUS
-
-
-Now when Darius heard that Sardis had been destroyed, he sent for
-Histiaeus and said to him, ‘O Histiaeus, I hear that the man to whom
-thou hast given thy city has been doing strange things. He has brought
-over men from Europe to help the Ionians whom I shall punish.... How
-can all this seem good to thee? And without thy counsels how could such
-a thing be done? See that thou bring not thyself into blame afresh.’
-
-Histiaeus tried not to think of the slave whose head he had shaved and
-whom he had sent to Aristagoras, as he told the king that he had had
-nothing to do with the revolt in Ionia. He begged to be allowed to go
-to help Artaphernes to put down the rebellion. He would do even more to
-show his loyalty; he would seize the rich island of Sardinia to add to
-the possessions of the great king.
-
-‘Yea, I swear by the gods whom the king worshippeth,’ he cried, ‘that I
-will not put off the tunic in which I shall go down to Ionia, before I
-bring under thy power the mighty island of Sardinia.’
-
-It was not difficult to persuade Darius that Histiaeus was innocent,
-for since the Greek had tarried for him at the bridge of boats the king
-was ever ready to believe in his loyalty. So to his great delight,
-Histiaeus was bidden to go to Sardis and help Artaphernes to put down
-the revolt.
-
-But Artaphernes was less easily deceived than the great king. No
-sooner had Histiaeus arrived at Sardis than the Persian accused him of
-treachery.
-
-‘Why did the Ionians rebel against the king?’ he asked the Greek in a
-stern voice.
-
-‘I cannot tell,’ answered Histiaeus. ‘I have marvelled at all the
-things which have happened.’
-
-‘O Histiaeus,’ said Artaphernes, ‘thou hast thus much to do with these
-matters. Thou didst sew this sandal and Aristagoras hath put it on.’
-
-Then at length Histiaeus was afraid lest his deceit had been
-discovered, and lest he should be punished. So when night came he stole
-out of the city and went as speedily as might be to the sea. From that
-time he became a sea-robber or pirate, seizing any vessel from which he
-could hope to get booty, whether it belonged to Greek or to barbarian.
-
-After a long time he was taken prisoner by the Persians. Artaphernes
-ordered that he should be crucified and that his head should be sent to
-Darius.
-
-But the great king was displeased that his general had not sent the
-Greek to him alive.
-
-‘If Histiaeus had been sent away alive to King Darius,’ says Herodotus,
-‘he would not, I think, have suffered any harm, but his trespass would
-have been forgiven him.’
-
-Even as it was, Darius was determined to show what honour was yet
-possible to his faithless servant. For he ordered his slaves to ‘wash
-the head and adorn it well, and to bury it as the head of one who had
-done much good to himself and to the Persians.’
-
-In 494 B.C., four years after the Athenians had sailed to the help of
-the Ionians, the revolt was crushed. Miletus, where the rebellion had
-begun, was punished more severely than the other rebellious cities.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL
-
-DARIUS DEMANDS EARTH AND WATER
-
-
-The Ionic revolt was ended, but Darius had yet to punish the Athenians
-for burning the city of Sardis. Eight years had now passed since she
-had been destroyed, yet his anger against the Greeks was as fierce as
-ever.
-
-Daily during all these years a slave had said to him as he sat at
-dinner, ‘Sire, remember the Athenians,’ and now, at length, his
-vengeance was at hand.
-
-Mardonius, one of the king’s generals, was ordered to invade Greece and
-to bring back with him to Susa the Athenians who had dared to destroy
-Sardis.
-
-So Mardonius crossed the Hellespont, and began to march through Thrace
-and Macedonia. His fleet, with part of his army, was to meet him later,
-beyond the perilous promontory of Mount Athos.
-
-The country through which Mardonius marched was wild, and inhabited by
-rough and savage tribes. These tribes attacked the Persian troops so
-fiercely that more than half of them were slain. Meanwhile the fleet
-had encountered a terrible storm, and three hundred ships were dashed
-to pieces upon the rocks near Mount Athos, while twenty thousand men
-were drowned.
-
-When Mardonius heard of this terrible disaster he knew that his troops
-would not now be strong enough to invade Greece. So he went back to
-Persia.
-
-But Darius was as determined as ever to punish the Athenians. He spent
-two years in preparations, and then, before he set out for Greece, he
-sent heralds to the different states, demanding from each earth and
-water. To give earth to the great king was to acknowledge him as ruler
-of their land, to give water was to own that he was monarch of the sea.
-
-Many of the states were afraid to refuse, and sent the earth and water
-which Darius demanded, but among these was neither Athens nor Sparta.
-
-So indignant were these two cities that a barbarian, as they called
-Darius, should send such a demand to the free States of Greece, that
-they treated his heralds with scant courtesy. The Athenians flung the
-messenger who came to their city into a deep pit, while he who went to
-Sparta was tossed into a well and told that there he would find the
-earth and water that his king desired.
-
-In the spring of 490 B.C. Darius sent the army and fleet that he had
-assembled, across the Ægean Sea to the island of Euboea. Here there was
-a city named Eretria, whose inhabitants had shared in the destruction
-of Sardis. The Persians plundered the city and took its chief citizens
-prisoners, loading them with chains.
-
-Flushed with victory, the army then crossed over to Attica and landed
-near the plain of Marathon. There where
-
- The mountains look on Marathon,
- And Marathon looks on the sea,’
-
-a great battle was fought between the Greeks and the Persians.
-
-Hippias, the tyrant who had fled from Athens many years before, had
-been living under the protection of Darius and was now with the Persian
-army. It is said that it was he who had advised the enemy to land at
-Marathon.
-
-The army of Darius was much larger than that of the Athenians, for it
-was one hundred thousand strong, while the Greeks numbered only about
-ten thousand trained soldiers.
-
-The Greeks were commanded by ten generals. If they did not agree how
-to attack the enemy or how to defend themselves, they consulted one of
-the archons called the polemarch, or commander-in-chief. The polemarch
-at this time was Callimachus. But the glory of the victory of Marathon
-belongs not to Callimachus but to the general Miltiades.
-
-It was Miltiades who had urged the Greeks to break up the bridge of
-boats at the Danube and to leave Darius to his fate, and he had ever
-rebelled against the lordship of the Persian king. He had done all he
-could to encourage the Ionian revolt, and when it was crushed he fled
-to Athens, to which city he belonged.
-
-When the Persians landed at Marathon the ten Greek generals met
-together to decide how best they might defend their country. Five of
-them, among whom Miltiades was the most urgent, wished to march at once
-to Marathon to attack the enemy. But the other five were more timid,
-and said that it would be better to wait until they were joined by the
-other Greek States before they risked a battle.
-
-Then Miltiades rose in the council of war to beg Callimachus to give
-his vote for war without delay. So sure was he of success that his
-eagerness decided the polemarch to give his vote as Miltiades wished.
-Thus it was settled that the army should march to Marathon without
-delay.
-
-At this time an army was usually drawn up for battle in three
-divisions--the right wing, the left wing, and the centre.
-
-On the field of Marathon, Miltiades made his wings as deep as possible,
-but as his army was small, this left his centre less strong than that
-of the enemy.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI
-
-THE BATTLE OF MARATHON
-
-
-While the council of war was being held, a youth named Philippides was
-on his way to Sparta to beg the citizens to hasten to the help of their
-country. Philippides was sometimes called by his friends Pheidippides.
-
-As Philippides sped on his errand a strange adventure befell him, for
-it is told that he met the great god Pan:
-
- ‘There, in the cool of a cleft, sat he--majestical Pan.
- Ivy drooped wanton, kissed his head, moss cushioned his hoof,
- All the great God was good in the eyes grave-kindly--the curl
- Carved on the bearded cheek, amused at a mortal’s awe,
- As under the human trunk, the goat thighs grand I saw.
- “Halt, Pheidippides!” halt I did, my brain in a whirl;
- “Hither to me; why pale in my presence?” he gracious began.’
-
-The young Athenian was too amazed to answer, he but gazed at the god in
-silence. Then Pan asked why he was no longer worshipped in Athens, and
-promised that he would fight among the ranks of the Athenians against
-Persia, so that henceforth they would worship him in gratitude for his
-help.
-
- ‘Test Pan, trust me!
- Go bid Athens take heart, laugh Persia to scorn; have faith
- In the temples and tombs. Go say to Athens, “The Goat-God saith;
- When Persia--so much as strews not the soil--is flung under the sea,
- Then praise Pan who fought in the ranks with your most and least,
- Goat-thigh to greaved-thigh, made one cause with the free and the
- bold.”’
-
-As a pledge the god then gave to Philippides a handful of a herb called
-fennel.
-
-The youth then sped on as before until he reached Sparta. But although
-the Spartans said they were willing to fight, they could not march
-until the moon was full, for their religious rites forbade that they
-should.
-
-So Philippides, having done his errand, hastened back to Athens and
-told the citizens all that had befallen him.
-
-Glad that the god had promised his aid the Athenians at once set out
-on their march to Marathon. Here they were joined by a force of one
-thousand men from the little town of Plataea. They came to show their
-gratitude to the Athenians who had sent help to them when they were
-attacked by their enemies.
-
-From their camp on a hill above the plain of Marathon, the Greeks
-looked down upon the vast army of the Persians. For several days no
-battle was fought, the Persians being unable to attack the Athenians
-without danger as they were on the hill.
-
-At length Miltiades, whom the other nine generals were willing to
-follow, resolved to wait no longer. He ordered his men to advance at a
-sharp run down the hill and to charge the enemy.
-
-When they had started, the soldiers could not stop themselves. Quicker
-and quicker they ran, until, when they reached the plain, they crashed
-into the Persian army with tremendous force.
-
-The shock was so great that the enemy gave way before it and was driven
-by the Athenians toward the sea or toward a small marsh that lay at one
-end of the plain.
-
-But while both wings of the Greek army were victorious, the centre,
-which was weak, would have been beaten, had not Miltiades seen the
-danger and called back those who were pursuing the scattered Persian
-wings. Only after a fierce struggle was the centre of the Persian army
-also driven to the shore in utter confusion.
-
-Those who escaped the sword of the Athenians tried to reach their
-ships, but seven of the vessels had been seized by the victors. In the
-struggle on the shore, Callimachus the polemarch was slain.
-
-The battle of Marathon was won, and the glory of the victory was due to
-the prowess and skill of Miltiades.
-
-No sooner was the victory certain, than the whole army cried that
-Philippides should race once again, but this time to the Acropolis, to
-tell Athens that by the help of Pan she was indeed saved.
-
- ‘So Pheidippides flung down his shield,
- Ran like fire once more; and the space ’twixt the Fennel-field
- And Athens was stubble again, a field which a fire runs through,
- Till in he broke; “Rejoice, we conquer.” Like wine through clay
- Joy in his blood bursting his heart, he died--the bliss!...
- So is Pheidippides happy for ever, the noble, strong man
- Who could race like a god, bear the face of a god, whom a god loved
- so well.
- He saw the land saved he had helped to save and was suffered to tell
- Such tidings, yet never decline, but gloriously as he began
- So to end gloriously--once to shout, thereafter be mute:
- “Athens is saved!” Pheidippides dies in the shout for his meed.’
-
-[Illustration: They crashed into the Persian army with tremendous
-force]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII
-
-MILTIADES SAILS TO THE ISLAND OF PAROS
-
-
-Until the Greeks won their great victory at Marathon, in 490 B.C.,
-they had always feared the Persians. Now their fear was forgotten.
-They had still a long struggle before the Persians were banished from
-their land, but, inspired by the memory of Marathon, the Greeks fought
-bravely and were sure always that they would be the victors. ‘It was as
-though on the day of Marathon the gods had said to the Athenians, “Go
-on and prosper.”’
-
-Among those who fought on this famous field was Themistocles. He was
-young then and fought in the ranks, but he was yet to become one of the
-greatest men that Athens ever knew. Aristides too was there, of whom
-as of Themistocles there are many things to tell; Æschylus, the great
-tragic poet, also bore arms at Marathon.
-
-When the battle was over, it was found that the Athenians had lost only
-one hundred and ninety-two men, while of the Persians six thousand
-four hundred lay dead upon the field. In spite of this the army of the
-Persians was still large enough to attack the unwalled city of Athens.
-
-Soon after the battle a bright shield was hung on one of the heights
-of the city, and it was said that a traitor had signalled to the enemy
-that now was the time to attack her. But Miltiades saw the light as
-well as the Persians, and guessing what it meant, he took his army back
-to Athens by a forced march. He arrived in time to see the fleet of the
-enemy as it approached the harbour.
-
-But when the Persian general saw that he need not hope to take the
-city unawares, he did not venture to risk another battle. An army
-already flushed with victory would soon scatter his dejected troops. So
-he ordered the fleet to sail for Asia.
-
-While Miltiades was making a forced march back to Athens, Aristides was
-left at Marathon with a band of soldiers to guard the prisoners and the
-plunder, for his honesty was already well known.
-
-Neither he himself touched any of the treasures of the Persian camp,
-nor did he allow his followers to plunder. Callias, the torchbearer,
-‘most cruel and impious of men,’ did, it is true, seize a treasure,
-but he did so unknown to Aristides. For one of the Persians, thinking
-Callias was of noble rank and hoping to win his favour, fell at his
-feet, and then, rising, took his hand and led him to a ditch in which a
-large quantity of gold had been hidden.
-
-Callias seized the treasure, then lest the Persian should tell what had
-happened, he slew him.
-
-The Spartans who had promised to help to fight against their country’s
-foe did not forget to march to Marathon when the moon was full. They
-even marched one hundred and fifty miles in three days, but in spite of
-this they reached the battlefield too late to share in the victory.
-
-A mound was raised over the Athenians who had perished, about half a
-mile from the sea. If you go to where
-
- ‘The mountains look on Marathon,
- And Marathon looks on the sea,’
-
-you may see it still.
-
-After the victory, Miltiades was the hero of Athens. He knew that the
-citizens would grant what he chose to ask, so he begged for a fleet of
-seventy ships. He knew of a land where gold and treasures were to be
-had in abundance. Thither would he sail and return to enrich the city.
-
-The fleet was entrusted to him, but Miltiades did not sail to the
-wonderful land of which he had told, but, so it is said, to the island
-of Paros. Here in the capital city, which was also called Paros,
-dwelt a citizen with whom the Athenian had a quarrel. To punish him,
-Miltiades laid siege to the town, but again and again his attacks were
-repulsed. Then one day as he was on his way to the temple of Demeter,
-Miltiades was seized with sudden panic. In his haste to leave the
-sacred grove he leaped over a fence, and in doing so he hurt his thigh.
-
-When he returned to Athens he was no longer in favour with the people
-whom he had deceived. Wounded as he was, he was carried into court on a
-couch and was condemned to pay a heavy fine. But he died before he had
-collected the money.
-
-Meanwhile Darius heard how his army had been defeated at Marathon. In
-his wrath he vowed that he would never rest until he had conquered
-Greece.
-
-Three years he spent, preparing once again to invade Europe. His
-heralds were sent all over his wide dominions to gather together a
-great army. Horses and corn too the king demanded should be sent ‘much
-more than before.’
-
-But the great king never carried out his plan of again attacking
-Greece, for he died in 485 B.C., after having reigned for thirty-six
-years. His son Xerxes succeeded to the throne of Persia.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII
-
-ARISTIDES IS OSTRACISED
-
-
-Four years after the battle of Marathon, Themistocles and Aristides
-were the two chief citizens in Athens.
-
-Themistocles wished to make Athens a great sea-power, for he was sure
-that some day the Persians would return. He believed that if the
-Athenians were able to destroy the Persian fleet, all would be well.
-The land forces of the enemy would be powerless to conquer Greece.
-
-But if Athens was to have a better fleet, Themistocles knew that she
-must first have a better harbour. The one that the Athenians used was
-at Phalerum, where the sea almost reached the city. It was only an open
-roadstead, a place where ships might ride at anchor, which would be of
-little use to protect vessels from an enemy.
-
-Themistocles knew a better site than Phalerum, where a strong harbour
-might be built. This was the rocky peninsula of Piraeus, which was
-about four miles from Athens.
-
-By his advice three harbours were made here, into which the largest
-vessels could enter. Yet the opening to all three was such that it
-could be closed easily with chains and logs, so as to prevent the
-entrance of an enemy. The Piraeus soon grew into a large town, for
-those who did not own land flocked to the port in the hope of finding
-work.
-
-Not only did Themistocles persuade the Athenians to fortify the
-Piraeus, but he also made Athens a great sea-power.
-
-At this time there was money to spare in the public treasury, for a
-rich bed of silver had been discovered in an old mine. This money was
-to be divided among the Athenians. Themistocles was brave enough to
-risk the anger of the people by proposing that it should not be given
-to them, but should be used to build ships.
-
-The Athenians were eager to conquer the people of Ægina who for years
-had harried their coasts, and they agreed to his proposal more readily
-than Themistocles had dared to hope. With the money the State built
-two hundred ships, so the people were able to conquer their enemy and
-were well content. But it was Themistocles alone who wished to prepare
-Greece for a great Persian invasion. Of this the Athenians had no fear.
-
-When the ships were ready, Themistocles saw that the soldiers must be
-trained to manage the vessels, to become indeed good sailors.
-
-A wise Greek named Plato tells us that Themistocles ‘from steady
-soldiers turned the Greeks into mariners and seamen, tossed about the
-sea, and gave occasion for the reproach against him, that he took away
-from the Athenians the spear and the shield, and bound them to the
-bench and the oar.’
-
-Aristides and Themistocles were rivals. They were brought up together,
-and when they were boys they usually took different sides, just as they
-continued to do when they were men.
-
-If you could have watched the boys in school or in the playground you
-would have seen at once how different they were. Themistocles was
-impetuous and bold, artful too, if by being so he could gain his own
-ends. Aristides was gentle and retiring, honest as the day, in work as
-in play.
-
-Themistocles was not fond of lessons nor yet of games. But he knew a
-great deal even as a boy of what was going on in the city and in the
-State, and he was eager to know more.
-
-While Aristides and his comrades were laughing and shouting over their
-game of quoits, Themistocles was walking up and down alone in a quiet
-corner of the playground. He was rehearsing a speech, which he would
-soon begin to recite aloud.
-
-Sometimes, in more friendly mood, he called his playfellows together
-and delivered his speech to the crowd of little critics. It was usually
-about the affairs of State--about politics, as we would say.
-
-His schoolmaster saw that although the lad did not love lessons, he
-could be an earnest student if he were interested in a subject. One day
-he said to him, ‘You, my boy, will be nothing small, but great, one way
-or other, for good or else for bad.’
-
-From his boyhood Themistocles was ambitious, and when he grew up he
-accepted bribes, if by doing so he thought he could reach a higher
-position in the State.
-
-When he became a judge he showed favour to his friends, even though to
-do so was unjust. One of them once said to him that he would be a good
-judge, if he would give sentence ‘without respect of persons.’ But in
-no way abashed, Themistocles answered, ‘May I never sit upon the seat
-of judgment where my friends shall not receive more favour from me than
-strangers.’
-
-Aristides was in this, as in other things, the opposite of his rival,
-for he was an honourable and upright judge. He was ever ready to
-please or to help a friend, but to do so he would stoop to no act of
-injustice. Once he accused one of his enemies of a crime, and the
-people, with whom Aristides was at that time a favourite, wished to
-condemn the man without listening to his defence. But this Aristides
-would not allow.
-
-When he himself was judge, two people came before him, one of whom was
-an enemy of his own. The other, knowing this, felt sure that he would
-win his suit, and instead of telling of what he accused the man, he
-began to remind Aristides that it was an enemy of his own who stood
-before him. But Aristides bade him be silent. ‘Tell me not,’ he said,
-‘what injury he has done to me, but what harm you have suffered from
-him, for I am trying your cause and not my own.’
-
-Themistocles not only took bribes, but he often tried to make others
-accept them. Many of the Greeks did so, for they could not easily
-resist gold, but Aristides was never one of those who took money from
-Themistocles, or indeed from any one.
-
-When Themistocles urged the Athenians to increase their fleet,
-Aristides opposed him with all his strength. And he did this, not
-because he disliked his rival, but because he believed that it would
-be better for the State to increase her army rather than to have a
-powerful navy.
-
-About this, as about other important affairs, the two great men
-disagreed so often and so long, that the people thought the city would
-be governed better if one of the leaders was ostracised.
-
-So they assembled in the market-place, where each was given an
-oyster-shell on which to write the name of the man he wished to be
-banished from Athens.
-
-As the citizens were busy writing on their shells, a rough country
-fellow who could not write came up to Aristides and, handing him his
-shell, asked him to put down the name of Aristides. The countryman did
-not know that he was speaking to Aristides himself.
-
-‘Has Aristides done you an injury?’ asked the Athenian, as he took the
-shell.
-
-‘None at all,’ answered the fellow, ‘neither know I the man, but I am
-tired of everywhere hearing him called the Just.’ Aristides did not
-answer the ignorant countryman, but he quietly wrote his own name upon
-the shell and handed it back to its owner.
-
-The necessary number of votes being recorded against him he was
-ostracised. As he left the city he lifted up his hands to heaven and
-prayed that the Athenians ‘might never have any occasion which should
-constrain them to remember Aristides.’ And this he did although it was
-a bitter thing to him to leave the city that he loved so well. In his
-absence he knew that Themistocles would be able to carry out his plans
-unopposed, and this added to his pain.
-
-But Themistocles was wiser than Aristides when he urged the Athenians
-to increase their fleet. For although the great king Darius was dead,
-Xerxes his son was preparing to invade Greece as his father had hoped
-to do. And without a large and well-equipped fleet, the Athenians would
-have been unable to meet the Persians at sea.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIV
-
-THE DREAM OF XERXES
-
-
-Xerxes, the new ruler of Persia, looked every inch a king. He was tall
-and handsome, standing head and shoulders above the great warriors he
-led to battle. But although he looked a king among men, in character he
-was most unkingly, for he was both weak and foolish. It is true that he
-was sometimes good-natured, but it was not wise for his people to trust
-his temper, for he was often seized by sudden fits of rage, when he
-would do deeds of terrible cruelty.
-
-In 483 B.C. Xerxes put down a revolt in Egypt. Then his captain and
-kinsman, Mardonius, begged the king to go to Greece to avenge the
-Persian defeat at Marathon.
-
-‘O king,’ said Mardonius, ‘it is not seemly that the Athenians, who
-have done much wrong to the Persians, should not suffer for their
-doings.... And now, will any one dare to face thee, O king, with thy
-great army from Asia and all thy ships? Sure I am that the Greeks are
-not so desperate. But if I am wrong and in their rash folly they come
-out to battle, they will find that of all men we are the bravest.’
-
-To tempt Xerxes yet farther to do as he wished, Mardonius told him
-how fair a country Europe was, how rich in fruit and trees. ‘Such a
-country,’ said the subtle flatterer, ‘should belong to none save to
-thee, O king.’ Mardonius hoped that if Greece was made a province of
-Persia, he himself would become her ruler.
-
-But while Mardonius urged one thing, Artabanus the king’s uncle urged
-another.
-
-‘Thou, O king,’ said Artabanus, ‘art going against men ... who are said
-to be most brave and strong both by sea and land. And it is right I
-should say why we ought to fear them. Thou sayest that thou wilt make a
-bridge over the Hellespont and carry thine army through Europe against
-Hellas: and so we may be beaten either by land or by sea or by both;
-for the men are said to be strong, and it would seem that they are, if
-by themselves alone the Athenians destroyed the great host that landed
-at Marathon.’
-
-Now Xerxes was, as I told you, a timid king. So as he listened now
-to one, now to another of his counsellors, he did not know what to
-do. First he thought that he would go to Greece, then he thought that
-he would not go. One night, while he still hesitated, the king had
-a strange dream. In his dream a man fair and tall stood over him,
-who said, ‘Dost thou repent, O Persian, from leading an army against
-Hellas, when thou hast charged thy people to gather their hosts
-together? Thou doest not well in thy change of counsel, neither is
-there any one who will forgive thee. Go thou on the road in which thou
-didst purpose to walk on the day that is past.’
-
-When Xerxes awoke he tried to thrust away the memory of his dream, for
-he now wished to follow the advice of Artabanus and stay at home.
-
-But the next night, as he slept, he saw the same fair, tall man, who
-chided him for putting aside his words ‘as though they had never
-been spoken.’ ‘But be thou sure,’ he said, ‘that if thou set not out
-forthwith, as thou hast become great and mighty in a little while, so
-in a little while shalt thou be made low.’
-
-The king awoke from this second dream in sudden fear, and springing
-from his bed, he bade his servants bring Artabanus to him without delay.
-
-When his uncle stood before him, Xerxes told his vision in feverish
-haste.
-
-‘Now if it be a god who sends it,’ said the king, ‘and if it must be
-that an army go against Hellas, then the same vision will come to thee.’
-
-The foolish king then begged Artabanus to put on his clothes, to sit
-upon his throne, and afterwards to lie down upon his bed.
-
-At first Artabanus refused to do as the king wished. For he said, ‘If
-the vision must come, it ought to come to me no more if I put on thy
-dress than if I wear my own, and if I rest on thy couch than if I sleep
-on my own. For that which comes to thee in thy sleep, whatever it be,
-is surely not so silly as to think on seeing me that it looks upon
-thee, judging by thy vesture.’
-
-But at length Artabanus was persuaded to do as the king wished, and lo!
-when he had lain down on the royal couch, ‘the dream of Xerxes came
-and stood over him, saying, “Neither now nor hereafter shalt thou go
-unscathed, if thou seekest to turn aside that which must be.”’ Then the
-dream appeared as though it were about to sear out his eyes with hot
-irons.
-
-Artabanus awoke in great fear, and leaping from the couch he told
-Xerxes what he had seen and heard. From that night Artabanus was as
-ready as Mardonius to urge the king to invade Greece.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLV
-
-XERXES ORDERS THE HELLESPONT TO BE SCOURGED
-
-
-In the autumn of 481 B.C. Xerxes led his vast hosts to Sardis. His
-warriors were of many different races, and each was clad in the dress
-of the country from which he came. Each, too, was armed with his
-own weapon, and each talked his own language. So you can picture to
-yourself with what a strange army Xerxes set out to conquer Greece.
-
-From Sardis he sent heralds, with an interpreter, into Greece, to
-demand from the people earth and water, the signs of their subjection
-to the great king of Persia.
-
-Themistocles was so angry with the interpreter, who was a barbarian,
-for daring to utter the demands of Xerxes in the Greek language, that
-he ordered him to be put to death.
-
-Another messenger was then sent by Xerxes, and he brought with him gold
-to bribe the Athenians to join the Persians. Him also Themistocles
-punished.
-
-Now that danger was near, the Athenians recalled Aristides from exile.
-They were afraid lest he should join the Persians, for they knew that
-if he did so, many of his friends would go over to the enemy with him.
-But it was a needless fear, and the citizens might well have trusted
-the exile not to betray his country. Even before he knew that his
-banishment was over, Aristides had begun to stir up the Greeks that
-were with him to fight against the Persians.
-
-Themistocles, too, was using all his influence to persuade the
-different States to lay aside the quarrels they had with one another
-and to fight together against the force that was coming to invade their
-land.
-
-Meanwhile Xerxes, to avoid sailing across the Hellespont with his vast
-army, ordered a bridge to be built across it. But soon after the bridge
-was finished, a violent storm dashed it into fragments.
-
-When Xerxes heard of the disaster, his cruel and childish temper
-was roused. He ordered the engineers who had planned the bridge to
-be beheaded, and that was a cruel act. He also commanded that the
-Hellespont should be scourged with three hundred stripes and that a
-pair of fetters should be cast into the sea, and these were foolish
-acts. ‘He sent branders, too, as some say, to brand the Hellespont; and
-he charged them to rebuke the water and cry unto it, “O bitter water,
-thus doth the king punish thee, because without wrong from him thou
-hast done him harm.”’
-
-Before long a new bridge was built, with hedges planted on either side,
-so that the horses as they passed across might not be frightened by
-seeing the water.
-
-First of the great host came a thousand gallant Persian troops,
-followed by a thousand spearmen. The points of their lances were
-turned downward; on the handles, which were held aloft, shone golden
-pomegranates.
-
-Ten sacred horses, with splendid trappings, stepped behind the
-spearmen, while after the horses came a chariot, dedicated to Zeus, and
-drawn by eight white horses. No driver was allowed to mount the sacred
-chariot, he might only walk behind, holding the reins in his hands.
-
-Xerxes himself was in another chariot, surrounded by a thousand guards,
-bearing spears, upon which glistened apples of gold. Ten thousand of
-the king’s own bodyguard were named the Immortals, for, if one of their
-number was slain or if one died, his place was at once filled, so that
-the number of the Immortals might never become less.
-
-As I told you, the Persian army was made up of many different tribes.
-
-‘Æthiopians from beyond Egypt were there, clad in leopard skins, and
-carrying bows made of the central rib of the palm leaf, while their
-arrows were reeds tipped with sharp fragments of stone. They carried as
-well spears, pointed with gazelles’ horns or knotted clubs. Half their
-body they painted white and half red before going into battle.’ Some
-had no arms but only a lasso and a long knife; others bore staves that
-had had their points hardened in the fire.
-
-From Caucasus came wild tribes that had no armour to protect their
-bodies, and only wooden hats to guard their heads.
-
-Xerxes’s army was indeed vast, but with so many half-clad and but
-poorly armed barbarians in his ranks, he would, had he been wise, have
-feared to face the small but well-armed and well-trained forces of the
-Greeks.
-
-On the shore of the Hellespont a throne of white stone or marble was
-placed, and here Xerxes took his seat to watch his army cross the
-bridge which led from Asia into Europe.
-
-But before the vast host began to move ‘Xerxes poured wine from a
-golden cup into the sea and prayed to the Sun that no harm might happen
-to him, which might prevent him from conquering all Europe. Then he
-threw the cup into the Hellespont with a golden goblet and a Persian
-dagger.’
-
-It is said that the king called himself a happy man as he watched the
-countless numbers of his troops crossing the bridge. But soon after
-Artabanus was amazed to see him burst into tears.
-
-‘O king,’ he said, ‘thou doest strange things; even now thou didst call
-thyself happy and yet thou weepest.’
-
-‘Thought came upon me and sorrow for the shortness of the life of man,’
-answered Xerxes, ‘because after a hundred years, of all this great host
-not one shall remain alive.’
-
-When the army had crossed the bridge, it marched on toward the plain of
-Thessaly, while the fleet, sailing round the south-east point of the
-same country, anchored near the promontory of Magnesia. Here it was as
-near to the army as it was possible for it to be. Not long after the
-fleet had anchored, a sudden storm arose, and for three days did much
-damage to the ships.
-
-The Greeks meanwhile had been preparing to fight the invaders. They had
-sent spies to Sardis to find out, not only the numbers of the Persian
-host, but its mettle.
-
-As it chanced, the spies were captured and were on the point of being
-put to death, when Xerxes ordered them to be brought before him.
-
-When they stood in his presence, he demanded why they had ventured into
-the camp of the enemy. On hearing the reason he bade an officer show
-them the strength of his army and then send them back unharmed to their
-own country, ‘For,’ said the king, ‘if the spies had been killed, the
-Greeks could not have heard beforehand of all my great might, yet it
-would do them but little hurt to slay three men. But now will I have no
-trouble by marching against them, when the spies have already told of
-my mighty army.’
-
-So confident was the king that he would conquer the enemy without
-difficulty, that when vessels filled with corn sailed past his fleet on
-the way to Athens, he would not allow any of his ships to pursue them.
-
-‘Whither are they sailing?’ asked Xerxes when the corn ships were
-pointed out to him.
-
-‘To thy enemies, O king, laden with corn,’ answered his anxious
-councillors.
-
-‘Why, we are going thither also,’ said the king. ‘What harm do they do
-by taking corn for me?’
-
-Now that the Persians were actually at hand the Spartans and Athenians
-summoned the Greek states to a council of war to be held at the
-Isthmus of Corinth. But some of the states were afraid, and instead of
-attending the council they sent earth and water to Xerxes.
-
-Thessaly, in the north, would be the first to suffer from the invading
-army. So a Greek force was sent to the Pass of Tempe, between Mount
-Olympus and Mount Ossa, to try to stop the advance of the Persians.
-
-But there were other ways by which the enemy could slip past the
-Greeks, so after a time they determined to withdraw from Thessaly. The
-northern people, being thus left defenceless, hastened to submit to
-Xerxes while there was still time.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVI
-
-‘THE BRAVEST MEN OF ALL HELLAS’
-
-
-Through the Pass of Thermopylae lay the entrance from the north to the
-south of Greece. It was this pass that the Greeks determined to hold
-against the Persians when they withdrew from the Pass of Tempe.
-
-The Pass of Thermopylae was about a mile long and the narrow road
-ran between the mountains and the sea. At each end of the pass the
-mountains were sheer cliffs, descending so close to the sea that the
-only pathway was a mere strip of sand.
-
-To enter the pass, at either end, it was necessary to go through a
-narrow entrance called Pylae or the Gates. In the road between the
-Pylae or Gates there were hot springs. The Greek word for hot is
-thermos, and that is how the pass came to be named Thermopylae or
-Hot-Gates.
-
-At the narrowest part of the pass stood an old broken-down wall, and
-this wall was repaired by the order of Leonidas, King of Sparta, that
-it might form a defence against the enemy.
-
-A short distance from the mainland lay the island of Euboea, the strait
-between being at one place only two and a half miles in breadth. Here
-the Greek fleet took up its position under the command of the Spartan
-Eurybiades, Themistocles being second in command. Themistocles would
-have held the chief command had not some of the States refused to serve
-under an Athenian admiral.
-
-The land army was led by Leonidas, one of the kings of Sparta. But
-because this was now the month of June 480 B.C., the time when the
-Olympic games were held, many of the Spartans did not march with
-Leonidas to Thermopylae. For although the country was in danger, the
-games, being also religious rites, must be held as usual, and numbers
-of brave soldiers stayed at home to take part in the festival.
-
-When Leonidas set out on his march to defend the entrance to the south
-of Greece, he had with him only three hundred Spartans. On the way to
-Thermopylae he was joined by troops from other States, so that when he
-reached the pass he was at the head of seven thousand men.
-
-Now there was only one narrow hill track by which the enemy could reach
-the rear of the Spartans, and strangers to the country were little
-likely to find it. Yet Leonidas bade the Phocians, who lived in the
-district, guard well this narrow footpath. He would leave nothing to
-chance.
-
-When Xerxes with his great army reached Thermopylae, he was told that
-it was in the hands of a small band of Spartans, under king Leonidas.
-The tidings did not disturb the Persian monarch, he was sure that the
-Spartans would soon leave their post, when they saw his great army.
-
-But the Spartans did not retreat, although they could see plainly the
-vast hordes that had come against them.
-
-By and by Xerxes grew impatient and sent a horseman to reconnoitre.
-The horseman could not see the Spartan camp, for it was hidden by the
-old wall that had been repaired, but he could see the men themselves
-without the wall. Their arms were piled up against it in stacks, as
-though no enemy was near. Some of the soldiers were wrestling with each
-other, others were combing their hair, as if they were getting ready
-for a festival rather than for a battle.
-
-The Persian was astonished at what he saw. As the Spartans took no
-notice of him, he stayed to count their number, and then rode quietly
-back to tell Xerxes all that he had seen.
-
-Xerxes, too, was amazed. Why should soldiers trouble to comb their hair
-before fighting? Why should they wrestle with one another as though no
-danger lay before them? He thought that they were doing ‘childish and
-silly things,’ for he did not understand that this was the Spartans’
-way of getting ready either to die or to slay their enemies.
-
-In the Persian camp was an exiled King of Sparta, named Demaratus.
-Xerxes sent for him to ask why his countrymen wasted their time,
-wrestling and combing their long curls.
-
-‘These men,’ answered Demaratus, ‘are here to fight for the pass; and
-when they have to face a mortal danger, their custom is to comb and
-deck out their hair. Be sure then, that if thou canst conquer these
-and all the rest who remain behind in Sparta, there is no other nation
-which shall dare to raise a hand against thee, for now art thou face to
-face with the bravest men of all Hellas.’
-
-But Xerxes laughed at the thought of a small band of men like the
-Spartans daring to fight against his great army. He dismissed Demaratus
-and sent to demand that the Spartans should give up their arms. But the
-only answer that Leonidas sent back was to bid the king ‘to come and
-take them.’ It was plain that the Spartans did not fear the enemy. When
-one of them was told that the Persian host was so numerous that ‘the
-flight of their arrows would darken the light of the sun,’ he answered
-carelessly, ‘So much the better, we shall fight in the shade.’
-
-For four days Xerxes waited, expecting the Spartans to flee, but on the
-fifth day they were still there, wrestling and combing their hair as
-before.
-
-Then the king sent a band of soldiers to the enemy’s camp, bidding it
-take these bold Spartans alive and bring them bound into his presence.
-
-But the Persians could not push their way through the narrow gates
-which were guarded by the enemy. They were not only kept at bay, they
-were thrust back again and again, and many of their number were slain
-by the long spears of the Spartans.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVII
-
-THE BATTLE OF THERMOPYLAE
-
-
-Xerxes looked on while his soldiers fought at the entrance to the
-pass. And they did their best, for they were unwilling that their king
-should see them beaten back by men who had spent their days in games or
-in bedecking their hair. But they could not stand against the fierce
-attacks of the Spartans, and at length, when many of their number had
-been slain, they withdrew.
-
-The king then ordered his own chosen bodyguard, the ten thousand famous
-Immortals, to advance against the gallant defenders of the pass.
-
-Even at the approach of these renowned warriors, the Spartans did not
-waver. They pretended to flee, only to turn and slay the barbarians who
-had followed them into the pass. At length after a furious conflict,
-the Immortals were forced to give way and return to their camp.
-
-Three times as he watched his Immortals, Xerxes sprang from his throne,
-thinking that all was lost. But the next day he sent them against the
-foe once more, for now he believed that the Spartans would be too weary
-to fight.
-
-But Leonidas was careful of the little band he commanded. It was easy
-to hold the pass with only a small number of men. As each company grew
-tired, the king ordered it to withdraw and sent a fresh one to take its
-place. Soon the entrance to the pass was choked with the dead bodies of
-the barbarians.
-
-Some of the most valiant of Xerxes’ warriors were next sent against the
-enemy. But they were cowed by the bravery of the Spartans, and as they
-saw their comrades falling around them, they turned to flee. Then their
-officers drove them back with lashes.
-
-For two days, the terrible slaughter never ceased, and Xerxes was
-almost ready to leave the pass to its brave defenders, so hopeless
-seemed the task of taking it.
-
-But that night, a Greek named Ephialtes came to the great king, and for
-a large sum of money, he offered to show the Persians a path which led
-over the hill down to the pass of Thermopylae. The path was the tiny
-track that was guarded by the Phocians.
-
-The offer of the traitor was at once accepted, and at midnight Xerxes
-sent his officer Hydarmes, at the head of his Immortals, to follow
-Ephialtes.
-
-‘All night long they followed the path with the mountains on the right
-and on the left. The day was dawning when they reached the peak of
-the mountain, and there the thousand Phocians were keeping watch and
-guarding the pathway. While the Persians were climbing the hill, the
-Phocians knew not of their coming, for the whole hill was covered with
-oak trees, but they knew what had happened when the Persians reached
-the summit. Not a breath of wind was stirring, and they heard the
-trampling of their feet as they trod on the fallen oak leaves.’
-
-No sooner had they heard than the arrows of the Immortals were pouring
-in upon them. They fell back, leaving the pathway free, while they
-hastily put on their armour and prepared to fight to the death. They
-did not dream that the Immortals had no wish to fight with them. But
-so it was, for the Persians took no more notice of them, but finding
-the hill path free, they sped downward to the pass to take the Spartans
-in the rear. The Phocians were left alone on the heights almost before
-they were aware.
-
-Leonidas had heard of the treachery of Ephialtes soon after the traitor
-left the Persian king. He knew that to try to hold the pass now that he
-would be attacked in the rear was certain death. Yet the brave king
-did not hesitate, for his orders had been to hold the pass at all costs.
-
-Nor did he waver as he remembered the ominous words of the oracle,
-‘Sparta must be overthrown or one of her kings must perish.’ It seemed
-that he was the king who was doomed to die, but what of that if his
-country was saved?
-
-He resolved that to Sparta alone should belong the glory of the defence
-of Thermopylae. So while there was still time, he sent away all his
-allies, keeping with him only his three hundred Spartans, seven hundred
-Thespians who refused to leave him, and four hundred Boeotians, lest
-they should join the enemy.
-
-Then ‘when the sun arose, Xerxes poured out wine to the gods and the
-barbarians arose for the onset, and the men of Leonidas knew now that
-they must die.’ But they would die fighting, and before they were
-attacked in the rear they would do great deeds.
-
-Fierce and desperate was their defence, and before the fury of their
-blows the barbarians fell in heaps. Once again, the Persian officers,
-armed with whips, had to drive their men forward to face the small but
-undaunted band.
-
-In the confusion many of the great host of Xerxes were pushed into the
-sea, while many more were trampled to death by their comrades.
-
-So furious was the struggle, that at length the spears of the Spartans
-were broken in their hands. In a moment, they had seized their swords
-and hundreds of the Persians fell before their terrible thrusts.
-
-But now the worst that could befall the Spartans happened. Leonidas,
-their brave king Leonidas, was slain where he fought in the forefront
-of the battle. A terrible struggle at once began for the body of the
-king.
-
-Four times the Spartans drove back the Persians, and then with one
-tremendous effort they carried away the body of their king.
-
-It was at this moment that the Immortals, led by the traitor,
-Ephialtes, reached the pass. The Spartans hastily withdrew behind the
-wall, which had been repaired by the order of their king. Here, on a
-hillock, ‘they defended themselves to the last, such as had swords
-using them, and the others resisting with their hands and teeth; till
-the barbarians, who had in part pulled down the wall and attacked
-them in front, in part had gone round and now encircled them upon
-every side, overwhelmed and buried the remnant which was left, beneath
-showers of missile weapons.’
-
-As you read the story of the brave defence of Thermopylae, you do
-not wonder that Leonidas and his three hundred Spartans have won for
-themselves immortal fame.
-
-On the hillock where the little band took their last stand, a stone
-lion was placed in honour of king Leonidas, while in the pass itself a
-pillar was erected on which were written these words:--
-
- ‘Go, tell the Spartans, thou that passest by,
- That here obedient to their laws we lie.’
-
-When the battle was over, Xerxes ordered his men to search for the body
-of Leonidas. When it was found he ordered the head to be cut off and
-the body to be hung upon a cross.
-
-It was the custom of the Persians to honour the bodies of those who had
-fallen fighting bravely against them. This unusual and cruel treatment
-was but a proof of the fear the brave Spartan had inspired in the heart
-of Xerxes. Nor could the king forget that he had been on the point of
-leaving the pass in the hands of its brave defenders.
-
-Demaratus could not look at the slaughter of his countrymen unmoved. He
-had seemed to be a friend of the great king, yet now he longed to warn
-the Spartans who had stayed at home that the Persians were ready to
-march against them.
-
-But how could he send a message unknown to the Persians. He soon
-thought of a strange and less cruel way than had Histiaeus, who, you
-remember, branded his secret on the head of his slave.
-
-The exiled king took a writing tablet and scraped away the wax on which
-letters were usually engraved. On the wood beneath he scratched the
-message he wished to send. He then poured melted wax on the top of what
-he had written, and the tablet looked as any other tablet looked.
-
-When it reached Sparta, the peopled studied it with amazement. There
-was a tablet, but where was the message? They turned it this way and
-that, they peered at it now on one side, now on another--nothing was to
-be seen.
-
-Then Gorgo, whom you heard of last as a little maiden of eight years
-old, gave the people advice as wise as she had given to her royal
-father long before. She was grown up since those days and had been
-married to brave king Leonidas.
-
-‘Scrape off the wax,’ she said to the people, ‘and see if the message
-lies on the wood beneath.’
-
-And when this was done, there stood the warning words of Demaratus, so
-that all might read.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVIII
-
-THE BATTLE OF ARTEMISIUM
-
-
-While Leonidas was fighting so bravely on land, Themistocles was with
-the fleet at Artemisium. If the Persians passed this point and entered
-the Malian Gulf, they would be able to land troops behind Leonidas and
-secure the pass of Thermopylae without difficulty.
-
-But before the Persian fleet reached Artemisium, a sudden storm arose
-and dashed some of the ships upon the rocks, some against each other.
-For three days the tempest raged, and when at length the sea grew calm,
-four hundred ships had been destroyed.
-
-In spite of this disaster, the Persian fleet was still large enough to
-alarm the Greeks. When they saw it sailing off the north of the island
-of Euboea, Eurybiades, the Greek admiral, wished to sail away.
-
-But the inhabitants of the island went to Themistocles to beg him not
-to let the fleet desert them. So fearful were they, that they offered
-him thirty talents (about £5800) if he would use his influence to
-persuade the other admirals to stay and protect their island.
-
-Themistocles readily took the money, and sent eight talents (about
-£1552) to Eurybiades and his colleagues to bribe them to remain at
-Euboea.
-
-The next night another storm arose, and again many of the Persian ships
-were scattered or dashed to pieces on the rocks. But when the wind fell
-the ships were repaired and the two fleets met in battle.
-
-The struggle was fierce and long, but though the Persians lost a
-greater number of ships than did the Greeks, yet the fleet under
-Eurybiades was so heavily damaged that even Themistocles saw that
-safety lay in retreat. At the same time tidings reached him of the
-defeat of Thermopylae, and he knew that Xerxes would soon be marching
-to the south. The fleet must hasten home to protect her own coasts.
-
-So the Greek fleet set sail down the long Euboean strait and did not
-stop until it reached the island of Salamis. But as they sailed,
-Themistocles bade the captains of the Athenian fleets send some of
-their ships to the rocks where the Persians would search for water.
-
-On these rocks Themistocles ordered to be cut in large letters these
-words, ‘Ye do wrong, O Ionians, by going against your fathers and
-bringing Hellas into slavery. If ye can, take our side; if ye cannot,
-then fight for neither. But if this also is impossible, at least in the
-battle be slack and lazy, remembering that ye are sprung from us and
-that we are fighting in a quarrel which ye began.’
-
-By these words Themistocles hoped to win the Ionians to his side; or,
-if that might not be, he hoped at least to make Xerxes so suspicious of
-them that he would be afraid to let them take part in the battles which
-had yet to be fought.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIX
-
-THEMISTOCLES URGES EURYBIADES TO STAY AT SALAMIS
-
-
-After Xerxes had secured the pass of Thermopylae, a march of six days
-would bring him to Athens. There was no army in his way, for the
-Spartans and other tribes in Peloponnesus were now fortifying the
-Isthmus of Corinth, so as to protect their cities from the foe.
-
-If the Athenians wished to save themselves they would have to desert
-their city and seek refuge elsewhere, for it was impossible to hold
-Athens against the great army that was marching towards her. Yet
-even to save their lives how hard it was to leave their homes, their
-temples, their gods!
-
-The oracle at Delphi was consulted, and told them that ‘when all was
-lost a wooden wall should still shelter the Athenians.’ Some there were
-who believed that the oracle meant that if the Acropolis were fortified
-with timber it would not be taken by the Persians, and these shut
-themselves up in the citadel and refused to leave the city.
-
-But Themistocles knew that the only way to save the people was to get
-them away from Athens, and he used all his eloquence to make them
-willing to go. When it seemed that he had failed, he tried another
-way--he began to work upon their superstitious fears. He told them that
-Athene, their own goddess, had already deserted the city, and taking
-with her her pet snake had gone to the sea. He assured them that the
-‘walls of wood,’ of which the oracle had spoken, were the good ships
-that were at Salamis, waiting to defeat the Persians and put their
-fleet to flight.
-
-At length his words prevailed, and the old men, women, and children
-were sent to the island of Salamis, while the fighting men joined the
-fleet.
-
-In the confusion, many faithful animals were forgotten. These ran along
-the shore, while the ships carrying the fugitives sailed away. One
-faithful dog leaped into the water and followed his master’s ship until
-it reached Salamis. But when he had dragged himself out of the water
-the poor creature was so exhausted that he lay down on the shore and
-died.
-
-Meanwhile Xerxes was marching toward Athens. On the way he ordered
-a large company to break off to the west to seize Delphi and the
-sanctuary of the oracle, in which, as the king knew, vast treasures
-were kept. No Greek would have dared to rob the sacred temple.
-
-When the Delphians heard that the Persians were approaching, they fled
-to Parnassus, leaving only sixty men and the priest to defend the
-sanctuary. They did not think that the treasures would be stolen, for
-the gods would protect their own.
-
-And as soon as the barbarians were close to the city, strange things
-are said to have taken place. The sacred arms, which none might touch,
-were mysteriously carried out and placed in front of the temple. The
-sky was ablaze with brilliant flashes of lightning, while two great
-crags were wrenched from the heights of Mount Parnassus and fell with a
-loud crash upon the enemy. At the same time, from the temple of Athene
-a shout as of a mighty warrior was heard.
-
-The barbarians were stricken with terror at these strange sights and
-sounds, and they fled, pursued, so they declared, by two Greeks, each
-taller and more fearful than any mortal they had ever seen.
-
-Xerxes had now reached Athens, to find the city deserted, save for the
-few who had taken refuge in the citadel. These defended themselves
-bravely, and as it was difficult to scale the height on which the
-Acropolis stood, they were able for a time to keep the enemy at bay.
-
-But at length the wooden defences, in which the people had put their
-trust, were set on fire by the burning brands of the enemy. At the
-same time a band of Persian soldiers discovered a secret path on the
-north side of the citadel. Although it was steep, they at once began to
-climb, and before long they reached the summit and entered the citadel.
-The defenders were slain; the temples were plundered and burned.
-
-As the Greek fleet lay in the narrow strait between Salamis and the
-Attic coast, the Athenians saw smoke and flames rising from the burning
-city. They were filled with grief as they gazed upon the destruction of
-their homes and their temples, while their wrath burned hot against the
-destroyers.
-
-Themistocles and the Athenians wished to stay where they were to await
-the enemy. But the other admirals were anxious to sail to the Isthmus
-of Corinth, where they would be within reach of the Peloponnesian army.
-
-A council of war was called, at which Themistocles urged that they
-should stay where they were to fight and to conquer the Persian fleet.
-He reminded the other admirals that in the narrow strait of Salamis
-the big and heavy ships of the Persians would have no room to move and
-would be captured without great difficulty. But no one agreed with the
-Athenian general, and the council broke up, after having agreed that
-the fleet should sail to the Isthmus of Corinth on the following day.
-
-Themistocles was so sure that it was a mistake to move, that he went
-alone to Eurybiades and earnestly begged him not to withdraw. His
-gravity impressed the commander, and he promised to recall the council
-to discuss the matter once more.
-
-No sooner had the admirals again assembled than Themistocles rose,
-without waiting until the council was opened in the usual way, and
-again explained the urgent reasons why the fleet should stay to fight
-at Salamis.
-
-The Corinthian admiral was angry already because the council had
-been reopened; he was angrier still as he listened to the words of
-Themistocles.
-
-At length he could keep silent no longer, and he interrupted the
-orator, saying in a harsh voice, ‘Themistocles, at the games they who
-start too soon are scourged.’
-
-‘True,’ answered the Athenian, ‘but they who loiter are not crowned.’
-
-Even Eurybiades lost his temper as Themistocles urged his wish more and
-more vehemently, and at length he raised his staff as though he would
-strike the persistent orator.
-
-Themistocles looked calmly at the admiral and said ‘Strike if you will,
-but at least hear me.’ His self-control pleased the Spartan commander.
-He let his arms drop to his side and listened until Themistocles had
-ended his speech.
-
-But although Eurybiades said nothing, an officer began to taunt
-Themistocles, saying that he was the last man who should urge them to
-stay at Salamis, for he had now no city to defend, as Athens was in the
-hands of the barbarians.
-
-‘A base fellow art thou to use such a taunt,’ answered Themistocles.
-‘True it is that we have left our houses and our walls, for we will
-not endure to be made slaves for such things. But in these two hundred
-ships here ready to defend you all, we still possess the fairest city
-in Greece.’
-
-Then turning to Eurybiades he said, ‘By remaining here, thou wilt show
-thyself a brave man. By going away, thou wilt destroy all Hellas, for
-with the war on land the Athenians have nothing more to do. If thou
-wilt not stay, we will sail away with our two hundred ships and build a
-city in the west, where the Persians will not trouble us.’
-
-Then Eurybiades grew afraid, for he knew that without the help of the
-Athenians the Greeks need not hope to conquer the enemy, so he agreed
-to stay to fight at Salamis.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER L
-
-THEMISTOCLES TRICKS THE ADMIRALS
-
-
-Eurybiades had determined that the fleet should stay at Salamis. But
-the other admirals were dissatisfied. When great numbers of the Persian
-ships were sighted, and when at the same times Xerxes was seen marching
-with his vast land forces toward the shore, they were more than
-dissatisfied, they were afraid.
-
-So they called a secret council at which they resolved to retreat to
-Corinth, as they had wished to do from the first. To settle the matter
-they bade the pilots get ready to sail.
-
-Themistocles soon heard what had been done, but he was determined to
-thwart the plans of his adversaries. He would force them to fight in
-the narrow strait of Salamis.
-
-So he sent a message to the King of Persia, and pretending to be his
-friend, he warned him that the Greek fleet had determined to escape.
-‘If you wish to win a great victory, O king,’ ran the message, ‘seize
-each end of the strait before the Greek fleet sails away.’
-
-Xerxes was overjoyed when he heard that the Greeks wished to escape,
-for it seemed to him that they must be cowards whom it would be easy to
-beat.
-
-So while Themistocles called together a last council of war and did all
-that he could to delay the fleet, Xerxes was busy securing the strait
-as Themistocles had bidden him do.
-
-The pilots were on board the Greek ships, impatient to sail, the
-admirals were listening to Themistocles with but scant courtesy, when
-the messenger the Athenian was so anxiously awaiting arrived.
-
-Themistocles hastened from the council to find that it was Aristides,
-his old rival, who had brought the tidings, that the Greek fleet was
-shut in by the Persian ships. Flight was no longer possible.
-
-Then Themistocles told Aristides the trick he had played on the Persian
-king, and how he had at the same time duped the other admirals.
-
-Whether Aristides approved or disapproved of what his old rival had
-done, he believed that it was well that the battle should be fought
-in the straits, and he determined to support Themistocles. He himself
-hastened to the council, to tell the admirals that they were surrounded
-by the enemy.
-
-At first the admirals refused to believe such evil news. They did
-not guess the truth, but they came so near to it that they said
-Themistocles had probably started the rumour, so as to delay their
-flight.
-
-While they still talked, some sailors who had deserted from the
-Persians brought the same tale. The Greek admirals were at last
-convinced that a battle was inevitable.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LI
-
-THE BATTLE OF SALAMIS
-
-
-On the morning of the battle, Xerxes ascended a golden throne which had
-been placed for him upon a rock that overlooked the sea. Around him sat
-scribes ready to record the events of the battle. That they would all
-be to the honour of his fleet Xerxes never doubted.
-
-Themistocles saw with pleasure that the wind was rising, making it
-difficult for the Persians to manage their unwieldy vessels. As he
-watched their efforts he urged the Greeks to attack them at once.
-
-The narrowness of the strait, as well as the force of the wind, added
-to the confusion of the enemy and made the number of its ships of
-little use. Yet the Persians fought bravely, remembering that the eyes
-of the great king were upon them.
-
-One of the ships was commanded by a queen named Artemisia. She was
-fighting fiercely when her ship was attacked by an Athenian vessel at
-close quarters.
-
-Artemisia tried to escape, but as her ship sailed away it was followed
-by the enemy. Straight in her path lay one of Xerxes’ vessels. The
-queen did not try to avoid it, but pursuing her course struck the ship,
-so that her own countrymen who were on board were sent to the bottom.
-
-When the Athenian captain saw what the queen had done, he thought, as
-perhaps she meant him to do, that she had deserted her own side and
-was now fighting for the Greeks, so he turned back and followed her no
-more.
-
-From his golden throne, Xerxes too saw what Artemisia had done, and he
-supposed it was a Greek vessel that she had run down. In his delight
-he exclaimed, ‘My men are become women, my women men.’ This was a hard
-thing to say of his soldiers who were fighting gallantly for their king.
-
-Meantime the Persian ships were driven into the narrow strait. Ship
-dashed against ship till the Persian dead strewed the deep ‘like
-flowers.’ When evening fell, two hundred Persian ships had been
-destroyed and the Greeks had won the great sea-battle of Salamis. The
-glory of the victory was due to Themistocles. There might indeed have
-been no battle at Salamis had he not tricked both the Persian king and
-the Greek admirals.
-
-The Athenian was proud of his success, and he now determined by another
-crafty message to Xerxes to drive him out of Greece.
-
-But first he sent for Aristides, and to test his wisdom he told him
-that he thought they should sail to the Hellespont to destroy the
-bridge by which Xerxes had crossed into Europe and by which he could
-return to Asia.
-
-‘Rather than break down the bridge,’ answered Aristides, ‘we should
-build another, if by so doing we may hasten his departure.’
-
-Now this was what Themistocles himself really wished--to hasten the
-king’s retreat. So although he did not mean to destroy the bridge,
-he sent once again to Xerxes, and this is what he said: ‘O king, the
-Greeks are hastening to the Hellespont to destroy the bridge by which
-alone thou canst return to Asia. Hasten then to reach the bridge, while
-I delay the Greek fleet, lest evil overtake thee.’
-
-Once more the king fell into the trap Themistocles had prepared for
-him. For he set out in haste with the main body of his army for the
-Hellespont, leaving Mardonius with a large force to carry on the war as
-well as he could.
-
-[Illustration: Ship dashed against ship, till the Persian dead strewed
-the deep ‘like flowers’]
-
-The march to the Hellespont was a terrible one, for Xerxes had himself
-laid waste the land when he advanced upon Athens, and now there was
-neither food nor shelter for his army. The soldiers who were starving
-ate plants, grass, the bark of trees--anything to satisfy their hunger.
-
-In their weakness they were attacked by plague, and hundreds perished
-long before the Hellespont was in sight. Even when at length the gleam
-of water gladdened the hearts of the soldiers, they were soon stricken
-again with fear, for where was the bridge?
-
-The Greeks had not outstripped them, so this was not their doing. A
-storm had destroyed the bridge. Weak and hungry as they were, the
-soldiers had to rebuild it before they could cross over to Asia, where
-food and shelter awaited them.
-
-When the Greeks saw that the Persians were marching to the Hellespont,
-they were eager to follow them. But Themistocles persuaded them to go
-back to Athens to rebuild the city.
-
-Then he sent yet another message to Xerxes, saying, ‘Themistocles, the
-leader of the Athenians and the best and wisest of the Greeks, has out
-of goodwill to thee held back the allies from chasing thy ships and
-breaking up the bridge at the Hellespont. So go thy way in peace.’
-
-Although Themistocles sent these proud words to the great king,
-he really believed it was wiser for the Greeks not to pursue the
-retreating army. But he also wished to make Xerxes his friend, so that
-if at any time he was ostracised by the Athenians, he would find a
-welcome at the Persian court.
-
-Greece was full of rejoicing when she heard of the victory of Salamis.
-The generals of the different states met at Corinth to propose a reward
-for the bravest and wisest among themselves.
-
-Each general wrote on a tablet the names of two whom he believed to be
-worthy of a prize. They were not very modest, these brave soldiers of
-Greece, for each general wrote his own name first, though nearly all
-added beneath, the name of Themistocles.
-
-The Spartans gave their meed of honour to the great Athenian, for a
-crown of olive was placed upon his head and he was presented with the
-most magnificent chariot that Sparta had ever produced.
-
-Æschylus, one of the great Greek poets, wrote a tragedy on the fall
-of Xerxes, called _The Persians_, which was acted in 472 B.C., eight
-years after the battle of Salamis. Sculptors too wrought statues to
-commemorate the war, which were placed in the temple of Athene.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LII
-
-THE BATTLE OF PLATAEA
-
-
-Mardonius stayed with his troops in Thessaly during the winter months.
-But in the spring of 479 B.C. he determined to win Athens from the
-league which she had formed with the other Greek states, or if he
-failed to do this, to drive the citizens once again away from their
-city and occupy it himself.
-
-So he sent an ambassador to the Athenians to offer, in the name of
-Xerxes, not only to repair all the harm that the Persians had done to
-Athens and to the country round about the city, but to give them new
-lands and to treat them as independent allies, if they would make a
-treaty with the great king.
-
-The Spartans were afraid that the Athenians would accept so generous
-an offer, and they knew that alone they could not hope to conquer the
-large Persian army which Mardonius commanded. So they sent to the
-Athenians to beg them to be true to the league, promising that if
-they were so, Spartan soldiers would be sent to help them against the
-attacks of the enemy.
-
-But the Athenians did not need to be entreated to refuse the offer of
-the great king, for they loved their city and their liberty.
-
-‘Tell Mardonius,’ they said to the ambassador whom the Persian general
-had sent, ‘so long as the sun moves in his present course we will never
-come to terms with Xerxes.’
-
-After receiving this defiant message, Mardonius marched with his army
-against Athens. The Spartans, in spite of their promises, sent no
-troops to defend the city, and the Athenians were forced once again to
-take refuge at Salamis.
-
-Then they reproached the Spartans, and in bitter anger they declared
-that if an army was not sent at once to Attica to attack Mardonius,
-they would be forced to make an alliance with the enemy.
-
-Again the Spartans grew alarmed for their own safety. Without further
-delay they sent a force of five thousand citizens, each attended by
-seven helots. Other troops soon followed, and all were under the
-command of Pausanias, who was a relation of Leonidas, the hero of
-Thermopylae.
-
-The Persians had reached the province of Boeotia and were encamped on
-the plain of Plataea, while the Athenians and the Spartans set up their
-camp on a hill above the enemy.
-
-Masistius, the favourite and most famous officer of the Persians, led
-his cavalry against the cavalry of the enemy and soon a fierce conflict
-was raging. Only after their leader fell wounded from his horse and was
-slain, were the Persians repulsed. The armour of Masistius could not be
-pierced by any weapon, but a spear which was thrust into his eye caused
-his death. In vain the soldiers tried to recover the body of their
-general, again and again they were driven back.
-
-‘Then there was a great mourning throughout the army of the Persians,
-for all lamented for Masistius, shaving themselves and their horses,
-and their beasts of burden. And there was a great cry through all the
-host, and the sound of it went through all Boeotia, as for the death of
-one who next to Mardonius was of most note among the Persians and with
-the king.’
-
-As for the Greeks, after having driven the Persian cavalry from the
-field, they ‘became much more bold and cheerful, and putting the dead
-body of Masistius on a car, they drew it along their ranks; and so
-wonderful was it for its stature and its beauty, that the men left
-their places and came forward to look upon Masistius.’
-
-Pausanias now determined to lead his troops down to the plain. Here
-he encamped, opposite the Persians, with only the little river Asopus
-between the two armies.
-
-The oracles had foretold that the side which began the attack would be
-conquered; so day after day passed, neither army daring to move.
-
-But although the Persians dared not attack the Greeks, they did them
-all the harm that they could, for they filled up the springs to which
-the enemy went for water, and cut off several convoys with provisions.
-
-Pausanias was in despair when the water supply was stopped, and he
-determined to withdraw and take up a position nearer to Plataea, where
-both food and water would be secure.
-
-Discipline had grown slack in the Greek camp, and the retreat, which
-began at night, was carried out in a disorderly manner.
-
-One company set off in haste, but did not halt where Pausanias had
-arranged that it should. The Spartans refused to move at all. One of
-their captains, ‘lifting a piece of rock with both hands and flinging
-it at the feet of Pausanias, cried, “Thus do I cast my vote against
-the counsel of flying from the strangers.”’ Only when the retreat was
-nearly ended did the Spartans tardily obey the order to withdraw. This
-was how it happened that, when morning dawned, the Persians found that
-the enemy had disappeared, all but the Spartans, whose captain had
-delayed to follow the orders of Pausanias.
-
-When Mardonius caught sight of the loiterers he ordered his men to set
-out in pursuit of them, and before the Spartans could get into position
-the Persians were upon them. But Pausanias soon learned what was taking
-place in his rear, and he hastened back with the troops that were with
-him to aid the disobedient Spartans.
-
-The Persians had thrust their shields into the ground to form a rough
-barrier between them and the Spartans, while they sent shower after
-shower of arrows upon the loiterers. The Spartans soon tore down the
-breastwork of shields, and with their swords in their hands advanced
-upon the enemy.
-
-Mardonius did all he could to encourage his men, but they had no armour
-to protect them from the blows of the Spartans, and they were forced
-back toward the river, throwing into confusion those of their own army
-who were still advancing.
-
-In the thick of the battle Mardonius rode on a white horse, surrounded
-by ten thousand chosen Persians. He was easily known by his white
-charger, and many were the spears that were aimed at him by the angry
-Spartans. At length one smote him so that he fell dead to the ground.
-‘Thus,’ says Herodotus, ‘Mardonius paid the recompence for the murder
-of Leonidas.’
-
-No sooner was their leader slain than the Persians fled in utter
-confusion, all but forty thousand who were led off the field by one
-of the generals, and these marching north reached the Hellespont and
-crossed over to Asia in safety.
-
-Those who fled from the field took refuge in their camp, where the
-Spartans attacked them. But the barricades were strong, and the camp
-was not taken until the Athenians had returned and joined in the
-assault.
-
-As the Greeks swarmed into the camp they slaughtered the enemy without
-mercy. So severe was the defeat of Plataea that the Persians were
-utterly crushed.
-
-The spoil in the camp was enormous. Gold and silver dishes were there
-in abundance, rich carpets too, and weapons inlaid with precious
-stones. Horses, camels, mules were captured in great numbers.
-
-It is told that the great king had left his own magnificent war camp
-for Mardonius to use.
-
-When Pausanias saw it ‘all blazing with gold and silver and
-embroidered hangings, he commanded the cooks and bakers to make ready
-for him a banquet, as they had been used to do for Mardonius.
-
-When all was ready, he saw couches and tables of gold and silver, all
-fairly spread and a banquet splendidly set forth; and then, marvelling
-at this magnificence and glory, he charged his own servants, by way of
-mockery, to prepare a Spartan feast.
-
-So the meal was made ready, but it looked not much like the other,
-and Pausanias laughed, and sending for the generals of the Greeks,
-pointed to the two banquets, saying, ‘Men of Hellas, I have brought
-you together that ye may see the madness of the Medes, who faring thus
-sumptuously came to rob us of our sorry food.’
-
-While the battle of Plataea was being fought, the Greek fleet was lying
-at Delos, an island in the Ægean Sea. The Persian fleet was near Samos,
-which is not far from the coast of Africa, while close at hand, at Cape
-Mycale, the Persian land forces were encamped.
-
-The Samians were afraid when they saw the Persian army, and begged
-the Greeks to come to their aid. This they readily agreed to do, and
-sailing to Cape Mycale they landed and attacked and burned the Persian
-camp. The victory would have been harder to win had not the Ionian
-Greeks who were with the Persians deserted and fought with those of
-their own race.
-
-Both the victory of Plataea and that of Mycale were said to have been
-gained on the same day in August 479 B.C.
-
-Bands of Persians had still to be driven from some of the islands of
-the Ægean and from some of the Greek cities in Asia. But the victory
-of Mycale freed the Ionians from the rule of the great king, ended the
-Persian war, and laid the foundations of the Athenian Empire.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIII
-
-THE DELIAN LEAGUE
-
-
-For at least forty years Sparta was the chief city in Greece, and she
-was the head of the league which bound the cities of Peloponnesus
-together. It was her brave king Leonidas who had fallen gloriously at
-Thermopylae, it was her admirals who had been the chief commanders at
-Salamis and at Mycale. The decisive victory of Plataea had been won by
-the Spartan Pausanias.
-
-But after the Persian war was ended, the power of Sparta grew less and
-less, while that of Athens increased by leaps and bounds, until it was
-she who held the first place among all the cities of Greece.
-
-One reason for this was that Athens, owing to the foresight of
-Themistocles, owned a well-equipped navy and could therefore rule the
-islands of the Ægean which had been wrested from the Persians.
-
-Sparta had no navy, nor had she any great statesman to tell her that
-she must become a great sea-power if she wished still to hold the
-chief place among the cities of Greece. Sparta was content to drill
-her soldiers as she had been taught to do by Lycurgus, and she looked
-with contempt or with suspicion on what was new or unusual. It was
-only after Athens had far surpassed her in glory and in empire that
-her ambition was at length aroused, and she determined to win fame for
-herself by destroying her rival. Of Sparta’s efforts to conquer Greece
-you will read when I tell you about the Peloponnesian wars.
-
-After the battle of Plataea, Sparta soon lost the command of the
-allied fleet, through the folly and treachery of Pausanias.
-
-The admiral was sent to drive the Persians from some of the Greek
-cities in the east. His success at Plataea had made him haughty and
-proud, and he treated his officers with contempt. He flogged his
-men for small offences or made them stand with an anchor on their
-shoulders. If food or water were scarce, he forbade them to help
-themselves until his own Spartan troops had been fed.
-
-Aristides and another admiral named Cimon, who treated their officers
-with courtesy and their men with kindness, went to Pausanias to beg
-him to behave more justly. But the Spartan would not listen to the
-remonstrances of the Athenians. ‘I have no time to hear complaints,’
-was his sorry excuse.
-
-When Pausanias succeeded in taking Byzantium, which we now know as
-Constantinople, his pride and ambition increased, and he determined to
-play into the hands of the Persian king.
-
-So he sent for some of the prisoners, and, setting them free, he bade
-them carry letters to Xerxes their king. In these letters he offered,
-as only a traitor could do, to subdue Sparta and the other states of
-Greece, and to hold them for the Persian monarch. He asked Xerxes to
-grant him money to carry on the war, and as a reward for his services
-he requested the hand of his daughter. Pausanias hoped in this way to
-gain his great ambition and become tyrant of all Greece.
-
-Xerxes was pleased with the Spartan’s letter, nor did he stay to wonder
-if so disloyal a citizen would be a faithful ally. He sent a letter
-to bid the traitor ‘work on night and day to accomplish his purpose,
-without letting himself be held back by lack of gold or silver, or want
-of troops, for all should be at his command.’
-
-When Pausanias held the king’s letter in his hand, and saw the king’s
-money at his disposal, he began to behave as though he was already
-the son-in-law of the great king. He clad himself as a Persian prince,
-he journeyed from place to place in royal state, attended by Persian
-guards. The Spartan simplicity in which he had been trained was
-forgotten, and he lived in as great luxury as did his new friends.
-
-Rumours of the strange way in which Pausanias was behaving soon reached
-Sparta. When it was found that the rumours were true, Pausanias was
-ordered to come home, and another commander, named Dorcis, was sent to
-take his place.
-
-But before Dorcis reached Byzantium, the fleet had refused to obey
-Pausanias and had placed itself under Aristides, the admiral of the
-Athenian ships.
-
-A league, called the Delian League, was then formed, to enable Greece
-to carry on the war against Persia. It was named the Delian League
-because its treasures were kept in the temple of Apollo, on the sacred
-island of Delos.
-
-Athens became the head of the league, Aristides its leader, and so
-greatly was he trusted that he was asked to arrange the sum of money
-or the number of ships which each city belonging to the league should
-provide.
-
-Most of the Greek cities in the Ægean islands joined the Delian League,
-as well as those on the north and east coasts of the Ægean Sea. Those
-who joined took solemn oaths to be true to the demands of the league,
-and their oaths were ratified by sinking masses of iron in the sea. Not
-until these reappeared might the people be set free from the vows which
-they had taken.
-
-Pausanias had now returned to Sparta, where he was thrown into prison.
-But though there was abundant proof of his foolish conduct there was
-none of his treachery, and he was soon set free.
-
-The traitor continued to send letters to Xerxes by his slaves, and
-those who carried them never returned, for Pausanias feared lest they
-should betray him.
-
-One of his slaves noticed that those who carried letters to the great
-king never came back. He made up his mind that when his turn came
-to go to Xerxes, he would find out what was in the letter he carried
-before he delivered it.
-
-So when one day he was bidden to hasten with a letter to the Persian
-king, he no sooner left the presence of his master than he broke the
-seal, opened the letter, and found among other things an order for his
-death. This was what he expected, and he at once carried the letter to
-the ephors. It contained proof of the traitor’s guilt.
-
-But, so it is told, the ephors wished to hear that Pausanias was guilty
-from his own lips, so they laid a trap for him.
-
-The slave was sent to take refuge in a hut that stood in a sacred
-grove. Pausanias soon heard of the strange conduct of his slave, and,
-as the ephors had foreseen, he at once hastened to the hut to demand
-why his servant had not sped on his master’s errand.
-
-Two of the ephors were hidden behind the hut and could hear all that
-Pausanias said to his slave.
-
-In his anger the admiral forgot to be prudent, and exclaimed that he
-meant to subdue Greece and deliver her into the hands of Xerxes. The
-ephors had heard what they wished. They hastened home and at once
-ordered that the traitor should be seized.
-
-But either Pausanias was warned or he was filled with sudden
-foreboding, for he fled to the temple of Athene for sanctuary. It was
-forbidden to drag a fugitive out the temple, so the ephors ordered that
-the door should be built up, that he might starve to death.
-
-His mother, in bitter anger because her son had wished to betray his
-country, herself placed the first stone at the door of the temple.
-
-When hunger had all but done its work, Pausanias was carried out of the
-sacred place to breathe his last, lest the temple should be polluted by
-the death of a traitor.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIV
-
-THEMISTOCLES DECEIVES THE SPARTANS
-
-
-After the battle of Plataea, the Athenians brought their wives and
-children back to the city, which the Persians had again left in ruins.
-Not only were the temples and the houses burned, but of the city wall
-scarce a trace was to be found.
-
-Themistocles encouraged the citizens to rebuild the city, and this they
-did with good will. More beautiful temples, better houses, soon sprang
-up under the eager hands of the citizens.
-
-The wall they determined to make so strong and so high that they
-would be able to defend their city against any attack rather than be
-compelled again to forsake her.
-
-But Sparta was alarmed at her neighbour’s industry; she was more than
-alarmed, she was suspicious and angry. Athens was making herself too
-strong, the Spartans murmured in ungenerous mood.
-
-The wall had risen but a little way from the ground when the Spartans
-sent to ask the Athenians not to go on with their work. The reason they
-gave was a selfish one, for they said, ‘If the Persians return and
-take a strongly walled town so near to Peloponnesus, our cities will
-not be safe.’ They then promised to offer shelter to the Athenians,
-should they again be forced to leave their city, but only on condition
-that they would stop building a wall round Athens. They even asked the
-Athenians to help them to destroy the walls that already surrounded the
-other cities of Greece.
-
-The Athenians were in a dilemma. They were determined to finish the
-wall, yet they dared not anger the Spartans, lest they attacked their
-city while the wall was still unfinished.
-
-In their perplexity they turned to Themistocles, who had before now
-saved them by craft when open defiance threatened to ruin them.
-
-Themistocles was not long in solving the difficulty. He said that
-he would go as an ambassador to Sparta to talk over the matter.
-Other ambassadors were to follow him only when the walls were nearly
-complete, and meanwhile men, women and children, all must work day and
-night, so that the wall might grow apace.
-
-When Themistocles reached Sparta, he at once said to the council that
-he could do nothing until his fellow ambassadors arrived, and he
-pretended that he expected them every day.
-
-He refused to attend the council alone, and when the Spartans grumbled,
-he assured them that the Athenians were not going on with the wall.
-When they grew impatient he amused them so well by his clever speeches
-that they forgot for a little while to be angry with him.
-
-But when day after day passed and still the other ambassadors did not
-come, the Spartans did not hide their suspicion that they were being
-deceived. When a rumour reached them that the Athenians had never
-ceased to build the wall, which was now nearly complete, they were
-angry indeed, and going to Themistocles they demanded that he should
-tell them the truth.
-
-He still denied that the citizens had been building the wall in his
-absence, but if they doubted his word, he bade them send ambassadors
-to Athens, that they might see for themselves whether he was deceiving
-them or not.
-
-So the Spartans sent ambassadors to Athens, and then Themistocles bade
-his colleagues join him, for he knew that now both he and they would be
-safe. The Spartan ambassadors would be hostages for their lives.
-
-The first thing the Spartans saw as they approached Athens was a high,
-strong wall. Then they knew that they had been deceived, and they sent
-a messenger to tell their countrymen that Themistocles had played them
-false.
-
-Themistocles was no coward. He went into the council and boldly told
-the Spartans that it was true he had deceived them, so that the walls
-of Athens might be built before they could interfere.
-
-Indignant as the Spartans were and ashamed of their own folly in being
-deceived by the crafty Athenian, they dared not harm the ambassadors
-lest their own messengers should not return in safety.
-
-So they sent them away, and Themistocles and his fellows returned in
-triumph to Athens.
-
-Soon after this the city wall was finished, and Themistocles then urged
-the people to build another great wall round the Piraeus. When this was
-done, Athens had the largest and safest harbour in Greece.
-
-The other states now appointed her to be the head of the allied fleet,
-and no one was more proud of this than Themistocles. For it was he
-who had first persuaded the Athenians to make themselves into a great
-sea-power.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LV
-
-THEMISTOCLES IS OSTRACISED
-
-
-For many years Themistocles had been a favourite with the Athenians.
-But soon after the walls of the city were complete he began to grow
-less popular.
-
-Perhaps this was his own fault, for he tired the people by boasting
-continually of the good he had done to the city. It was known too that
-he did not hesitate to take bribes, and the citizens were indignant
-that he should have grown rich in this dishonourable way.
-
-One day, as he was talking in public with Aristides, he said, ‘The
-chief excellence of a statesman is to be able to prove and frustrate
-the designs of public enemies.’ Aristides answered, ‘Another very
-excellent and necessary quality in a statesman is to have clean hands.’
-And those who listened applauded Aristides the Just, for they knew well
-that he had never soiled his hands with the gold of his country’s foes.
-
-In 471 B.C., the people determined to ostracise Themistocles, so weary
-had they grown of the claims he made upon their gratitude. At the time
-of Pausanias’ death he was living at Argos, which city lies south of
-Corinth. When the papers of the traitor were read it was found that
-Themistocles had written to him. There was nothing in his letters to
-show that he had meant to help Pausanias to betray his country, yet he
-was accused of treason.
-
-When he heard of the charge that was brought against him, he wrote to
-the council at Athens, ‘I, Themistocles, who was born to command and
-not to serve others, could not sell myself, and Greece with me, into
-servitude to the enemy.’
-
-These proud words only angered the Athenians the more, and the council
-sent men to arrest him. But Themistocles did not wait to be captured.
-He fled from Greece to Epirus, where he hoped that King Admetus, whom
-he had once befriended, would shelter him from his foes.
-
-Admetus was not at home when the exile reached the palace, so he threw
-himself upon the mercy of the queen.
-
-She bade him take her little son in his arms and go sit by the hearth
-until her lord returned.
-
-Then, when the king arrived, Themistocles arose, and begged Admetus to
-protect him, while the little prince stretched out suppliant arms to
-his royal father.
-
-This was the most sacred way to proffer a request, and according to the
-custom of his country the king was pleased to do as Themistocles asked.
-He refused to give him up to the Athenians, and sent him in safety to
-the Persian court, where Artaxerxes now reigned.
-
-Themistocles begged one of the officers to take him to Artaxerxes,
-saying that he was a Greek who had come to see the king on important
-matters.
-
-‘If you will promise to prostrate yourself before the monarch, as is
-the custom in my country, I will do as you wish,’ answered the Persian.
-
-Some Greeks would have refused to prostrate themselves before any king,
-but it was easy for Themistocles to conform to the customs of the
-country in which he found himself.
-
-‘I that come hither,’ he said, ‘to increase the power and glory of the
-king, will not only submit myself to his laws, but will also cause many
-more to be worshippers and adorers of the king.’
-
-‘Who shall we tell him you are?’ asked the officer, ‘for your words
-signify you to be no ordinary person.’
-
-‘No man,’ replied Themistocles, ‘must be informed of this before the
-king himself.’
-
-So at length the Athenian was brought into the presence of Artaxerxes,
-and after having prostrated himself he stood silent before the king.
-
-‘Who art thou?’ asked Artaxerxes.
-
-‘O king,’ answered the exile, ‘I am Themistocles the Athenian, driven
-into banishment by the Greeks. I come with a mind suited to my present
-calamities; prepared alike for favours and for anger. If you save me
-you will save your suppliant; if otherwise, you will destroy an enemy
-of the Greeks.’
-
-Artaxerxes liked the courage the exile showed, but he gave him no
-answer that day. At night, in his sleep, he was heard to cry aloud for
-joy three times, ‘I have Themistocles the Athenian.’
-
-In the morning he commanded his courtiers and captains to assemble in
-the hall, while the stranger was brought before him.
-
-As the Athenian passed close to the captains, one of them whispered to
-him, ‘You subtle Greek serpent, the king’s good genius hath brought
-thee hither.’
-
-Themistocles thought these were ominous words, but to his surprise the
-king greeted him kindly.
-
-A reward had been offered to whoever should bring the famous Athenian
-to the court of the great king. This reward Artaxerxes now declared
-should be given to Themistocles himself.
-
-The Greek besought the king to grant him a year in which to learn the
-Persian language. He promised that when he could speak without an
-interpreter he would tell Artaxerxes the best way to subdue Greece.
-
-Artaxerxes not only granted his request, but showed him great kindness.
-For he gave to him three cities, and ordered the inhabitants to supply
-him with bread, meat, wine and whatever else he might need for himself
-and his family.
-
-In Magnesia, one of these cities, the Athenian lived content for many
-years. But at length Artaxerxes assembled an army to invade Greece,
-and he sent for the Greek to come to lead it into his own country.
-
-But whatever promises he had made to ensure his own safety,
-Themistocles had never really meant to harm the land he loved so well.
-
-So when the message of Artaxerxes reached him, the Athenian invited
-his friends to a feast, and after bidding them farewell he offered
-sacrifices to the gods. He then took poison and soon after died.
-
-Artaxerxes respected the Athenian, because he had died rather than
-betray his country, and he ordered his family to be treated with
-kindness.
-
-Themistocles was buried without the walls of Magnesia, and the
-Magnesians erected a statue to him in their market place, because he
-had been the ‘Saviour of Greece.’
-
-In 464 B.C., three years after the death of Themistocles, Aristides
-died. The Athenians, both rich and poor, mourned for his loss, because
-his rare justice, his true patriotism, had made him to be loved and
-honoured by all who knew him.
-
-[Illustration: He stood silent before the king]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVI
-
-THE ELOQUENCE OF PERICLES
-
-
-After the death of Aristides, Cimon became commander-in-chief of the
-allied fleet.
-
-Cimon was beloved by the Athenians, for he showed them great kindness.
-Every day he invited some of the poorer citizens to supper. When he
-walked through the city he ordered several well-dressed slaves to
-follow him. Then, if he met a citizen clad in shabby or threadbare
-garments, he would order one of his slaves to exchange clothes with him.
-
-The allied fleet gained many victories while Cimon was at its head.
-
-In 470 B.C., he sailed to an island named Scyrus, in which dwelt a
-race of pirates, who had for many years fallen upon and captured the
-merchant vessels of Greece. The island of Scyrus lay between Athens and
-Thrace.
-
-The Greek traders were pleased when Cimon banished the pirates, as
-he was soon able to do. A number of Athenians were sent to settle in
-Scyrus, which from that time belonged to Attica.
-
-Now there was a legend which said that in this island there was a grave
-where lay the bones of Theseus, one of the old heroes of Hellas.
-
-It may be that Cimon ordered his men to search for the spot where the
-hero was said to be buried; in any case a grave was found in which lay
-the body of a giant warrior. No one doubted that this was the body of
-Theseus, and, as the oracle had commanded, the bones were brought to
-Athens and placed in a temple which was henceforth called Theseum. The
-Athenians were loud in the praise of Cimon because he had obeyed the
-commands of the oracle, and had brought the bones of the hero to Attica.
-
-Four years later Cimon gained two great victories over the Persians,
-by which those Greek cities which had been left under the yoke of the
-great king were set free. They then hastened to join the Delian League.
-
-Cimon was now at the height of his power, but his friendship with
-Sparta, on which the Athenians had always looked with dislike, soon led
-to his downfall.
-
-In 464 B.C. there was an earthquake in Peloponnesus. Chasms yawned in
-the valleys, landslips changed the face of the mountains. The loss of
-life in Sparta itself was terrible, while both houses and temples were
-destroyed. The Helots, who were always ready to revolt, did so now that
-their masters were overwhelmed by this great calamity.
-
-Cimon begged the Athenians to forget their old grudge against the
-Spartans and to send to her help, remembering only how they had shared
-in the glory of the Persian war.
-
-‘Do not let Greece be lamed of one foot,’ he urged, ‘and Athens herself
-be left to draw without her yoke-fellow.’
-
-An Athenian, named Pericles, who was now one of the chief citizens,
-did all he could to make the people refuse to send help to Sparta, but
-Cimon’s entreaties were successful. He was himself sent at the head of
-the Athenian troops to help the Spartans to subdue the Helots.
-
-The rebels had taken refuge in a fortress, and Cimon tried in vain to
-expel them from their stronghold.
-
-Always ready to suspect an Athenian, the Spartans began to think that
-Cimon did not really wish to dislodge the Helots. They accused him of
-treachery, and roughly bade him return with his troops to Athens, as
-they no longer wished for his help.
-
-During Cimon’s absence, Pericles and a statesman named Ephialtes had
-made several changes in the ancient courts of Athens. These changes
-did not meet with the approval of Cimon, and he tried to restore the
-old customs.
-
-The citizens soon grew angry with the two leaders because each tried to
-govern Athens in a different way, and, instead of peace, discord ruled
-in the city. They determined that one of them should be ostracised.
-
-In 461 B.C. it was resolved to put the matter to the vote. The citizens
-assembled in the market place, and shells were given to them on which
-to write the name of the leader they wished to be banished. When the
-names were counted it was found that Cimon was ostracised.
-
-Soon after Cimon left Athens, Ephialtes was slain in his own house, and
-it was believed that this cruel deed had been done by the order of some
-of Cimon’s friends, in revenge for the ostracism of their chief.
-
-Pericles was now left alone to govern Athens.
-
-He was not rich, so he could not himself do all that Cimon had done for
-the people, but he used the public money for the good of the citizens.
-And he pleased them by taking from the court of the Areopagus most of
-its ancient power, and giving it to the popular assembly.
-
-Tickets, too, were given by his orders to the poorer folk in Athens,
-so that they might be able to go to the theatres and other places
-of public amusement. By these and other acts, Pericles soon won the
-goodwill of the people.
-
-When he was a boy Pericles had been trained by a philosopher named
-Anaxagoras, who had taught him much wisdom. When storms arose they
-seemed unable to disturb the calm of the philosopher’s pupil.
-
-One day, as he was busy in the market place with affairs of State, a
-rude fellow never ceased to mock and to speak ill of him.
-
-Pericles heard all that the man said, but he took no notice, and
-when he had finished his task he set out for home. The rough fellow
-followed, throwing at him, not stones, but cruel, wicked words.
-
-It was dark when Pericles reached his house. Turning to one of his
-servants he bade him take a light and see that the man reached home in
-safety. And this he did although he had been treated so badly.
-
-Because he was a great orator, Pericles was named the Olympian, but
-by some it was said that he was so called because of the beautiful
-buildings with which he adorned Athens.
-
-At this time comedies were acted on the stage, and in these comedies
-great statesmen were often ridiculed; that is, fun was made both of
-themselves and of their actions.
-
-Those who wrote these plays were allowed to use their wit on any one
-or anything that they chose. It was soon seen that the Athenians could
-laugh heartily at themselves, and that is a good thing that some people
-can never learn to do.
-
-Pericles was too well known to be left alone by the writers of comedy.
-Sometimes hard words were spoken of him, as when a writer said that
-he had a ‘dreadful thunderbolt in his tongue.’ But he who said this
-knew that the eloquence of Pericles was a great power, and that the
-orator could make people believe almost anything that he wished them to
-believe.
-
-It is said that one of the kings of Sparta once asked a noble citizen,
-named Thucydides, if he or Pericles were the stronger wrestler.
-
-‘When I,’ answered Thucydides, ‘have thrown him and given him a fair
-fall, by persisting that he had no fall he gets the better of me,
-and makes the bystanders, in spite of their own eyes, believe him.’
-Thucydides said this in jest, to show what wonders Pericles could work
-by his eloquence.
-
-But although others might make fun of Pericles’ great gift of speech,
-he himself thought of it with reverence. ‘He was very careful what
-and how he was to speak, insomuch that, whenever he went up to the
-hustings, he prayed the gods that no one word might unawares slip from
-him, unsuitable to the matter and the occasion.’
-
-Pericles encouraged the Athenians to war against many of the Greek
-States, and when they had subdued them, he bade these States pay
-tribute to Athens. Year by year, under his guidance, the city grew more
-powerful.
-
-In 449 B.C., Cimon, who had been recalled from exile, sailed with a
-fleet of two hundred ships to Cyprus, where several cities still owned
-Artaxerxes, the Persian king, as their master. He laid siege to the
-town of Citium, but before it was taken he fell ill. Although he was
-forced to stay in bed, he still sent orders to his men, which helped
-them to gain two brilliant victories.
-
-Cimon did not recover from his illness, and after the death of its
-commander the fleet returned to Athens.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVII
-
-PERICLES AND ELPINICE
-
-
-Athens was at first the leader of the Delian League; she soon became
-its ruler.
-
-Many of the allied cities offered to send, as their contribution to the
-league, money instead of ships. To this Athens agreed gladly, and with
-the money she added ship after ship to her own fleet. So the navy of
-Athens continued to grow while that of the other states dwindled until
-they possessed only a few vessels.
-
-The treasury of the league, which had been kept in the small but sacred
-island of Delos, was moved to Athens with the consent of the allies.
-
-But after a time the other cities grew discontented. They complained
-that the money they sent to the league was not spent on ships alone.
-Some of it, at least, was used to build beautiful temples for the city
-of Athens.
-
-So dissatisfied were they that they declared that they would leave the
-league. But they soon found that it would be difficult to carry out
-their threat, for Athens was too anxious to receive their contributions
-of money to let them go.
-
-When the people who lived on the island of Samos revolted, Pericles
-went with an army to besiege their capital town, and after nine months
-the Samians were forced to surrender. The walls of the city were
-pulled down, the ships belonging to the island were seized, and the
-inhabitants were forced to pay a heavy fine.
-
-On his return to Athens, Pericles was welcomed by his own party, but
-Elpinice, the sister of Cimon, was indignant that the citizens should
-rejoice at a victory gained over their own countrymen.
-
-One day, soon after his triumphant return, Elpinice waylaid Pericles
-as he was walking along the streets, and said to him, ‘These are brave
-deeds, Pericles, that you have done, and such as deserve our chaplets,
-who have lost us many a worthy citizen, not in a war with Phoenicians
-or Medes, like my brother Cimon, but for the overthrow of an allied and
-kindred city.’
-
-Elpinice hoped to make Pericles ashamed that he had fought with people
-of his own race.
-
-And now for two years, from 447 B.C. to 445 B.C., loss after loss
-befell Athens. While she was struggling with her other enemies, the
-king of Sparta marched into Attica with an army. Athens herself was in
-danger.
-
-But before the army reached the city, it was ordered to halt, and soon
-after it withdrew from Attica.
-
-No one knew what had made the Spartans spare Athens, but it was said
-that Pericles had paid their king a large sum of money on condition
-that he took his army back to his own country.
-
-In 445 B.C. Athens signed a Thirty Years’ Truce with Sparta, and at the
-same time peace was made with Persia.
-
-Pericles was now able to devote himself to the work which was his
-greatest pleasure. He spent fourteen years in making Athens so
-beautiful that it became the wonder city of the world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVIII
-
-THE CITY OF ATHENS
-
-
-When the Persians entered Athens they destroyed her temples. Some of
-these temples had been hastily repaired, others had been hastily built,
-when the Athenians returned to their own city.
-
-But now that peace had been made with the Persians, Athens determined
-to show her gratitude to the gods by building in the city, temples,
-‘exceeding magnifical,’ more beautiful indeed than any that had yet
-been built.
-
-The most famous of these temples was the Parthenon or Temple of the
-Virgin, built on the Acropolis, and sacred to the virgin goddess Athene.
-
-This marvellous temple was planned by a great architect named Ictinus,
-and adorned by a yet greater sculptor called Pheidias.
-
-The architecture of the Parthenon was Doric, which was the oldest, the
-strongest as well as the most simple, of the four kinds of Grecian
-buildings. There were two rooms in the Parthenon with no entrance from
-one to the other.
-
-The figure of the goddess, fashioned by the magic hands of the sculptor
-Pheidias, was a colossal one. Calm, majestic, with a smile upon her
-face, she stood in her wondrous temple, clad in a robe of gold.
-
-On her head she wore a helmet, in her right hand she held fast a little
-golden figure of the goddess of victory, while her left lay upon her
-shield. At her feet a snake lay coiled.
-
-[Illustration: The figure of the goddess was a colossal one]
-
-Neither of marble nor of bronze was the statue, but of ivory and
-pure gold, ivory being used for the flesh, gold for the robe and
-armour, which was studded with precious stones.
-
-Nowhere was there so marvellous a statue as this of the goddess Athene
-wrought by Pheidias, save perchance the Zeus at Olympia, which was also
-moulded by the famous sculptor.
-
-The statue of Zeus had a strange power over those who gazed upon it.
-
-‘Let a man sick and weary in his soul, who has passed through many
-distresses and sorrows, whose pillow is unvisited by kindly sleep,
-stand in front of this image; he will, I deem, forget all the terrors
-and troubles of human life.’
-
-Close to the Parthenon was an older temple, built not in the Doric but
-in the Ionic style of architecture. It, too, was sacred to Athene and
-also to Poseidon.
-
-This temple, which was called the Erechtheum, was held in awe and
-reverence by the Athenians, for in it was kept an ancient wooden image
-of the goddess. So ancient was this ‘most holy idol’ of the people that
-it looked more like a rough block of wood than a carved figure. The
-holy olive tree, too, was there, which the Persians had cut down, but
-which they had been unable to kill, as well as the living snake, the
-symbol of the presence of the goddess.
-
-The Erechtheum was to the Athenians a shrine, in which lay hidden the
-story of their past, the Parthenon was to them a sign of the power and
-the splendour of the age of Pericles.
-
-On the western side of the Acropolis rose a magnificent marble wall
-called the Propylaea. The marble had been pierced at intervals to make
-five great gateways, the centre one being for chariots, those on either
-side leading by steps to the Parthenon. Through these gateways the
-Athenians marched in solemn procession on their feast days.
-
-A great theatre, sacred to the god Dionysus, was finished in the age
-of Pericles, and an Odeon or great hall of music was added to it,
-where contests of song and music were held. The roof of the Odeon was
-pointed like a tent, and was made of the masts of ships that had been
-captured from the Persians.
-
-This pointed roof was said by the wits of Athens to be like the helmet
-of Pericles, whose head was curiously formed, and who often wore a
-helmet to conceal its strange shape.
-
-‘Here comes Pericles,’ says a comic poet of those days, ‘with the Odeon
-set on his crown.’
-
-Another great statue of Athene, called Athene Promachos, or Athena
-Foremost in Battle, stood just within the Propylaea. It was wrought
-in bronze and showed Athene in armour, holding shield and spear
-outstretched. This statue, also by Pheidias, was fifty feet high and
-stood on a pedestal that raised it twenty feet higher, so that it
-towered above the roofs of the temples. The golden plume on the helmet
-of the goddess was seen by sailors far out at sea.
-
-With these and many other great works of art, Pericles adorned the city
-of his love. The Acropolis he said should be no longer a fortress, but
-a sanctuary.
-
-Some of the Athenians, among them Thucydides, grumbled because Pericles
-spent the public money on these beautiful buildings.
-
-Pericles heard that the citizens were discontented, and in the open
-assembly he rose and bade them tell him if they thought he used more
-money than he ought, to adorn the city.
-
-‘Too much a great deal,’ was the speedy retort.
-
-‘Then,’ said Pericles, ‘since it is so, let the cost not go to your
-account but to mine, and let the inscriptions upon the buildings stand
-in my name.’
-
-But the people, surprised at his generosity, and perhaps wishing to
-share in the glory of his work, were ashamed that they had complained.
-They bade him spend as much of the public money as he deemed right and
-‘spare no cost until all was finished.’
-
-In 479 B.C. the Persians had reduced Athens to ruins. Fifty years
-later she had been built anew and adorned with temples and statues that
-made her the wonder of the world.
-
-Marble was found in Attica, gold and ivory were bought with money out
-of the treasury, but without the magic hand of Pheidias, marble, gold,
-and ivory had been bought in vain.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIX
-
-GREAT MEN OF ATHENS
-
-
-Athens, in the age of Pericles, was the home of literary men as well as
-of sculptors and architects.
-
-Æschylus, one of the greatest men of the age, was a diligent writer
-of tragedies or serious plays. You will think that he was diligent
-indeed, when I tell you that he wrote ninety plays, although only seven
-are known to us now. His tragedies were acted in the great theatre of
-Dionysus. The _Persae_, his first play, was written eight years after
-the great sea-fight at Salamis, to tell of the victory the Athenians
-had won over the Persians.
-
-Just as races were run, and music was written by competitors to win
-renown and gain prizes at the festival of Dionysus, so plays were
-written and prizes were awarded to the successful author at this great
-feast. These plays might be about the things that were taking place in
-Greece at that very time, or the plot might be taken from the old-world
-stories of Troy. Proud and dauntless were the men and women whom
-Æschylus made to live upon the stage of Athens. Of many of these you
-will some day read yourself.
-
-Sophocles and Euripides also wrote tragedies, and Euripides is known,
-too, for the beauty of his songs. He was a magician who made all that
-he touched radiant with beauty. Many people loved Euripides because of
-the wonderful songs and plays which he wrote, but some hated him.
-
-Aristophanes, the writer of comedies or amusing plays that made
-the Athenians laugh with uncontrollable glee, was one of those
-who disliked Euripides and held up some of his works to scorn. But
-Socrates, a greater man than he, loved Euripides and called him his
-favourite poet.
-
-Herodotus was the first great Greek historian. He was not born in
-Attica, but he lived some years in Athens. He wrote the story of the
-Persian wars, while Thucydides wrote that of the Peloponnesian war.
-
-Some of the greatest teachers in Greece at this time were called
-Sophists. A Sophist meant, at first, one who was clever in any
-special art. It did not matter what the art was; it might be cooking,
-gardening, teaching.
-
-Protagoras was one of the most famous Sophists, but the Athenians did
-not treat him well. For he wrote a book which displeased them, so
-that they condemned it and accused him of writing against the gods of
-Greece. So angry were his enemies that Protagoras knew that he could no
-longer live safely in Athens. He fled from the city and set sail for
-Sicily, but he was drowned before he reached the island.
-
-It was of his dead friend Protagoras that Euripides was thinking when
-he wrote in one of his plays, ‘Ye have slain, O Greeks, ye have slain
-the nightingale of the muses, the wizard bird that did no wrong.’
-
-These are a few of the great men who, with Ictinus, Pheidias, and
-many another of whom I have not told, made the glory of Greece known
-throughout the wide world.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LX
-
-THE THEBANS ATTACK THE PLATAEANS
-
-
-The cause of the Peloponnesian War was jealousy--jealousy between
-Athens and Sparta. Each wished to be the chief State in Greece, and the
-only way to settle the dispute in those days was by an appeal to arms.
-
-Athens had a great navy and much wealth. She was at the head of an
-empire, but the States which she had subdued, and which she had forced
-to pay tribute, were discontented and unlikely to prove useful allies.
-
-Sparta was the head of the Peloponnesian States. She had a strong army,
-but she had not money with which to carry on war, nor had she, or any
-of her allies save Corinth, a fleet that would be of any use against
-the large, well-equipped fleet of Athens.
-
-As long as Athens could keep the mastery of the sea, she would be
-able to defy the enemy. Famine would soon subdue her if she lost this
-mastery, for much of her corn supply came from abroad, and if the corn
-ships did not reach the Piraeus with their precious freight, the people
-would starve.
-
-On land Athens could not hope to hold her own against Sparta. Pericles
-knew this well, and so he urged the Athenians to place their trust in
-their ships.
-
-‘Let us give up lands and houses,’ he said, ‘but keep a watch over the
-city and the sea. We should not, under any irritation at the loss of
-our property, give battle to the Peloponnesians, who far outnumber us.
-Mourn not for houses or lands, but for men; men may give these, but
-these will not give men. If I thought that you would listen to me, I
-would say to you, “Go yourselves and destroy them, and thereby prove
-to the Peloponnesians that none of these things move you.” Such is the
-power which the empire of the sea gives.’
-
-The Peloponnesian War began in the early spring of 431 B.C. when the
-citizens of the little town of Thebes made a treacherous attack upon
-the town of Plataea.
-
-Thebes belonged to the Boeotian League, which was on good terms with
-Sparta, upon bad terms with Athens.
-
-Plataea was in alliance with Athens, but there were traitors among the
-citizens, and these determined to betray their city into the hands of
-the Thebans.
-
-One dark, stormy night the gates of the city were opened to admit a
-band of three hundred Thebans. The main body of the Theban force was
-still some distance off. At midnight the citizens of Plataea were
-awakened by the sound of trumpets. They dressed in haste, and then
-rushing to the market place found it in the hands of the Thebans,
-who were calling upon the citizens to forsake Athens and to join the
-Boeotian League.
-
-At first the Plataeans thought it would be useless to resist the enemy,
-but before long they found that there was only a small band of Thebans
-in the market place. Heavy rains had made the river Asopus rise, and
-the main body of the enemy was still on the farther side of the river,
-looking in vain for a ford.
-
-So the Plataeans shut their gates, barricaded their streets with
-wagons, and then boldly attacked the enemy.
-
-The Thebans were soon separated from one another and lost their way
-in the unknown and dusky streets. To add to their confusion, from
-windows and roofs, heavy missiles were hurled down upon them by the
-angry Plataean women. A few scaled the city wall and escaped, but the
-greater number, rushing through a large door which they mistook for
-one of the city gates, found themselves in a granary from which there
-was no escape save by the door through which they had entered. It was
-already held by the Plataeans, and the Thebans were taken prisoners and
-commanded to lay down their arms.
-
-Meanwhile the main body of the Thebans had reached the city gates to
-find them guarded by the inhabitants. A herald was sent to bid them
-withdraw, after releasing the prisoners whom they had taken on their
-march to the city. Unless this was done without delay, the Plataeans
-threatened to put to death the Thebans whom they had captured.
-
-It was plain that their plot had failed; so, to save their comrades,
-as they believed, the Thebans released their prisoners, recrossed the
-Asopus, and went back to their own city. Then the Plataeans did a
-cruel and treacherous deed, for they slew two hundred of their Theban
-prisoners.
-
-The Plataeans sent to Athens to ask for help when the Theban army
-appeared without their walls, but the danger was over before help could
-reach them.
-
-Yet, lest the Thebans should return, the women and children were taken
-to Athens for safety, while eighty Athenians were sent to garrison the
-walls of Plataea.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXI
-
-ATTICA IS INVADED BY THE SPARTANS
-
-
-In the month of May 431 B.C. Attica itself was invaded by a large
-Spartan army, under king Archidamus.
-
-Before he crossed the border into Attica the king bade his army halt,
-while he sent an ambassador named Melesippus to the Athenians, to offer
-them terms if they would submit to him. But Pericles persuaded the
-council to refuse even to listen to Melesippus, who had been told to
-return to his own army before the setting of the sun. As he turned away
-from the council, Melesippus said to the Athenians, ‘This day will be
-the beginning of many woes to the Greeks.’
-
-Pericles knew that the Spartans would march into Attica, as soon as
-their ambassador had returned, so he ordered the country folk to hasten
-within the strong walls of Athens for safety. Their cattle he bade them
-send to the island of Euboea.
-
-The Spartans found the Attic farms deserted, but they destroyed and
-burned them, while they trampled down the cornfields and spoiled the
-olive groves and orchards.
-
-As the invading army drew nearer to Athens, the people within the city
-walls could mark its progress by the smoke that rose from burning farms
-and villas. The men rushed to the gates, eager to go to attack the
-enemy, and it was all but beyond the power of Pericles to restrain them.
-
-As winter drew near, Archidamus was forced to retreat, for he had
-neither money nor food to keep his troops longer in the country of the
-enemy.
-
-Then Pericles, knowing that the way was clear, sailed from Athens with
-thirteen thousand men, and surprised many villages on the Peloponnesian
-coast. He also burned the farms and houses in the district of Megara.
-
-When Pericles returned from Megara, a public burial was given, as was
-the custom, to those who had been slain in battle.
-
-A cedar box, in which were placed the bones of the fallen, was carried
-without the walls of the city and buried. For those whose bodies had
-not been recovered, there was an empty bed covered with a pall. The
-funeral oration, or Panegyric as it was named, was spoken by Pericles.
-
-Here are a few of the sentences which Thucydides, the historian, heard,
-as he stood among the people and listened to the Panegyric.
-
-‘Our city is equally admirable in peace and in war. For we are lovers
-of the beautiful, yet simple in our tastes, and we cultivate the
-mind without loss of manliness. Wealth we employ, not for talk and
-ostentation, but when there is real use for it. To avow poverty is with
-us no disgrace; the true disgrace is in doing nothing to avoid it.
-
-‘An Athenian citizen does not neglect the State because he takes care
-of his own household; and even those of us who are engaged in business
-have a very fair idea of politics. We alone regard a man who takes
-no interest in public affairs, not as harmless, but as a useless
-character....
-
-‘I would have you day by day fix your eyes upon the greatness of
-Athens until you become filled with the love of her; and when you are
-impressed with the spectacle of her glory, reflect that this empire has
-been acquired by men who knew their duty and had the courage to do it
-... they freely gave their lives to her as the fairest offering which
-they could present at her feast. The whole earth is the sepulchre of
-famous men; not only are they commemorated by columns and inscriptions
-in their own country, but in foreign lands there dwells also an
-unwritten memorial of them, graven, not on stone, but in the hearts of
-men. Make them your example.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXII
-
-THE LAST WORDS OF PERICLES
-
-
-When the Spartans marched out of Attica, the country folk left the
-sheltering walls of Athens to go back to their fields, to dig, to
-plough, to sow.
-
-They hoped in due time to reap a plenteous harvest, for their last
-year’s crops had been destroyed by the enemy. But before the corn was
-ripe they knew their hopes were vain. The Spartans had come back, and
-once again the people were forced to leave their fields and take refuge
-within the walls of the capital.
-
-But in the city itself an enemy appeared, an enemy that worked more
-dreadful havoc than even the Spartan army. The plague had come to
-Athens. It spread rapidly, for the people were crowded together, some
-in sheds, some in tents, and these rough shelters were not kept clean.
-Squalor and lack of room added to the misery of the sick folk.
-
-Thousands of those who had fled for safety to the city were stricken by
-the plague, and at first few recovered. For fear seized upon those whom
-the plague spared and they left the sick untended, to die, tortured by
-thirst, and alone.
-
-At length even the Spartans grew afraid, lest upon them too the plague
-should fall, and they again withdrew from Attica.
-
-Then Pericles sailed to Peloponnesus and attacked the enemy in its
-own country, but with little or no success. But in Thrace, the town
-of Potidaea, which had been besieged by the Athenians for a year, was
-forced to surrender.
-
-No breach had been made in the walls, but the famine-stricken people
-could no longer bear the pangs of hunger, nor had they strength left to
-defend their city.
-
-The Athenians allowed the miserable inhabitants to leave Potidaea, but
-the men were forbidden to take anything with them save one garment,
-while the women were permitted to take two. Before long Athenian
-families were sent to settle in Potidaea, which then became a colony
-belonging to Athens.
-
-During the war the popularity of Pericles began to wane. It was he who
-had advised the Athenians to carry on war with the Spartans, and they
-now accused him of causing all the misery which they had to endure.
-
-While he was absent with the fleet in 430 B.C., Cleon, the head of
-those who were opposed to Pericles, tried to make peace with the enemy,
-but his efforts were in vain.
-
-Cleon was determined, if it were possible, to cause the downfall of
-Pericles. So when he returned to Athens, he accused him of using public
-money for his own ends.
-
-When the public accounts were examined a small sum was missing and
-Pericles was fined by the law courts, but no stain was left on his
-character.
-
-The Athenians were a fickle people, and before long they forgot their
-anger and Pericles found himself as popular as ever. They were even
-eager to carry on the war with Sparta.
-
-Once before Pericles had been attacked by his enemies. He was accused,
-along with Pheidias the sculptor, of having kept some of the gold which
-was intended to adorn the statue of Athene in the Parthenon. But it was
-easy to prove that the charge was false, for the gold had been fixed to
-the statue in such a way that it could be easily detached.
-
-Pericles demanded that this should be done, so that the gold might be
-weighed. His enemies could not refuse the test. So the gold was taken
-off the statue, weighed, and found to be correct.
-
-Against Pheidias there were other charges, one being that in the frieze
-of the Parthenon there were sculptured portraits of himself and
-Pericles. In 432 B.C. the great sculptor was thrown into prison, where
-he died before the day fixed for his trial.
-
-The plague, which had disappeared for a year, broke out again in 429
-B.C. with new violence.
-
-Pericles had already lost two sons through the terrible scourge. When
-Paralus, his favourite child, died, he placed a garland upon his body,
-and shut himself in his house to mourn. Nor could he be persuaded
-afterward to take much interest in the affairs of the State.
-
-A year later, he was himself stricken by the plague. He recovered, but
-was soon after attacked by fever which he was too weak to resist.
-
-As he lay dying, his friends gathered around his bed. Thinking that he
-did not hear what they said, they began to speak to one another of the
-great things he had done during his life.
-
-But Pericles heard, and interrupting them said, ‘What you praise in me
-is partly the result of good fortune, and, at all events, common to
-me with many other commanders. What I am most proud of, you have not
-noticed. No Athenian ever put on mourning for an act of mine!’ These
-were his last words.
-
-Plutarch tells us that ‘Pericles was indeed a character deserving our
-high admiration, not only for his equitable and mild temper, but also
-for the high spirit and feeling which made him regard it the noblest of
-all his honours, that, in the exercise of such immense power, he never
-had treated any enemy as irreconcilably opposed to him. And it appears
-to me,’ says Plutarch, ‘that this one thing gives that otherwise
-childish and arrogant title a fitting and becoming significance; so
-dispassionate a temper, a life so pure and unblemished, might well
-be called Olympian, in accordance with our conceptions of the divine
-beings to whom, as the natural authors of all good and of nothing evil,
-we ascribe the rule and government of the world.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXIII
-
-THE SIEGE OF PLATAEA
-
-
-The Peloponnesian War began with an attack upon the little town of
-Plataea. Two years later, in the early summer of 429 B.C., Plataea was
-again attacked, this time by the Spartans, who were led by their king
-Archidamus. The town, small though it was, was an Athenian fortress, so
-the Spartans were eager to raze it to the ground.
-
-But Plataea stood on sacred territory; for Pausanias, after his great
-victory over the Persians, had declared that in time of war it should
-ever be left undisturbed.
-
-The Plataeans reminded the king of the promise of the Spartan general,
-and begged him to withdraw his troops.
-
-Archidamus would not lead his army away, but he promised to do the
-Plataeans no harm if they would become allies of Sparta, or if they
-would give up their alliance with Athens and fight on neither side. But
-the Plataeans would not agree to either of these plans.
-
-Then the king offered to let them leave the town. He promised that
-their homes, their orchards, their fields would be kept in good order
-as long as the war lasted, and that they would be given back to them
-when peace was made.
-
-It was a generous offer, and the Plataeans begged to be allowed to send
-to Athens to ask her advice. Her answer speedily settled the matter.
-
-‘Athens,’ so ran the message, ‘never deserted her allies, and would
-not now neglect the Plataeans, but succour them with all her might.
-Wherefore the alliance must stand and the attack of the Spartans be
-withstood.’
-
-When Archidamus heard what Athens had said to the Plataeans, he
-determined to besiege the town. The Thebans who were with the Spartan
-army rejoiced that war was to begin, for they were ever bitter enemies
-of the Plataeans.
-
-The little town prepared to defend herself against the enemy, sending
-away the women and children to a place of safety. A hundred women
-slaves only were kept to cook and wash for the garrison, which was
-small. Yet few in number as they were, the doughty citizens withstood
-the attacks of the Spartans for two years.
-
-When Archidamus ordered his men to raise a mound as high as the
-wall around the town, the Plataeans at once added to the height of
-their defences. They also dug beneath the mound of the enemy, and so
-undermined it that it was continually sliding down.
-
-Then lest the walls should at length be scaled by the enemy, the
-citizens built an inner wall to protect the city yet more strongly.
-
-Often the little garrison looked wistfully for the help that Athens had
-assured them would be sent, but month after month passed and no help
-came from the plague-stricken city. Yet the Plataeans did not dream of
-surrender.
-
-Archidamus was in despair, for he knew that his soldiers were seldom
-able to take a walled town. His pride was hurt at the thought of
-being beaten by a mere handful of men. He had with him the whole
-Peloponnesian army, yet a garrison of five hundred had been able to
-defy all his efforts to capture the city.
-
-The king determined, since he could not take the town by assault,
-to starve it into submission. So he now ordered two great walls to
-be built round the city, placing on them here and there towers or
-battlements. The walls were a certain space apart, and this space was
-covered over, so that the soldiers could live in it as in a camp, while
-armed sentinels paced up and down on the roof.
-
-When the second year of the siege began, food grew scarce in Plataea.
-Either the little garrison must force its way out or die of hunger. To
-escape, the soldiers would have to scale the wall, without attracting
-the attention of the sentinels, and reach the ground on the other side.
-
-More than half the garrison resolved to stay where it was, but about
-two hundred determined to make the perilous attempt.
-
-So one cold, dark night in the month of December, when the sentinels
-had retreated into the towers for shelter, the brave two hundred stole
-out of the town, carrying ladders on their backs. They wore little
-clothing, that they might climb and run the easier. That they might
-step the more quietly their right feet were bare, while on the left
-each wore a shoe to keep him from slipping in the mud.
-
-Stealthily they made their way across a ditch and reached the wall
-unseen, unheard. Twelve of the bravest scaled the wall and killed the
-sleepy sentinels, who had sought shelter in the towers from a storm of
-wind and rain.
-
-The others then mounted the wall, fixed their ladders on the farther
-side and reached the ground in safety, while the twelve, who had waited
-to the last, began to descend.
-
-All would have been well, had not one man slipped and knocked a tile
-off the top of the wall. It rattled and fell to the ground with a noise
-that roused the Spartans, who scrambled up the wall in great haste. But
-the darkness was so dense that they could see nothing.
-
-Those of the garrison who had stayed in the city did all that they
-could to perplex the enemy, by making a sally on the side of the town
-farthest from that by which their friends had fled. And when the
-Spartans lit torches and flashed danger signals to the Thebans whose
-city was not far off, the Plataeans lit beacons, so that the signals
-were confused.
-
-Meanwhile the fugitives, having reached the ground in safety, were met
-by a band of three hundred Spartans. These were carrying lights, so the
-Plataeans were able to send a shower of arrows among them with sure
-and deadly aim. In the confusion that followed, all save one archer
-succeeded in crossing a ditch, covered with ice, but too thin to bear
-the weight of the fugitives. They struggled through the icy water, and
-after many narrow escapes two hundred and twelve weary men reached
-Athens in safety.
-
-Plataea held out gallantly until the summer of 427 B.C., when famine at
-length forced her to surrender.
-
-Five judges were sent from Sparta to decide the fate of the prisoners.
-But the trial was a mere form, for the Thebans had already persuaded
-the Spartans how to treat the unfortunate men.
-
-Each prisoner as he was brought before the judges was asked if he
-had helped the Spartans in their war against Athens. As each one
-answered ‘No,’ he was led out and put to death. In this way two hundred
-Plataeans and twenty-five Athenians lost their lives, while the city
-they had so bravely defended was razed to the ground.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXIV
-
-THE SENTENCE OF DEATH
-
-
-In the fourth year of the Peloponnesian War the city of Mytilene threw
-off the yoke of Athens. Mytilene was the capital of Lesbos, an island
-near the coast of Asia. The city had belonged to the Delian league, and
-when the league became the empire of Athens, the city remained faithful
-to the empire. But as time passed the Mytileneans became afraid lest
-Athens should treat them as she had treated the Samians, and should
-make them subjects instead of allies.
-
-While Athens was at war with Sparta she would have little time, thought
-the Mytileneans, to trouble about their small island, so they revolted
-and asked the Spartans to support them, if that should be necessary.
-The Spartans promised to help the Mytileneans if the Athenians should
-punish their disloyalty, but, as so often happened, they did not
-attempt to keep their promise until it was too late.
-
-Athens was angry when she heard of the revolt at Mytilene. Although
-she could ill spare the men, she sent an army under a general named
-Paches to blockade the town by sea and by land and so to starve her
-into submission. At all costs Mytilene must not fall into the hands of
-Sparta.
-
-Before long, so strict was the blockade, food began to run short in
-the hapless island, and the Spartans failed to send the help they had
-promised.
-
-But when the citizens were desperate with hunger, a messenger from
-Sparta reached the town. He had passed the Athenian army unnoticed and
-had entered Mytilene, to the delight of the starving people. When he
-assured them that ships laden with corn were on the way and would reach
-them soon, their joy was unbounded.
-
-Day after day, week after week passed, but the Spartan ships did not
-come, and hope began to die out of the hearts of the Mytileneans. It
-was plain that they must either surrender or starve to death; so they
-determined to surrender.
-
-They sent for Paches, and agreed to give up the city, and to leave
-their fate to be decided by the Athenian assembly. In the meantime
-about one thousand of the inhabitants were sent as prisoners to Athens.
-
-The Athenians had been bitterly angry with the Mytileneans for
-revolting when their hands were already full with war at home and with
-the misery caused by the plague. They were in no mood now to deal
-mercifully with them.
-
-Cleon, a leather-merchant, who by his own efforts had risen to a high
-position in the State, roused the temper of the people by his rough and
-noisy eloquence, and Pericles was no longer alive to restrain it, as he
-had so often done, by his wiser, calmer speech.
-
-When the assembly met, it was Cleon who proposed that all those able
-to bear arms should be put to death, and that the women and children
-should be sold as slaves. In its angry mood the assembly voted as Cleon
-wished.
-
-No sooner was the sentence of death passed, than a ship was despatched
-to the island to bid Paches, the Athenian general, carry out the
-terrible decision of the assembly.
-
-But a little later, when the assembly broke up and escaped from the
-influence of Cleon’s eloquence, the members began to be ashamed of
-their cold-blooded sentence.
-
-Ambassadors from Mytilene had come to Athens to plead the cause of
-their people. When they saw that the Athenians were uneasy, they
-persuaded them to call another meeting of the assembly the following
-morning, to reconsider the sentence that they had passed.
-
-Cleon had felt no regret at the fate of the rebels, and he was
-indignant that the assembly should dream of revoking its decree. When
-it met on the following day he spoke even more vehemently than before,
-urging the members to see that the sentence was carried out.
-
-But Diodotus, a noble Athenian, whose name has never been forgotten,
-spoke as well as Cleon. So wise were his words that those who had
-already wished to alter the sentence for pity’s sake, were now sure
-that wisdom also demanded that the Mytileneans should be spared.
-Diodotus won the day, for Cleon was defeated by a small majority.
-
-No sooner was the sentence revoked than in hot haste a ship was manned,
-and the crew was bidden to do its utmost to overtake the vessel
-which was carrying the sentence of doom to Mytilene. Already it was
-twenty-four hours since the ship had left Athens. Was it possible to
-carry the good news in time?
-
-The ambassadors promised large rewards to the oarsmen if they reached
-the city before the terrible sentence had been carried out. In their
-anxiety they provided barley, wine, oil for the crew.
-
-There was no lack of zeal on the part of the sailors. They rowed with
-all their strength, taking but scant rest, and eating the barley, which
-had been soaked in wine and oil and made into cakes, as they sat at
-their oars. They knew that on their speed depended the life or death of
-thousands.
-
-Swifter and swifter flashed the oars of the second ship. In the first
-vessel the sailors pulled slowly, for they were in no haste to deliver
-the dread tidings which they carried. And it was well that they had no
-heart for their task, for with every muscle strained to the utmost the
-crew of the second boat reached Mytilene only just in time.
-
-The death sentence had already reached Paches, and he was preparing to
-carry it out, when with a glad, triumphant shout the second boat swung
-into the harbour, and the Mytileneans were saved.
-
-But even so they paid heavily for their rebellion, for about thirty
-of their leading citizens were executed, their fleet was taken by the
-Athenians, and the walls of their city were destroyed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXV
-
-BRASIDAS LOSES HIS SHIELD
-
-
-In 425 B.C., the seventh year of the war, an Athenian fleet of about
-forty ships, under an admiral named Eurymedon, was forced by stormy
-weather to seek shelter on the promontory of Pylos in Messenia. Pylos
-stood on the Bay of Pylos, which you now know as the Bay of Navarino.
-
-To give the men something to do until the storm allowed them to sail,
-Demosthenes, an officer on board one of the ships, bade them begin to
-build a fort. But it was not only to employ the men that he did this,
-but because he believed that Pylos would make a good fortress from
-which to attack the western shore of Peloponnesus.
-
-At first the men took little interest in the work, for they expected
-each day to leave Pylos. But as the storm continued, they began to work
-with a will, and soon a fortress that looked fit to defy an enemy was
-finished.
-
-It had not been easy work, for the men had no iron tools. They could
-not cut stones, but were forced to pick out those that fitted into each
-other.
-
-When mortar was needed they had to carry it on their backs, bending
-forward that it might not fall, and clasping their hands behind to help
-to keep it in place.
-
-At length the storm was over and the fleet sailed away, leaving
-Demosthenes with five ships to hold the new fortress. Now the entrance
-to the Bay of Pylos was almost blocked by a narrow, thickly wooded
-island called Sphacteria.
-
-The Spartans soon heard that the Athenians had taken possession of
-Pylos, which was on their territory. They determined to expel them,
-and an army under Epitadas was at once sent out and took possession
-of the wooded island of Sphacteria, while a Spartan fleet sailed into
-the Bay of Pylos. On board one of the ships was a famous Spartan named
-Brasidas.
-
-Demosthenes had just time to send to Eurymedon to beg him to return
-with his forty ships, when the Spartans sailed up to the promontory,
-meaning to attack and capture the fort.
-
-But it proved impossible to land. Again and again the Spartan admiral
-made the attempt, but each time he was forced to withdraw, lest his
-ships should be dashed upon the rocks.
-
-Brasidas refused to give in, and he bade his men wreck their vessels
-rather than be beaten back. ‘Be not sparing of timber,’ he cried, ‘for
-the enemy has built a fortress in your country. Perish the ships and
-force a landing.’
-
-Spurred on by his words, the men drove their ship upon the beach, while
-Brasidas stood fearlessly on the gangway ready to leap upon the shore.
-But the Athenians saw the bold figure too well, and he became a target
-for every arrow.
-
-As he fell back wounded, his left arm hung helpless over the side of
-the vessel and his shield slipped off and fell into the water. The
-waves washed it toward the shore, whereupon the enemy dashed down to
-the edge of the water and drew it in triumph up to the beach.
-
-After a desperate struggle the Spartans were forced to withdraw, and
-the Athenians celebrated their victory by erecting a trophy of their
-spoils, placing, where every eye could see it, the shield of Brasidas.
-
-For two days the Spartans still fought to gain the fortress, but in
-vain. On the third day, Eurymedon returned with the Athenian fleet, and
-as the Spartan ships did not come to meet him he sailed in at the two
-entrances to the bay of Pylos: for the openings had not been secured by
-the enemy.
-
-A desperate battle took place. Many of the Spartan ships were empty,
-as their crews were on shore. The Athenians tried to drag away these
-empty vessels, so that the enemy would have no way of escaping from
-Sphacteria.
-
-But the Spartans knew that they must save their vessels at all costs,
-so they fought with redoubled fury and succeeded in rescuing most of
-the deserted ships. Yet their efforts proved of little use in the end,
-for though only five ships were captured, the rest of the fleet was so
-damaged that the Athenians were left in possession of the bay. They at
-once began to blockade Epitadas and his army in Sphacteria.
-
-[Illustration: He became a target for every arrow]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXVI
-
-THE SPARTANS SURRENDER
-
-
-When Epitadas found that he was shut up on the island of Sphacteria,
-he sent a messenger to Sparta to tell what had befallen him. The
-ephors were so disturbed by his tidings that they at once sent some of
-their number to the Bay of Pylos to see what could be done to set free
-Epitadas and his men.
-
-They soon saw that it would be too difficult a task to relieve the
-island, so they begged Eurymedon to grant a truce until they sent
-ambassadors to Athens to sue for peace.
-
-Their request was granted, and the Spartan ambassadors at once set sail
-for Athens.
-
-When they entered the assembly, Athens, had she but known it, might
-have ended the war with honour. But Pericles was no longer there to
-tell her that to do so would be well. Cleon still ruled the assembly
-with his rough eloquence. Nicias, the leader of those who desired
-peace, although he bitterly disliked Cleon, was not strong enough to
-overthrow him.
-
-The assembly, urged by its leader, offered the Spartan ambassadors
-terms which it knew they would not accept. After rejecting them, as the
-Athenians expected, the ambassadors returned indignant to Pylos, and
-the truce was at an end. But Sphacteria was not taken so easily as the
-Athenians had dreamed. In spite of the strict blockade, food was taken
-to the island, so that the Spartans were in no danger of starving.
-
-Sometimes swimmers carrying with them linseed, poppy seeds and honey,
-reached the island. Sometimes Helots, tempted by promise of freedom,
-would manage, when the sky was dark and the sea stormy, to sail past
-the enemy’s ships, taking cheese, meal and even wine to the Spartans.
-
-In Athens, the people were growing impatient of the long blockade. When
-Demosthenes sent messengers to the city to ask for reinforcements, they
-began to be sorry that they had not offered more reasonable terms to
-the ambassadors. They looked darkly at Cleon, and began to whisper that
-but for his counsel peace would certainly have been made.
-
-A meeting of the assembly was called, and Cleon, losing his temper when
-Nicias urged that peace should be arranged without delay, said, ‘It
-would be easy enough to take Sphacteria if our generals were men. If I
-were general I would do it at once.’
-
-Nicias was a quiet man, but these scornful words roused him to anger,
-and he retorted that if Cleon thought he was able to take the island it
-would be well that he should go and do so. He was himself a general,
-while Cleon was only a leather-merchant, but he was willing to resign
-in his favour.
-
-At first Cleon thought that Nicias was but jesting, and he pretended
-that he really wished to go to the help of Demosthenes. But when he
-found that his opponent was in earnest, he declined the honour, saying
-that while Nicias was a general, he himself had no training in military
-affairs.
-
-But the people were not willing to let the leather-merchant escape the
-consequences of his rash words. They shouted that he must go and prove
-that he could do as he had said.
-
-When Cleon saw that there was no escape he grew reckless, and boasted
-that he would not only go to Sphacteria, but that he would take the
-island within twenty days, and either kill all the Spartans on it or
-bring them prisoners to Athens.
-
-Some there were who mocked at his words, others laughed. But all were
-glad that the merchant should go, for they were tired of his rough
-ways and rougher speech. If he went he might return with his promise
-unfulfilled and his power with the people would then be lost. If he
-came back in triumph, the Spartans would have been defeated.
-
-Before long, Cleon set out at the head of an army for Pylos. When he
-arrived he found Demosthenes already prepared to attack the island.
-
-A large part of the forest on Sphacteria had just been burned down
-by some Athenian soldiers. They had been sent to the island to
-reconnoitre, and while making a fire to cook their dinner the trees
-were accidentally set alight.
-
-The wood had sheltered the Spartans from the enemy, and the fire
-spoiled their chief defence, so that they were the less prepared to
-face the army of nearly fourteen thousand Athenians, which, led by
-Cleon and Demosthenes, now landed on the island.
-
-Outnumbered as the Spartans were, for their army consisted of only
-about four hundred and twenty soldiers and the same number of Helots,
-they fought bravely as was their custom.
-
-But the arrows of the Athenians soon greatly reduced their number,
-while to add to the distress of the wounded, as well as of those who
-had escaped, the ground over which they marched was hot with still
-smouldering ashes of burnt wood.
-
-At length Epitadas, the Spartan general, was slain, and the few
-soldiers who were still able to fight retreated to a hill on which was
-an old ruined fort. Here they took their stand, determined to keep the
-enemy at bay. And they did so until the Athenians found a path up a
-steep crag, from the top of which they could command the Spartan fort.
-
-Unseen by the brave defenders, the enemy scaled the almost precipitous
-path, and when they reached the top they at once began to shoot arrows
-down upon the startled soldiers.
-
-But soon Cleon bade them stay their arrows while he sent a herald to
-the Spartans to bid them surrender.
-
-Spartan troops had never yet yielded to a foe. Ever they had conquered
-or fought to the death. Cleon believed that now, as their brave fellows
-at Thermopylae had done, they would rather die than yield.
-
-But the Spartans dropped their shields and waved their hands above
-their heads to show that they would cease to fight. They begged to
-be allowed to ask the advice of their friends on the mainland. Their
-request was granted, and their friends bade them ‘to take counsel for
-themselves, but to do nothing disgraceful.’
-
-Two hundred and ninety-two Spartans, who were all that were still
-alive on Sphacteria, then surrendered, one hundred and twenty of these
-belonging to the noblest families in Sparta. Never after this surrender
-were the Spartans considered invincible.
-
-Cleon was now able to return to Athens, which he reached within twenty
-days from the time he left the city, bringing with him, as he had
-boasted that he would do, his Spartan prisoners.
-
-The Athenians rejoiced at the success of their army, but they laughed
-as they thought of the strange general who had led it to victory.
-
-As for the prisoners, they were glad to hold them as hostages. The
-Spartans would be less likely to invade Attica while their comrades
-were in Athens.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXVII
-
-BRASIDAS THE SPARTAN
-
-
-The Athenians were encouraged by the victory they had gained at
-Sphacteria to hope for still greater success to their arms, and in 424
-B.C. they marched boldly into the country of Boeotia. At Delium they
-seized and fortified a temple, sacred to Apollo.
-
-Now the Boeotians were indignant with the Athenians for invading their
-land, but they were still more angry that they had dared to enter their
-temple. They at once marched against the enemy and defeated them with
-great loss, but the temple was still left in the hands of the Athenians.
-
-As was the custom in those days, the defeated generals asked the
-victors to allow them to bury their comrades who had fallen on the
-battlefield. But the Boeotians answered ‘When you give us back our
-temple you shall bury your dead.’
-
-The Athenians refused to do this, saying that Delium, the site on which
-the temple stood, belonged to Attica, and they had a right to stay in
-their own land.
-
-‘If you are in your own land,’ retorted the Boeotians, ‘do as you wish
-without asking our consent.’ It was easy to say this, for they knew
-that the defeated army was not strong enough to defy them.
-
-When the invaders still refused to leave the temple, the Boeotians
-determined to drive them away by setting fire to the wooden barricades
-with which the Athenians had fortified the temple.
-
-So they took a large beam of wood, and scooping out the centre made
-it into a hollow tube. To one end they fastened, by an iron chain, a
-huge caldron. In the caldron they placed charcoal and sulphur, while to
-the other end of the tube they tied bellows, by which a strong current
-of air could be blown through to the other end. When this was done the
-charcoal and the sulphur in the caldron were fanned into a great blaze,
-and the fortifications of the temple were soon on fire.
-
-The Athenians tried to quench the flames in vain, and at length they
-were forced to flee, leaving the temple to the triumphant Boeotians,
-who no longer refused to let them bury their comrades.
-
-The defeat of Delium was followed by many other disasters, and was the
-beginning of the downfall of the empire of Athens.
-
-Meanwhile Brasidas had recovered from the wound that he had received at
-Pylos.
-
-Never had there been so strange a Spartan as Brasidas. His countrymen
-spoke as little as possible, and what they did say they said in a
-brief, concise manner. In later days such short, pithy speech was
-termed laconic. This name was used because Sparta was also called
-Laconia. But Brasidas was not laconic, he spoke quickly and with ease,
-and while his comrades liked to do things in the way their fathers had
-done, Brasidas loved new ways and bold adventures.
-
-Spartans were seldom liked by strangers, for they were rough, often
-even discourteous in their manner; but Brasidas had winning ways, and
-wherever he went he made friends. He was not only pleasant, he was also
-just, and strangers soon learned that his word could be trusted.
-
-This was the man who was now sent with an army through Thessaly. The
-country was for the most part loyal to Athens, yet the Spartans reached
-Macedon unhindered.
-
-Brasidas had been told that the city of Acanthus was ready to fling
-open her gates to him, but he found them guarded. He asked to be
-allowed to enter that he might tell the people why he had come to their
-city, and they, won by his kind and simple manner, admitted him.
-
-His first words pleased them, for he told them that he knew how
-powerful they were, and that if they refused to throw off their
-allegiance to Athens many other cities would be encouraged by their
-example.
-
-If they would trust themselves to Sparta, he promised that their city
-should be free. ‘But should you refuse,’ and his voice grew stern, ‘and
-say that I have no right to force an alliance on a people against its
-will, I will ravage your land, and force you to consent. And for two
-reasons will I do this. The tribute you pay to Athens injures Sparta by
-making her foe stronger, and your example will make other cities resist
-the claims of Sparta.’
-
-The Acanthians were afraid that Brasidas would fulfil his threat and
-destroy their fields, and trample on their grapes which were now ripe
-and ready to pluck, so they determined to trust Sparta and throw off
-their allegiance to Athens.
-
-Brasidas was pleased, for, as he had foreseen, other cities quickly
-followed the example of Acanthus.
-
-Encouraged by his success the Spartan general now determined to attack
-Amphipolis, an important town in Thrace, standing on the bank of the
-river Strymon.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXVIII
-
-AMPHIPOLIS SURRENDERS TO BRASIDAS
-
-
-Amphipolis belonged to the Athenians, who had sent Thucydides and
-Eucles to guard the city lest it should be attacked by the Spartans.
-Thucydides had not only the city but a large district also to protect,
-and he was at this time stationed with his troops at some distance from
-Amphipolis, while Eucles was in the city itself.
-
-The bridge over the Strymon, which led to the city, was carelessly
-guarded. So when, on a cold and wintry day, Brasidas reached the
-river, he took the bridge without difficulty, making prisoners the few
-soldiers who held it.
-
-Messengers were at once sent to Thucydides to tell him that the
-Spartans had seized the bridge, and to beg him to come as quickly as
-possible to protect the city. Before the day was over, Thucydides had
-reached Eion, at the mouth of the Strymon. But his speed was of no
-avail, for Amphipolis had already surrendered, tempted by the easy
-terms that Brasidas had offered.
-
-When the Athenians heard that the city was lost, they were indignant
-with Thucydides, and chiefly through the influence of Cleon, who
-disliked him, he was sent into exile.
-
-The punishment was severe, but Thucydides was not idle during his
-banishment. He travelled from place to place, and everywhere he went
-he paid great attention to the ways of the people and to the manner
-in which their cities were governed. He himself wrote, ‘Associating
-with both sides, with the Peloponnesians quite as much as with the
-Athenians, because of my exile, I was thus enabled to watch quietly the
-course of events.’
-
-After having studied the ‘course of events,’ Thucydides began to write
-about the Peloponnesian war, and he became the greatest of all the
-historians of Greece.
-
-After the surrender of Amphipolis in 424 B.C., city after city forsook
-its allegiance to Athens. Scione did not even wait for the Spartans
-to demand admission, they opened their gates and begged Brasidas to
-enter. His presence pleased the people well, and when he had spoken to
-them their enthusiasm knew no bounds. They sent for a crown of gold
-and placed it on his head, calling him the ‘liberator of Hellas.’ Many
-of the people, too, cast garlands over him as they were used to do to
-victors at a race.
-
-Until now Brasidas had fought loyally for the sake of his country, but
-after the crown of gold had rested on his head he grew more ambitious
-to win fame for himself than glory for his country. It was his ambition
-that made him now do all that he could to keep Sparta from making peace
-with Athens, as she wished to do.
-
-Cleon, too, was eager that the war should continue, not in order to win
-renown for himself, but rather that Athens might regain the empire that
-Brasidas was snatching from her grasp.
-
-Two years after the surrender of Amphipolis, Cleon urged the Athenians
-to make an effort to retake the city. His rough eloquence persuaded
-them to undertake the task. He was himself appointed general, and was
-sent to Thrace at the head of a large army.
-
-As he marched through the country he took several towns before he
-reached Eion, at the mouth of the river Strymon.
-
-Here he halted, meaning to wait for reinforcements. But his soldiers
-had little respect for their general. Was he not after all only a
-leather-merchant? What could he know about war? And they clamoured to
-be led at once against the enemy. Cleon did not dare to refuse to do
-as his army wished, and he ordered his whole force to march toward
-Amphipolis to find out the strength of the enemy.
-
-Brasidas was encamped with his army on the top of a hill, near to the
-city, from which he could watch every movement of the enemy.
-
-When he saw the Athenians approaching, he ordered his men to march into
-the town where the Spartan Clearidas was now governor.
-
-Cleon at once supposed that Brasidas had taken shelter within the walls
-of Amphipolis so as to avoid a battle. Feeling no longer anxious, he
-left his army near the city, but not drawn up ready for battle, and
-himself rode carelessly forward to look at the surrounding country.
-
-Meanwhile some Athenian soldiers heard the restless movement of men and
-horses within the walls, others looking under the gates saw many feet
-gathering together. It was clear that preparations were being made by
-the Spartans to sally out and attack them.
-
-A messenger was sent in haste to find Cleon. The general no sooner
-heard the report than he hurried back to his army, and commanded it at
-once to retreat toward Eion. To do this the Athenians had to march past
-Amphipolis with their right sides unprotected, for their shields were
-carried always on their left arm, which was now the farthest from the
-walls of the city.
-
-The men had no confidence in their general, and they began to retreat
-in disorder. From within the city, Brasidas was watching with keen eyes
-the movements of the enemy. Suddenly he cried, ‘These men will never
-withstand our onset. Look at their quivering spears and nodding heads.
-Men who are going to fight never march in such a fashion as this. Open
-the gates at once that I may rush on them forthwith.’
-
-So the gates of the city were flung open and out dashed Brasidas
-followed by his men, as he charged right into the centre of the
-Athenian army. The left wing, seized with panic, fled. Clearidas
-meanwhile led a body of men against the right wing, and a fierce
-struggle followed.
-
-Cleon, less at home on a battlefield than in the assembly at Athens,
-grew frightened at the unusual sights and sounds, and fled, leaving his
-army without a leader. As he fled an arrow pierced him and he fell to
-the ground, wounded to death.
-
-Brasidas also, as he turned to go to the help of Clearidas, was
-wounded. His followers carried him within the walls of the city. He
-lived long enough to know that the Athenians were utterly defeated.
-
-The people of Amphipolis had learned to love Brasidas, and he was
-buried with great splendour in the market-place. A temple was built to
-his honour, and every year sacrifices were offered and games were held
-in memory of the brave soldier.
-
-So deep was the affection of the people that they determined to forget
-that their city had been founded by an Athenian, and henceforth to
-count Brasidas the Spartan the true founder of Amphipolis.
-
-As Cleon and Brasidas were both dead, the peace party, with Nicias at
-its head, was able to arrange terms with the king of Sparta, and in
-spring, 421 B.C., the Peace of Nicias was signed. The first part of the
-Peloponnesian War, which had begun ten years before, was ended.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXIX
-
-ALCIBIADES THE FAVOURITE OF ATHENS
-
-
-The Peace of Nicias, which was made for fifty years, did not last more
-than six. Thucydides tells us that it did not really last even so long.
-For although for six years neither Spartans nor Athenians invaded each
-other’s land, yet they did as much harm as they could to one another.
-
-‘So that,’ says the wise historian, ‘if any one objects to consider it
-a time of war, he will not be estimating it rightly.’
-
-Almost as soon as peace was signed, Sparta and the State of Argos
-quarrelled. Each wished to get help from Athens, so each sent
-ambassadors to her. The Argives boldly begged Athens to join them
-against Sparta; the Spartans were content to remind her that she had
-signed the Peace of Nicias.
-
-In Athens at this time there was a rich young noble named Alcibiades,
-who wished the Athenians to make an alliance with the Argives.
-
-But the Spartan ambassadors had already been welcomed by the Athenians,
-because they had come with full power to arrange fair terms. Alcibiades
-was as determined as he was angry. To gain what he wished he resolved
-to play a trick on the Spartan ambassadors. So he went to them in
-secret, and told them how foolish they had been to tell the Athenians
-what great powers they had, for the assembly would certainly wrest from
-them more than they wished to give.
-
-‘When the assembly meets, tell the people,’ said Alcibiades, ‘that you
-have no power, but that you will send their demands to the Spartan
-council. I will support you and all will be well, for you will have
-time to think over their wishes.’
-
-The ambassadors thought that the young noble knew better than they
-how his countrymen should be treated, and they promised to follow his
-advice.
-
-So when the assembly met the next day, the Spartans declared that they
-had come only to report what the Athenians should say, that they had no
-power to arrange terms until they had heard from their own council.
-
-No sooner had they spoken than Alcibiades jumped to his feet, and to
-the dismay of the ambassadors he pointed to them with scorn, saying,
-‘These men say one thing one day, and another thing the next day; they
-are not to be trusted. Let us refuse to have anything more to do with
-them.’
-
-The Athenians at once agreed with Alcibiades that it was useless to
-treat with such unreliable ambassadors, and they then made an alliance
-with the Argives.
-
-When the Spartans reached their own country they told how they had
-been deceived by Alcibiades, and how rudely they had been treated by
-the assembly. And this, as well as the alliance which the Athenians
-had made with the Argives, was the cause of the second part of the
-Peloponnesian War.
-
-The Spartans were thirsting to avenge the battle of Sphacteria, and to
-wipe out the memory of their surrender. When they met the Athenians in
-418 B.C. at Mantinea they fought with the courage and the fierceness
-that had made them invincible until the fatal day of Sphacteria.
-
-Alcibiades, whose trick had been the cause of so much mischief, was the
-son of an Athenian, named Clinias.
-
-While Alcibiades was still young his father died, and Pericles became
-one of his guardians. He was a beautiful baby, a handsome boy, and when
-he grew to be a man he was so brave and so winning in his ways that he
-made friends very easily.
-
-But he made enemies as well as friends, for he was wild and wayward,
-while his pride often made him behave with scant courtesy even to those
-whom he should have treated with reverence and respect.
-
-Staid, sensible folk were shocked at his careless, extravagant ways.
-Nicias distrusted him. But the citizens loved him and forgave him much,
-for he spent his wealth freely among them, and often entertained them
-with public shows.
-
-‘They love and hate and cannot do without him,’ wrote Aristophanes, as
-he watched the Athenians now cherishing, now chiding, their favourite.
-
-One day, he was a mere lad at the time, he was wrestling with a
-playmate, when, thinking he was going to be thrown, he suddenly bit his
-companion’s hand with all his strength. His friend quickly let go his
-hold, crying, ‘You bite, Alcibiades, like a woman.’
-
-‘No,’ answered the boy, ‘like a lion.’
-
-Another day he was throwing dice in the street with his playmates, when
-a wagon pulled by two horses approached. It was the turn of Alcibiades
-to throw, and he shouted to the driver to stop, but the man paid no
-heed to the boy and drove on. The other children scampered out of the
-way, but the wilful little noble flung himself down in front of the
-horses and cried to the driver to go on now if he pleased.
-
-Afraid lest he should hurt the boy the man at once pulled up his
-horses, while those who had been looking on in terror rushed forward
-and dragged the foolish little fellow out of danger. But Alcibiades had
-made the driver pull up and he was content.
-
-His want of self-control became greater as he grew older. When he was
-at a grammar school he one day asked the schoolmaster to lend him one
-of Homer’s books. The master said that he did not possess it, whereupon
-the rude boy struck him and then turned and walked away. Some years
-later he struck a citizen whose talent in the theatre had outshone his
-own.
-
-When he was a young man he walked into the assembly with a pet quail
-hidden under his cloak. This would have raised a storm of indignation
-had it been done by anyone else.
-
-In the law court one of Alcibiades’ friends was accused, when the
-favourite at once seized the writ and tore it in pieces before the face
-of the judge.
-
-The young nobleman was rich, and much of his wealth he spent on horses.
-He sent seven chariots to the Olympic games, and once, to the great
-delight of the Athenians, their favourite won the first, second, and
-third prizes.
-
-Euripides, the poet, sang of the triumph of Alcibiades in these lines:
-
- ‘But my song to you,
- Son of Clinias, is due.
- Victory is noble; how much more
- To do as never Greek before;
- To obtain in the great chariot race
- The first, the second, and third place;
- With easy step advanced to fame,
- To bid the herald three times claim
- The olive for one victor’s name.’
-
-At one time Alcibiades owned a very large, handsome dog, for which he
-had paid an enormous price. He ordered his tail, which Plutarch tells
-us was ‘his principal ornament,’ to be cut off.
-
-His friends said that it was a stupid deed, and told him that every
-one in Athens was angry that he had spoiled the noble appearance of
-his dog. But Alcibiades only laughed, saying, ‘Just what I wanted has
-happened then. I wished the Athenians to talk about this, that they
-might not say something worse of me.’
-
-It was natural that so reckless and generous a youth should be
-surrounded by a crowd of flatterers, ready to applaud his foolish and
-sometimes insolent acts.
-
-But Alcibiades had no love for these careless admirers, although he
-would spend hours with them at feasts and revels. His affection he gave
-to one whom you would scarcely have expected the gay young nobleman to
-notice--to Socrates, the great philosopher and teacher of Athens.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXX
-
-SOCRATES THE PHILOSOPHER
-
-
-Socrates was born in 469 B.C. He was not a noble like Alcibiades, but
-a man of humble birth. Nor was he handsome as was his disciple, but
-plain, even ugly, the people said. He was small, too, and dressed with
-little care.
-
-If anyone wished to find the philosopher, he knew that he had only to
-go to the market-place or into the streets. Here, from early morning
-until late at night, Socrates was to be seen, and always he was
-talking, talking to all who were willing to listen. And there were ever
-many who were not only willing but eager to hear what the teacher had
-to say, for his words were so wise, his conversations so strange.
-
-Socrates believed that the gods had sent him to teach the Athenians.
-From his boyhood he had heard a voice within him, bidding him to do
-this, not to do that. He often spoke of this voice to those who became
-his disciples. It became known as the dæmon of Socrates.
-
-The philosopher was a soldier as well as a teacher, and his philosophy
-taught him how to endure hardship as well as or even better than could
-the ordinary Athenian.
-
-In heat or in cold he wore the same clothing, and in all weathers he
-walked with bare feet. He ate little and drank less whether he was in
-the camp or in the city.
-
-Xanthippe, the wife of Socrates, had not a good temper, and she would
-often scold the philosopher. That may have been because while he was
-teaching wisdom in the market-place, Xanthippe was at home wondering
-how to provide food for her husband and their children with the few
-coins she possessed. Socrates was never paid by his disciples, and so
-it often happened that Xanthippe found it difficult to get food and
-clothing for her household.
-
-The philosopher taught for many years, but at length, in 399 B.C., his
-enemies accused him of speaking against the gods of Athens. He had
-even dared, so they said, to speak of new gods whom the people should
-worship, and that was a crime worthy of death.
-
-Socrates took little trouble to defend himself against the accusations
-of his enemies. His dæmon, he said, would not allow him to plead for
-his life. So he was condemned to death, but only by a majority of five
-or six votes out of six hundred.
-
-For thirty days Socrates was in prison, and he spent the time
-in talking to his friends just as he had been used to do in the
-market-place.
-
-One of his disciples, named Crito, bribed the jailer to allow his
-prisoner to escape, but Socrates refused to flee. He did not fear
-death, but faced it calmly as he had faced life.
-
-On the day before the sentence was carried out, he talked quietly to
-his disciples of the life to which he was going, for he believed that
-his soul, which was his real self, would live after he had laid aside
-his body as a garment.
-
-When the cup of hemlock, a poisoned draught, was brought to him, his
-friends wept, but he took the cup in his hand, and drank the contents
-as though it were a draught of wine.
-
-His last words to Crito were to remind him to pay a debt. ‘Crito, we
-owe a cock to Asclepius,’ he said. ‘Discharge the debt and by no means
-omit it.’ Asclepius was the god of medicine, and in this way Socrates
-showed his reverence for the religious customs of his country.
-
-[Illustration: He drank the contents as though it were a draught of
-wine]
-
-This was the man who found in Alcibiades, despite his wild ways, a
-noble mind and a kind heart. These he determined to educate. And
-his pupil was quick to see that Socrates spoke truth to him. He soon
-learned to appreciate his kindness and to stand in awe of his virtue.
-Sometimes, indeed, the words of his master ‘overcame him so much as to
-draw tears from his eyes, and to disturb his very soul.’
-
-So dear did the philosopher become to Alcibiades that he often lived
-in the same tent with him and shared his simple meals. Yet sometimes
-he was tempted by his flatterers when they begged him to come to spend
-the days in pleasure and the nights in feasting. Then he would yield to
-their entreaties and for a while desert and even avoid his master.
-
-But the philosopher did not leave his pupil unchecked to do as he
-wished. He ‘would pursue him as if he had been a fugitive slave.... He
-reduced and corrected him by his addresses, and made him humble and
-modest, by showing him in how many things he was deficient, and how
-very far from perfection in virtue.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXI
-
-ALCIBIADES PRAISES SOCRATES
-
-
-One of the most famous disciples of Socrates was Plato. He loved his
-master well, and wrote down many of his conversations, so that his
-words may still be read.
-
-In a book, named the _Symposium_, Plato tells us that Socrates and his
-friends met at a banquet one day and spoke to each other in praise of
-love.
-
-When it came to Alcibiades’ turn to speak, he was eager to tell of the
-love he had for Socrates. He began by begging the others not to laugh
-if he said first of all that Socrates was like the images of the god
-Silenus, which they had often seen in the shops of Athens.
-
-Now Silenus was a satyr, a strange figure that was half man, half goat.
-In his mouth were pipes and flutes upon which he played, while his
-images were made to open, and within each might be seen the figure of a
-god.
-
-As the gay company thought of the uncouth figure of the satyr, at which
-they had often stared in shop windows, they could not but laugh at
-Alcibiades for comparing his master to such an image.
-
-But when the young nobleman went on to speak of the god that was hidden
-in Socrates, just as the image of one was concealed in the body of the
-satyr, it may be that the laughter of the gay company was hushed. For
-in truth the disciple could say no greater thing about the master he
-loved than this, that within him he bore the likeness of a god.
-
-But Silenus was not the only satyr that reminded Alcibiades of his
-master. Marsyas, a wonderful flute-player also made him think of
-Socrates. For, said Alcibiades, ‘Are you not a flute-player, Socrates?
-That you are, and a far more wonderful performer than Marsyas. He
-indeed with instruments used to charm the souls of men by the power of
-his breath. But you produce the same effect with your voice only, and
-do not require the flute; that is the difference between you and him.’
-
-Pericles, and other great Athenian orators, Alcibiades had heard, he
-said, unmoved, while Socrates’ words, ‘even at second hand and however
-imperfectly repeated, amaze and possess the souls of every man, woman
-and child who comes within hearing of them.’
-
-Alcibiades then told his astonished listeners how his master’s
-eloquence held him as with chains of gold.
-
-‘This Marsyas,’ he says, ‘has often brought me to such a pass that I
-have felt as if I could hardly endure the life which I am leading ...
-and I am conscious that if I did not shut my ears against him, and
-fly from the voice of the siren, he would detain me until I grew old,
-sitting at his feet. For he makes me confess that I ought not to live
-as I do, neglecting the wants of my own soul, and busying myself with
-the concerns of the Athenians; therefore I hold my ears and tear myself
-away from him.’
-
-So greatly did the words of Socrates disturb Alcibiades that sometimes
-he even wished that his master were dead and could trouble him no more,
-and ‘yet I know,’ he adds quickly, ‘that I should be much more sorry
-than glad if he were to die; so that I am at my wit’s end.’
-
-But it was not only his master’s eloquence that Alcibiades praised
-before the gay company of revellers, it was his deeds as well.
-
-During the Peloponnesian War both Socrates and Alcibiades were present
-at the siege of Potidæa.
-
-‘There we messed together,’ said Alcibiades, ‘and I had the opportunity
-of observing his extraordinary power of sustaining fatigue and going
-without food. In the faculty of endurance he was superior not only to
-me, but to everybody; there was no one to be compared to him, yet at a
-festival he was the only person who had any real power of enjoyment.’
-
-‘Cold, too,’ Alcibiades said, ‘Socrates could bear without flinching.
-The winter at Potidæa was severe, the frost intense. The Athenian
-soldiers stayed indoors when they could; when they were forced to be
-out they put on as many extra clothes as they could find, their feet
-they swathed in felt and fleeces.’
-
-But Socrates, ‘with his bare feet on the ice and in his ordinary dress,
-marched better than the other soldiers who had shoes, and they looked
-daggers at him, because he seemed to despise them.’
-
-Yet another tale of his endurance Alcibiades told to the listening
-company.
-
-‘One morning,’ he said, ‘Socrates was thinking about something which he
-could not resolve; he would not give it up, but continued thinking from
-early dawn until noon--there he stood, fixed in thought; and at noon
-attention was drawn to him, and the rumour ran through the wondering
-crowd that Socrates had been standing and thinking about something ever
-since the break of day. At last, in the evening, after supper, some
-Ionians out of curiosity (it was now summer) brought out their mats
-and slept in the open air that they might watch him, and see whether
-he would stand all night. There he stood all night until the following
-morning, and with the return of light he offered up a prayer to the sun
-and went his way.’
-
-Not even yet had Alcibiades exhausted the praises of his master, and
-the gay company listened spell-bound and bewildered to the young noble.
-They had not guessed how well he loved, how gravely he had studied the
-words and ways of Socrates. Now it was of the courage of his master
-that he wished to tell, for Socrates had saved his life in battle.
-
-‘This was,’ said Alcibiades, ‘the engagement in which I received the
-prize of valour; for I was wounded and he would not leave me, but he
-rescued me and my arms; and he ought to have received the prize of
-valour which the generals wanted to confer on me, partly on account of
-my rank, and I told them so (this Socrates will not impeach or deny),
-but he was more eager than the general that I and not he should have
-the prize.’
-
-When the Athenians fled after the defeat of Delium, the young nobleman
-was on horseback, and being himself safe, he watched Socrates, who was
-among the foot-soldiers.
-
-‘There you might see him,’ said Alcibiades, ‘just as he is in the
-streets of Athens, stalking like a pelican, and rolling his eyes,
-calmly contemplating enemies as well as friends, and making very
-intelligible to anybody even from a distance that whoever attacked him
-would be likely to meet with a stout resistance; and in this way he and
-his companions escaped.’
-
-With one more tribute to his master, Alcibiades ended his discourse on
-love:
-
-‘His absolute unlikeness to any human being that is or ever has been is
-perfectly astonishing. His are the only words which have a meaning in
-them, and also the most divine, ... extending to the whole duty of a
-good and honourable man. This, friends, is my praise of Socrates.’
-
-You will be glad to know that Socrates valued the love of his disciple
-and returned it.
-
-‘I only love you,’ said the philosopher, ‘whereas other men love what
-belongs to you; and your beauty, which is not you, is fading away, just
-as your true self is beginning to bloom. And I will never desert you,
-if you are not spoiled and deformed by the Athenian people: for the
-danger which I most fear is that you will become a lover of the people,
-and will be spoiled by them. Many a noble Athenian has been ruined in
-this way.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXII
-
-THE IMAGES OF HERMES ARE DESTROYED
-
-
-In the island of Sicily there were many different states. In some
-of these dwelt Greeks who owned Corinth as their mother-city. Trade
-between Sicily and Corinth was good, and because of this Corinth was
-growing more powerful than Athens liked.
-
-War broke out in 416 B.C. between Segesta and Selinus, two cities in
-the west of Sicily. When Selinus was joined by another town named
-Syracuse, the Segestans in dismay sent to the Athenians to ask for
-their help.
-
-It had long been the ambition of Alcibiades to conquer Sicily. He
-believed, too, that it would add to the glory of Athens if the island
-became part of the Athenian empire.
-
-So he now urged the assembly to send a fleet to Sicily, reminding them
-that if it could conquer Syracuse, it would then be in its power to
-ruin the trade of Corinth with Sicily.
-
-He did not tell the Athenians how great his ambitions were, but he told
-them enough to make them wish to help the Segestans, that they might in
-this way gain new territory for Athens.
-
-The assembly made up its mind to send ambassadors to Segesta, to find
-out if the town was able, as she said she was, to provide money to
-carry on the war, if the Athenians provided soldiers.
-
-When the ambassadors returned in the spring of 415 B.C. they brought
-back with them a sum of money from the grateful Segestans. They
-reported, too, that the wealth of the city was far greater than they
-had dreamed. But although the ambassadors did not know until too late,
-they had been deceived by the townsfolk.
-
-For the rich plate and splendid ornaments with which the Segestans had
-adorned each feast to which the ambassadors had been invited, were
-taken secretly from house to house. So that the gold and silver dishes
-that dazzled the eyes of the Athenians were always the same, although
-they believed that each of their hosts owned the splendid dishes with
-which his table was laden.
-
-The sacred treasures of their temples, too, the Segestans pretended
-were of gold, while in reality they were of silver.
-
-But the ambassadors were convinced that the people they had visited
-were rich, and their report made the Athenians ready to do as
-Alcibiades and his party wished. So it was agreed that sixty vessels
-should be sent to the help of Segesta.
-
-Nicias, bent as ever on peace, did all he could to hinder the
-expedition. But when, in spite of all he could say, the assembly still
-determined to send a fleet to Sicily, he persuaded it at least to
-increase the number of ships from sixty to a hundred. Nicias himself,
-along with Lamachus and Alcibiades, was appointed commander of the
-expedition.
-
-But the night before the fleet was to sail a strange event took place.
-
-All over the city, at the corner of streets, in some niche of a public
-building, in front of the houses of the citizens, stood statues or
-busts of the god Hermes, on short pedestals or pillars.
-
-These figures were reverenced by the Athenians, just as the image
-of the Madonna by the roadside or in villages and towns abroad is
-worshipped by Roman Catholics.
-
-On the night before the expedition the statues of Hermes were chipped
-and broken, so that the god could no longer be recognised.
-
-In the morning as the Athenians went along the streets of the city,
-bent on their usual business, these poor defaced images stared them
-in the face. Little groups gathered at street corners, before public
-buildings, wherever they had been used to see the statues of Hermes. At
-first they gazed at their mutilated god in fear, but fear soon changed
-to anger.
-
-Who had dared to do this impious thing, they asked one another.
-It would surely bring down the wrath of the gods on the Sicilian
-expedition.
-
-It was perhaps natural that the people should suspect their favourite
-Alcibiades. Was he not often reckless and ever a mischief maker? They
-were too excited to remember that he was not likely to do anything to
-delay the expedition on which his heart was set.
-
-When he heard that the people thought that he had defaced the images,
-Alcibiades demanded to be brought to trial. But no proof had yet been
-found of his guilt, and it was decided that the fleet should sail, and
-that Alcibiades should go with it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXIII
-
-ALCIBIADES ESCAPES TO SPARTA
-
-
-A great crowd gathered at the Piræeus to see the fleet set sail for
-Sicily. Groups clustered together, talking eagerly of the new empire
-that was to be won in the West, and the glory that Athens would gain
-from her conquests. It was a noisy, happy crowd.
-
-Suddenly the heralds called for silence, and a hush fell upon the
-light-hearted folk as the priests prayed to the gods for the success of
-the expedition. Sacrifices, too, were offered by officers and sailors
-alike. Then to the strain of a hymn, in which the crowd of onlookers
-joined, the anchors were raised and the fleet sailed slowly away.
-
-When the ships reached Sicily each commander had a different plan to
-propose.
-
-Nicias, having learned how the ambassadors had been deceived, wished
-to sail homewards, without helping the Segestans. Lamachus, a brave,
-blunt soldier, wished to sail at once to Syracuse, and take the city
-by a sudden attack. Alcibiades proposed that they should do nothing
-until they had made allies of those cities that were not friendly to
-Syracuse, and to this plan the other commanders at length agreed.
-
-Meanwhile two ships from Athens had followed Alcibiades to Sicily, for
-the assembly had determined to arrest him, and bring him home to be
-tried for the destruction of the images of Hermes.
-
-Alcibiades went quietly on board one of the ships, but he knew that if
-he went back to Athens he would be condemned to death. So daring a deed
-as the spoiling of their god was more than the Athenians could forgive
-even to their favourite. And there were many who believed he was guilty.
-
-So when the ship reached a seaport town in Italy, Alcibiades slipped
-on shore and escaped from his enemies. In his absence the Athenians
-condemned him to death and confiscated his property, while the curses
-of the gods were called down upon his head.
-
-Alcibiades was very angry when he heard what his countrymen had done,
-and in his wrath he cried, ‘I will make them feel that I am alive.’
-And he fulfilled his threat. For he went at once to the Spartans, the
-enemies of his own country, and told them the plans of the Athenian
-generals. He bade them send a clever general, named Gylippus, with an
-army to Syracuse, to help the city to withstand the attacks of the
-Athenians. He also advised them to build a fort at Decelea, a town in
-Attica, and to send troops there to harass the Athenians as much as
-possible.
-
-To betray his country in this way would have been an unworthy deed for
-any Athenian; it was the more unworthy in Alcibiades, because he had
-learned from Socrates the true meaning of honour and righteousness.
-
-The Spartans were eager to profit by the advice of the traitor, and
-they saw for themselves the wisdom of his words. But in their hearts
-they did not trust the man who had betrayed his country.
-
-Alcibiades stayed in Sparta for some time, and while he was there he
-tried to win the confidence of the people by doing as they did.
-
-‘People who saw him wearing his hair cut close, bathing in cold water,
-eating coarse meal and dining on black broth, doubted or rather could
-not believe that he had ever had a cook in his house, or had even seen
-a perfumer or had worn a mantle of purple.’
-
-It was said that Alcibiades was like a chameleon; because just as it
-can change its colour as it chooses, so could the Athenian change his
-dress and his customs as he willed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXIV
-
-THE SIEGE OF SYRACUSE
-
-
-Nicias and Lamachus now determined to attack Syracuse without delay.
-
-They succeeded in seizing the high ground which joined the town to the
-mainland of Sicily. Across this ground they began to build a wall,
-meaning to cut the Syracusans off from help by land. The Athenian fleet
-then sailed into the harbour of Syracuse, that so no help might reach
-the city by sea.
-
-But before the wall was finished, two things had happened to frustrate
-the plans of the Athenians.
-
-The Syracusans did not mean to let the enemy finish the wall if they
-could prevent it, so they sailed out of the city to drive them away. In
-the struggle which followed Lamachus was killed, and Nicias was left
-alone to carry on the siege.
-
-But what was perhaps even worse for the Athenians than the death of
-their general, was the arrival of Gylippus the Spartan commander.
-
-Almost before the Athenians were aware, Gylippus, at the head of his
-troops, marched into Syracuse. Nor did he rest until he had driven them
-from the hill on which they were encamped, and forced them to take up
-their position close to the harbour.
-
-Nicias was ill, and his illness made him more hopeless than perhaps he
-would otherwise have been. He wrote to the assembly to tell it that the
-Spartans had wrested from the Athenians all that they had gained, and
-that they were now themselves in danger of being besieged.
-
-The fleet, he said, had been drawn up on the beach for months, and
-would have to be repaired before it was seaworthy. Even then it would
-be difficult to man the vessels, for many of the crew had died and many
-more were out of practice.
-
-So faint of heart was the Athenian general that, at the end of his
-gloomy report, he urged that the whole enterprise should be given up,
-or if not, that at least a new fleet might be sent out without loss of
-time. For himself he begged that he might be recalled, as he was ill
-and unfit for his duties.
-
-The assembly refused this last request, but it sent a new fleet to his
-help, commanded by Eurymedon and Demosthenes.
-
-Meanwhile Gylippus was not idle. He attacked the Athenians both by land
-and sea. By land he was victorious, but at sea he was defeated.
-
-Undaunted, he at once ordered that the bows of the Spartan vessels
-should be made heavier and shorter. When this had been done he again
-attacked the enemy’s fleet, and when the battle ended Gylippus held the
-entrance to the harbour.
-
-The Athenians were now in great peril, for they were besieged both by
-land and sea. They could not leave the harbour unless they cut their
-way through the fleet of the victorious Syracusans, and this they had
-no courage to attempt.
-
-But on the day after the battle which had seemed to seal their fate,
-hope awoke once more in the Athenian ranks, for the new fleet, under
-Eurymedon and Demosthenes, came in sight.
-
-The new commanders at once determined that the hill above Syracuse
-must be retaken. So on a moonlight night the attempt was made. But
-although a band of Athenians gained the hill, took a fort and repulsed
-six hundred of the enemy, they were soon afterwards put to flight. Many
-of the soldiers flung away their shields, as they were driven down
-the hill, and fell over the cliffs. Others were pushed back upon their
-comrades who were still climbing upwards, so that soon the whole army
-was in confusion.
-
-This disaster crushed the spirit of the Athenians. Many of the
-soldiers, too, had fever caused by the marshy ground on which their
-camp was pitched. Many more were ill or wounded.
-
-Eurymedon and Demosthenes advised Nicias to order the whole army
-to sail away before the entrance to the Great Harbour was entirely
-blockaded, but to this he would not consent. It seemed that he was
-afraid to return to Athens to tell that the expedition had failed.
-
-Demosthenes then urged Nicias at least to leave the harbour and sail to
-a point where their supplies could not be stopped by the enemy. This
-too, Nicias refused to do.
-
-But soon after his refusal, large reinforcements reached the Spartans,
-and the general’s obstinacy gave way. He ordered the fleet to prepare
-to leave the harbour.
-
-The men were glad to desert their unhealthy quarters and got ready in
-haste, but secretly, that the Syracusans might not suspect their plans.
-
-All was ready, when, on 27th August 413 B.C., the night before the
-fleet was to sail, an eclipse of the moon took place.
-
-Nicias was filled with superstitious fears. What might the eclipse not
-portend? He sent to the soothsayers, who said that the fleet must on no
-account leave the harbour for twenty-seven days. To disobey the oracle
-would be fatal, so Nicias believed, and he at once forbade the fleet to
-sail until the twenty-seven days had passed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXV
-
-THE ATHENIAN ARMY IS DESTROYED
-
-
-The Athenians made their preparations to retreat as secretly as
-possible, but the Syracusans soon discovered their plans. When they
-heard that their departure was delayed for twenty-seven days, they
-determined to attack the Athenian fleet once more, and again they were
-successful.
-
-On land the Athenians repulsed Gylippus, but they gained little by
-this success, for the Syracusans had made up their mind that the whole
-Athenian army should be destroyed.
-
-So, as Demosthenes had foreseen, they barricaded the entrance to the
-Great Harbour, drawing their ships across it and lashing them together
-with chains.
-
-Nicias saw that a battle must be fought, and he ordered a great number
-of the land troops to go on board the fleet. At all costs he must
-strengthen his navy.
-
-The first thing the Athenians had to do was to break through the ships
-that were lashed together at the mouth of the harbour. But before the
-chains could be broken the enemy was upon them, surrounding them on
-every side. Despair gave the Athenians courage, and so desperately did
-they fight that for a time it seemed that they might yet escape.
-
-Above the crash of vessels rose the cheers or groans of those who
-watched the battle from the shore.
-
-Thucydides gives us a picture of the hopes and fears, the triumph and
-despair of those who fought as of those who watched. He says:
-
-‘The fortune of the battle varied, and it was not possible that the
-spectators on the shore should all receive the same impression of it.
-Being quite close and having different points of view, they would
-some of them see their own ships victorious; their courage would
-then revive, and they would earnestly call upon the gods not to take
-from them their hope of deliverance. But others, who saw their ships
-worsted, cried and shrieked aloud, and were by the sight alone more
-utterly unnerved than the defeated combatants themselves.
-
-‘Others again who had fixed their gaze on some part of the struggle
-which was undecided were in a state of excitement still more terrible;
-they kept swaying their bodies to and fro in an agony of hope and
-fear, as the stubborn conflict went on and on; for at every instant
-they were all but saved or all but lost. And while the strife hung in
-the balance, you might hear in the Athenian army at once lamentation,
-shouting, cries of victory or defeat, and all the various sounds which
-are wrung from a great host in extremity of danger.’
-
-At length the Athenians were pushed back and yet further back, until
-the fleet was stranded on the shore. The soldiers who had been left on
-land now rushed forward and succeeded in saving sixty of their ships
-from the enemy.
-
-Demosthenes urged the men to embark and try once again to cut their way
-out of the harbour, but they refused, so crushed were they by their
-defeat. To retreat by land was all that the Athenians could now try to
-do, yet in their hearts they knew that the retreat must end in slavery
-or in death.
-
-The sick and the wounded were left behind. But those who were stricken
-with fever, caused by the marsh land on which they had been encamped,
-clung to their comrades, and scarce knowing what they did, begged that
-they might not be left behind. But their strength soon failed, and they
-sank down by the wayside to die.
-
-Nicias, ill as he was, did all in his power to encourage and cheer his
-men. He himself led the van, Demosthenes brought up the rear.
-
-After marching for several days, the Athenians were parched with
-thirst. When at length they reached a stream, it was to find the enemy
-awaiting them on the farther bank.
-
-But their thirst was intolerable, and paying no heed to the foe, the
-soldiers rushed to the water. As they stooped to drink, the Syracusans
-fell upon them and put them to death.
-
-Demosthenes and his men had fallen behind the rest of the army, and had
-already been forced to surrender. Nicias now saw that he, too, must
-submit to Gylippus.
-
-Seven thousand prisoners were sent by the Spartans to work in stone
-quarries. These quarries were like dungeons, but they were open to the
-sky, and during the day the scorching sun beat down piteously on the
-miserable prisoners, while at night the cold was so intense that sleep
-was impossible.
-
-Here they were kept for seventy days, with only enough food to keep
-them alive, and with scarcely any water to drink. Many of the men died,
-those who survived were sold as slaves.
-
-Nicias and Demosthenes were both put to death. It is said that they
-were tortured, although Gylippus did all he could to save them from the
-angry Syracusans. Thus in disaster and defeat ended the expedition that
-sailed forth so bravely from Athens two years before.
-
-Thucydides says that this expedition was ‘the greatest adventure
-that the Greeks entered into during this war, and, in my opinion,’
-he adds, ‘the greatest in which the Greeks were ever concerned; the
-one most splendid for the conquerors and most disastrous for the
-conquered, for they suffered no common defeat, but were absolutely
-annihilated--land-army, fleet and all--and of many thousands only a
-handful ever returned home.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXVI
-
-ALCIBIADES RETURNS TO ATHENS
-
-
-Alcibiades fled from the Athenians to Sparta, but he did not stay there
-long, for he soon grew tired of living as simply and frugally as the
-people of that country. He had, too, made an enemy of one of the kings
-of Sparta, so in the autumn of 412 B.C. he fled to Miletus in Asia
-Minor, where Tissaphernes, the Persian governor, ruled for the great
-king.
-
-Tissaphernes was a cruel man, but he was easily pleased by flattery.
-Alcibiades soon discovered the governor’s weakness, and he determined
-to win his favour by his agreeable speeches. He succeeded so well that
-the Persian named some of his parks and pavilions Alcibiades, in honour
-of the eloquent Athenian.
-
-The luxury and ease with which the Persians were surrounded pleased
-Alcibiades after his course of Spartan fare and discipline, and he
-indulged for a time in even greater magnificence than did Tissaphernes.
-His anger against the Athenians had gradually grown less vehement, and
-he now began to wish that they would forget their hatred of him and
-recall him from exile.
-
-But they had little thought to spare for the traitor, for troubles were
-pouring in upon them on every side. They had but lately heard of the
-complete overthrow of their fleet and army in Sicily, and they were
-now building a new fleet with money which Pericles had put aside long
-before, lest at any time Attica should be invaded by sea.
-
-The Spartans, too, were still at Decelea, where they had built a fort,
-not fourteen miles from the city. Town after town that had been allied
-with Athens in the time of her prosperity now became her enemy.
-
-In their despair the Athenians had taken a desperate step--they had
-asked their old enemies the Persians to come to their aid.
-
-It was then that Alcibiades saw an opportunity, as he thought, to help
-the people whom he had so cruelly betrayed, and at the same time to
-please the Persians.
-
-So he sent a message to the Athenians to say that if they would place
-the government of Athens in the hands of a party named ‘The Four
-Hundred,’ he would be able to persuade Tissaphernes to make an alliance
-with them. For his master, the great king, would make no terms with
-Athens as long as she was a democracy.
-
-The Athenians followed Alcibiades’ advice, and the government of the
-city was entrusted to The Four Hundred for a short time. But Alcibiades
-had not so much influence as he had believed, and the Persian
-government still refused to help the Athenians.
-
-Partly perhaps in anger with Tissaphernes, partly because the Athenians
-were not satisfied with the rule of The Four Hundred, Alcibiades helped
-to overthrow them and to make Athens once again a democracy.
-
-So grateful were the people for his help, that they declared his exile
-was at an end, and bade him return to Athens.
-
-But although Alcibiades longed to go back to Athens, he was content
-to wait until he could return covered with glory. By his own request
-he was given the command of a few ships, and with these he set sail
-for the Hellespont. Mindarus, the Spartan admiral, with a large army
-was there, hoping to stop the corn supply of Athens on its way to the
-city from the Black Sea. If the corn supply was stopped, Athens would
-starve, and Mindarus knew that the city would then soon be in the hands
-of the Spartans.
-
-The Athenian fleet was in three divisions, and the one commanded by
-Alcibiades passed the Hellespont unseen by the enemy and took Mindarus
-by surprise.
-
-By land and sea desperate battles were fought, and in both the
-Athenians were victorious. Mindarus was slain, and the Spartan fleet
-was destroyed. The Hellespont was not blocked, and Athens was no longer
-in danger of starving.
-
-The Spartans in their own laconic way sent a brief message to Sparta to
-tell of their defeat. The despatch was seized by the Athenians before
-it reached its destination. This is what the victorious people read:
-‘The ships are gone; Mindarus is slain; the men are starving; we know
-not what to do.’
-
-For two years, from 409 B.C. to 407 B.C., Alcibiades stayed at the
-Hellespont retaking cities which had thrown off their allegiance to
-Athens and joined Sparta. Then feeling that now he might return with
-glory, he set sail for Athens.
-
-Plutarch tells us that as Alcibiades drew near to the Piræus he was
-afraid to venture on shore, until he saw friends waiting to welcome him:
-
-‘As soon as he was landed the multitude who came out to meet him
-scarcely seemed so much as to see any of the other captains, but came
-in throngs about Alcibiades and saluted him with loud acclamations, and
-still followed him; those who could press near him crowned him with
-garlands, and they who could not come up so close, yet stayed to behold
-him afar off, and the old men pointed him out and showed him to the
-young ones.’
-
-In the assembly, crowns of gold were placed on his head, and he was
-created general, with absolute power, over both the land and the sea
-forces.
-
-His estates were given back to him, and a ‘holy herald’ was bidden to
-absolve him from the curses which had been pronounced against him.
-
-The high priest alone refused to obey, for he said, ‘If he is innocent,
-I never cursed him.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXVII
-
-ANTIOCHUS DISOBEYS ALCIBIADES
-
-
-The king of Persia was not pleased with his governor Tissaphernes,
-because he had made an alliance with neither the Athenians nor the
-Spartans. So he now sent his younger son Cyrus to take the place of
-Tissaphernes, bidding him make terms with the Spartans.
-
-Lysander was now in command of the Spartan fleet. He was as brave and
-as skilful an admiral as Brasidas had been, although he could not win
-the trust of strangers as his famous countryman had done. But he gained
-the affection of his men and cared for their welfare.
-
-Cyrus invited Lysander to a feast and tried to bribe him to join the
-Persians, but in vain.
-
-The Persian prince then offered to give him whatever he chose to ask.
-Lysander wished nothing for himself, but, to the surprise of all who
-were present, he begged that the daily wage of his sailors might be
-increased.
-
-In September 407 B.C., the Spartan sailed with his fleet close to the
-harbour of Ephesus. About the same time, Alcibiades, with the Athenian
-fleet, arrived at Notium, from which port he could watch the movements
-of the enemy.
-
-As he had little money with which to pay his men, he determined to
-leave the fleet in charge of his pilot, Antiochus, while he, taking
-with him a few ships, sailed away to plunder a neighbouring city. In
-this way he hoped to find the money that he needed. Alcibiades strictly
-forbade Antiochus to risk a battle.
-
-[Illustration: The multitude saluted him with loud acclamations]
-
-No sooner, however, had the admiral gone than the pilot disobeyed his
-orders, and with a number of ships he sailed past the Spartan fleet,
-challenging Lysander to fight.
-
-The Spartan in reply merely sent a few vessels to drive away the
-reckless pilot, but the ships that had been left at Notium soon noticed
-that Antiochus was being chased, and they at once hastened to join him.
-
-In a short time the two fleets were engaged in battle. Antiochus was
-slain, and fifteen of the Athenian ships were taken or sunk. Those
-that escaped sailed to Samos, where Alcibiades soon joined them. He
-determined, if it were possible, to avenge the punishment the Spartans
-had inflicted on the Athenian vessels, so he sailed to Ephesus and
-offered battle to Lysander. But the Spartan had won a great victory and
-he did not mean to risk a defeat. He refused to fight again.
-
-Alcibiades still had enemies in Athens, and they were so angry with
-him for having left the charge of the fleet to Antiochus that they
-clamoured for his command to be taken from him. The assembly was forced
-to yield to them, and Alcibiades was deposed, while the command was
-given to an Athenian named Conon.
-
-The admiral then fled to a city on the Hellespont, where he had long
-ago bought a castle, lest at any time he should need a place of refuge
-from his enemies.
-
-Conon, the new commander, gained a great victory, at the island of
-Arginusæ, on the coast of Asia. After the victory a storm arose, and a
-dozen Athenian vessels which had been disabled in the battle went down
-with all their crews on board.
-
-No attempt was made to rescue the unfortunate sailors, and eight
-Athenian generals were ordered to come home to be tried for neglect of
-duty. Six only obeyed.
-
-The assembly met and condemned the generals, but their sentence was
-left undetermined. On the day after the trial a festival was held in
-the city, at which solemn family gatherings took place.
-
-When the relations of those who had perished at Arginusæ appeared, clad
-in black, their number roused the people to fresh fury against the
-condemned generals.
-
-The assembly met shortly afterwards, and one of the members demanded
-that the people should vote without delay, and if the generals were
-found guilty that they should be put to death.
-
-Now the generals had not yet finished their defence; moreover, there
-was a law in Athens that prisoners should be judged and sentenced one
-at a time.
-
-At first the assembly wished to obey this law, but the mob was so
-fierce that it yielded, and pronounced sentence of death on all the
-generals at once. To each was brought a cup of hemlock.
-
-Socrates was present in the assembly, and he was not afraid to denounce
-the sentence as unlawful. Nor would he withdraw his protest in face of
-the angry crowd. This was a brave deed, such as you would expect from
-the great philosopher.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXVIII
-
-THE WALLS OF ATHENS ARE DESTROYED
-
-
-The last battle of the Peloponnesian War was fought in the Hellespont
-in 405 B.C. The Athenians had drawn up their ships near a desolate spot
-named Ægospotami, and they soon found that it was an awkward place from
-which to get provisions for the army. There were no houses near, from
-which they could demand help, so the sailors were forced to leave their
-ships and scour the country round about for food. So dreary was the
-spot that the Athenians longed to fight at once.
-
-But Lysander was in a strong position on the other side of the strait;
-he had, too, a plentiful supply of food, so that he did not mean to let
-himself be forced into a battle.
-
-Again and again the Athenians sailed across the strait, hoping to tempt
-the Spartans to fight, but Lysander refused to move.
-
-As the weeks passed, the Athenians grew careless of an enemy that
-seemed too lazy or too cowardly to fight. They left their ships
-well-nigh unguarded, and wandered over the country in large numbers in
-search of food.
-
-Alcibiades, from his castle not far off, saw that the Athenians were
-in a dangerous position, and that they were leaving their ships
-unprotected. He rode over to Ægospotami to warn the generals to seek
-a safer position. At Sestos, a town but two miles off, they would be
-better able to defend themselves from the Spartans, should they be
-attacked. They would also be able to command provisions.
-
-But the generals did not wish to listen to Alcibiades, and their pride
-forbade them to follow his advice. They spoke rudely to him, telling
-him to be gone, that now not he but others had the command of the
-forces.
-
-The very day after Alcibiades had warned them, the Athenians, leaving
-their ships for the most part unmanned, set out to search the
-countryside for food.
-
-Lysander knew how the enemy usually spent the afternoons. Now that they
-had grown heedless of danger he determined to attack the forsaken ships
-without further delay.
-
-So he ordered his vessels to row quickly across the strait and he
-found, as he expected, the Athenian fleet utterly unprepared for battle.
-
-There was indeed no battle fought, for the Spartans easily captured one
-hundred and seventy ships, and took more than four thousand prisoners,
-among whom were three or four admirals.
-
-Conon alone, with eight ships, succeeded in escaping. But he dared not
-return to Athens with tidings of the disaster, for he knew that if he
-did so he would be condemned to death. So he sent a ship to carry the
-terrible news to the city.
-
-It was evening when the vessel reached Piræus.
-
-‘The noise of wailing spread all up the Long Walls into the city, as
-one passed the tidings on to another; that night no one slept.’ For now
-there was no fleet to hinder the Spartans from stopping the supply of
-corn, and the Athenians knew that they must starve or surrender.
-
-For a little while the city refused to yield. But she had no allies, no
-ships, no money, and no corn could enter the town. The wretched people
-were dying of hunger before Athens surrendered to the Spartans in March
-404 B.C.
-
-She expected no mercy from her conqueror. Even as she had destroyed
-many a Spartan town, so she thought that now she herself would be
-utterly ruined.
-
-But Sparta proved less harsh than Athens had deemed was possible. The
-city was indeed to be ‘rendered harmless for ever, but not destroyed.’
-
-All that was left of her fleet was taken away, and the walls of Piræus
-and the walls leading to Athens were pulled down.
-
-Lysander stood near, looking on, as the Athenians and the Spartans
-together began to break down the walls.
-
-It was not so gloomy a scene as you might have expected. Perhaps the
-Athenians were glad that at length the long and desperate struggle had
-come to an end. Flute players and dancers were present, and added a
-strange touch of gaiety to the crowd.
-
-Soon after the surrender of Athens, Lysander was ordered to put
-Alcibiades to death, lest he should encourage the Athenians at any time
-to throw off their allegiance to Sparta.
-
-Plutarch tells us that ‘those who were sent to assassinate him had not
-courage enough to enter the house, but surrounded it first and set it
-on fire.
-
-‘Alcibiades, as soon as he perceived it, getting together great
-quantities of clothes and furniture, threw them upon the fire to choke
-it, and having wrapped his cloak about his left arm, and holding his
-naked sword in his right, he cast himself into the middle of the fire,
-and escaped securely through it, before his clothes were burnt.
-
-‘The barbarians, as soon as they saw him, retreated, and none of them
-durst stay to wait for him, or to engage with him, but, standing at a
-distance, they slew him with darts and arrows.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXIX
-
-THE MARCH OF THE TEN THOUSAND
-
-
-In 404 B.C., soon after the disaster of Ægospotami, Darius, king of
-Persia, died. His eldest son Artaxerxes succeeded to his father’s
-throne.
-
-Cyrus, the younger son, who was present at his father’s death, was
-accused by Tissaphernes of trying to secure the throne for himself.
-
-Artaxerxes believed Tissaphernes, and Cyrus was arrested, and would
-have been put to death had not his mother pleaded that his life might
-be spared.
-
-The king listened to his mother’s request and set his brother free.
-He even allowed him to govern the provinces that had been his in his
-father’s lifetime.
-
-But Cyrus felt no gratitude to his brother, he hated him, and was
-determined if it were possible to seize his throne.
-
-So he hired a large number of Greek soldiers, for now that there was
-peace between Athens and Sparta, many of them were idle and glad to
-take service under Cyrus.
-
-The prince pretended that he was going to fight against Tissaphernes,
-and no one save himself and the Spartan, Clearchus, who was the leader
-of the Greeks, knew that the army was going to Babylon to fight against
-Artaxerxes, king of Persia.
-
-Among the Greek soldiers was Xenophon, a scholar and a pupil of
-Socrates, who wrote the story of this expedition.
-
-Early in 401 B.C., Cyrus assembled his troops at Sardis. When they
-arrived at Tarsus, a city on the coast of Cilicia, the soldiers began
-to suspect that Cyrus was going to lead them against Artaxerxes. They
-were not afraid of the great king, but they were afraid to leave the
-sea behind them, for that was ever a terrible thing to the Greeks. So
-they refused to march farther.
-
-Clearchus, who was a stern commander and no favourite with his men,
-tried in vain to quell their rebellion, but all his efforts were vain.
-Not a step forward would they march.
-
-He had used his authority and failed, now he resolved not to command
-but to persuade. So he called his men together again, and as he looked
-at them he wept.
-
-Their grim, stern commander shedding tears! The soldiers stared at him
-in open-eyed wonder.
-
-Then Clearchus bade them see in how difficult a position they had
-placed him, for he must either fail Cyrus or forsake them. Forsake
-them he could not, so he declared, for were they not ‘his country, his
-friends, and his allies’?
-
-These words pleased the soldiers well, but what pleased them even more
-was that when Cyrus sent to ask their commander to go to his tent, he
-refused to go.
-
-But they were less content when Clearchus reminded them that as they
-refused to follow Cyrus, they could no longer expect him to give them
-food or wages. What, he asked them, did they mean to do?
-
-All that they could do was to send a few of their number to the prince
-to ask him where he intended to lead them.
-
-Cyrus answered that he was taking them to the river Euphrates, to fight
-against a Persian rebel, and at the same time he offered to increase
-their wages if they would obey Clearchus.
-
-The Greeks were far from home, and not knowing what else to do, they
-agreed to follow their commander. But they did not trust Cyrus,
-and they still suspected that he wished to march beyond the river
-Euphrates. And when they reached the river their suspicions proved
-true, for Cyrus told them plainly that he was going to Babylon to
-dethrone his brother Artaxerxes.
-
-As the Euphrates was unusually shallow, the army was able to cross over
-on foot, and soon afterwards it was in the desert of Arabia.
-
-Xenophon tells us that the desert was ‘smooth as a sea.’ There were no
-large trees in all the great expanse, but there were many shrubs that
-had a pleasant scent.
-
-The soldiers did not find the march across the desert dull, for they
-saw many strange beasts, unlike any they had ever seen--wild asses,
-ostriches, antelopes,--and these they hunted with zest.
-
-When the desert lay behind them they found themselves in a land where
-fields had been dug and gardens tended. Here, too, a little before
-them, was Artaxerxes, with a great army, ready to fight to the death
-for his crown.
-
-The king was encamped at a place called Cunascæ, where in the summer of
-401 B.C. a battle was fought. Strange as it may seem, before a blow was
-struck, the Persians were seized with panic and turned to flee. Only
-Tissaphernes at the head of the cavalry stood firm.
-
-Cyrus with a small body of men, about six hundred in number, dashed
-upon the centre of the army, for there, surrounded by six thousand
-horsemen, was Artaxerxes. The guards scattered before his fierce
-attack, and the king turned to fly with them.
-
-Then Cyrus, careless of aught save his desire to slay his brother, and
-gain his crown, galloped after him, attended by only a few of his own
-bodyguard.
-
-As he drew near to the king, he hurled a javelin at him and wounded him
-slightly. Almost at the same moment Cyrus himself was wounded in the
-eye, and shortly after he fell from his horse and was slain.
-
-Cyrus was dead, and ten thousand Greek soldiers were left alone with
-their generals in a strange land, surrounded by enemies. Tissaphernes
-pretended to be a friend to the Greeks, and offered to guide them
-safely home. So the two armies set out together, but before long the
-Greek soldiers grew suspicious of the Persians. To reassure the men,
-Tissaphernes invited Clearchus and his captains to his tent.
-
-The Greek general accepted the invitation, and, never dreaming of
-treachery, he went to the Persian’s tent with four other generals,
-twenty captains and a few soldiers.
-
-No sooner had they entered than the captains and soldiers were seized
-and put to death by the order of Tissaphernes. Clearchus and the other
-generals were loaded with chains and sent to the king. Artaxerxes
-commanded that they, too, should be put to death.
-
-The Persians believed that the Greek army would now be forced to
-surrender. For, alone in an unknown land, without a leader, how could
-they hope to reach their own country?
-
-But the greatness of their danger roused the courage of the Greeks.
-Xenophon, who was at the time only a young man, made an eloquent speech
-to the army, bidding them choose new generals and obey them, for in
-this way only could they hope to escape from their enemies.
-
-The men did as he advised, choosing Xenophon himself as one of the new
-generals.
-
-And now began the retreat of the ten thousand through untold
-difficulties. To go back the same way as they had come was impossible,
-for the roads would be guarded by the Persians. So they turned to the
-north and marched through a wild and barren country, where fierce
-hillmen held the narrow passes through which they must pass.
-
-Sometimes the savage tribes hurled down upon them from the heights
-great pieces of rock, and the soldiers lived in dread of being crushed
-to death by their unseen foes.
-
-When they reached Armenia it was December and bitterly cold. They were
-overtaken by a snowstorm so severe that many of the men lost their way.
-In vain they tried to rejoin their comrades, and at length, utterly
-worn out, they stumbled into great snowdrifts or lay down on the road
-to die.
-
-Still the army struggled bravely on, in the face of the biting north
-wind, until at length it reached a tributary of the river Euphrates.
-This they crossed in safety, to find that most of their difficulties
-were over, for soon after they reached a city called Gymnias.
-
-Gymnias was a prosperous mining town, and the inhabitants welcomed the
-ten thousand gladly and gave them food and shelter, after they had
-heard of the terrible difficulties through which the men had come.
-
-But the soldiers did not linger long at Gymnias. They were eager to set
-out again, for a guide promised that in five days he would bring them
-to the sea.
-
-‘On the fifth day the Greeks came to a hill, and when the van reached
-the summit a great cry arose. When Xenophon and those at the rear heard
-it they thought that an enemy was attacking in front; but when the cry
-increased as fresh men continually came up to the summit, Xenophon
-thought it must be something more serious, and galloped forward to the
-front with his cavalry.
-
-‘As he drew near he heard what the cry was--“The Sea, the Sea.”’
-
-A few days more and the ten thousand were on Greek soil. Here they
-rested for a month, offering glad sacrifices of thanksgiving to Zeus,
-who had brought them back in safety to their own land.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXX
-
-PELOPIDAS AND EPAMINONDAS
-
-
-When Sparta heard that Artaxerxes had been able neither to force the
-ten thousand to surrender nor to slay them, she thought that his army
-could not be very powerful. So, confident in her own strength she went
-to war against the great king, dreaming that she would conquer Persia
-and add it to her dominions.
-
-But instead of conquering the country, the Spartans were so often
-defeated that, in 387 B.C., they were willing to make peace on any
-terms which Artaxerxes chose to make.
-
-And the king saw to it that the terms were severe, for he demanded that
-the Greek cities in Asia, which had now been free for ninety years,
-should once again acknowledge him as their lord.
-
-To those Greeks who loved their country truly, it seemed better to
-fight to death than to accept such terms. Nor will you wonder at this
-as you read the proud words in which the king couched his demands.
-
-‘King Artaxerxes thinks it just,’ he wrote, ‘that the Greek cities in
-Asia should belong to him. He also thinks it just to leave all the
-other Grecian cities both small and great independent, except three
-cities which are to belong to Athens as of old. Should any parties
-refuse to accept this peace I will make war upon them, along with those
-who are of the same mind, both by land and sea, with ships and with
-money.’
-
-The states of Greece accepted these terms, which were carved on stones
-and placed in their temples, so that it could be seen by all that
-Greece was no longer free.
-
-Although Sparta had been defeated by the Persians, she was the most
-powerful state in Greece. Wishing to add to her possessions, she
-determined to seize the little town of Thebes, which at this time was
-friendly with Athens.
-
-The two governors of Thebes, Leontiades and Ismenias, did not get on
-well together. Leontiades disliked his colleague so bitterly that he
-was ready even to betray his city, if by doing so he could injure
-Ismenias.
-
-In September 382 B.C. a Spartan army, led by a general named Phœbidas,
-chanced to be marching through Bœotia. Not far from the walls of Thebes
-the soldiers halted to rest.
-
-Leontiades thought this was the opportunity for which he had been
-waiting. He would be able to get rid of Ismenias with the help of the
-Spartans. They had already determined to seize the town, but this the
-traitor did not know. He went secretly to the camp, asked for Phœbidas,
-and was admitted to the general’s tent. He at once offered to open the
-gates of Thebes to the Spartans on the following day.
-
-It would be an easy matter to seize the citadel if the gates were
-opened, for on the morrow a festival kept by women alone was to be held
-there, while at noon the men would be in their houses dozing during the
-hottest part of the day.
-
-The Spartan general was as eager to take the city as Leontiades could
-desire, and the traitor slipped back to the city thinking of nothing
-save that Ismenias would soon be out of his way.
-
-At noon on the following day, the Spartans marched to the gates of
-Thebes, and there, according to his compact, was Leontiades waiting to
-admit them. Silently he drew the keys from under his cloak, unlocked
-the gates, and Phœbidas at the head of two thousand men entered the
-city. They made their way at once to the citadel, took possession of
-it, and made the women, who were keeping the festival, prisoners.
-
-Before long the men of Thebes roused themselves from their noontide
-nap, to find, to their dismay, that their wives and daughters were in
-the hands of the Spartans.
-
-Leontiades ordered his rival Ismenias to be arrested, and soon after
-the miserable governor was sent to Sparta and cruelly put to death.
-
-Three hundred Thebans, who were determined not to submit to Sparta,
-succeeded in escaping from the city and reaching Athens. Many who
-wished to flee did not dare to do so, lest in their absence harm should
-befall their wives and daughters.
-
-Leontiades was rewarded for his treachery by being still allowed to
-rule in Thebes, along with a Spartan general. So harshly did Leontiades
-use his power that the people hated him, but years passed before the
-tyrant’s power was wrested from him.
-
-During these years those who had fled to Athens often heard from the
-miserable Thebans of the hardships they suffered under the stern rule
-of Leontiades.
-
-Among the exiles was a young nobleman named Pelopidas. Often he would
-tell his fellow exiles that it was dishonourable to dwell in comfort in
-Athens while their city was not free, and he would urge them to march
-against the Spartans, and banish them from Thebes.
-
-Pelopidas had a great friend in Thebes named Epaminondas. And although
-the two friends did brave deeds not only for their city, but for
-Greece, they are remembered most of all for the great love they bore
-each to the other.
-
-Both were of noble birth, but Pelopidas was rich, while Epaminondas was
-poor. Pelopidas had a generous nature, and used his money to help those
-who were not so well off as he was. Even among his friends many were
-quick to accept his kindnesses, but Epaminondas would never take from
-him either gold or gifts.
-
-Pelopidas resolved that if Epaminondas would not share his wealth, he
-would share his friend’s poverty. So he bade his slaves lay aside his
-soft, silk robes, that he might clad himself in garments as simple as
-those of Epaminondas. He would allow no rich dishes to be set before
-him at table, but he ordered that his food should be both plain and
-scanty. In the camp he endured hardships as a common soldier, in war he
-showed himself bold as a lion.
-
-The friends were clever and well-trained, both in mind and body, but
-Pelopidas was often to be found in the fields, while Epaminondas was
-listening to lectures.
-
-Each longed to serve his country well, but no touch of jealousy
-disturbed the beauty of their friendship. It was founded deep on
-reverence and love.
-
-Some years before the treachery of Leontiades, when the Spartans were
-at war with Athens, the Thebans had sent a troop of soldiers to the
-aid of Sparta. Among the soldiers were the two friends Pelopidas and
-Epaminondas.
-
-The company with which the Theban soldiers fought was beaten, and many
-fled from the field. But Pelopidas and Epaminondas joined their shields
-together and fought on bravely. Pelopidas was wounded seven times, and
-at length, faint with the loss of blood, he fell to the ground.
-
-Epaminondas thought that his comrade was dead, but he resolved that the
-enemy should have neither the arms nor the body of his friend. So he
-stood over him with his shield, willing rather ‘to die than forsake his
-helpless Pelopidas.’
-
-Soon Epaminondas himself was so severely wounded that he was no longer
-able to defend the body of his friend. Had not the king of Sparta
-chanced to see his danger, and with a few followers dashed to his
-rescue, he would have been slain by the foe. But the king carried off
-both Epaminondas and Pelopidas, who was then found to be still alive.
-
-Pelopidas recovered, although his wounds had been severe, and never did
-he forget that it was his friend who had saved his life.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXI
-
-THE SEVEN CONSPIRATORS
-
-
-Three years passed before the Theban exiles, encouraged by Pelopidas,
-formed a plot to deliver their city from the Spartans.
-
-They were helped in their plans by Phyllidas, a Theban who had stayed
-in the city and become secretary to the Spartan governors Archias and
-Philippus. He had taken this position under the enemy that he might be
-able the better to help his own countrymen. He agreed with Pelopidas
-that the time to act had now come.
-
-Epaminondas was also in Thebes, but he would have nothing to do with
-the plot. He would fight when the time for fighting came, but to slay
-even tyrants unawares was not to his liking.
-
-Pelopidas and six other exiles did not share the scruples of
-Epaminondas. They disguised themselves as farmers or country folk, and
-one evening reaching Thebes as it began to grow dark, they slipped one
-by one at different times into the city. They then found their way to
-the house of a citizen named Charon, who had promised to shelter them.
-
-Snow was falling and the streets were nearly deserted, so that the
-return of the exiles was unnoticed.
-
-On the following day, Archias and Philippus were to be present at a
-great banquet. Phyllidas, the secretary, had promised to bring to the
-feast seven beautiful Theban women. He told no one that the promised
-guests were the seven exiles, who had resolved to don a second disguise
-to enable them to be present at the banquet.
-
-The day of the feast passed slowly for the conspirators, but at length
-evening came, and the exiles were putting on the garments that were to
-make them appear like beautiful women, when a loud knock came to the
-door.
-
-Already the long day had tried them sorely, and the knock filled them
-with foreboding.
-
-When the door was opened their hearts beat quicker, for there stood a
-soldier who bade Charon come to the banqueting hall without delay.
-
-Had Charon betrayed them? The exiles looked uncertainly one at the
-other. Then they grew ashamed of their distrust and bade their host
-hasten to Archias to allay his suspicions, if indeed they had been
-aroused.
-
-Charon was brave and true and he knew that the lives of the seven men
-were in his hand. He hoped that they trusted him, yet he wished to
-dispel any doubt that they might have. So he hastened to the nursery of
-his little son, and carrying the child to Pelopidas, he placed him in
-his arms, saying, ‘If you find me a traitor, treat the boy as an enemy
-without any mercy.’
-
-But the exiles protested, and truly, that they trusted him well and
-needed no such hostage, while Pelopidas bade him take the child back to
-his nurse.
-
-Then Charon, staying only to ask the help of the gods, hastened to the
-banqueting hall.
-
-Archias and his secretary were awaiting him, and Archias said, ‘I have
-heard, Charon, that there are some men just come lurking into the town.
-We fear lest they have come to stir up the citizens.’
-
-‘Who are they? Where are they hidden?’ asked Charon. For he wished to
-find out how much Archias knew.
-
-But Archias knew nothing. It was but a rumour that had reached him.
-
-‘Do not disturb yourself because of a rumour,’ said Charon, who had now
-no fear of discovery. ‘There are many tales told in the market-place.
-But I will find out if there is truth in what you have heard.’
-
-Archias was glad to leave the matter to Charon, for he was impatient
-to go back to the feast. So Charon hastened back to his house to tell
-Pelopidas and his comrades that their fears were needless, for Archias
-suspected nothing.
-
-But although Charon did not know it, a letter was at that moment being
-placed in the hands of Archias that might easily have ruined both him
-and the conspirators. For it told Archias the whole plot, as well as
-the names of those who were to take part in it.
-
-The letter had been sent from Athens, and as the messenger handed it
-to the Spartan governor, he said, ‘The writer of this desired that it
-might be read at once; it is on urgent business.’
-
-But Archias could think of nothing that night save the banquet and the
-beautiful Theban women, who should now soon arrive.
-
-Thrusting the letter unopened under the cushion on which his head
-rested, Archias cried, a smile upon his face, ‘Urgent business
-to-morrow.’ And these words were ever after used as a proverb by the
-Greeks.
-
-The conspirators had now reached the hall. Their beautiful dresses were
-wide and loose, for beneath their splendour they wore armour. On their
-heads were garlands of pine and fir, so that their faces might not be
-seen.
-
-Archias and his guests clapped their hands gleefully. Here at last were
-the beautiful Theban women whose presence Phyllidas had promised should
-grace the banquet.
-
-But in a moment the conspirators had torn off their disguise. Archias
-and Philippus were slain almost before they had time to realise their
-danger, while the guests who had rushed to their aid were also put to
-death.
-
-Pelopidas and his comrades then hastened to the house of Leontiades.
-But he heard them knocking at the door, and when they rushed into his
-room a few seconds later, he met them with his sword drawn, and slew
-the first man who entered.
-
-A terrible struggle then took place between Leontiades and Pelopidas,
-but at length the traitor was wounded to death.
-
-The conspirators then ran to the prison, ordered the gates to be
-opened, and the prisoners to be set free and armed, for their only
-crime had been loyalty to their city.
-
-As day began to dawn, troops from Athens poured into the city to help
-the Thebans. The Spartans fought fiercely, but after a few days the
-garrison was forced to surrender, and once again Thebes was free.
-
-The grateful citizens then assembled in the market-place, where the
-priests crowned Pelopidas and Charon, while the people appointed them
-governors of the city.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXII
-
-THE BATTLE OF LEUCTRA
-
-
-Thebes had always been a dull, unambitious, little town, but now her
-ambition awoke. She was not content only to be free, she wished to
-become the most important town in Bœotia.
-
-And there was one of her citizens who was so great a soldier and so
-wise a statesman, that he was able to do for Thebes more than she
-dreamed. Epaminondas not only made Thebes the chief city in Bœotia, but
-several years later, he conquered the Spartans, and so made her the
-most important town in Greece.
-
-Pelopidas, too, fought for the glory of his country. He became the
-captain of a band of three hundred young Thebans, who had sworn to
-defend their city with their lives.
-
-These three hundred soldiers, more strictly trained than other youths,
-were named the Sacred Band, because each member was a friend to the
-other. As they had sworn to defend their city so they had promised to
-stand by one another unto death.
-
-After many victories, of which you will read, the Sacred Band fell on
-the battlefield. Even their conqueror, as he looked upon them shed
-tears, saying, ‘Perish any man who suspects that these men either did
-or suffered anything that was base!’
-
-For two years after Thebes won back her freedom, Sparta never ceased to
-try to wrench it from her. But at the end of two years she was forced
-to leave the Thebans alone, for all her soldiers were needed to fight
-against the Athenians, who had once more declared war against their
-ancient foe.
-
-While the Spartans and the Athenians waged war one against the other
-Epaminondas was not idle, for he subdued the Bœotian cities which had
-dared to help Sparta while Thebes was in her power.
-
-Pelopidas, too, won a great victory in 375 B.C. against the Spartans at
-Orchomenus. He had with him only the Sacred Band and a small company of
-cavalry when he found himself unawares facing a large Spartan army.
-
-‘We are fallen into the midst of the enemy,’ cried one of the Band.
-‘Why so, more than they into the midst of us?’ said Pelopidas.
-
-The rare confidence of their captain inspired the Band to fight even
-more valiantly than usual, and to win a great victory over the large
-army of the Spartans.
-
-This victory encouraged the Thebans so much that in the following year
-they succeeded in banishing the Spartans from Bœotia.
-
-Thebes was now at the head of the Bœotian Confederacy, just as Sparta
-was ruler of the Laconian Confederacy. Four years later, in 371 B.C.,
-the Greek States met to arrange terms of peace among themselves.
-
-It was agreed that each city should be treated as independent. But when
-Agesilaus, king of Sparta, rose to take the oath, he took it not alone
-for his own city, but for the cities that belonged to her allies as
-well.
-
-Epaminondas sprang to his feet to remonstrate, saying that if Agesilaus
-was allowed to take the oath for the allied cities, he too must be
-permitted to take it for all the cities of Bœotia.
-
-The Spartan king, angry with the bold demand of the Theban, taunted him
-with taking away the liberty of the Bœotian cities.
-
-‘And what do you do with the liberty of the cities of Laconia?’
-retorted Epaminondas.
-
-Agesilaus was astonished at what he considered the insolence of the
-Theban. In a rage he snatched up the treaty of peace, struck out the
-name of Thebes, crying that if the Thebans wished war they should have
-it. The other cities signed the treaty, so Sparta and Thebes were left
-to settle their quarrel alone.
-
-Epaminondas hastened back to Thebes, where he was at once chosen
-general of the Theban army.
-
-Without delay he set out to secure a pass by which he thought the
-Spartans would attempt to enter Bœotia.
-
-But the Spartans, led by Cleombrotus, one of their kings, did not try
-to enter by the pass. Finding a narrow mountain track, they succeeded
-in eluding Epaminondas, and marching within eight miles of Thebes.
-
-Here, on the plain of Leuctra, the Spartans encamped in 371 B.C.
-
-Near to Leuctra were the tombs of two Bœotian maidens. Many years
-ago they had slain themselves, because of the cruelty with which the
-Spartans had treated them.
-
-An old prophecy said that some day the Spartans would be defeated at
-the tombs of the maidens. Epaminondas, although he did not greatly
-believe in soothsayers, encouraged his captains to fight by reminding
-them of this old saying.
-
-Before the battle Pelopidas had a strange dream. In his dream he saw
-the two maidens of Leuctra alive and wandering about the plain. Their
-father, too, was there, and Pelopidas heard him say that if the Thebans
-wished for victory, they must sacrifice to the gods a maiden with
-chestnut hair.
-
-When he awoke, Pelopidas told his dream to the other captains, and as
-they were wondering what to do, a colt of a bright chestnut colour ran
-through the camp.
-
-‘So,’ cried a soothsayer, ‘the sacrifice is come. Expect no other, but
-use that which the gods have sent.’
-
-Then the colt was solemnly offered in sacrifice at the tombs of the
-maidens. And the army was content, for the gods, they were sure, would
-give them the victory.
-
-Until now a Greek army had always been drawn out in a long, narrow
-line. But Epaminondas arranged his men in a new way. His left wing was
-only a few men wide, but it was fifty men deep, which made it unusually
-strong.
-
-Pelopidas with his Sacred Band was placed in front of the heavy left
-wing, while the rest of the army was arranged as usual.
-
-The Spartan cavalry attacked the Theban horse, but it was soon driven
-from the field. Cleombrotus was with his right wing and he now led it
-against the strong left wing of the enemy.
-
-Bravely as the Spartans fought, they could not withstand the onslaught
-of the left wing, led by the Sacred Band.
-
-Cleombrotus fell and was carried from the field, wounded to death. The
-Spartans still struggled bravely, although their king was slain. But
-when Epaminondas called to his men, ‘Give me a step more and the day
-is ours,’ the Thebans spurred on to one more effort, broke the Spartan
-line and put it to flight. The Thebans had won the day, with but little
-loss of life, while four hundred Spartans had been slain.
-
-Cleombrotus was the first Spartan king who had fallen on a battlefield
-since the fatal day of Thermopylae.
-
-The terrible news of the defeat of Leuctra was sent to Sparta, but the
-citizens were too well disciplined to show the dismay which they must
-have felt.
-
-They had been beaten by the inhabitants of the dull little town of
-Thebes, yet no sound of grief was heard in their streets, nor was any
-sign of mourning to be seen.
-
-It was on a festive day that the fateful tidings reached the city, and
-sacrifices were offered and games held as though nothing had happened
-to interrupt the usual rites.
-
-Those whose friends had fled looked sullen and ashamed, for it was
-counted a disgrace to leave a lost battlefield alive. Those whose
-friends had fought to the death were to be seen in the streets the
-following day, with faces that were calm and content. Of such stern
-stuff were the Spartans made.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXIII
-
-THE DEATH OF EPAMINONDAS
-
-
-Thebes was now the most powerful city in Greece. But Epaminondas was
-not yet content. He wished to invade Sparta.
-
-In November 370 B.C. he marched with his army into Arcadia, which lay
-to the north of Laconia. Here he was joined by all those who wished to
-throw off the Spartan yoke. His army soon numbered forty thousand, some
-even say it was seventy thousand strong.
-
-Sparta could hardly believe that any one had dared to invade her
-territory. She was used to fighting in other states of Greece or in
-other countries, but it would be a new experience if she was forced
-to fight for her own homes. Yet there was Epaminondas and his army
-encamped within sight of the city.
-
-The Spartan women had never before seen the smoke of an enemy’s fire
-camp, and they gave way to despair, in spite of their stern training in
-self-control.
-
-But the Theban general was too wise to attack the city. He knew that
-the Spartans had gathered together a large army, and that they would
-fight to the death for their homes. So, satisfied that he had encamped
-in sight of Sparta, he turned away, destroying the land through which
-he passed. The Spartans were eager to follow and fight with the enemy
-who had defied them, but their king refused to lead them to battle.
-
-Epaminondas was not yet ready to leave Spartan territory. He led his
-army to the country of Messenia, which the Spartans had conquered many
-centuries before, banishing or making slaves of the people.
-
-The Theban general roused the descendants of these slaves, and
-encouraged them to build a new city on Mount Ithomé, where Aristomenes
-had made his gallant stand against the Spartans.
-
-While the first stones of the new city were being laid, the sound of
-flutes was heard. When it was finished it was named Messenia. A large
-piece of ground which belonged to Sparta was given by Epaminondas to
-the citizens of the new town. Those who had been slaves or Helots were
-now free men.
-
-The army then marched back to Thebes, which it reached four months
-after the time for which Epaminondas had been appointed commander.
-
-In spite of all he had done for his country, his enemies wished him to
-be punished, because he had not laid down his command on the proper
-day. But he appealed to the people, and they gladly made him, along
-with Pelopidas, general for another year.
-
-When the year had passed, Epaminondas was treated coldly, not only by
-his enemies but by the people also, because he had failed to surprise
-and take the city of Corinth.
-
-In Thessaly at this time there was a cruel king named Alexander. So
-badly did he treat his subjects, that they begged the Thebans to come
-to their help.
-
-Pelopidas was sent to Thessaly to punish Alexander, unless he promised
-to treat his people less harshly. The king was forced to listen to
-the Theban general, but he was angry because Pelopidas had dared to
-interfere with him and he resolved to punish him.
-
-For some time the king found no opportunity to reach his enemy, but at
-length Pelopidas was foolish enough to go through Thessaly with only a
-few followers.
-
-Alexander was overjoyed to have the general in his power, and he at
-once sent a band of men to capture him and throw him into prison.
-
-But the Thebans were very angry when they heard that their favourite
-general was a prisoner, and they determined to set him free. So they
-sent a large army into Thessaly to rescue Pelopidas.
-
-Epaminondas went with the army as an ordinary soldier, and you can
-imagine how he must have longed to be at its head, so that he might
-himself deliver his friend.
-
-The Theban generals were not clever, and though they did all they could
-to conquer the army that Alexander sent against them, they soon saw
-that the battle was going against them.
-
-Then they showed that if they were not clever they were wise, for they
-went to Epaminondas, and begged him to take command of the army.
-
-But it was too late for even a clever general to rescue Pelopidas,
-and all Epaminondas could do was to save the Theban army from being
-destroyed.
-
-The Thebans were so grateful to Epaminondas for his help that they made
-him general once more, and sent him back to Thessaly with a larger army
-that he might save his friend.
-
-Alexander knew that he need not hope to conquer the great Theban
-general, and a few days after Epaminondas entered Thessaly, the king
-set Pelopidas free. He then asked the Thebans to make peace with him.
-
-Three years later, in 364 B.C., Pelopidas was ordered to go at the head
-of an army against his old enemy.
-
-As he was ready to leave Thebes, the sun was eclipsed and the
-soothsayers did not hesitate to say that this was a bad omen. Many of
-the soldiers were afraid to march, and Pelopidas was too angry to wait
-to force them to go with him, so he set out with only a few men. When
-he reached Thessaly he bade all those who hated the tyrant to join him.
-
-Thousands who had groaned under the cruelty of the king flocked to his
-side, but even then the army of Alexander was twice as large as his.
-
-The two forces met at a place called Cynoscephalæ, where a great battle
-was fought.
-
-Pelopidas led his men well, and himself fought so bravely that the
-battle was all but won in spite of the greater strength of the enemy.
-Suddenly Pelopidas caught sight of Alexander, and forgetting everything
-save his desire to avenge his imprisonment, he sprang forward to slay
-the tyrant. Ere his followers could reach him, he himself was struck
-down and killed.
-
-Alexander was defeated and his kingdom was taken from him. But the
-Thessalians could not rejoice, because Pelopidas, to whom they owed
-their deliverance, had been slain. They buried him with great pomp on
-the field where he had fallen.
-
-Epaminondas was filled with grief at the loss of his dear friend. He
-tried to forget his sorrow in serving his country.
-
-In 362 B.C. he fought at Mantinea against the Spartans, on the field
-where long before he had saved the life of Pelopidas.
-
-Never had Epaminondas fought more bravely than on this day, leading the
-Bœotians against the foe ‘as a war-galley ploughs through the waves
-with its beak.’
-
-The victory was well-nigh gained, when a Spartan thrust his pike
-through the breast of Epaminondas. He fell, and his men carried him off
-the field to a little hill, from which the battle could be seen.
-
-For a short time the great general lay unconscious, but at length he
-opened his eyes and asked if his shield was safe. He was told that it
-was safe and that the battle was won.
-
-Then he begged to see his two chief officers. They had fallen on the
-field, and when the news was broken to him, the dying man said,
-
-‘Then you had better make peace.’
-
-The head of the spear that had struck the general was still in the
-wound. As it was withdrawn he breathed his last.
-
-It was Epaminondas who had made Thebes great. After his death she
-slowly slipped back into her old insignificant position.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXIV
-
-THE TWO BROTHERS
-
-
-The city of Corinth stood upon the narrow isthmus that joined the
-mainland of Greece to the Peloponnesian peninsula. She had two
-harbours, a large fleet, and she carried on a prosperous trade with
-other countries.
-
-As the city grew strong and populous, she began to plant colonies in
-other lands. One of the wealthiest of these colonies was the town of
-Syracuse in Sicily.
-
-In 346 B.C. Syracuse was in the power of a tyrant named Dionysius. The
-other cities in Sicily would have been in the same plight had their
-inhabitants not fled to a neighbouring town, and sought the aid of a
-powerful prince named Icetes. Icetes had a large army, and with its
-help they hoped to be able to overthrow Dionysius.
-
-But trouble after trouble overtook the people, for the Carthaginians
-had sailed from Africa and had reached their shores. Sicily was in
-despair lest they should conquer the island and make it their own.
-
-In their distress, the Sicilians sent messengers to Corinth,
-their mother-city, to beg her to help them to get rid of both the
-Carthaginians and Dionysius.
-
-Icetes pretended to approve of this, but no sooner had the ambassadors
-set out for Corinth than he made friends with the Carthaginians. He
-hoped that if they drove Dionysius away, he himself would become tyrant
-of Sicily.
-
-In Corinth, about twenty years earlier, there dwelt two brothers of
-noble birth--one was named Timophanes, the other Timoleon. Never were
-two brothers more unlike save that both were brave. Timophanes was
-cruel and ambitious, while Timoleon was gentle and content. Yet under
-his quiet ways Timoleon had one strong passion and that was the love he
-bore his country.
-
-Timophanes was a captain in the Corinthian army; his brother served in
-the ranks.
-
-Once when the captain was sent against a neighbouring state, he was
-thrown from his horse, which had been wounded. He fell close to the
-enemy and his men fled, leaving him in danger of being taken prisoner.
-
-Timoleon saw what had happened, and rushing from the ranks, he stood
-over Timophanes with his shield, and defended him from the spears which
-were being hurled at him by the enemy. Although he himself was sorely
-wounded, he never flinched. But at length his comrades rushed to his
-aid and drove off the foe. Timoleon had saved his brother’s life.
-
-Not long after this, Timophanes was given the command of four hundred
-foreign soldiers. This pleased the captain, but to the dismay of the
-citizens he used the troops to make himself tyrant of the city.
-
-All who dared to oppose him he put to death, while he ruled so harshly
-that he was hated and feared by everyone.
-
-Timoleon was ashamed of his brother’s behaviour. He begged him to treat
-the people more kindly, and if he must rule at least to rule with
-justice. But Timophanes first mocked at his brother’s words, and then
-he grew angry and refused to listen to them.
-
-Gentle as Timoleon was, he could be strong when there was need to be
-so. In a short time he went again to his brother, taking with him two
-friends who used to admire Timophanes.
-
-Together the three men besought the tyrant to give up the power he had
-so wrongfully seized, and to serve his country in an upright way.
-
-Again Timophanes laughed at his friends, but when they persisted in
-their entreaties he grew angry, and rudely bade them begone. Then
-Timoleon hid his face in his cloak and wept, while the others put his
-brother to death.
-
-The Corinthians, for the most part, praised Timoleon because he loved
-his country so well that he sacrificed his brother for her sake. But
-there were some citizens who blamed Timoleon for allowing his brother
-to be put to death before his eyes. His mother refused to see him and
-called down upon him the curses of the gods. This pained Timoleon more
-than anything else, and he begged her to see him, if it were but once.
-But she would not allow him to enter her house.
-
-Timoleon loved his mother, and her treatment made him so sad that he
-refused either to eat or to drink. He resolved to starve himself to
-death rather than endure his mother’s reproaches.
-
-His friends did all they could to comfort him, and at length they
-succeeded in persuading him to eat. But his sorrow was too great to
-let him stay in Corinth, so he left the city, and for several years he
-lived by himself. Even when he returned to Corinth, he still refused to
-take part in any public business.
-
-Timoleon was fifty years old when in 346 B.C. the Syracusans sent to
-the Corinthians to beg for help against the Carthaginians.
-
-The Corinthians determined to send an army to Sicily to help their
-fellow-countrymen, but they could find no one willing to go at its head.
-
-Some one proposed that Timoleon should be made commander of the force
-that had been raised, and he was at once appointed.
-
-Perhaps Timoleon thought that it was now time that he should do
-something for his country; in any case he undertook the task that was
-given him with goodwill.
-
-One worthy citizen bade Timoleon act ‘like a man of worth and
-gallantry. For,’ said he, ‘if you do bravely in this service we shall
-believe that you delivered us from a tyrant; but if otherwise, that you
-killed your brother.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXV
-
-TIMOLEON SENDS DIONYSIUS TO CORINTH
-
-
-Timoleon was ready to sail to Sicily with a fleet of seven vessels and
-a force of about one thousand men, when a message from Icetes reached
-the Corinthians.
-
-The traitor told them it was useless to try to help the people of
-Sicily, for he had joined the Carthaginians, and their combined army
-would easily crush any force that was sent against them.
-
-This made the Corinthians so angry that they at once added two hundred
-soldiers to Timoleon’s small army, as well as three vessels to his
-fleet.
-
-Even so, Timoleon’s task seemed hopeless. Athens, with hundreds of
-ships and with tens of thousands of men, had failed to take Syracuse.
-How then could the Corinthian hope to do so with his handful of men and
-his small fleet?
-
-Before he sailed, Timoleon journeyed to Delphi to offer sacrifices to
-Apollo. As he prayed in the temple, a wreath slipped from its place
-and fell upon his head. It seemed to Timoleon that Apollo was already
-crowning him with victory.
-
-At length all was ready, and the army embarked and set sail with a
-favourable wind. Suddenly a bright flame leaped out from the sky and
-hovered over the ship in which Timoleon sailed. The flame soon changed
-into a torch which guided the ships until they reached Rhegium, a town
-in Sicily.
-
-Here Timoleon learned that Icetes had already defeated Dionysius, who
-was now shut up in the citadel of Syracuse, and that he had sent the
-Carthaginians with twenty warships to Rhegium to keep the Corinthians
-from reaching Sicily.
-
-Timoleon had only ten vessels, and he knew it would be impossible to
-leave Rhegium unless he could in some way cheat the enemy.
-
-So he pretended to agree to Icetes’ demands, and then begged the
-Carthaginian generals to go with him to the assembly to tell the people
-what they had agreed. Meanwhile he had given orders to his fleet to be
-ready to sail the moment he returned.
-
-In the assembly the generals and the people of Rhegium began to talk,
-and they grew so interested in what they were saying that they paid
-very little attention to Timoleon. The generals indeed forgot all about
-him, which was just what the Corinthians had hoped would happen.
-
-By and by when the conversation seemed most engrossing, Timoleon
-slipped quietly out of the hall and hastened to the harbour. The moment
-he was on board his ship, the fleet set sail and before long reached
-Sicily in safety.
-
-Without their generals, the Carthaginians had not known what to do,
-and while they had hesitated Timoleon had escaped. But when the
-Carthaginian generals found out how they had been tricked, their
-indignation knew no bounds.
-
-Not far from the small town at which the Corinthians landed was a city
-named Adranum, where there was a temple consecrated to the god Adranus.
-This deity was reverenced throughout the whole island.
-
-The city was divided into two parties, one of which sent for Icetes,
-the other for Timoleon, to help them each against the other.
-
-Both generals at once set out for Adranum, Icetes with five thousand,
-Timoleon with only twelve hundred men. On the second day the
-Corinthians found that in spite of all their haste they had been
-outstripped by the army of Icetes. It was already encamped close to the
-city.
-
-The Corinthian officers begged Timoleon to order a halt, as there
-seemed no need for further haste, and their men needed food and rest
-after their hurried march.
-
-But Timoleon wished to take the enemy by surprise. He thought that if
-they did not delay they would reach Icetes and his men while they were
-putting up their tents and preparing supper. So instead of listening to
-his officers, he seized his shield, and going to the head of his army
-he bade them follow him and he would lead them to victory. The enemy’s
-camp was still three and a half miles away, but the Corinthians marched
-on bravely.
-
-As Timoleon had hoped, he reached the camp of the enemy while the men
-were getting ready a meal and were unprepared to fight.
-
-Before they were aware of his approach, Timoleon had fallen upon them
-and put them to flight, taking the camp as well as many prisoners.
-
-The people of Adranum at once opened their gates to the victorious
-general, and told him that when the battle began, the doors of their
-temple suddenly opened of their own accord. On the threshold stood
-their god, holding his javelin in his hand. It was trembling as though
-the god was weary with its weight.
-
-Other cities, when they heard of the victory of the Corinthians, gladly
-entered into alliance with them.
-
-Meanwhile Dionysius, shut up in Syracuse by Icetes, was growing tired
-of his position, and food was becoming scarce in the citadel. He, too,
-thought it would be well to make terms with Timoleon.
-
-So he sent to the Corinthian general to offer to surrender the citadel
-if he would promise to send him in safety to Corinth.
-
-When Timoleon heard this he felt more than ever sure that the gods were
-on his side. He gladly accepted the tyrant’s offer, and at once sent
-two of his officers and a company of men to receive the keys of the
-citadel.
-
-Dionysius treated the Corinthians well, leaving to them a number
-of horses, a store of weapons and two thousand soldiers. He himself
-escaped from the city and fled to the camp of Timoleon. Soon afterwards
-he set sail for Corinth.
-
-Tidings of his arrival was sent before him, and as the ship drew near
-to the harbour, the people gathered there in excited groups. They had
-often shuddered at the tale of the cruel deeds of the man who was now
-coming to their city, shorn of his power. They were eager to see him.
-
-A few weeks later they wondered if this man had really been as cruel
-as they had been told. They saw him contentedly loitering in the
-market-place or spending long hours in the shops of the perfumers, and
-it seemed to them as though he must always have been as harmless as he
-was now. In later years the tyrant is said to have taught the boys and
-girls of Corinth to read, and he also trained those who wished to sing
-in public.
-
-Timoleon had not been fifty days in Sicily before Dionysius was on his
-way to Corinth. The Corinthians were so pleased with their general
-that they determined to send him reinforcements, both of cavalry
-and infantry. But it was some time before the fresh troops reached
-Timoleon, for the Carthaginian fleet was waiting near the coast of
-Italy to bar the way.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXVI
-
-ICETES TRIES TO SLAY TIMOLEON
-
-
-The small band of Corinthians who now held the citadel of Syracuse was
-closely besieged by Icetes. But soon he grew tired of waiting for it to
-surrender and hit, as he thought, on a quicker way of driving the enemy
-out of the island.
-
-Without Timoleon he would not fear the Corinthians, so he resolved to
-get rid of him without delay. He hired two foreign soldiers and sent
-them to Adranum with orders to kill the general.
-
-Timoleon went about without a bodyguard, as Icetes knew. When the
-assassins reached the city, he was in the temple, sacrificing to the
-gods, for it was a festival.
-
-With their daggers hidden beneath their cloaks, the men slipped in
-among the crowd of worshippers and were soon standing together, close
-to the altar.
-
-As they hesitated to strike the fatal blow, a sword flashed out behind,
-and one of them fell slain to the ground.
-
-His companion, in his terror, forgot to kill Timoleon, and laid hold of
-the altar lest he too should be slain by an unseen foe.
-
-When his terror grew a little less he did not try to obey Icetes’
-orders, but begged Timoleon to spare his life and he would tell him
-everything.
-
-Timoleon promised that his life should be safe, and then the miserable
-man confessed that he and his friend had been hired by Icetes to kill
-the Corinthian general.
-
-Meanwhile the stranger who had killed one of the assassins had fled to
-the top of a great precipice that overlooked the city. Here he was
-captured, and as he was hurried before Timoleon he told the guards that
-the man he had slain was one who years before had killed his father. He
-pleaded that he had done right to punish the evil-doer.
-
-It may be that the Corinthians and the citizens of Adranum agreed with
-their prisoner; in any case they were so grateful that he had saved the
-life of Timoleon that they gave him a gift of money and set him free.
-
-As the attack on Timoleon had failed, the Carthaginians thought they
-would try to frighten the citadel of Syracuse into surrendering. So
-they decked the masts of their ships with wreaths, and hung Grecian
-shields over the sides of their vessels. Then with shouts of victory
-they sailed toward the harbour.
-
-From the citadel, the garrison saw the ships and heard the shouts,
-but it was not so easily deceived as Mago, the general of the
-Carthaginians, had expected. The Corinthians were sure that Timoleon
-would have managed to let them know had he been defeated, so they
-laughed at the enemy’s trick and stayed safe within their walls.
-
-Soon after this the reinforcements sent from Corinth joined Timoleon,
-and he then marched to Syracuse.
-
-Mago had already begun to doubt the loyalty of Icetes. He feared that
-he was trying to make terms with Timoleon. When, a little later, he
-saw the soldiers of both generals talking together in a friendly way
-as they fished for eels in the marshes near to the city, he grew more
-suspicious. Day by day his fears grew, until at length in a panic, he
-ordered his troops to embark and set sail for Africa.
-
-The very day after Mago had deserted his post, Timoleon himself reached
-Syracuse. He looked at the empty harbour. Where was the enemy? Not a
-single Carthaginian vessel was to be seen.
-
-When Timoleon learned how Mago had fled, he laughed at his cowardice,
-and still laughing he offered a reward to anyone who would tell him
-where the Carthaginians had hidden.
-
-But although Mago had fled, Icetes and his men still held the city.
-But the wisdom of Timoleon and the valour of his troops soon put them
-to flight, and without the loss of one Corinthian soldier the city was
-taken.
-
-This wonderful success was said by everyone to be due to the good
-fortune that followed all that Timoleon undertook.
-
-The citizens of Syracuse thought that Timoleon would now make himself
-tyrant. To their surprise as well as to their joy, he proclaimed that
-they themselves were to govern the city. He ordered the public crier
-to go through the streets, bidding all those who were willing, to come
-with pickaxe and hammer to pull down the citadel which Dionysius had
-built.
-
-The people did not need to be asked twice. With right goodwill they
-destroyed not only the citadel, but the palaces in which the tyrants
-of Syracuse had dwelt. And while they pulled down the walls, flutes
-sounded and women danced and sang. On the places where the palaces had
-stood, Timoleon ordered courts of justice to be built.
-
-So neglected and forsaken had the city been during the rule of the
-tyrants, as well as during the siege, that grass was growing in the
-market-place, grass enough to feed the soldiers’ horses.
-
-All over Sicily, cities had been deserted, and in some of them deer and
-wild boars wandered up and down the streets.
-
-Timoleon saw that if the island was to grow prosperous again, those who
-had fled must be brought back, and new citizens must come and settle in
-the different cities.
-
-So he sent to Corinth to ask her to send out colonists to the island.
-This she did, and she also sent vessels to Asia to bring back to their
-island home those who had taken refuge there. Soon sixty thousand
-citizens were added to the inhabitants of Sicily.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXVII
-
-THE BATTLE OF CRIMISUS
-
-
-The exiles who had returned to Sicily, and the colonists who had come
-to settle there, were needed, not only to till the ground but to defend
-the island. For the Carthaginians, angry with Mago’s failure, now sent
-to Sicily an enormous army, seventy thousand strong.
-
-The Syracusans were frightened to see so large a force, and not more
-than three thousand men were willing to go with Timoleon against the
-enemy. He hired four thousand soldiers, but of these one thousand
-deserted before a battle was fought.
-
-Near the river Crimisus the Carthaginians encamped, and thither
-Timoleon hastened with his faint-hearted army.
-
-On their way they met a number of mules laden with baskets of parsley.
-Now the Sicilians were used to place wreaths of parsley upon the tombs
-of their dead, so they were sure that it was a bad omen to meet the
-mules, and they grew still more uneasy.
-
-But Timoleon laughed at their fears, telling them that in Corinth the
-victors at the games were crowned with chaplets of parsley. He then
-lifted some from the baskets, and twisting it into a wreath he placed
-it on his head, his officers first and then the soldiers following his
-example.
-
-At that moment two eagles flew toward the army. One carried in its
-talons a snake, which it had killed, the other uttered loud cries as of
-victory. Here was a good omen! It was ever a sign of success to see an
-eagle, and the soldiers thanked the gods and plucked up courage.
-
-Before long Timoleon led his men to the top of a hill that looked down
-on the river Crimisus. But at first he could see nothing, for a thick
-mist veiled the river.
-
-The hill was still hidden from sight when the mist lifted from the
-river, and Timoleon saw that the Carthaginians had begun to cross to
-the other side, but they had no idea that the enemy was near.
-
-Now was the time, thought Timoleon, to charge the enemy, while it was
-crossing the river. So bidding the trumpets sound, he seized his shield
-and ordered his troops to advance.
-
-The courage of the men had returned, and with cheers they rushed down
-the hill and charged the Carthaginians, who, taken by surprise, yet
-fought bravely. They wore heavy armour and their breastplates were able
-to resist the thrust of the Corinthian spears. Soon the men were at
-close quarters with swords drawn, and a terrible struggle began.
-
-It seemed that now one side, now the other would conquer. While the
-victory still hung in the balance, a violent storm broke over the
-battlefield.
-
-The thunder crashed so that the orders of the officers could no longer
-be heard. Lightning flashed in the eyes of the startled horses and
-blinded them, while torrents of rain and hail dashed in the faces of
-the Carthaginians.
-
-As the ground grew muddy, the soldiers slipped and fell to the ground.
-The Sicilians, who wore light armour, easily struggled to their feet,
-but their foes found it almost impossible to rise.
-
-Soon the river overflowed its banks and swept across the battlefield.
-This was more than the Carthaginians could bear, and they turned and
-fled, but many were overtaken by the swift-footed Sicilians and slain.
-
-The victorious army found more spoil than they had thought possible--a
-thousand breastplates and ten thousand shields of marvellous
-workmanship, as well as ornaments of gold and silver were taken.
-
-When tidings were sent to Corinth of the great victory of Crimisus, the
-richest of the spoil was also sent to the city.
-
-On the booty were written these words, ‘The people of Corinth and
-Timoleon, their general, having redeemed the Greeks of Sicily from
-Carthaginian bondage, make oblation of these to the gods, in grateful
-acknowledgement of their favour.’
-
-Sicily was now free, and the people in their gratitude begged Timoleon
-to become their king. But this he would not do, nor would he even keep
-the command of the army. His wife and children whom he had left in
-Corinth joined him, and for a time he lived with them in Syracuse as
-quietly as any other citizen. When he left the city it was to live in a
-beautiful country house which was given to him by the grateful people
-of Syracuse.
-
-As he grew older, Timoleon’s eyesight failed, and at length he became
-quite blind. But old and blind as he was the people did not forget all
-that he had done for them, and they loved and trusted him as in happier
-days.
-
-If trouble arose in the assembly, they would beg him to come to give
-them his advice. And the old man would order his car, which was drawn
-by mules, and be driven to the hall. Here he would sit and listen to
-the troubles of the people, and when he spoke it was seldom that his
-words were not obeyed.
-
-Three or four years after the battle of Crimisus, Timoleon died. The
-grief of the Syracusans was deep, for they had loved their deliverer
-well.
-
-Thousands of men and women, clad in white and crowned with garlands,
-followed his body as it was carried slowly through the city, past the
-places where once the palaces of the tyrants had stood.
-
-As the bier was laid on the funeral pile, a herald cried aloud, ‘The
-people of Syracuse inter Timoleon the Corinthian at the public expense
-and decree that his memory be honoured for ever, by games held each
-year, the prizes to be competed for in music, in horse-races and all
-sorts of bodily exercises, and this because he suppressed tyrants,
-overthrew the barbarian, replenished the principalities that were
-desolate with new inhabitants, and then restored the Sicilian Greeks to
-the privilege of living by their own laws.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXVIII
-
-DEMOSTHENES WISHES TO BECOME AN ORATOR
-
-
-Demosthenes, the great Athenian orator, was born in 384 B.C. He was a
-shy and delicate boy, and often stammered when he spoke. Some of his
-companions were cruel enough to laugh at him and even to imitate his
-stammer. So he would often slip away from his playmates, but when they
-saw that he did not join in their games, they but laughed at him the
-more.
-
-The father of Demosthenes was a rich man, He died when his little
-son was seven years old, leaving his fortune to his child. But the
-guardians who took charge of Demosthenes and his wealth were careless
-and dishonest men. Some of the boy’s money they lost, some they spent
-on themselves.
-
-As the child grew older, his guardians found that there was little
-money left to use for his education. They could not afford to get the
-best teachers, nor did they pay well those whom they employed. So that
-Demosthenes was often taught carelessly or not at all.
-
-Of the boy’s mother we are told little, save that she was kind to her
-delicate little son and tended him with care. But she, too, died while
-he was still young.
-
-Demosthenes did not learn his lessons well or quickly, but he was
-interested in all that went on around him, and he soon began to
-distrust his guardians. Long before he was sixteen years old, he knew
-that they had lost his money, and even then he hoped that some day he
-would be able to punish them.
-
-The boy loved the beautiful city of Athens in which he grew up. Never
-did he tire of gazing at the wonderful temples, the noble statues which
-made her renowned throughout Greece.
-
-There were in these as in other days famous orators in Athens, to whom
-the citizens were ever eager to listen. For they were well pleased
-to be reminded of the glorious days of Thermopylae, and of Marathon,
-though now they were not anxious to win glory on the battlefield. They
-had grown rich and indolent, and were content to stay at home, content
-to go to games and to theatres.
-
-Demosthenes often heard his teachers talk of the great orators of
-Athens, and he wished that he might listen to their eloquent speeches.
-
-One day Callistratus, a famous orator, was to speak at a great trial
-that was taking place in the city.
-
-The boy begged to be allowed to go, and his tutor at length agreed to
-find a corner in the hall where the boy might sit to see and to hear
-all that went on.
-
-Demosthenes could imagine no greater treat than to be there, hidden
-away in the midst of the crowd, to listen to Callistratus.
-
-The speech was a great one, and when it was over the Athenians crowded
-round the orator, eager to applaud, while many followed him to his
-home. Demosthenes came away with his ambition roused. He said to
-himself, ‘I too will be an orator and make the people do as I wish.
-They shall applaud me, even as they have applauded Callistratus to-day.’
-
-But another reason that made him wish to speak in public was that he
-might expose the dishonesty of his guardians in the law courts. For he
-could not be content until they were punished.
-
-When the boy had made up his mind to be an orator he lost no time in
-beginning to study. He knew that he must work hard if he would succeed.
-
-For two years he read history, wrote speeches, and when it was
-possible, went to hear famous orators. When he was eighteen he thought
-that he was ready to speak in public. So he went to the law courts and
-accused his guardians of theft.
-
-At first little notice was taken of what the lad said, but he pleaded
-his cause again and again, until at length he won his suit, and his
-guardians were punished. But it was too late to recover the money,
-which was now nearly all lost.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LXXXIX
-
-DEMOSTHENES THE GREATEST ORATOR OF ATHENS
-
-
-Demosthenes had spoken in the law courts, but he was not content. His
-great ambition now was to speak in the assembly of Athens. He wished
-to remind the Athenians of their glorious past, he wished to encourage
-them to fight against the enemies of their country.
-
-His first attempt was a failure. His voice was weak, his sentences
-long, and before he had finished what he wished to say, the people were
-laughing and jeering, so that he was forced to sit down.
-
-As he left the assembly he was so unhappy that he thought he would
-never speak to the people again. He walked along the streets, scarcely
-knowing, in his distress, where he went.
-
-Suddenly he felt some one touch his arm, and looking up he saw a very
-old man who had been in the assembly, and had heard him speak. He had
-seen how disappointed Demosthenes was as he left the hall, and he
-had determined to encourage him. So first he praised the crestfallen
-orator, saying that his speech had reminded him of the great orator
-Pericles, and then he upbraided the young man for being so easily
-discouraged by the laughter of the people.
-
-Demosthenes allowed himself to be comforted and made up his mind to try
-again, thinking that perhaps after all he would be able to make the
-people listen to him. But in spite of all his efforts he could not hold
-their attention, and he left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak
-that none might see his sorrow.
-
-An actor, named Satyrus, who knew him well, followed him home, for he
-guessed that Demosthenes would be in despair. The orator did not hide
-his trouble from his friend. ‘The citizens will listen to any one, even
-to those who have not studied, rather than to me,’ he said in bitter
-anger. ‘A sailor with a foolish story will make them applaud, while if
-I tell them tales of the glorious deeds of their own countrymen they
-pay no heed.’
-
-‘You say true, Demosthenes,’ answered Satyrus, ‘but I will soon tell
-you how this is if you will recite to me some lines from one of our
-great poets.’
-
-Demosthenes did as his friend asked. But although he said the words
-correctly, his voice was dull and his attitude was stiff and awkward.
-
-Satyrus said nothing when his friend ended, but himself began to repeat
-the same lines. Yet you would scarcely have known that they were the
-same, for the eyes of the actor flashed, his voice rang clear, then
-sank to a whisper, his body swayed now this way, now that, as he sought
-to make the meaning of the poem plain.
-
-Then Demosthenes understood as he had never done before how it was that
-his carefully studied speeches did not interest the Athenians. He must
-not only read or recite them, he must act them, so that the things of
-which he spoke might become real to those who listened.
-
-From that day Demosthenes began to work in a different way. He made one
-of the cellars of his house into a study, that there, undisturbed, he
-might practise his voice and gestures. He stayed in this strange study
-for two or three months at a time, and lest he should be tempted to
-go to theatres or games, he shaved one side of his head, ‘that so for
-shame he might not go abroad, though he desired it ever so much.’
-
-[Illustration: He left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak]
-
-At other times to strengthen his voice he would go to the seashore
-while a storm was raging, and putting pebbles in his mouth he would try
-to make his words heard above the roar of the waves. He also recited
-speeches while he was out of breath from running up some steep hill,
-and at home he would stand before a large mirror to watch his gestures
-and the expression of his face.
-
-And his hard work and perseverance were rewarded, for Demosthenes
-became what he most desired to be, the greatest orator of Athens. His
-enemies learned to fear his speeches, his friends to count upon them to
-aid their cause.
-
-Demosthenes was thirty-three years of age when he made his first speech
-against Philip of Macedon, who now, in 356 B.C., invaded Greece.
-
-The king would gladly have made an alliance with the Athenians and
-gained their goodwill. But they, wishing to recover Amphipolis, which
-he had taken from them, refused to make peace.
-
-Demosthenes lost no opportunity to speak against Philip. He reminded
-his countrymen that the king was ‘not the man to rest’ content with
-that he has subdued, but is always adding to his conquests, and casts
-his snare around us while we sit at home postponing.’ In another speech
-he told the Athenians that they chose their captains, ‘not to fight,
-but to be displayed like dolls in the market-place.’
-
-These and other speeches against the king of Macedon were called ‘The
-Philippics’ of Demosthenes, and still to-day, if some one makes a
-speech against a special person, although his name is not Philip, we
-call the speech a ‘Philippic.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XC
-
-THE SACRED WAR
-
-
-Philip of Macedon began to reign in 359 B.C. When he was sixteen years
-of age he was taken by Pelopidas as a hostage to Thebes. Here he
-stayed for three years, reading Greek literature and learning to love
-it, studying Greek art and learning to admire it. The craft of war he
-gained from the great Theban general Epaminondas.
-
-When Philip went back to Macedon as king, he trained his army in the
-movements he had first seen used by the Theban troops under their
-famous general.
-
-At this time a war called the Sacred War was going on in Greece.
-
-Delphi, where the temple of Apollo stood, had been seized by the
-Phocians, who were led by a bold commander named Philomelus. The home
-of the Phocians was near Mount Parnassus.
-
-In the temple vast treasures had been stored; these, said Philomelus,
-should be safe as of old. But when he fortified the city and brought a
-large army of soldiers to guard it, the other Greek states said it was
-time to interfere--that Delphi must be taken from the Phocians.
-
-Philomelus at once resolved to increase his army, but he had no money
-to pay more soldiers. The Phocians had already spent all that they
-possessed on the war, and the citizens of Delphi had been so heavily
-taxed that they could give no more.
-
-Money Philomelus must have! So he began to borrow from the treasures of
-the temple, which he had promised should be untouched. As the war went
-on he took more gold, more of the sacred treasures, none of which he
-was able to replace.
-
-When the Thebans and their allies met Philomelus, he and his hired
-troops were soon put to flight. Philomelus fled alone to the top of a
-precipice, pursued by the enemy. He must either leap into the awful
-abyss or be captured by the angry soldiers. In a moment he had made his
-choice, and when the Thebans reached the spot where he had been seen
-but a second before, he was no longer there.
-
-But other leaders replaced Philomelus, and they too rifled the temple
-of Apollo.
-
-At length the Phocians grew so bold that they determined to attack
-Philip of Macedon who had invaded Thessaly, and drive him from Greek
-territory. They forced the king to return to Macedon, but he soon came
-back with a large army and the Phocians retreated to the famous pass of
-Thermopylae. They hoped that Athens would help them to hold the pass
-against Philip, but in spite of the Philippics of Demosthenes, she did
-nothing.
-
-Alone, the Phocians were not strong enough to resist Philip’s attack,
-and they were forced to surrender. The pass, which the king had long
-resolved to gain, was in his hand.
-
-When the Athenians heard of the disaster they were dismayed, and when
-Demosthenes again urged them to take up arms against the invaders, his
-appeal was not made in vain.
-
-In August 338 B.C. the united army of Athenians and Thebans marched
-against the Macedonians, and met them in the plain of Chæronea, where a
-great battle was fought.
-
-Philip’s famous son Alexander, who was then only eighteen years old,
-was in command of one of the wings of the Macedonian army. Young as he
-was, it was his attack upon the Sacred Band of Thebans that determined
-the battle.
-
-The Sacred Band fought to the last, and was cut down where it stood.
-Soon the rest of the Greek army fled from the fatal field, Demosthenes,
-who was among the foot soldiers, taking flight with his comrades.
-
-On the roadside, not far from the town of Chæronea and near to Thebes,
-is a tomb, where the fallen heroes of the Sacred Band were laid.
-
-Standing over the tomb is the statue of a lion, now partly in ruins,
-which was placed there as though to protect the bodies of the slain.
-
-The victory of Philip at Chæronea left Athens, and indeed all Greece,
-at the mercy of the king, and he treated her well. His chief ambition
-was to conquer the kingdom of Persia, and the army he meant to lead
-against the great king was to be made up of Greeks as well as of
-Macedonians.
-
-But in 336 B.C., before his plans could be carried out, Philip was
-murdered.
-
-When Greece heard the tidings she rejoiced, for now again she hoped to
-be free. None was more glad than Demosthenes, for he, as you know, had
-always been a bitter enemy of the king.
-
-The orator was wearing black clothes at the time, because he had but
-lately lost his daughter. When he heard that Philip had been murdered,
-he put them away and clad himself in gay garments, while he placed a
-wreath upon his head.
-
-Only one Athenian was found to reprove the Athenians for their hasty
-and foolish joy.
-
-Phocion, who was both a general and an orator, said gravely, ‘Nothing
-shows greater meanness of spirit than expressions of joy at the death
-of an enemy. Remember that the army you fought at Chæronea is lessened
-by only one man.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCI
-
-ALEXANDER AND BUCEPHALUS
-
-
-Alexander, the son of Philip of Macedon, became king in 336 B.C. The
-queen-mother adored her brave son and dreamed of the great things he
-would do when he became a man. She did all she could to awake his
-ambition, telling him that he was descended from Achilles, the hero of
-Troy, and bidding him, when he was older, strive to do nobler deeds
-than his great ancestor had done. One of his tutors called the young
-prince Achilles, while he named himself Phœnix, after the tutor of the
-old Greek hero.
-
-The Iliad of Homer, which tells of the deeds of Achilles, Alexander
-knew by heart. When he was a man he always carried a copy with him on
-his campaigns. It is said that he slept with it as well as his sword
-beneath his pillow.
-
-Alexander might almost have been a Spartan boy, so simple was his
-training. He learned to ride, to race, to swim, but he never cared to
-wrestle as did most lads of his time. Nor would he offer prizes for
-such contests at the games which were held each year.
-
-When the prince was asked if he would run in the Olympic games, for he
-was fleet of foot, he answered, ‘Yes, if I could have kings to race
-with me.’
-
-Even as a lad he was eager to win glory, and when he heard of a great
-victory gained by his royal father, or of a town that had been subdued
-by him, he was more sorry than glad, and said to his companions, ‘My
-father will make so many conquests that there will be nothing left for
-me to win.’
-
-One day, while Alexander was still a boy, a Greek from Thessaly arrived
-at the court of Macedon, bringing with him a noble horse, named
-Bucephalus, which he offered to sell for £2600.
-
-Philip went with his son and his courtiers to look at the horse and
-to test its powers. But when any one approached or tried to mount,
-Bucephalus reared and kicked, and became so unmanageable that the king,
-growing angry, bade the Thessalian take the animal away.
-
-The prince had been watching the horse keenly, and as he was being led
-away, the lad exclaimed, ‘What an excellent horse do they lose for want
-of skill and courage to manage him!’
-
-Philip heard what his son said, but at first he took no notice of his
-words. But when the prince said the same thing again and again, he
-looked at Alexander, and saw that he was really sorry that the horse
-was being sent away.
-
-Then, half mocking, the king said, ‘Do you reproach those who are older
-than yourself, as if you knew more and were better able to manage him
-than they?’
-
-‘I could manage the horse better than others have done,’ answered the
-prince.
-
-‘And if you fail what will you forfeit?’ asked the king.
-
-‘I will pay the whole price of the horse,’ said Alexander quickly.
-
-The courtiers laughed at the confidence of the prince, but paying no
-attention to them, he ran toward the horse and seizing the bridle
-turned Bucephalus, so that he faced the sun. For the prince had noticed
-that the steed was afraid of his own shadow as it flitted backward and
-forward with his every movement.
-
-After speaking quietly to the horse and patting him, the prince flung
-aside the mantle he was wearing, and nimbly mounted on his back. Using
-neither whip nor spur, he let the animal choose his own pace. And
-Bucephalus was content to go at a quiet trot.
-
-[Illustration: He ran toward the horse and seized the bridle]
-
-Gradually Alexander urged him on to a gallop, with voice and spur. As
-the pace grew quicker and quicker, the king looked on in fear lest the
-lad should be thrown. But when he saw that the horse was well under
-control, and that Alexander had turned and was coming back, he burst
-into tears of joy, while the courtiers loudly applauded the prince.
-
-As he leaped from the horse, Philip kissed him and said, ‘O my son,
-look thee out a kingdom equal to and worthy of thyself, for Macedon is
-too little for thee.’
-
-Soon after this the king sent for a famous philosopher, named
-Aristotle, to teach his son.
-
-Alexander was quick to learn, and his eager interest in his studies
-pleased Aristotle. In after days, when the prince had become a king and
-was adding kingdom after kingdom to his possessions, he wrote to his
-old tutor, ‘I assure you I had rather excel others in the knowledge of
-what is excellent than in the extent of my power and dominions.’
-
-When Philip was murdered, Alexander was twenty years of age, ‘a
-stripling,’ Demosthenes said, making light of his youth. But had
-Demosthenes known the character of the prince, he would not have spoken
-thus slightingly of his years.
-
-The orator not only rejoiced when Philip was murdered, but he urged the
-people to rouse themselves and throw off the yoke of Macedon. The old
-days when the Athenians would not listen to Demosthenes were long past.
-Now his matchless eloquence could hold them spellbound, even when they
-refused to be guided by his advice. But in Athens, as in many other
-cities, discontent had long been smouldering, and fanned by his words
-it broke out into a blaze.
-
-The young king found that he must put down rebellion in Greece before
-he set out, as he wished to do, to conquer Persia.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCII
-
-ALEXANDER AND DIOGENES
-
-
-When Alexander marched at the head of his army into Thessaly, not a
-blow was struck. His presence seemed enough to gain the allegiance of
-the Thessalians.
-
-The king then went to Corinth, where ambassadors from many of the Greek
-states met him. Young as he was, they chose Alexander to be general
-over the Greek troops which were to go with the Macedonians to invade
-Asia.
-
-Every one in Corinth was eager to see the king. From the surrounding
-towns, too, the people crowded into the city, that they might look at
-the young monarch who was going to lead their soldiers on so great an
-expedition.
-
-They did not dream of all that he would do, how he would spread their
-customs, their language, their culture over Asia first, and then
-over all the world. But looking at him they knew that he would be a
-conqueror.
-
-Among those who wished to see Alexander were many philosophers and
-great men. But one strange philosopher, called Diogenes, showed no
-interest in the king.
-
-Alexander heard of this man, who was said to sit all day in a tub or
-barrel. As Diogenes did not come to see him, he resolved to go to
-see Diogenes. He found the philosopher outside the gates of Corinth,
-sitting in a tub which was placed so that the rays of the sun fell upon
-him.
-
-When the philosopher saw the king and the courtiers who accompanied
-him, he roused himself from his meditations and looked at the young
-sovereign.
-
-Alexander spoke kindly to him, and asked if there was anything he
-wished.
-
-‘Yes,’ answered Diogenes, ‘I would have you not stand between me and
-the sun.’
-
-The courtiers were indignant at such an answer, but Alexander laughed,
-and being pleased with the philosopher’s indifference to his rank, he
-said to them, ‘If I were not Alexander, I should like to be Diogenes.’
-
-Soon after this the king, believing that he had secured the fealty of
-Greece, went back to Macedon. In the spring of 335 B.C. he hoped to set
-out to invade Asia.
-
-But the wild tribes on the borders of Macedon began to be restless, and
-the king was forced to subdue these foes nearer home before he went to
-Asia. While he was driving them beyond his borders, a rumour that he
-was dead reached Greece.
-
-If Alexander was dead it was a good chance, thought the Thebans, to
-drive the Macedonians from their citadel, and without waiting to find
-out if the rumour was true they revolted. Demosthenes tried to persuade
-the Athenians to go to the help of the Thebans, but although his
-eloquence moved them it had not power to make them act.
-
-The Thebans soon found to their cost that Alexander was not dead. He
-was, indeed, on his way to Greece to punish them for revolting.
-
-Outside the walls of their city he halted, so that the citizens might
-submit, if so they willed. But they, still dreaming of liberty, refused
-to surrender.
-
-Then Alexander attacked the city and captured it with little
-difficulty. He determined to give the other cities in Greece a lesson
-by punishing the rebels severely. So he pulled down their houses and
-utterly destroyed their town, leaving untouched only the temples, and a
-house in which a great poet named Pindar had dwelt.
-
-Demosthenes was bitterly disappointed that the Athenians had not sent
-to help the Thebans. He feared, too, that Alexander would now march
-against Athens, and destroy her as he had destroyed Thebes. But the
-king only sent to demand that eight of the orators who had done their
-best to incite the people to rebel against him, should be sent to him
-as hostages.
-
-Demosthenes would have been among the eight, and he urged the Athenians
-not to ‘hand over their sheep-dogs to the wolf.’ But Phocion said that
-it would be wise to do as Alexander asked.
-
-At length the assembly sent Damocles to the king to plead the cause of
-his comrades, for he was, after Demosthenes, the greatest orator in
-Athens.
-
-Alexander listened to Damocles and was persuaded to leave the orators
-in their own city, for he believed that the fate of Thebes would make
-Athens afraid to rebel.
-
-Of the loyalty of the Greek troops the king was sure, for were they not
-going to avenge the invasion of Greece by Xerxes?
-
-The king did not mean to return to Macedon to reign, rather did he
-dream of a throne in one of the great cities which he was going to
-conquer. So before he marched away, he divided his royal domain and his
-wealth among his friends.
-
-Perdiccas, one of his friends, was dismayed at the generosity of the
-king, and asked him what he was keeping for himself.
-
-‘Hope,’ answered Alexander. Then Perdiccas refused to accept his share
-of the king’s gifts, saying, ‘We who go forth to fight with you need
-share only in your hope.’
-
-Antipater, one of his father’s generals, Alexander left in Macedon to
-look after his kingdom.
-
-At length in the spring of 334 B.C., after saying good-bye to his
-mother, whom he dearly loved, the king marched with an enormous force
-to the Hellespont and crossed it. The great expedition had really
-begun.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCIII
-
-THE BATTLE OF GRANICUS
-
-
-Before Alexander crossed the Hellespont he had seen that the opposite
-shore was held by his Macedonians. While the army landed he himself
-sailed to the ‘Harbour of the Achæans.’ Midway in the strait he took a
-golden dish in his hand, and flung from it an offering to Poseidon and
-to the Nereids. It is said that the king himself steered the ship in
-which he sailed to the Mysian shore.
-
-Crossing the plain of Troy, the king climbed the hill of Ilion, and
-here in a forsaken little town he found a temple to Athene, to whom he
-offered sacrifice. He left his own armour in the temple, taking in its
-place an ancient suit that had once been hung upon the walls, a trophy
-of war.
-
-On the tomb of his ancestor, Achilles, he laid a garland, while
-Hephæstion, his beloved friend, placed one on the grave of Patroclus.
-The old Greek stories had entered into the very fibre of the young
-king, and in this way he did honour, as he deemed, to his glorious
-ancestor. He felt ready now to do deeds as great as his hero had done.
-
-When Alexander rejoined his army, it had advanced to the river
-Granicus, and there, on the opposite bank, was a great force under
-Darius, king of Persia. Alexander would have to conquer this great host
-before he could advance into Asia.
-
-One of his officers, named Parmenio, begged the king to wait to cross
-the river until early the next morning, when the enemy would not be
-drawn up in battle array.
-
-‘I should be ashamed,’ answered the king, ‘having crossed the
-Hellespont to be detained by a miserable stream like the Granicus.’ He
-then ordered the army to advance, and himself dashed into the river,
-followed by his horse-guards.
-
-The Granicus was not a river to be despised, for the current was
-strong, and the horses kept their feet with difficulty.
-
-A storm of arrows was poured upon the struggling horses and their
-riders, and it seemed as though the attempt to cross in the face of
-the foe would be useless. But the king refused to be daunted, and the
-soldiers followed their intrepid leader, until at length they reached
-the opposite bank.
-
-But to clamber up the bank was no easy matter. The sides of the river
-were slippery, and the horses having no firm foothold, stumbled and
-fell. Only after great and repeated efforts did Alexander and those who
-followed him reach the top of the bank. Wet and exhausted, they had
-no time to form their ranks before the Persians dashed upon them. A
-desperate hand-to-hand fight was at once begun.
-
-The enemy was quick to notice Alexander, for he wore a large plume of
-white feathers in his helmet, while his buckler was more splendid than
-that of any of his soldiers.
-
-Two Persian officers, wishing to win the glory of having killed the
-king, attacked him together. One of them, riding close to Alexander,
-rose in his stirrups, and brought his battle-axe down with all his
-strength upon the helmet of the king. So fierce was the blow that the
-crest was torn away along with one of the plumes, while the axe cut its
-way through the helmet, until the edge touched Alexander’s hair.
-
-Again the officer raised his axe, but ere he could strike, Clitus, the
-foster-brother of Alexander, slew the officer with his sword and the
-king was saved.
-
-The famous phalanx of the Macedonians now threw itself upon the enemy,
-and the Persians tried in vain to repel the fierceness of the attack.
-Soon the whole army was put to flight, all save a band of Greek
-soldiers who were fighting for Darius.
-
-These withdrew to a height above the battlefield, and sent to Alexander
-to ask for quarter. But the king refused their request, and ordered his
-men to attack the little company.
-
-The Greeks fought desperately, and Alexander lost more men in this
-struggle than he had lost in all the rest of the battle. His horse,
-which was not the famous Bucephalus, was killed on the field.
-
-While in this great battle, fought in 334 B.C. on the banks of the
-Granicus, the Persians lost a great number of men, only thirty-four
-Macedonians, it is said, were slain.
-
-The spoil was enormous, and Alexander determined that the Greeks should
-have a generous share. To Athens he sent three hundred Persian bucklers
-to be offered to Athene, with these words inscribed, ‘Alexander, son of
-Philip, and the Grecians, except the Lacedæmonians, won these from the
-barbarians who inhabit Asia.’
-
-Athens accepted the king’s offering to their goddess, but they
-churlishly refused to send ships to help him to conquer the coast towns
-which he must now attack.
-
-While dividing the spoil of the Granicus, Alexander did not forget his
-mother. To her he sent all the plate he had taken, as well as beautiful
-cloth of wonderful purple dye. For himself he kept but little.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCIV
-
-THE GORDIAN KNOT
-
-
-After the battle of Granicus, many Persian towns submitted to the
-conqueror. Those along the coast of Asia Minor that refused to open
-their gates, the king quickly subdued.
-
-During the winter he reached a city called Gordion, about which a
-strange story is told.
-
-In the citadel of Gordion was an old, roughly built wagon, which had
-once belonged to a peasant named Gordius. Long, long ago Gordius had
-ridden into the town in his wagon, and the oracle had declared that
-this peasant had been chosen by the gods to be king of Phrygia, in
-which country Gordion stood.
-
-When Gordius was made king, almost the first thing he did was to
-dedicate his wagon to the gods, tying the yoke to the pole with fibre
-taken from the bark of a tree. The Gordion knot, as it was named, was
-twisted and tangled in a bewildering way, and looked as though it would
-defy the most skilful fingers to untie. Yet an oracle had said that
-whoever should succeed in undoing this wonderful knot would become king
-over all Asia.
-
-Many men who wished to wear a crown came to Gordion to try to undo the
-knot, but not one of them had been able to unravel the twisted fibre.
-
-When Alexander, with his victorious army, rode into Gordion, every one
-wondered if the king would be able to untie the famous knot.
-
-Alexander was not long in going to see the ancient wagon. He looked at
-the puzzling knot and soon saw that he would not be able to untie it.
-
-But he did not mean to be beaten. He would solve the problem in his own
-way. So taking his sword in his impatient hands, with one swift stroke
-he cut the formidable knot in two.
-
-The onlookers, both Phrygians and Macedonians, shouted with delight,
-for lo! the oracle was fulfilled, and Alexander would become monarch of
-Asia.
-
-As the knot was cut in twain, a great thunderstorm raged over the town,
-and the people said, ‘It is Zeus who sends the storm to show that he is
-pleased that the prophecy is fulfilled.’
-
-While Alexander had been conquering the towns along the coast of Asia,
-Darius had been gathering together another great army, which numbered,
-so it was said, six hundred thousand men. The king himself commanded
-the vast army, and in the spring of 333 B.C. he set out to find
-Alexander.
-
-Darius was not a skilful general, nor was he a brave king, but he had
-no doubt that he would conquer Alexander.
-
-When Alexander still lingered in one of the coast towns, Darius deemed
-that it was cowardice that kept him there, so little did he know of the
-character of his foe. It was illness alone that kept Alexander from
-advancing against the great king.
-
-Some said that it was the hardships of the battlefield that had made
-the king ill, others that while he was still heated after a long march
-he had bathed in a river, the waters of which were very cold.
-
-To the dismay of his soldiers, who adored their brave leader, the king
-grew worse and worse. He was so ill that it seemed that he must die.
-
-His physicians were afraid to give the king medicine, for should he die
-they would be accused of giving him poison.
-
-At length one of the physicians, named Philip, to whom Alexander had
-shown great kindness, determined that whatever happened to him, he
-would do his utmost to save the king’s life.
-
-Alexander himself was content to take what Philip ordered, so impatient
-was he to be well and at the head of his army once again.
-
-So Philip left the king for a few moments to prepare the medicine that
-he believed would cure him.
-
-While he was absent, a letter was brought to Alexander from his officer
-Parmenio. It besought the king not to trust Philip, as he had been
-bribed by Darius to poison him. Vast sums of money and the hand of the
-great king’s daughter, said Parmenio, were to be the reward of the
-physician.
-
-When Alexander had read the letter, he put it under his pillow, showing
-it to no one, not even to his beloved friend Hephæstion. He had no
-sooner done so than Philip returned with the medicine. The king took it
-without hesitation. Then, drawing the letter from beneath his pillow,
-he bade his physician read it.
-
-Philip was horrified as he read the false accusation, and flinging
-himself down by the bed, he entreated the king to trust him and to fear
-nothing.
-
-The drug was a powerful one, and after taking it the king was
-unconscious for hours. His nurses whispered to one another that he was
-dead.
-
-But after a time he opened his eyes, weak indeed, but no longer in
-danger. Philip tended him until his strength returned, and he was at
-length able to go out to show himself to his Macedonians. For they had
-been in constant fear lest aught should befall their king, and nothing
-would satisfy them until they had seen his face.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCV
-
-DARIUS GALLOPS FROM THE BATTLEFIELD
-
-
-As soon as he had recovered from his illness, Alexander led his army to
-meet Darius. He found the great king in the pass of Issus, in October
-333 B.C.
-
-Darius had first encamped on the plain of Issus, in a strong position,
-where his vast army would have had room to fight.
-
-But he dreamed that Alexander would try to escape him, so he ordered
-his men to march through the narrow mountain passes to meet the enemy.
-
-A Macedonian, who had deserted, begged Darius not to leave the plain.
-‘But,’ said the king, ‘if I stay here, Alexander will escape me.’
-
-‘That fear is needless,’ answered the Macedonian, ‘for assure yourself
-that far from avoiding you, he will make all speed to meet you, and is
-now most likely on his march toward you.’
-
-When Alexander knew that Darius had left the plain for the pass of
-Issus, he was pleased, for he knew that the enemy would now be hemmed
-in between the mountains and the sea.
-
-Before long the two armies were close together. Alexander led his
-right wing against the left wing of the Persians. Here he was soon
-victorious, and free to attack the centre of the enemy, where Darius
-sat in his chariot, surrounded by a band of Persian nobles.
-
-As the great king saw Alexander and his followers drawing nearer and
-nearer, he began to grow afraid. Soon he could bear his fears no
-longer, and leaping from his chariot, he mounted a horse and fled from
-the field.
-
-When the Persians saw that their king had fled, they stayed to fight
-no longer. Even the cavalry, which had withstood every attack, now
-wavered, then broke and fled with the rest.
-
-The great hosts sought to hide themselves from their pursuers among the
-mountain passes, but thousands were captured and slain.
-
-Darius in his haste had left his shield and his royal cloak behind, but
-he would not stay to recover them. On and on he fled until he reached a
-town on the river Euphrates.
-
-Alexander was well pleased with his great victory, but he would fain
-have captured the Persian king. To a wound in his thigh he paid little
-attention, nor did it prove dangerous. But it made it impossible for
-him to overtake Darius.
-
-When the king returned from the pursuit of his enemy, he found his men
-pillaging the Persian camp. The tent of Darius, which was beautifully
-furnished, and which also had a great store of gold and silver, was set
-apart for Alexander himself.
-
-‘Let us now cleanse ourselves from the toils of war in the baths of
-Darius,’ said the king as he entered the tent of the defeated monarch.
-
-‘Not so,’ answered one of his followers, ‘but in Alexander’s rather;
-for the property of the conquered is and should be called the
-conqueror’s.’
-
-Alexander’s early training had been simple as that of a Spartan, and
-the luxury of the great king’s tents amazed him.
-
-In one there were numerous baths and many boxes of ointment, in another
-a table was spread for a magnificent feast. As Alexander looked at it
-all, he turned to his followers and said, ‘This, it seems, is royalty.’
-
-But his early training still influenced him, and he kept his simple
-tastes and cared little for dainty fare or other luxuries.
-
-Once a queen to whom Alexander had been kind sent to his tent, day by
-day, some of the dishes which had been prepared for her own table. And
-at length, that he might always fare well, she sent cooks and bakers.
-
-But the king would not accept them, for he said that his old tutor had
-given him the best possible cooks. They were, ‘a night march to prepare
-for breakfast, and a moderate breakfast to create an appetite for
-supper.’
-
-He told the queen, too, how when he was a boy his tutor Leonidas used
-to look often in his wardrobe, lest his clothes were too fine, and in
-his room, to see that his mother had not given him cushions for his
-couch or soft pillows for his bed.
-
-As Alexander sat down to supper on the evening of the victory of Issus,
-the sound of wailing and weeping fell upon his ear. It seemed to him
-as the weeping of women, and he demanded to be told at once who was in
-trouble.
-
-His officers said that it was the mother, and wife and children of
-Darius who were weeping. For they had heard that Alexander had returned
-with their lord’s shield and cloak, and they thought that he must have
-been slain.
-
-Then the king bade one of his followers go tell the royal mourners that
-Darius lived, and that they need fear no harm from Alexander. For he
-made war upon Darius not because he bore him ill will, but because he
-wished to gain his dominions. He promised that he would provide them
-with all the comforts which they had been used to receive from the
-great king.
-
-When Darius was safe beyond the Euphrates, he remembered that his wife
-and mother had been left to the mercy of his conqueror. So he wrote to
-Alexander, begging that they might be sent to him and offering to make
-a treaty with the king.
-
-Here is part of the proud answer that Alexander sent to Darius.
-
-‘I am lord of all, Darius,’ he wrote, ‘and therefore do thou come to me
-with thy requests. Thou hast only to come to me to ask and receive thy
-mother and wife and children, and whatever else thou mayest desire. And
-for the future, whenever thou sendest, send to me as to the great king
-of Asia, and do not write as to an equal, but tell me whatever thy need
-be, as to one who is lord of all that is thine. Otherwise I will deal
-with thee as with an offender. But if thou disputest the kingdom, then
-wait and fight for it again, and do not flee; for I will march against
-thee, wheresoever thou mayest be.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCVI
-
-TYRE IS STORMED BY ALEXANDER
-
-
-Alexander did not cross the Euphrates in search of Darius. He knew that
-the great king could do him no harm, even should he again assemble a
-large army. So for a time he left Darius to do as he pleased, while he
-himself went on with his own plan.
-
-Nearly all the towns in Syracuse were ready to open their gates to
-Alexander. Some that had found Darius a hard master, hailed him as a
-deliverer.
-
-Tyre alone, while saying that she was ready to do as the king willed,
-refused to receive either a Persian or a Macedonian into the city.
-
-Alexander wished to offer sacrifice to the deity of Tyre, whose temple
-was within the city, and when the people refused to open their gates,
-he was so angry that he at once laid siege to the town.
-
-Tyre stood on an island, about half a mile from the mainland. Near the
-coast the water was shallow, while close to the walls of the city it
-was deep.
-
-The Tyrians believed that they could hold their city against Alexander,
-for the walls were built high, on the top of a steep and dangerous
-cliff.
-
-As the king had no fleet, he could not attack the city until he had
-built a causeway from the mainland to the island, so he ordered his men
-to begin the work without delay.
-
-But when the causeway stretched almost to the island, the Tyrians
-did all that they could to hinder the workmen. They sent among them
-showers of arrows, and hurled down upon them great pieces of rock, so
-that they found it impossible to complete the causeway.
-
-But the king was not easily beaten. He ordered the men to build towers
-along the causeway, and to tie leather screens from one tower to
-another, so that they might be protected from the arrows and missiles
-of the enemy.
-
-Then the Tyrians dragged a ship, loaded with dry wood, as near to the
-causeway as they dared to venture, and set it on fire. The towers were
-soon in flames, and while the Macedonians tried in vain to extinguish
-them, the enemy never ceased to send showers of arrows among the
-unfortunate men, so that many of them lost their lives.
-
-Although the Tyrians had destroyed the work of months, Alexander still
-refused to give in. He now sent to the cities round about, and bade
-them send ships to guard his soldiers until the causeway was finished.
-In seven months from the time it was begun, the causeway reached to the
-foot of the rock on which the city stood.
-
-In July 332 B.C. a breach was made in the wall, and, led by Alexander
-himself, the Macedonians rushed in triumph into the city that had so
-long defied them.
-
-The Tyrians fought fiercely, for they knew they need not look for mercy
-if the city was taken. But they were soon overpowered, and the town was
-given up to plunder. The soldiers were eager for spoil, but spoil alone
-could not satisfy them. As they thought of the weary months which they
-had spent in trying to reach the island, they wreaked their rage on the
-miserable citizens, massacring all on whom they could lay their hands.
-
-After Tyre had fallen, Alexander was master of Syria, and could control
-the eastern Mediterranean.
-
-From Tyre, the king marched southward until he reached Egypt. Here,
-after making himself lord of the country, he founded the city which is
-still called after him, Alexandria.
-
-During the siege of Tyre, Darius had again sent to Alexander, offering
-to him a large ransom for his family, as well as the hand of his
-daughter and all the provinces west of Euphrates.
-
-While Alexander and his generals were talking over the offer of Darius,
-Parmenio exclaimed, ‘If I were you I should accept these terms.’
-
-‘And I,’ answered the king, ‘would accept them if I were Parmenio.’
-
-To Darius, Alexander’s reply was haughtier than ever. ‘If thou comest,’
-so ran his words, ‘and yield thyself up into my power, I will treat
-thee with all possible kindness; if not, I will come myself to seek
-thee.’
-
-Soon after this the wife of Darius died. Alexander had always treated
-her well, and now he buried her with great honour.
-
-One of her servants fled to Darius to tell him the sad tidings. He told
-him, too, of the kindness Alexander had ever shown to his royal captive.
-
-‘O king,’ said the servant, ‘neither your queen when alive, nor your
-mother, nor children wanted anything of their former happy condition,
-unless it were the light of your countenance. And after her decease,
-Statira, the queen, had not only all due funeral ornaments, but was
-honoured also with the tears of your very enemies; for Alexander is as
-gentle after victory as he is terrible in the field.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCVII
-
-THE BATTLE OF GAUGAMELA
-
-
-It was now almost two years since the battle of Issus, and Alexander
-determined once more to meet Darius, who had again assembled a large
-army.
-
-In the spring of 331 B.C. the king went back to Tyre, and by August
-he had reached Thapsacus, a town on the banks of the river Euphrates.
-He wished to go on to Babylon, the capital of the Persian empire, but
-the direct way to the city, which was down the Euphrates, was guarded
-by Cyrus with a large army. So Alexander struck off across the north
-of Mesopotamia, and reaching the Tigris marched along the river on the
-eastern side. Above Nineveh he crossed to the other bank, and after
-marching southward for several days, he heard that Darius was encamped
-on a plain near Gaugamela, on the river Bumōdus.
-
-Even to the brave Macedonian generals, the vast hosts of the Persians
-looked formidable.
-
-Parmenio looking at them begged the king to surprise the enemy by a
-night attack rather than risk a battle in daylight.
-
-‘I will not steal a victory,’ answered Alexander.
-
-The night before the battle the king slept soundly, as though nothing
-preyed upon his mind. In the morning his generals found him still fast
-asleep, so without disturbing him they themselves bade the soldiers
-have breakfast.
-
-At length Parmenio went to wake the king, and having with difficulty
-roused him, he asked how it was possible he could sleep so soundly
-when the most important battle of his life had to be fought that day.
-
-‘You slept, sire, as though you were already victorious,’ said the
-anxious general.
-
-‘Are we not so indeed,’ answered the king, ‘since we are at last
-relieved from the trouble of wandering in pursuit of Darius, through a
-wide and wasted country, hoping in vain that he would fight us?’
-
-Alexander, who was already dressed, now put on his helmet, which was of
-iron, yet so polished was it that it shone as silver. Great skill had
-been lavished on the decoration of his belt, which was indeed the most
-splendid part of his dress. He then ordered his army to be drawn up in
-battle array, while he mounted Bucephalus, who was old now, yet eager
-for battle.
-
-Before the king gave the signal to attack, he stretched out his right
-hand to heaven, and called upon the gods to defend and strengthen the
-Greeks, if he indeed were the son of Zeus.
-
-By the side of Alexander rode a soothsayer, clad in a white robe and
-wearing on his head a crown of gold. He pointed to the sky, and the
-soldiers looking up saw an eagle flying over the king’s head and on
-toward the Persian army. ‘It is a good omen,’ they cried, and shouted
-to be led at once against the foe.
-
-A moment later the order was given, and the Macedonians rushed upon the
-great hosts of the enemy.
-
-Darius thought that his war-chariots would cause deadly havoc among his
-enemies, for scythes were fastened to the wheels to mow down all who
-came within reach.
-
-But the Macedonian archers drew their bows and sped their arrows among
-the charioteers, while the strongest seized the reins of the horses,
-and pulled the drivers from their seats. Then the soldiers opened wide
-their ranks so that those chariots that still had drivers rattled
-harmlessly past them.
-
-Alexander was already attacking the centre of the Persian army, where,
-as at the battle of Issus, Darius sat in his chariot, looking on at the
-struggle.
-
-All at once he saw Alexander with his chosen companions drawing nearer
-and nearer, and once again his courage failed. Fiercer and fiercer
-raged the battle, closer and closer drew Alexander to the Persian king.
-
-The horsemen grouped in front of Darius were driven backward and fled,
-all save the bravest who never flinched, but fell in a supreme effort
-to keep the enemy from approaching any nearer to the king’s chariot.
-
-Even as they fell they still tried to keep back the foe, clinging
-desperately to the legs of the horses as they galloped over their
-wounded bodies.
-
-Darius was in immediate danger of being captured. In vain the driver
-tried to turn the royal chariot, the bodies of the fallen soldiers
-would not allow the wheels to move. The horses plunged and kicked in an
-agony of fear, and the charioteer was helpless.
-
-Then, as the king had done on the field of Issus, he did now. He leaped
-from the chariot, mounted a horse and fled from the battlefield.
-
-Alexander followed the king in swift pursuit; it seemed impossible
-that he could escape. But Parmenio, who was commanding the left wing,
-was almost overpowered by the enemy. He sent a messenger to overtake
-Alexander, and beg him for help.
-
-The king reluctantly gave up his pursuit of Darius, and rode back with
-his companions to give his general the help he had entreated. But
-by the time he reached the left wing his aid was no longer needed.
-Parmenio had wrested victory from the foe.
-
-So the king again set out in pursuit of Darius, but all that he
-captured was the chariot, the shield and the bow of the coward king.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCVIII
-
-ALEXANDER BURNS PERSEPOLIS
-
-
-The battle of Gaugamela in 331 B.C. decided the fate of the Persian
-empire. Darius was no longer the great king, for Alexander took the
-title as well as the dominions of his foe.
-
-At Babylon, to which city Alexander now marched, the gates were thrown
-open to welcome him, the people coming out to meet the conqueror, led
-by their priests.
-
-Alexander received them kindly, and bade the Babylonians not be afraid
-still to worship their own national god.
-
-Here, in this great city, the king dreamed that he would set up his
-throne. Babylon should be the capital of his new empire.
-
-Not far from Babylon was the city of Susa, where the Persian kings
-usually spent the winter months. Susa also surrendered to the great
-king without a blow being struck.
-
-There were many treasures and much gold in both Babylon and Susa;
-perhaps the most wonderful treasure was a piece of purple cloth, which
-was worth an enormous sum of money. Although it had been laid aside for
-one hundred and ninety years, yet its marvellous colour was as perfect
-as it had ever been.
-
-The spoils for which the Greeks cared most were some that had been
-carried away by Xerxes. Among those that they found at Susa were
-statues of Harmodius and Aristogeiton. By the order of Alexander, they
-were now sent back to Athens.
-
-But even greater treasures than any the king had yet found were stored
-in palaces hidden among the highlands of Persia. To these palaces
-Alexander resolved to march, although the way led through narrow
-mountain passes which were guarded by a Persian army.
-
-By attacking the enemy both in the front and in the rear, Alexander
-caught the Persians in a trap. They were speedily cut to pieces or fell
-down the dangerous mountain tracks in a vain effort to escape.
-
-Then unhindered by any foe, the king marched on to one of the great
-cities of the Persian kings, which the Greeks called Persepolis, or
-‘the richest of all the cities under the sun.’
-
-So great were the treasures stored in the palace of Persepolis, that
-ten thousand pairs of mules and five thousand camels were needed to
-carry them away.
-
-For four months Alexander lingered in the city. His soldiers were proud
-indeed of their king when for the first time they saw him sitting under
-a canopy of gold on the throne of the Persian monarchs.
-
-A Corinthian, who was a great friend of Alexander’s, exclaimed at
-the sight, ‘How unfortunate are those Greeks who have died without
-beholding Alexander seated on the throne of Darius!’
-
-Before he left Persepolis to go in search of Darius, Alexander gave a
-great feast.
-
-It was then that the king, urged by the excited revellers, allowed the
-palace to be burned.
-
-With a wreath of flowers on his head and a lighted torch in his hand,
-the king, followed by his guests, surrounded the palace, and set light
-to it. The soldiers also seized torches and amid shouts and merriment
-they, too, helped to destroy the palace of the Persian kings.
-
-The Macedonians thought that the burning of the palace was a sign
-that Alexander did not mean to dwell among the barbarians, and they
-rejoiced. For they were growing weary of marching into unknown
-countries, and they were beginning to think wistfully of their
-homeland.
-
-Alexander was soon sorry for the wild impulse which had seized him, and
-he gave orders to put out the fire as speedily as might be.
-
-The officers in Alexander’s army had become rich with the spoils of
-conquered cities, and the king found that they were growing as fond
-of ease and luxury as the Persians. Their tables were loaded with
-delicacies, servants attended to their slightest wish. One officer even
-had his shoes made with silver nails.
-
-Such indulgence annoyed the king and he reproved his officers, telling
-them that toil was more honourable than pleasure.
-
-‘How is it possible,’ he said, ‘if you cannot attend to your own body,
-that you look well after your horse, or keep your armour bright and in
-good order? You should surely avoid the weaknesses of those you have
-conquered.’
-
-To set his army an example, the king now began to hunt more than was
-his custom and with less care for his own safety. When the soldiers
-were sent against an enemy, Alexander himself went with them, and
-endured the same hardships and dangers as his men.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XCIX
-
-ALEXANDER SLAYS HIS FOSTER-BROTHER
-
-
-Early in 330 B.C. Alexander left Persepolis to go in search of Darius.
-
-After a long and difficult march of three hundred miles, to which his
-soldiers took only eleven days, the king heard that Darius had passed
-the defile called the ‘Caspian Gates.’ For five days he allowed his
-men, who were utterly exhausted, to rest, before he again started in
-pursuit of the fugitive.
-
-After passing through the Caspian Gates, Alexander heard that Bessus,
-a kinsman of Darius, who was also his officer or satrap, had made him
-a prisoner. Loaded with chains, Darius was being carried away to the
-district over which Bessus ruled.
-
-This made the king the more determined to reach the unfortunate
-captive. For four days he hurried on until at length he reached a
-village where Bessus and his men had stayed the evening before. He was
-told that the satrap was going to make a forced march that night.
-
-The king learned of a shorter road, by which he might overtake the
-fugitives, but there was no water to be found on the way. Alexander did
-not hesitate. With only a small company he set out the same evening,
-and when morning dawned he had ridden forty-five miles. The fugitives
-were now within sight.
-
-When the barbarians who were with Bessus saw the king in the distance
-they fled. The satrap quickly took the chains off his captive, bidding
-him mount a horse and follow them. When Darius refused he stabbed him
-and rode away, leaving the wretched king to die or to fall into the
-hands of his enemy.
-
-A few Macedonians who were riding in front of the king reached the
-wounded man first, and gave him water, for which he begged. Darius then
-lay back and before Alexander arrived, he had breathed his last.
-
-The king looked at his fallen foe with pity, and then flung over him
-his own cloak. His body he sent to the queen-mother, that it might be
-buried beside the other Persian kings at Persepolis.
-
-Bessus was betrayed into the hands of Alexander not long afterwards.
-Naked and chained he was placed on the road by which Alexander’s army
-must pass.
-
-The king stopped when he reached the satrap, and asked him why he had
-murdered Darius, who had always treated him well.
-
-Bessus answered that he did it to win Alexander’s favour.
-
-His reply won no pity from the king, who ordered him to be scourged and
-sent to prison. Some time after he was brought to trial and sentenced
-to a cruel death.
-
-Until now Alexander had lived almost as simply as when he was a lad,
-and but lately he had reproved his officers for their indolent and
-luxurious habits. Now he gradually began to adopt the customs of
-the East. He dressed in purple and surrounded himself with Persian
-courtiers, and acted as though he was indeed a descendant of the gods.
-The Macedonians were quick to take offence at the favour their king
-showed to the Persians.
-
-Philotas, a son of Parmenio, resented the king’s deeds, more perhaps
-than any other of his generals. He was proud and his haughty ways had
-made his men dislike him.
-
-Parmenio would sometimes say to him, ‘My son, to be not quite so great
-would be better.’ But Philotas would take no notice of the rebuke.
-
-One day he declared that but for him and his father, the king would
-never have conquered Asia. ‘Yet it is he, the boy Alexander who enjoys
-the glory of the victories and the title of king,’ said the foolish
-officer.
-
-Alexander was told of the boastful way in which Philotas had spoken,
-but he neither reproved nor punished him.
-
-A little later a plot was made against his life, and Philotas would not
-allow those who wished to warn the king to enter his presence. Then
-Alexander, who knew of this also, ordered Philotas to be seized and
-imprisoned.
-
-He was tried before an assembly of Macedonians and confessed that he
-had known of the plot to kill the king, and yet had neither warned him
-nor allowed others to do so.
-
-The Macedonians condemned him to death, and themselves carried out the
-sentence, throwing at him their javelins.
-
-Alexander had been patient with Philotas and his punishment was just,
-but now the king did a cruel deed. For thinking that his old and
-faithful general Parmenio might have shared in the treachery of his
-son, he sent a messenger to slay him.
-
-The king’s despatch was taken to Parmenio and put into his hand. As he
-began to read it he was stabbed in the back.
-
-From this time the king’s temper grew less and less controlled. At one
-of the royal feasts he lost it altogether. A guest sang a song which
-made a jest of some Macedonians who had been beaten by the Persians.
-The old soldiers were indignant, the more so that Alexander paid no
-heed to their anger and bade the singer sing on.
-
-Clitus, the king’s foster-brother, had a quick temper, and he cried
-out, ‘It is not well done to expose the Macedonians before their
-enemies; since though it was their unhappiness to be overcome, yet are
-they much better men than those who laugh at them.’
-
-‘Clitus pleads his own cause,’ said the king, ‘when he names cowardice
-misfortune.’
-
-The king spoke half in jest, half in anger, for he knew well that
-Clitus and all his Macedonians were brave men and no cowards.
-
-But Clitus sprang to his feet at Alexander’s words and cried, ‘Yet, O
-king, it was my cowardice that once saved your life from the Persians,
-and it is by the wounds of Macedonians that you are now the great king.’
-
-‘Speak not so boldly,’ answered the king, and in his voice there was a
-threat, ‘or think not you will long enjoy the power to do so.’
-
-Clitus was now too angry to care what he said, and he spoke to the king
-yet more bitterly, until Alexander could brook no more. He took an
-apple from the table before him, and flinging it at his foster-brother,
-felt for his sword. But one of his guards, foreseeing what might
-happen, had removed it. His guests now gathered around the king, trying
-to soothe his anger. Alexander pushed them aside, and ordered one of
-his guard to sound the alarm. This would have assembled the whole army
-and the man hesitated, whereupon Alexander struck him on the face.
-
-Meanwhile a friend had hurried Clitus out of the room, but he slipped
-back again by another door, and boldly taunted the king with the way in
-which he treated his old soldiers.
-
-Then in a passion Alexander snatched a spear from one of his guards,
-rushed upon Clitus and stabbed him to death.
-
-A moment later the king’s anger faded away, and he looked in horror
-upon the dead body of his foster-brother. He seized the spear again and
-tried to kill himself, but his guards wrenched it away, and led him to
-his own room. There he lay all through the long night and all through
-the following day, weeping for his foster-brother whom he had slain.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER C
-
-PORUS AND HIS ELEPHANT
-
-
-The Macedonians had now for some time been longing to march homeward
-rather than into new and unknown lands. But Alexander’s ambition was
-not yet satisfied, and in 327 B.C. he determined to march into India,
-to add that land also to his conquests.
-
-The army was laden with booty, and the king saw that unless it were
-left behind the men would not be able to march. It would be no easy
-matter to make the soldiers give up their plunder, but Alexander knew
-well how to manage men.
-
-He ordered all his own share of plunder, all his unnecessary clothing,
-almost all his ornaments, to be burned. His courtiers did as they saw
-their king do, and when the soldiers were ordered to follow Alexander’s
-example, they did so without a murmur, while some even cheered.
-
-Without the plunder the soldiers marched easily, and soon reached the
-Punjab, where the king of the district brought to Alexander’s aid five
-thousand men.
-
-The army marched on unopposed, until it came to the river Hydaspes, or
-as we call it now the Jhelum. Here it was forced to halt, for on the
-opposite bank was a powerful Indian king, named Porus, and a large army.
-
-Porus had with him a number of elephants, and when they trumpeted, the
-horses of the Macedonians took flight. The banks of the river were
-slippery, and the enemy was ready with arrows, should the king order
-his army to cross the river.
-
-Alexander had made up his mind to cross the Hydaspes, but first he
-wished to put Porus off his guard.
-
-So night after night, by the king’s orders, a trumpet called the
-cavalry to march. It advanced always to the edge of the river, while
-Porus, thinking the whole army was going to cross, commanded his
-elephants to be moved to the bank, and his great hosts to be drawn up
-ready for battle.
-
-Hour after hour the Indians waited, but the Macedonians never attempted
-to cross, and so they grew listless and each night less vigilant. Even
-Porus began to think the Macedonians must be cowards, and he paid less
-and less attention to their movements. This was what Alexander had
-expected would happen.
-
-But one stormy night, when the Indians were off their guard, the
-king with part of his army crossed to a wooded island that lay in
-the middle of the river. It was a terrible night. Lightning flashed,
-thunder crashed, and several of Alexander’s men were killed as they
-struggled breast high in the water. With great difficulty the others
-reached the farther side, to find that Porus had realised his danger. A
-thousand horsemen and sixty armed chariots awaited the daring king. But
-Alexander captured the chariots and slew four hundred of the cavalry.
-
-The whole Macedonian army had now joined the king, and a desperate
-battle was fought. Hour after hour the conflict raged, neither side
-gaining the victory.
-
-At length, when the elephants were dead or their riders slain, when the
-Indians were flying in every direction, Porus knew that the day was
-lost.
-
-Yet he disdained to flee and fought on, seated upon an elephant of
-enormous size, for he himself was more than six feet in height. Only
-when he was wounded in his shoulder, did he turn to ride away from the
-field.
-
-It is told that while the battle was raging the elephant took the
-greatest care of his master. And when the animal saw that the king was
-faint from his wounds, he knelt down carefully that Porus might not
-fall. Then with his trunk he drew out the darts that were left in the
-body of the king.
-
-Alexander had seen how bravely his enemy had fought, As he watched him
-riding from the field, he thought he would like to speak with so great
-a warrior, and he sent to ask him to return. He himself went out to
-meet the king, and was amazed at his great height and at his beauty.
-
-When Alexander asked Porus how he wished to be treated, he answered,
-‘As a king.’
-
-‘For my own sake I will do that,’ replied the great king; ‘ask a boon
-for thy sake.’
-
-‘That,’ said Porus, ‘containeth all.’
-
-As was his way, Alexander treated the fallen king right royally, giving
-back to him his kingdom and adding to it new territories.
-
-Two cities were built close to the battlefield. One was named
-Bucephala, after Alexander’s famous horse which, some say, was wounded
-and died after the battle. But others tell that Bucephalus had died
-shortly before the battle of old age, for he had lived for thirty
-years. The king grieved for the loss of his noble steed as for the loss
-of a friend.
-
-This terrible battle made the Macedonians still more unwilling to
-advance farther into India.
-
-Before them lay a desert which would take eleven days to cross. The
-soldiers could not face a long march in a strange land, without water
-and without guides.
-
-When Alexander ordered the army to advance, the Macedonians who had
-followed him loyally through every difficulty, refused to obey.
-
-Nothing he could say would make them advance a step farther.
-
-‘There they stood, looking hard at the ground with tears trickling down
-their cheeks, yet resolute still not to go forward.’
-
-Then Alexander dismissed them in anger. But the next day he sent for
-them again and told them that he was going to advance. They, if they
-chose to forsake him in a hostile land, could go back to Macedon.
-
-Still in anger the king left them and went to his tent, and shut
-himself up for two days, refusing to see any of his companions.
-
-Perhaps he thought his obstinate Macedonians would yield. But although
-it grieved them to thwart their king, the soldiers remained firm.
-
-On the third day Alexander left his tent and offered sacrifices to the
-gods, as he always did before beginning a new adventure. But the signs
-were unfavourable, and against this the king was not proof. So he sent
-to tell the army that he had determined to lead them in the direction
-of home.
-
-In a transport of joy the faithful Macedonians hastened to the king’s
-tent. Some of them wept as they thanked ‘the unconquered king that he
-had permitted himself to be conquered for once by his Macedons.’
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER CI
-
-ALEXANDER IS WOUNDED
-
-
-Alexander determined to begin the homeward journey by sailing down the
-Hydaspes to the Indus in order to reach the ocean.
-
-The king himself with part of the army embarked in the ships which
-awaited them on the Hydaspes. The rest of the army was divided into two
-companies, and marched on either bank of the river, one being under
-Hephæstion, the king’s friend.
-
-On the way the fleet and the army joined their forces in order to
-subdue some of the warlike tribes that refused to submit to them.
-
-One of these tribes, the Malli, Alexander pursued to their chief city,
-which stood where the town of Multan has since been built.
-
-The city was easily taken, but not so the citadel in which the Malli
-had taken refuge.
-
-Before the walls surrounding it could be scaled, ladders were needed,
-and two were hurriedly brought to the spot. But it was difficult to
-place them in position, for the Malli hurled upon the soldiers every
-missile on which they could lay their hands.
-
-Alexander growing impatient, seized one of the ladders, and covering
-himself with his shield he placed it in position and began to mount.
-
-Peucestas, carrying the sacred shield of Troy, and Leonnatus, two of
-the companions, followed closely after their king, while Abreas began
-to climb the second ladder which was now also ready for use.
-
-The king was soon standing alone on the top of the wall, having flung
-down those of the Malli who were keeping guard at that point.
-
-In despair the Macedonians saw the danger to which their king had
-exposed himself. He was a mark for every weapon hurled from the citadel.
-
-They rushed in a body to the ladders, and began to mount in such
-numbers that the ladders both gave way, Peucestas, Leonnatus and Abreas
-alone having first reached the top of the wall.
-
-His friends called aloud to Alexander, entreating him to come back. But
-he leaped down on the other side among his foes. Fortunately he landed
-on his feet, and at once placing his back against the wall, he strove
-to keep back the enemy as they rushed upon him.
-
-The foremost fell before the swift stroke of the king’s sword, as did
-also those who followed him. At two more the king hurled stones which
-felled them to the ground. After that the Malli were afraid to approach
-close to the great king, but they began to throw at him stones and
-great pieces of rock.
-
-A moment later his three companions had leaped down and were by the
-side of their king, ready to defend him with their lives.
-
-Abreas fell at his feet almost at once, pierced by a dart. Alexander
-himself was wounded, but fought on until at length, faint through loss
-of blood, he fell fainting on his shield.
-
-Peucestas covered him with the sacred shield, while Leonnatus fought on
-desperately until help came.
-
-A few of the Macedonians, maddened by the thought of their king’s
-danger, scrambled up on each other’s shoulders, and leaped down on the
-other side to rescue him and his three companions if they still lived.
-
-Some ran to the gates, and opened them, and the anxious soldiers poured
-in and took the citadel. They believed that their king was dead, and
-they wreaked their fury on the miserable inhabitants, leaving neither
-men, women nor children alive.
-
-Alexander was not dead, and although his wound was severe, he
-recovered. But the rumour of his death had reached the camp near the
-river where the main body of the army had been left. No letters, no
-messages could make the grief-stricken soldiers believe that their king
-still lived.
-
-Alexander was brought down the river in a ship. He was lying on a couch
-in the stern of the vessel as he drew near to the camp, and he ordered
-the canopy which screened him to be raised that his soldiers might see
-him.
-
-At first they thought it was but his lifeless body which they beheld,
-but as he drew nearer still, the king waved his hand. Then a great
-shout of joy rent the air.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER CII
-
-THE DEATH OF ALEXANDER
-
-
-In the autumn of 325 B.C. Alexander began to march through the desert
-of Gedrosia on his way to Babylon.
-
-The heat was terrible, and the soldiers were soon parched with thirst,
-while sinking sand added to the hardship of the march.
-
-Alexander tramped by the side of his men across the dreary waste,
-sharing all their privations and cheering them by his presence. But
-before he left the desert of Gedrosia, the king had lost more than a
-fourth part of the army that had set out with him from India two short
-months before.
-
-At length the exhausted soldiers reached Susa, and here the king
-allowed them to rest. He himself found much to do, for many of the
-satraps whom he had left in charge of different provinces had betrayed
-their trust. They had treated cruelly those who were in their power,
-and had formed plots to make themselves kings over their own provinces.
-It may be that they thought Alexander would never come back from his
-perilous journey in the East.
-
-When he had punished those who had proved faithless, were they
-Macedonians or Persians, he turned to a matter on which his heart was
-set--the union of the peoples of the East and the West.
-
-The king tried to accomplish this in different ways. He had already
-built cities in the East, and left in them Greeks and Macedonians along
-with the native Asiatics.
-
-Now he himself wedded Statira, the daughter of Darius, Hephæstion
-married her sister, while several Macedonian generals, following the
-example of the king, took the daughters of Persian nobles to be their
-wives. Many of the soldiers, too, married women of the East.
-
-Alexander hoped that little by little the two races would learn to know
-each other better and to have the same interests.
-
-In the spring of 324 B.C. Alexander went to Ecbatana, where the Persian
-kings had been used to spend the summer months. Shortly afterwards he
-met his whole army at Opis, not far from Babylon, and discharged many
-of the Macedonian veterans who were no longer fit to fight because of
-old age or because of the wounds from which they had suffered. The king
-promised to provide for these old warriors for the rest of their lives.
-He expected them to welcome their dismissal and their reward.
-
-But the Macedonians had been growing more and more jealous of the
-favours Alexander had been showing to the Persians, and now the
-feelings that they had been forced to hide found words.
-
-They bade the king discharge not only the veterans but his loyal
-Macedonians. Some even dared to shout, ‘Go and conquer with Zeus, your
-father.’
-
-The king, in sudden anger, sprang from his seat, down among the angry
-throng, and ordered thirteen of the ring-leaders to be put to death. He
-then bade the others go away if they wished. They had been only poor
-shepherds on the hills of Macedon, he reminded them, until his father
-Philip had made them rulers of Greece. He had shared with them the
-wealth of the East, and had kept nothing for himself, save his purple
-robe and his royal diadem.
-
-Alexander then went to his palace, and in three days he sent for the
-Persian nobles, to whom he gave the posts of honour which until now had
-been held by the Macedonians.
-
-Plutarch tells us that when the Macedonians, who had stayed in their
-quarters in spite of their dismissal, heard what Alexander had done,
-‘they went without their arms, with only their undergarments on, crying
-and weeping, to offer themselves at his tent, and desired him to deal
-with them as their baseness and ingratitude deserved ... yet he would
-not admit them to his presence, nor would they stir from thence, but
-continued two days and nights before his tent, bewailing themselves,
-and imploring him as their lord to have compassion on them. But on
-the third day he came out to them, and seeing them very humble and
-penitent, he wept himself a great while, after a gentle reproof spoke
-kindly to them and dismissed those who were too old for service with
-magnificent rewards, and with recommendation to Antipater that when
-they came home, at all public shows and in the theatres, they should
-sit in the best and foremost seats, crowned with chaplets of flowers.’
-
-During the summer which he spent at Ecbatana, a great sorrow befell
-the king. Hephæstion, his dearest friend, took ill, and in seven days
-he was dead. For three days the king would touch no food. No one could
-comfort him, for well the king knew that no one would ever fill the
-place that Hephæstion had held in his heart. The body of his friend
-the king ordered to be taken to Babylon, where it was burnt on a pyre
-adorned with great magnificence. Chapels were built in his honour in
-Alexandria and other cities.
-
-In June 323 B.C., a month after the funeral rites, Alexander, who was
-preparing for a great expedition by sea, went to the river Euphrates to
-inspect some new harbours which he had ordered to be built.
-
-The place was unhealthy, because of the many marshes that lay round
-about the river, and the king was attacked by fever. He refused to take
-any care and daily he grew worse, until at length he was forced by
-weakness to stay in bed.
-
-A rumour that he was dead reached the Macedonians, and they hastened to
-the palace, begging to be allowed to see their king once more.
-
-Alexander was not dead, but he was too weak to speak, as one by one the
-soldiers were permitted to walk quietly past his bed. With an effort he
-looked at them as they passed, and feebly raised his hand in farewell.
-
-‘After I am gone will you ever find a king worthy of such heroes as
-these?’ he murmured as they slowly filed out of the room.
-
-Then he drew his signet ring from his finger and gave it to an officer,
-saying that he left his kingdom ‘to the best man.’ So the great king
-passed away at the age of thirty-three.
-
-[Illustration: With an effort he looked at them as they passed]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER CIII
-
-DEMOSTHENES IN THE TEMPLE OF POSEIDON
-
-
-When Alexander set out on his great expedition to Asia, Demosthenes was
-living in Athens, and for five years nothing happened to disturb the
-quiet habits of his life.
-
-He loved his city well, and with his own money he had rebuilt the walls
-of Athens. Many other services he had done for his countrymen, and
-because of these, one of the Athenians proposed to the people that a
-hero’s crown of gold should be bestowed upon Demosthenes.
-
-This they were very willing to do. So at one of the great Athenian
-festivals, when the people were assembled in the theatre, a herald
-proclaimed that a golden crown had been awarded to the orator because
-of all that he had done for his city.
-
-But Æschines, another great orator, was angry that this honour should
-have been given to Demosthenes, whom he happened to dislike. So he
-brought a lawsuit against him, and attacked his enemy in a speech that
-became famous.
-
-But Demosthenes defended himself in a still more brilliant speech, and
-won his case, which so annoyed Æschines that he left Athens and never
-again returned to the city.
-
-Six years later, Demosthenes was accused of having taken bribes. It was
-not proved that he had done so, yet he was found guilty and sentenced
-to pay a heavy fine.
-
-As he had not money enough to pay the fine, he was thrown into prison.
-Before long he escaped and fled to the sea-coast town of Ægina, not far
-from Athens. Often he would sit on the shore or pace up and down the
-sands, looking wistfully toward the city he loved.
-
-When tidings of the death of Alexander reached Athens, the Greeks
-resolved once more to try to fling off the yoke of Macedon. Demosthenes
-was recalled to the city, and his voice encouraged the Athenians in
-their determination to fight for liberty.
-
-But Antipater hastened to Attica with an army, and soon put down the
-revolt of the Athenians. He then condemned Demosthenes to death, for
-it was well-known that his Philippics had often roused the Athenians
-to show their hatred of Philip, and he had, too, continually spoken
-against his son Alexander.
-
-When Demosthenes heard that he had been condemned, he fled to the
-temple of Poseidon, in the island of Calauria. Antipater at once sent
-soldiers, led by a man named Archias, to capture the fugitive. Archias
-had once been an actor, and was well known to Demosthenes.
-
-Archias reached Calauria, and going to the temple he begged Demosthenes
-to come out of the sanctuary, saying that if he did so he would be
-pardoned.
-
-But Demosthenes knew that this was a false promise and he said, ‘O
-Archias, I am as little affected by your promises now as I used
-formerly to be by your acting.’
-
-Now Archias had been proud of his acting, so this made him very angry
-with Demosthenes, and he began to threaten him with all kinds of evil.
-
-‘Now,’ said the orator, ‘you speak like an oracle of Macedon; before,
-you were acting a part. Therefore wait only a little, while I write a
-word or two to my family.’
-
-Then he rose and went into the inner temple, and taking a tablet and
-his own pen in his hand, he sat down as though to write. He had a habit
-of putting his pen into his mouth and biting it, and he did so now. It
-seemed as though he was thinking what he would write. But all the while
-he was sucking poison which he had concealed in his pen.
-
-Then, knowing that the poison would soon do its work, Demosthenes
-leaned on the altar, his face hidden in his cloak.
-
-Archias had now grown tired of waiting, and he went into the temple
-again and bade Demosthenes come, without more delay.
-
-The orator rose, uncovering his head, and looking at Archias, he said,
-‘I will depart while I am alive out of this sacred place.’ But as he
-tried to walk toward the door he staggered and fell by the altar. The
-poison had done its work.
-
-Antipater had no interest in the art or in the culture of Greece, and
-her glory soon faded under his rule. Athens, Sparta, Corinth, as well
-as the smaller states, all ceased to be independent.
-
-As the power of Greece grew less, that of Rome was growing greater and
-greater. In 196 B.C. she conquered Macedon and restored to Greece her
-liberty.
-
-Fifty years later, Corinth defied the Roman power, and treated her
-ambassadors with insult. The Roman consuls then sent an army into
-Greece to conquer the country, and add it to their great dominions.
-
-But although the Romans conquered Greece, and so made her subject to
-them, they could not escape her influence. The Greek language was
-spoken by every educated Roman, Greek plays were acted at Rome, Greek
-literature was read and studied.
-
-Wherever the Romans went they carried with them the habits and the
-culture of the people whom they had conquered. And the greatest and
-most precious thing the Greeks had to teach the world was, ‘the just
-consideration of the truth of things everywhere.’
-
-
-
-
-INDEX
-
-
- Achæans, the, 73.
-
- Achilles, and Briseis the Fair-cheeked, 32;
- fatal quarrel with Agamemnon, 34;
- the horses of, 44; Hector slain by, 48 _et seq._;
- death of, 52.
-
- Acrisius, king of Argos, 18;
- killed by Perseus, 29.
-
- Acropolis at Athens, the, 97.
-
- Admetus, king, 186.
-
- Ægis of Athens, the, 23, 30.
-
- Ægospotami, disaster at, 261.
-
- Æolians, the, 73.
-
- Æschines, lawsuit against Demosthenes, 349.
-
- Æschylus, 172, 200.
-
- Agamemnon, king, 33, 34.
-
- Agesilaus, king of Sparta, 278, 279.
-
- Alcibiades, 232–236;
- friendship with Socrates, 236, 238, 240, 243;
- expedition to conquer Sicily, 244–248;
- flight to Sparta, 247–248;
- betrayal of Athenians to the Spartans, 248;
- return to Athens, 255;
- Antiochus’ disobedience, 258;
- death of, 263.
-
- Alexander the Great, at battle of Chæronea, 307;
- and his horse Bucephalus, 309;
- conquests in Greece, 312 _et seq._;
- and Diogenes, 312;
- conquest of Persia, 314, 315 _et seq._;
- cutting of the Gordian knot, 318;
- illness of, 319;
- defeat of Darius at Issus, 322;
- treatment of Darius and his wife and family, 323, 327;
- siege of Tyre by, 325;
- defeat of Darius at Gaugamela, 328;
- burning of Persepolis by, 331;
- pursuit of Darius, 334;
- treatment of Philotas, 335;
- slays his foster-brother, 336;
- conquests in India, 338;
- victory over King Porus, 338;
- wounded at siege of the citadel of Malli, 342;
- east and west united by, 345;
- death of, 345.
-
- Alexander, king of Thessaly, Pelopidas’ expedition against, 282.
-
- Amphictyonic Council, the, 94.
-
- Amphipolis, surrender of, 228.
-
- Andromache and Hector, 41, 50, 51, 52.
-
- Andromeda and the sea-monster, 26.
-
- Antinous, 67.
-
- Antiochus, 258.
-
- Antipater, 350.
-
- Aphrodite, 4, 40.
-
- Apollo, 4, 11, 35, 46, 76, 79, 95;
- and Hyacinthus, 16.
-
- Arachne, story of, 13.
-
- Archias, 273, 274, 275;
- and Demosthenes, 350.
-
- Archidamus, invasion of Attica by, 205;
- siege of Plataea under, 210–213.
-
- Arginusæ, battle of, 259.
-
- Argos, war with Sparta, 232.
-
- Argus, the hound, 64.
-
- Aristagoras, 122, 123, 124, 126.
-
- Aristides, 138, 140–144, 148, 168, 170, 179, 180, 185, 188.
-
- Aristodemus, 89.
-
- Aristogiton, 113.
-
- Aristomenes and the fox, 91.
-
- Aristophanes, 200, 234.
-
- Aristotle, 311.
-
- Artaphernes, 122, 123, 127, 129, 130.
-
- Artaxerxes, 186, 193;
- march of Cyrus against, 265;
- Spartan expedition against, 269.
-
- Artemisium, battle of, 161.
-
- Athene, 4, 11, 12, 13, 22, 23, 30, 36, 41, 62, 65, 97, 196, 198.
-
- Athenian Empire, foundation of, 178.
-
- Athenians, the, taking of Salamis by, 106;
- alliance with Ionians against Darius, 127;
- defeat of Persian army at Marathon, 134;
- victory in bay of Pylos over the Spartans, 220;
- surrender of Spartans at Sphacteria to, 221;
- invasion of Bœotia by, 225;
- defeat at Syracuse, 249, 252–254;
- defeat by Spartans under Lysander, 259.
-
- Athens, city of, 12, 196–199;
- war with Dorians, 97;
- oligarchic government of, 98;
- three parties of, 100;
- Persian attack on, 137;
- sea-power of, 140, 184, 194;
- war with Sparta, 195;
- great men of, 201;
- jealousy of Sparta causing Peloponnesian war, 202 _et seq._;
- revolt of Mytilene against, 214;
- second Peloponnesian war, 233;
- surrender to the Spartans, 261–263.
-
- Atlas, 26.
-
- Attica, Spartan invasion of, 205.
-
-
- Babylon, taken by Alexander the Great, 331.
-
- Bessus, 334, 335.
-
- Bœotia, invasion of, 225.
-
- Bœotian League, the, 203.
-
- Bow of Odysseus, the, 67.
-
- Brasidas the Spartan, 219, 225, 226–231.
-
- Bridge of Boats, Darius’, 118.
-
- Briseis the Fair-cheeked, 32.
-
- Bucephalus, 309, 329, 340.
-
-
- Callistratus, 301.
-
- Carthaginians, the, expedition against Syracuse, 286, 288, 289;
- defeated by Timoleon at Crimisus, 296.
-
- Cassiopeia, 27.
-
- Cecrops, 11.
-
- Chæronea, battle of, 307.
-
- Charilaus, 77, 80.
-
- Charon, 273, 274, 275, 276.
-
- Cimon, 179, 189–193.
-
- Clearchus, 264, 265, 267.
-
- Cleisthenes, 114, 115–116.
-
- Cleombrotus, 279, 280.
-
- Cleomenes and Aristagoras, 126.
-
- Cleon, 208, 215, 216, 221, 222–224, 228–231.
-
- Clitus, 336.
-
- Codrus, the last king of Athens, 97.
-
- Conon, 259, 262.
-
- Conspiracy of the Seven Thebans, 273.
-
- Corinth, the two brothers of, 286.
-
- Crimisus, battle of, 296.
-
- Croesus, king of Lydia, 103, 104, 105.
-
- Cyclopes, the, 56.
-
- Cylon, 100.
-
- Cynoscephalæ, battle of, 284.
-
- Cyrus, king of Persia, and Croesus, 105.
-
- ---- march against king Artaxerxes, 264–268.
-
-
- Damocles, 314.
-
- Danae, story of, 18.
-
- Darius, king of Persia, war against Greece, 118;
- Histiaeus rewarded by, 121;
- Ionian rebellion against, 124;
- expedition against Athens, 131;
- defeat at Marathon, 134;
- death of, 139.
-
- ---- king of Persia, wars with Alexander the Great, 315, 319;
- defeat near the pass of Issus, 321;
- defeat at battle of Gaugamela, 328;
- retreat and death, 334.
-
- Delian League, the, 178.
-
- Delium, defeat of Athenians at, 226.
-
- Demeter, story of, 4, 6.
-
- Demosthenes, 218, 219, 222, 223, 250, 251, 252–254, 307, 308, 311,
- 313, 349.
-
- Diodotus, 216.
-
- Diogenes, 312.
-
- Dionysius of Syracuse, 286, 289.
-
- Dorians, the, 73, 76.
-
- Draco, code of laws of, 101.
-
- Dryads, the, 1.
-
-
- Elpinice and Pericles, 195.
-
- Epaminondas, 93, 269, 271–272, 277, 280–285, 306.
-
- Ephialtes the treacherous Greek, 157, 159.
-
- Ephialtes the statesman, 190, 191.
-
- Epirus, 72.
-
- Epitades, 219, 221, 223.
-
- Erechtheum, the, 197.
-
- Eros, 4.
-
- Eucles, 228.
-
- Euaeus the swineherd, 64, 66, 67.
-
- Euripides, 200, 201, 235.
-
- Europa, 15.
-
- Eurybiades, 153, 161, 166, 167.
-
- Eurymedon, 218, 219, 220, 221, 250, 251.
-
-
- Gaugamela, battle of, 328.
-
- Gordian knot, the, 318.
-
- Gorgo, 127, 160.
-
- Gorgons, the, 22.
-
- Grææ, the, 23.
-
- Granicus, battle of, 315.
-
- Greece, 72.
-
- Gylippus, 248, 249, 250, 252, 254.
-
-
- Harmodius, 113.
-
- Hecate, 8.
-
- Hector, 39, 41, 46, 48, 51, 52.
-
- Hecuba, 41, 50, 51.
-
- Helen of Troy, 33, 53.
-
- Hellespont, the scourging of the, 148.
-
- Helots, the, 85, 190.
-
- Hephæstion, 342, 345, 347.
-
- Hephæstis, 11.
-
- Hera, 3.
-
- Hermes, 4, 23, 245.
-
- Herodotus, 201.
-
- Hipparchus, 113.
-
- Hippias, 113, 132.
-
- Histiaeus, 120, 121, 123, 129.
-
- Homer, 32, 78.
-
- Hyacinthus, story of, 16.
-
-
- Icetes, 286, 289, 293.
-
- Ictinus, 196, 201.
-
- _Iliad, The_, 32.
-
- Ionians, the, 73, 118.
-
- ---- revolt of, 123–130.
-
- Ismenias, 270.
-
-
- Lacedæmonians, the, 76.
-
- Lamachus, 245, 247, 249.
-
- Leonidas, king of Sparta, 153, 154, 155–158.
-
- Leontiades, 270, 276.
-
- Leuctra, battle of, 277–280.
-
- Lotus-eaters, the, 55.
-
- Lycurgus the lawgiver, 76, 78, 79, 80, 82, 87, 88.
-
- Lysander, 258, 261, 263.
-
-
- Mago, 294.
-
- Mantinea, battle of, 233.
-
- Marathon, battle of, 132, 134, 136.
-
- Mardonius, 131, 145, 172, 175, 176.
-
- Masistius, 174.
-
- Medusa, 21, 22.
-
- Menelaus, king, 33, 39, 53.
-
- Megabetes, 123, 124.
-
- Messenia, city of, 282.
-
- Messenian war, the first, 89.
-
- ---- the second, 90.
-
- Miltiades, 120, 133, 135, 136, 137, 138, 139.
-
- Mindarus, 256, 257.
-
- Mycale, battle of, 177.
-
- Mytilene, revolt against Athens, 214.
-
-
- Naiads, the, 1.
-
- Nicias, 221, 222, 231, 232, 234, 245, 251, 252, 254.
-
- ---- peace of, 231, 232.
-
-
- Odeon of Athens, the, 197, 198.
-
- Odysseus, story of, 52, 54 _et seq._
-
- _Odyssey, The_, 32.
-
- Olympian Games, the, 94.
-
- Olympus, Mount, 2.
-
- Oracles, the Grecian, 18.
-
- Orchomenus, battle of, 278.
-
- Ostracism, law of, 116.
-
-
- Paches, 214, 215.
-
- Pan, 4, 5.
-
- Paris, 33, 39, 44, 52.
-
- Parmenio, 320, 327, 328, 330, 335.
-
- Parthenon, the, 196, 197.
-
- Patroclus, 34, 45–47, 48.
-
- Pausanias, 174, 175, 177, 179–181, 185, 210.
-
- Pelopidas, 271, 273, 277, 279, 282, 284, 306.
-
- Peloponnesian war, the first, 202–231.
-
- ---- the second, 233–263.
-
- Penelope, story of, 61, 66, 67–71.
-
- Perdiccas, 314.
-
- Pericles, 190, 194–195, 198, 202, 205, 207, 215, 233.
-
- Persephone, story of, 6.
-
- Persepolis, burning of, 331.
-
- Perseus, story of, 19.
-
- Persia, wars with Greece, 118–139, 145–177;
- conquest by Alexander the Great, 314, 315.
-
- Pheidias, 3, 95, 196, 198, 199, 201, 208.
-
- Philip, king of Macedonia, 305, 306–308, 310, 311.
-
- Philip, the physician of Alexander, 319, 320.
-
- Philippus, 273.
-
- Philomelus, 306, 307.
-
- Phocians, the, 306.
-
- Phocion, 308, 314.
-
- Phœbidas, 270.
-
- Phyllidas, 273, 274.
-
- Pirates, the Grecian, 189.
-
- Pisistratus, 99, 107, 109–112.
-
- Polydectes, king, 20, 21, 26, 30.
-
- Polyphemus, the giant, 54.
-
- Porus and his elephant, 338.
-
- Poseidon, 3, 12, 15.
-
- Potidæa, siege of, 207, 208.
-
- Plague in Athens, 207, 209.
-
- Plataea, battle of, 172; siege of, 210–213.
-
- Plato, 240.
-
- Plutarch, 209, 235, 257, 263, 346.
-
- Pluto, 4, 6.
-
- Priam, king of Troy, 33, 39, 50, 51.
-
- Propylæa, the, 197.
-
- Protagoras, 201.
-
- Pylos, sea-fight of, 216.
-
-
- Rome, rise of, 351.
-
-
- Sacred Band of Thebans, 277, 278, 307, 308.
-
- Sacred war, the, 306.
-
- Salamis, siege of, 106.
-
- ---- battle of, 169–172.
-
- Samos, revolt against Athens, 194.
-
- Sardis, destruction of, 126.
-
- Satyrus and Demosthenes, 304.
-
- Scythians, Darius’ war against, 118, 120.
-
- Sicily, Alcibiades’ expedition against, 244;
- war with Carthaginians and Dionysius of Syracuse, 286;
- freed by Timoleon, 299.
-
- Socrates, 201, 260;
- friendship with Alcibiades, 236, 240–243.
-
- Solon the lawgiver, 99, 102, 106, 110, 111.
-
- Sophists, the, 201.
-
- Sophocles, 200.
-
- Sparta, 33, 76;
- war with Messenians, 89;
- war against Persia, 154, 156–160;
- wars with Athens, 195 _et seq._, 232, 333;
- destruction of Athenian army at Syracuse, 249–254;
- victory over Antiochus under Lysander, 259;
- surrender of Athens to, 261–263;
- expedition against Thebes, 270, 273 _et seq._
-
- Spartans, the, training of, 82.
-
- Sphacteria, blockade of, 219, 221.
-
- Syracuse, siege of, 249;
- Corinthian expedition under Timoleon to, 286, 289 _et seq._
-
-
- Telemachus, 61, 62, 65, 66, 67, 69, 70.
-
- Ten Thousand, the march of, 264–267.
-
- Thebes, war with Plataea, 202, 211, 213;
- conspiracy to obtain freedom from Sparta, 273;
- rise of, 277;
- Sacred War against Phocians, 306.
-
- Themistocles, rivalry with Aristides, 137, 140–144;
- war against Xerxes, 148;
- at pass of Thermopylae, 153;
- at battle of Artemisium, 161;
- tactics to defeat Persian fleet at Salamis, 163–167;
- Spartans deceived by, 182;
- ostracised, 185;
- death of, 187, 188.
-
- Thermopylae, battle of, 153, 156–160.
-
- Theseus, king, 189.
-
- Thetis, 34, 39, 48, 49, 51, 52.
-
- Thrace, city of, 121, 122.
-
- Thucydides, 192, 198, 201, 206, 228, 229, 252, 254.
-
- Timoleon, 286, 288, 293, 296, 298.
-
- Timophanes, 286.
-
- Tissaphernes, 254, 258, 264, 266.
-
- Trojan War, the, 32.
-
- Troy, city of, 32, 52.
-
- Tyrants, Grecian, 98.
-
- Tyre, siege by Alexander, 325.
-
- Tyrtaeus, 91, 93.
-
-
- Xenophon, 264, 266, 267, 268.
-
- Xerxes, king of Persia, 139;
- his dream, 145;
- invasion of Greece by, 148;
- scourging of Hellespont by, 148;
- Athens plundered by, 164;
- defeat of his fleet at Salamis, 169.
-
-
- Zephyrus, 17.
-
- Zeus, 3, 8, 9, 11, 23, 38, 39, 47, 51, 95, 197.
-
-
-
- PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY
- THOMAS NELSON AND SONS, LTD.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes
-
-
-Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling, including ligatures, were made
-consistent when a predominant preference was found in the original
-book; otherwise they were not changed.
-
-Simple typographical errors were corrected; unbalanced quotation
-marks were remedied when the change was obvious, and otherwise left
-unbalanced.
-
-Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned between paragraphs
-and outside quotations. In versions of this eBook that support
-hyperlinks, the page references in the List of Illustrations lead to
-the corresponding illustrations.
-
-The index was not checked for proper alphabetization or correct page
-references.
-
-“Potidæa” and “Potidaea” occur with equal frequency in the text; both
-spellings have been retained.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF GREECE: TOLD TO BOYS
-AND GIRLS ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/66070-0.zip b/old/66070-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a4498bf..0000000
--- a/old/66070-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h.zip b/old/66070-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 43846b7..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/66070-h.htm b/old/66070-h/66070-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 7df1f6a..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/66070-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,16252 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Story of Greece, by Mary MacGregor—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 2.5em;
- margin-right: 2.5em;
-}
-
-h1, h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: .2em;
-}
-
-h1 {line-height: 1;}
-
-h2+p {margin-top: 1.5em;}
-h2 .subhead {display: block; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;}
-
-.transnote h2 {
- margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-.subhead {
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: smaller;
-}
-
-p {
- text-indent: 1.75em;
- margin-top: .51em;
- margin-bottom: .24em;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-.caption p, .center p, p.center {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
-
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.vspace {line-height: 1.5;}
-
-.in0 {text-indent: 0;}
-
-.small {font-size: 70%;}
-.smaller {font-size: 85%;}
-.larger {font-size: 125%;}
-.large {font-size: 150%;}
-.xxlarge {font-size: 200%;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
-.firstword {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.bold {font-weight: bold;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin: 4em auto 4em auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- max-width: 80%;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-#toc td, #loi td {padding-bottom: .5em;}
-#toc .small td, #loi .small td {padding-bottom: 0;}
-
-.tdl {
- text-align: left;
- vertical-align: top;
- padding-right: 1em;
- padding-left: 1.5em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- padding-left: .3em;
- white-space: nowrap;
-}
-.tdr.top{vertical-align: top; padding-left: 0; padding-right: .75em;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: .25em;
- text-indent: 0;
- text-align: right;
- font-size: 70%;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- letter-spacing: normal;
- line-height: normal;
- color: #acacac;
- border: .0625em solid #acacac;
- background: #ffffff;
- padding: .0625em .125em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: 4em auto 4em auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-
-}
-.figcenter.samepage {margin: 2em auto 2em auto;}
-
-img {
- padding: 1em 0 .5em 0;
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-a.ref {text-decoration: none;}
-
-.caption {text-align: center; margin-top: 0;}
-
-ul {margin-left: 3em; padding-left: 0;}
-li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2.5em; text-align: left;}
-
-a.ref {text-decoration: none;}
-
-.index {margin-left: 1em;}
-ul.index {padding-left: 0;}
-li {list-style-type: none;}
-li.indx, li.ifrst {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em; padding-top: .2em;}
-li.isub1 {padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -2em;}
-li.ifrst {padding-top: 1em;}
-
-.poetry-container {
- margin: 1.5em auto;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 98%;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
- margin-left: 0;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {padding: 0.5em 0;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-
-.poetry .indentsq {text-indent: -3.33em;}
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;}
-.poetry .indent14 {text-indent: 4em;}
-.poetry .indent16 {text-indent: 5em;}
-.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: -2em;}
-.poetry .indent30 {text-indent: 12em;}
-.poetry .indent32 {text-indent: 13em;}
-.poetry .indent36 {text-indent: 15em;}
-.poetry .indent6 {text-indent: 0em;}
-
-.transnote {
- background-color: #999999;
- border: thin dotted;
- font-family: sans-serif, serif;
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- margin-top: 4em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- padding: 1em;
-}
-
-.sigright {
- margin-right: 2em;
- text-align: right;}
-
-.gesperrt {
- letter-spacing: 0.2em;
- margin-right: -0.2em;
-}
-.wspace {word-spacing: .3em;}
-
-span.locked {white-space:nowrap;}
-.pagenum br {display: none; visibility: hidden;}
-
-@media print, handheld
-{
- body {margin: 0;}
-
- h1, .chapter, .newpage {page-break-before: always;}
- h1.nobreak, h2.nobreak, .nobreak {page-break-before: avoid; padding-top: 0;}
-
- p {
- margin-top: .5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .25em;
- }
-
- table {width: auto; max-width: 100%; margin: 1em auto 1em auto;}
-
- .tdl {
- padding-left: 1em;
- text-indent: -1em;
- padding-right: 0;
- }
-
- .figcenter {
- max-width: 100%;
- margin: 0 auto 0 auto;
- page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;
- }
- .figcenter.samepage {
- margin: 2em auto 2em auto;
- page-break-before: avoid;
- page-break-after: avoid;
- }
-
- img {max-height: 80%;}
-
- hr {
- margin-top: .1em;
- margin-bottom: .1em;
- visibility: hidden;
- color: white;
- width: .01em;
- display: none;
- }
-
- ul {margin-left: 1em; padding-left: 0;}
- li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1.5em;}
-
- .poetry-container {text-align: center;}
- .poetry {display: block; text-align: left; margin-left: 4em;}
- .poetry .stanza {page-break-inside: avoid;}
-
- .transnote {
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- margin-left: 2%;
- margin-right: 2%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- padding: .5em;
- }
-
- .index {margin-left: 0;}
-
-}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Story of Greece: Told to Boys and Girls, by Mary Macgregor</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Story of Greece: Told to Boys and Girls</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Mary Macgregor</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: Walter Crane</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: August 15, 2021 [eBook #66070]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Turgut Dincer, Charlie Howard, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF GREECE: TOLD TO BOYS AND GIRLS ***</div>
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="center larger">Transcriber's Note</p>
-
-<p>Larger versions of most illustrations may be seen by right-clicking them
-and selecting an option to view them separately, or by double-tapping and/or
-stretching them.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="max-width: 30em;">
- <img src="images/cover.jpg" width="2352" height="3507" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<h1>THE STORY OF GREECE</h1>
-
-<div id="i_frontis" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_001.jpg" width="1795" height="2495" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">She changed her into a spider.</div></div>
-
-<div class="newpage p4 center vspace wspace">
-<p class="large gesperrt">
-<span class="bold">THE</span><br />
-<span class="xxlarge">STORY OF GREECE</span></p>
-
-<p class="p2 smaller">TOLD TO BOYS AND GIRLS BY</p>
-
-<p class="p1 large">MARY MACGREGOR</p>
-
-<p class="p1 small">AUTHOR OF ‘THE STORY OF ROME’<br />
-‘THE STORY OF FRANCE,’ ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="p2">WITH NINETEEN PLATES IN COLOUR<br />
-BY WALTER CRANE</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_002" class="figcenter samepage" style="max-width: 14em;">
- <img src="images/i_002.jpg" width="862" height="834" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p class="p2 large">LONDON: T. C. &amp; E. C. JACK, <span class="smcap">Ltd.</span><br />
-<span class="small">35 PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C., &amp; EDINBURGH</span>
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="newpage p4 center vspace wspace larger">
-TO<br />
-<span class="larger">JOYCE MOFFAT SCOTT</span>
-</p>
-<hr />
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii">vii</span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="smcap">Dear little Joyce</span>,—One of the reasons why this book
-is to be your very own is that the story it tells begins in
-Wonderland, and that is a land in which you and all other
-little people wander at will.</p>
-
-<p>Grown up children, men and women as we call them,
-do not know the secrets of this strange land, yet there are
-a few who can always find their way across its border, as
-they used to do when they were small like you. Some few
-others there are who remember its secrets well.</p>
-
-<p>Shall I tell you some of the things you hear and see and
-do in Wonderland?</p>
-
-<p>Why, when the wind blows soft, faint whispers reach
-your ear, but you alone know what the whispers tell. When
-the brooks gurgle you hear joyous laughter, and in the
-springs of water you see the sparkle of elfin eyes.</p>
-
-<p>As the bluebells shake in the breeze, your tiny feet march
-to the music of fairy bands, as the raindrops fall you gather
-pearls with your little hands.</p>
-
-<p>The secrets of this strange Wonderland make you so
-glad that you laugh and dance and sing.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Great, wide, beautiful, wonderful world,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">With the wonderful water round you curled,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And the wonderful grass upon your breast,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">World you are wonderfully drest.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The ancient Wonderland of Hellas, of which this story
-tells, was unlike your Wonderland in this, that men and
-women dwelt in it as well as boys and girls, and they, too,
-saw and heard its secrets. And this was because, in a way
-not known to-day, each had kept the heart of a little child.</p>
-
-<p>So it was that these men and women heard voices in the
-wind and laughter in the streams, so it was that they saw
-eyes in water springs and pearls in raindrops.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_viii">viii</span></p>
-
-<p>More even than these things the Hellenes saw. For
-across lone hillsides, through busy fields, in sacred groves
-and flower-sweet meadows, radiant figures sped. And the
-simple folk catching glimpses of these flitting forms said
-one to the other, ‘The gods have come to live among us.
-Their presence it is that makes the earth so fair, so wonderful.’
-As the years passed and the Hellenes grew older, sterner
-times came. Cities sprang up on hillsides and by river-banks,
-and the gods were seldom seen. Men went to war,
-battles were lost and won.</p>
-
-<p>But never, in victory or in defeat, did the people lose
-their early love of beauty, or that strange, dreamy sense of
-wonder, which from the beginning was ever plucking at
-their hearts.</p>
-
-<p>They longed to fulfil their dreams of beauty, they wished
-to re-shape the world.</p>
-
-<p>But, because the world was so great, so wide, they began
-with one of their cities, the one of which a poet sang,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘O rich and renowned and with violets crowned,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">O Athens the envied of nations.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Here they built temples which became the wonder of
-the world, and in them they placed statues of the old gods
-of Hellas, beautiful statues wrought by master hands out
-of ivory and gold.</p>
-
-<p>Poets and philosophers lived in Athens, too, and so
-literature and art spread the glory of Greece far and wide,
-moulding the thoughts and quickening the deeds of many
-peoples.</p>
-
-<p>Before the glory of Greece faded, Europe had learned
-from her to follow truth, to love beauty.</p>
-
-<p>This story tells but a small part of the wonder of this
-land, yet I hope that it will make you love her and wish to
-learn more about her.—Your friend,</p>
-
-<p class="sigright larger">
-MARY MACGREGOR.
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix">ix</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table id="toc" summary="Contents">
-<tr class="small">
- <td class="tdr">CHAP.</td>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">PAGE</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">I.</td>
- <td class="tdl">WONDERLAND</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">1</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">II.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE GREAT GOD PAN</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">3</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">III.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SIX POMEGRANATE SEEDS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">6</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">IV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BIRTH OF ATHENE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">11</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">V.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE TWO WEAVERS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">13</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE PURPLE FLOWERS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">16</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DANAE AND HER LITTLE SON</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">18</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">VIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE QUEST OF PERSEUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">22</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">IX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ANDROMEDA AND THE SEA-MONSTER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">26</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">X.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ACRISIUS IS KILLED BY PERSEUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">29</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ACHILLES AND BRISEIS THE FAIRCHEEKED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">32</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">MENELAUS AND PARIS DO BATTLE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">38</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">HECTOR AND ANDROMACHE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">41</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE HORSES OF ACHILLES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">44</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE DEATH OF HECTOR</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">48</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">POLYPHEMUS THE GIANT</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">54</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ODYSSEUS ESCAPES FROM THE CAVE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">58</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ODYSSEUS RETURNS TO ITHACA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">61</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ARGUS THE HOUND DIES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">64</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BOW OF ODYSSEUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">67</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_x">x</span></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE LAND OF HELLAS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">72</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">LYCURGUS AND HIS LITTLE NEPHEW</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">76</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">LYCURGUS RETURNS TO SPARTA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">79</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE TRAINING OF THE SPARTANS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">82</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE HELOTS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">85</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ARISTOMENES AND THE FOX</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">89</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE OLYMPIAN GAMES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">94</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE LAST KING OF ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">97</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">CYLON FAILS TO MAKE HIMSELF TYRANT</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">100</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">SOLON FREES THE SLAVES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">102</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE ATHENIANS TAKE SALAMIS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXI">106</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">PISISTRATUS BECOMES TYRANT</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXII">109</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">HARMODIUS AND ARISTOGITON</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIII">113</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE LAW OF OSTRACISM</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIV">116</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BRIDGE OF BOATS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXV">118</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DARIUS REWARDS HISTIAEUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVI">121</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">HISTIAEUS SHAVES THE HEAD OF HIS SLAVE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVII">123</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">SARDIS IS DESTROYED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVIII">126</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XXXIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SANDAL SEWN BY HISTIAEUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIX">129</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XL.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DARIUS DEMANDS EARTH AND WATER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XL">131</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF MARATHON</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLI">134</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">MILTIADES SAILS TO THE ISLAND OF PAROS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLII">137</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ARISTIDES IS OSTRACISED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIII">140</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE DREAM OF XERXES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIV">145</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">XERXES ORDERS THE HELLESPONT TO BE SCOURGED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLV">148</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">‘THE BRAVEST MEN OF ALL HELLAS’</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLVI">153</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi">xi</span></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF THERMOPYLAE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLVII">156</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF ARTEMISIUM</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLVIII">161</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XLIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THEMISTOCLES URGES EURYBIADES TO STAY AT SALAMIS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIX">163</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">L.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THEMISTOCLES TRICKS THE ADMIRALS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_L">167</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF SALAMIS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LI">169</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF PLATAEA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LII">173</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE DELIAN LEAGUE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LIII">178</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THEMISTOCLES DECEIVES THE SPARTANS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LIV">182</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THEMISTOCLES IS OSTRACISED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LV">185</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE ELOQUENCE OF PERICLES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LVI">189</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">PERICLES AND ELPINICE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LVII">194</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE CITY OF ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LVIII">196</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">GREAT MEN OF ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LIX">200</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE THEBANS ATTACK THE PLATAEANS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LX">202</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ATTICA IS INVADED BY THE SPARTANS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXI">205</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE LAST WORDS OF PERICLES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXII">207</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SIEGE OF PLATAEA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXIII">210</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SENTENCE OF DEATH</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXIV">214</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">BRASIDAS LOSES HIS SHIELD</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXV">218</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SPARTANS SURRENDER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXVI">221</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">BRASIDAS THE SPARTAN</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXVII">225</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">AMPHIPOLIS SURRENDERS TO BRASIDAS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXVIII">228</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALCIBIADES THE FAVOURITE OF ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXIX">232</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">SOCRATES THE PHILOSOPHER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXX">237</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALCIBIADES PRAISES SOCRATES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXI">240</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE IMAGES OF HERMES ARE DESTROYED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXII">244</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii">xii</span></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALCIBIADES ESCAPES TO SPARTA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXIII">247</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SIEGE OF SYRACUSE</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXIV">249</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE ATHENIAN ARMY IS DESTROYED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXV">252</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALCIBIADES RETURNS TO ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXVI">255</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ANTIOCHUS DISOBEYS ALCIBIADES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXVII">258</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE WALLS OF ATHENS ARE DESTROYED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXVIII">261</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE MARCH OF THE TEN THOUSAND</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXIX">264</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">PELOPIDAS AND EPAMINONDAS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXX">269</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SEVEN CONSPIRATORS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXI">273</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF LEUCTRA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXII">277</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE DEATH OF EPAMINONDAS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXIII">281</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE TWO BROTHERS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXIV">286</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">TIMOLEON SENDS DIONYSIUS TO CORINTH</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXV">289</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ICETES TRIES TO SLAY TIMOLEON</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXVI">293</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF CRIMISUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXVII">296</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DEMOSTHENES WISHES TO BECOME AN ORATOR</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXVIII">300</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">LXXXIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DEMOSTHENES THE GREATEST ORATOR OF ATHENS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_LXXXIX">303</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XC.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE SACRED WAR</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XC">306</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALEXANDER AND BUCEPHALUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCI">309</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALEXANDER AND DIOGENES</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCII">312</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF GRANICUS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCIII">315</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCIV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE GORDIAN KNOT</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCIV">318</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCV.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DARIUS GALLOPS FROM THE BATTLEFIELD</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCV">321</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCVI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">TYRE IS STORMED BY ALEXANDER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCVI">325</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCVII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE BATTLE OF GAUGAMELA</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCVII">328</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCVIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALEXANDER BURNS PERSEPOLIS</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCVIII">331</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii">xiii</span></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">XCIX.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALEXANDER SLAYS HIS FOSTER-BROTHER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_XCIX">334</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">C.</td>
- <td class="tdl">PORUS AND HIS ELEPHANT</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_C">338</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">CI.</td>
- <td class="tdl">ALEXANDER IS WOUNDED</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_CI">342</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">CII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">THE DEATH OF ALEXANDER</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_CII">345</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdr top">CIII.</td>
- <td class="tdl">DEMOSTHENES IN THE TEMPLE OF POSEIDON</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#CHAPTER_CIII">349</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdl">INDEX</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#INDEX">353</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiv">xiv</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="LIST_OF_ILLUSTRATIONS">LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table id="loi" summary="List of Illustratios">
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">She changed her into a spider,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_frontis"><i>Frontispiece</i></a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr class="small">
- <td> </td>
- <td class="tdr">AT PAGE</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_006">6</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Demeter rejoiced for her daughter was by her side,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_010">10</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The Wind-god sent a gust from the South,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_018">18</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither and thither,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_020">20</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Often she would stand upon the walls of Troy,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_034">34</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">‘Yea, verily, thou art Odysseus,’</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_068">68</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">In the earliest times, a simple foot-race was the only event,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_096">96</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Solon, the wise lawgiver of Athens,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_102">102</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">They crashed into the Persian army with tremendous force,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_136">136</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Ship dashed against ship, till the Persian dead strewed the deep ‘like flowers,’</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_170">170</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">He stood silent before the king,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_188">188</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The figure of the goddess was a colossal one,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_196">196</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">He became a target for every arrow,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_220">220</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">He drank the contents as though it were a draught of wine,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_238">238</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">The multitude saluted him with loud acclamations,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_258">258</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">He left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_304">304</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">He ran toward the horse and seized the bridle,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_310">310</a></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">With an effort he looked at them as they passed,</td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#if_i_348">348</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-<div id="if_i_004" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 37.812em;">
- <img src="images/i_004.png" width="1815" height="2234" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">1</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_STORY_OF_GREECE"><span class="larger">THE STORY OF GREECE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">WONDERLAND</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> story of Greece began long, long ago in a strange
-wonderland of beauty. Woods and winds, fields and rivers,
-each had a pathway which led upward and onward into the
-beautiful land. Sometimes indeed no path was needed, for
-the rivers, woods, and lone hill-sides were themselves the
-wonderland of which I am going to tell.</p>
-
-<p>In the woods and winds, in the trees and rivers, dwelt
-the gods and goddesses whom the people of long ago worshipped.
-It was their presence in the world that made it
-so great, so wide, so wonderful.</p>
-
-<p>To the Hellenes, for that is the name by which the Greeks
-called themselves, there were eyes, living eyes in flowers,
-trees, and water. ‘So crowded full is the air with them,’
-wrote one poet who lived in the far-off days, ‘that there is
-no room to put in the spike of an ear of corn without touching
-one.’</p>
-
-<p>When the wind blew soft, the Hellenes listened to the
-whispering of a voice. When it blew rough, and snatched
-one of the children from their midst, they did not greatly
-grieve. The child had but gone to be the playmate of the
-gods.</p>
-
-<p>The springs sparkled clear, for in them dwelt the Naiads
-or freshwater nymphs, with gifts as great as the river gods,
-who were ofttimes seen and heard amid the churning,
-tossing waters.</p>
-
-<p>In the trees dwelt the Dryads, nymphs these of the forest,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">2</span>
-whom the Hellenes saw but seldom. Shy nymphs were the
-Dryads, born each one at the birth of a tree, in which she
-dwelt, fading away when the tree was felled, or when it
-withered and died.</p>
-
-<p>Their revels were held in some wooded mountain, far
-from the haunts of men. Were a human footfall heard, the
-frolics ceased on the instant, while each Dryad sped swift
-for shelter to the tree of her birth.</p>
-
-<p>So the gods wandered through the land, filling the earth
-with their presence. Yet there was one lofty mountain in
-central Greece, named Mount Olympus, which the Hellenes
-believed was the peculiar home of the gods. It was to this
-great mount that the actual roads on which the Hellenes
-walked each day seemed ever to lead.</p>
-
-<p>On the sides of the mountain, green trees and dark pines
-clustered close. The summit reached high up, beyond the
-clouds, so used the ancient people to tell. Here, where no
-human foot had ever climbed, up beyond the twinkling
-stars, was the abode of the gods.</p>
-
-<p>What the Hellenes never saw with their eyes, they saw
-quite clear with their imagination. Within the clouds,
-where the gods dwelt, they gazed in this strange way, upon
-marble halls, glistening with gold and silver, upon thrones
-too, great white thrones, finer far than those on which an
-earthly king might sit. The walls gleamed with rainbow
-tints, and beauty as of dawns and sunsets was painted over
-the vast arches of Olympus.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">3</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE GREAT GOD PAN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> supreme god of the Hellenes was Zeus. He dwelt in
-the sky, yet on earth, too, he had a sanctuary amid the oak-woods
-of Dodona.</p>
-
-<p>When the oak-leaves stirred, his voice was heard, mysterious
-as the voice of the mightiest of all the gods.</p>
-
-<p>In days long after these, Phidias, a great Greek sculptor,
-made an image of Zeus. The form and the face of the
-god he moulded into wondrous beauty, so that men gazing
-saw sunshine on the brow, and in the eyes gladness and
-warmth as of summer skies.</p>
-
-<p>Even so, if you watch, you may catch on the faces of
-those whose home is on the hill-side, or by the sea, a glimpse
-of the beauty and the wonder amid which they dwell.</p>
-
-<p>It was only in very early times that the chief sanctuary of
-Zeus was at Dodona. Before they had dwelt long in Hellas,
-the Hellenes built a great temple in the plain of Olympia
-to their supreme god and named it the Olympian temple.</p>
-
-<p>Here a gold and ivory statue of the god was placed, and
-to the quiet courts of the temple came the people, singing
-hymns and marching in joyous procession.</p>
-
-<p>Zeus had stolen his great power from his father Kronus,
-with the help of his brothers and sisters. To reward them
-for their aid the god gave to them provinces over which they
-ruled in his name. Hera, Zeus chose as queen to reign
-with him. To Poseidon was given the sea, and a palace
-beneath the waves of the ocean, adorned with seaweed and
-with shells.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">4</span></p>
-
-<p>Pluto was made the guardian of Hades, that dark and
-gloomy kingdom of the dead, beneath the earth, while
-Demeter was goddess of the earth, and her gifts were flowers,
-fruits, and bounteous harvests.</p>
-
-<p>Athene was the goddess of war and wisdom, yet often
-she was to be seen weaving or embroidering, while by her
-table sat her favourite bird, an owl.</p>
-
-<p>Hermes was known as the fleet-footed, for on his feet he
-wore winged sandals to speed him swift on the errands of
-the gods.</p>
-
-<p>Apollo, the Sun-god, was the youngest of all the Olympian
-deities. He dwelt at Parnassus on the eastern coast of
-Greece, and his sanctuary was at Delphi.</p>
-
-<p>The fairest of the goddesses was Aphrodite, Queen of
-Love. Her little son was named Eros, and he never grew
-up. Always he was a little rosy, dimpled child, carrying in
-his hands a bow and arrows.</p>
-
-<p>Many more gods and goddesses were there in the wonder
-days of long ago, but of only one more may I stay to tell
-you now.</p>
-
-<p>The great god Pan, protector of the shepherds and their
-flocks, was half man, half goat. Every one loved this strange
-god, who yet ofttimes startled mortals by his wild and wilful
-ways. When to-day a sudden, needless fear overtakes a
-crowd, and we say a panic has fallen upon it, we are using
-a word which we learned from the name of this old pagan
-god.</p>
-
-<p>Down by the streams the great god Pan was sometimes
-seen to <span class="locked">wander—</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘What was he doing, the great god Pan,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Down in the reeds by the river?</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Spreading ruin and scattering ban,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Splashing and paddling with hoofs of a goat,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And breaking the golden lilies afloat,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">With the dragon-fly on the river.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘He tore out a reed, the great god Pan,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">From the deep cool bank of the river,’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">5</span></p>
-<p class="in0">and then sitting down he ‘hacked and hewed, as a great
-god can,’ at the slender reed. He made it hollow, and
-notched out holes, and lo! there was a flute ready for his
-use.</p>
-
-<p>Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe as the
-god placed his mouth upon the holes.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Blinding sweet, O great god Pan!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The sun on the hill forgot to die,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And the lilies revived, and the dragon-fly</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Came back to dream on the river.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the hill-sides and in the fields of Hellas, the shepherds
-heard the music of their god and were merry, knowing that
-he was on his way to frolic and to dance among them.</p>
-
-<p>Pan lived for many, many a long year; but there is a
-story which tells how on the first glad Christmas eve, when
-Jesus was born in Bethlehem, a traveller, as he passed
-Tarentum, the chief Greek city in Italy, heard a voice crying,
-‘The great god Pan is dead.’</p>
-
-<p>And when this same Jesus had grown to be a Man, and
-‘hung for love’s sake on a Cross,’ one of our own women
-poets sings that all the old gods of Greece</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent6">‘fell down moaning,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Each from off his golden seat;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">All the false gods with a cry,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Rendered up their deity,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Pan, Pan was dead.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">And the reason that the old gods fell was that the strange
-Man upon the Cross was mightier than they. But in the days
-of ancient Greece the gods were alive and strong; of that
-the Hellenes were very sure.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">6</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SIX POMEGRANATE SEEDS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Demeter,</span> the goddess of the earth, was often to be seen in
-the fields in springtime. As the Greek peasants sowed their
-seed they caught glimpses of her long yellow hair while she
-moved now here, now there, among them. It almost
-seemed to these simple folk as though already the bare fields
-were golden with the glory of harvest, so bright shone the
-yellow hair of the goddess. Then they smiled hopefully
-one to the other, knowing well that Demeter would give
-them a bounteous reaping-time.</p>
-
-<p>In the autumn she was in the fields again, the peasants
-even dreamed that they saw her stoop to bind the
-sheaves. Certainly she had been known to visit their barns
-when the harvest was safely garnered. And stranger
-still, it was whispered among the womenfolk that the
-great Earth-Mother had entered their homes, had stood
-close beside them as they baked bread to feed their hungry
-households.</p>
-
-<p>It was in the beautiful island of Sicily, which lies in the
-Mediterranean Sea, that the goddess had her home. Here
-she dwelt with her daughter Persephone, whom she loved
-more dearly than words can tell.</p>
-
-<p>Persephone was young and fair, so fair that she seemed
-as one of the spring flowers that leaped into life when her
-mother touched the earth with her gracious hands.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_006" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_006.jpg" width="1812" height="2516" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">Sweet, piercing sweet was the music of Pan’s pipe</div></div>
-
-<p>Early as the dawn the maiden was in the fields with
-Demeter, to gather violets while the dew still lay upon them,
-to dance and sing with her playmates. At other times she<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">7</span>
-would move gravely by the side of her mother to help her in
-her quiet labours.</p>
-
-<p>All this time, Pluto, King of Hades, was living in his
-gloomy kingdom underground, longing for some fair maiden
-to share his throne. But there was not one who was willing
-to leave the glad light of the sun, no, not though Pluto
-offered her the most brilliant gems in his kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>One day the dark king came up out of the shadows, riding
-in his chariot of gold, drawn by immortal horses. Swifter
-was their pace than that of any mortal steeds.</p>
-
-<p>Persephone was in a meadow with her playfellows when
-the king drew near. The maiden stood knee-deep amid
-the meadow-grass, and, stooping, plucked the fragrant sweet
-flowers all around her—hyacinth, lilies, roses, and pale
-violets.</p>
-
-<p>Pluto saw the group of happy maidens, beautiful each
-one as a day in spring, but it was Persephone who charmed
-him more than any other.</p>
-
-<p>‘She shall be my queen and share my throne,’ muttered
-the gloomy king to himself. Then, for he knew that to woo
-the maiden would be vain, Pluto seized Persephone in his
-arms, and bore her weeping to his chariot.</p>
-
-<p>Swift as an arrow the immortal steeds sped from the
-meadow, where Persephone’s playmates were left terror-stricken
-and dismayed.</p>
-
-<p>On and on flew the chariot. Pluto was in haste to reach
-Hades ere Demeter should miss her daughter.</p>
-
-<p>A river lay across his path, but of this the king recked
-naught, for his steeds would bear him across without so
-much as lessening their speed.</p>
-
-<p>But as the chariot drew near, the waters began to rise
-as though driven by a tempest. Soon they were lashed to
-such fury that Pluto saw that it was vain to hope to cross
-to the other side. So he seized his sceptre, and in a passion
-he struck three times upon the ground. At once a great
-chasm opened in the earth, and down into the darkness<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">8</span>
-plunged the horses. A moment more and Pluto was in his
-own kingdom, Persephone by his side.</p>
-
-<p>When the king seized the maiden in the meadow, and
-bore her to his chariot, she had cried aloud to Zeus, her father,
-to save her. But Zeus had made no sign, nor had any
-heard save Hecate, a mysterious goddess, whose face was
-half hidden by a veil.</p>
-
-<p>None other heard, yet her piteous cry echoed through
-the hills and woods, until at length the faint echo reached
-the ear of Demeter.</p>
-
-<p>A great pain plucked at the heart of the mother as she
-heard, and throwing the blue hood from off her shoulders,
-and loosening her long yellow hair, Demeter set forth, swift
-as a bird, to seek for Persephone until she found her.</p>
-
-<p>To her own home first she hastened, for there, she thought,
-she might find some trace of the child she loved so well.
-But the rooms were desolate as ‘an empty bird’s nest or an
-empty fold.’</p>
-
-<p>The mother’s eyes searched eagerly in every corner, but
-nothing met her gaze save the embroidery Persephone had
-been working, ‘a gift against the return of her mother,
-with labour all to be in vain.’ It lay as she had flung it
-down in careless mood, and over it crept a spider, spinning
-his delicate web across the maiden’s unfinished work.</p>
-
-<p>For nine days Demeter wandered up and down the earth,
-carrying blazing torches in her hands. Her sorrow was so
-great that she would neither eat nor drink, no, not even ambrosia,
-or a cup of sweet nectar, which are the meat and drink
-of the gods. Nor would she wash her face. On the tenth
-day Hecate came towards her, but she had only heard the
-voice of the maiden, and could not tell Demeter who had
-carried her away.</p>
-
-<p>Onward sped the unhappy mother, sick at heart for hope
-unfulfilled, onward until she reached the sun. Here she
-learned that it was Pluto who had stolen her daughter, and
-carried her away to his gloomy kingdom.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">9</span></p>
-
-<p>Then in her despair Demeter left all her duties undone,
-and a terrible famine came upon the earth. ‘The dry seed
-remained hidden in the soil; in vain the oxen drew the
-ploughshare through the furrows.’</p>
-
-<p>As the days passed the misery of the people grew greater
-and greater, until faint and starving they came to Demeter,
-and besought her once again to bless the earth.</p>
-
-<p>But sorrow had made the heart of the goddess hard, and
-she listened unmoved to the entreaties of the hungry folk,
-saying only that until her daughter was found she could
-not care for their griefs.</p>
-
-<p>Long, weary days Demeter journeyed over land and sea
-to seek for Persephone, but at length she came back to
-Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>One day as she walked along the bank of a river, the
-water gurgled gladly, and a little wave carried a girdle
-almost to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>Demeter stooped to pick it up, and lo! it was the girdle
-that Persephone had worn on the day that she had been
-carried away. The maiden had flung it into the river as
-the chariot had plunged into the abyss, hoping that it might
-reach her mother. The girdle could not help Demeter to
-recover her daughter, yet how glad she was to have it, how
-safe she treasured it!</p>
-
-<p>At length, broken-hearted indeed, Demeter went to Zeus
-to beg him to give her back her daughter. ‘If she returns
-the people shall again have food and plenteous harvests,’
-she cried. And the god, touched with the grief of the mother
-and the sore distress of the people, promised that Persephone
-should come back to earth, if she had eaten no food while
-she had lived in the gloomy kingdom of Hades.</p>
-
-<p>No words can tell the joy with which Demeter hastened
-to Hades. Here she found her daughter with no smile
-upon her sweet face, but only tears of desire for her mother
-and the dear light of the sun. But alas! that very day
-Persephone had eaten six pomegranate seeds. For every<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">10</span>
-seed that she had eaten she was doomed to spend a month
-each year with Pluto. But for the other six months, year
-after year, mother and daughter would dwell together, and
-as they clung to one another they were joyous and content.</p>
-
-<p>So for six glad months each year Demeter rejoiced, for
-her daughter was by her side, and ever it was spring and
-summer while Persephone dwelt on earth. But when the
-time came for her to return to Hades, Demeter grew ever
-cold and sad, and the earth too became weary and grey.
-It was autumn and winter in the world until Persephone
-returned once more.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_010" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_010.jpg" width="1810" height="2522" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">Demeter rejoiced, for her daughter was by her side</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">11</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BIRTH OF ATHENE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">One</span> day Zeus was ill. To us it is strange to think of the
-gods as suffering the same pains as mortals suffer, but to the
-Hellenes it seemed quite natural.</p>
-
-<p>Zeus was ill. His head ached so severely that he bade
-all the gods assemble in Olympus to find a cure for his pain.
-But not one of them, not even Apollo, who was god of
-medicine as well as Sun-god, could ease the suffering deity.</p>
-
-<p>After a time Zeus grew impatient with the cruel pain, and
-resolved at all costs to end it. So he sent for his strong son
-Hephaestus, and bade him take an axe and cleave open his
-head.</p>
-
-<p>Hephaestus did not hesitate to obey, and no sooner had
-the blow descended than from his father’s head sprang forth
-Athene, the goddess of war and wisdom. She was clad
-in armour of pure gold, and held in her hand a spear, poised
-as though for battle. From her lips rang a triumphant
-war-song.</p>
-
-<p>The assembled gods gazed in wonder, not unmixed with
-fear at the warrior goddess, who had so suddenly appeared
-in their midst. But she herself stood unmoved before them,
-while a great earthquake shook the land and proclaimed to
-the dwellers in Hellas the birth of a new god.</p>
-
-<p>Athene was a womanly goddess as well as a warlike one.
-She presided over all kinds of needlework, and herself loved
-to weave beautiful tapestries.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after the birth of the goddess a man named Cecrops
-came to a province in Greece, which was afterwards known<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">12</span>
-as Attica. Here he began to build a city, which grew so
-beautiful beneath his hands that the gods in Olympus
-marvelled. When it was finished, each of the gods wished
-to choose a name for the city Cecrops had built.</p>
-
-<p>As only one name could be used, the gods met in a great
-council to determine what was to be done. Soon, one by
-one, each gave up his wish to name the city, save only
-Athene and Poseidon.</p>
-
-<p>Then Zeus decreed that Athene and Poseidon should
-create an object which would be of use to mortals. To
-name the city and to care for it should be the prize of the
-one who produced the more useful gift.</p>
-
-<p>Poseidon at once seized his three-pronged fork or trident,
-which was the sign that he was ruler of the sea. As he
-struck the ground with it lo! a noble horse sprang forth,
-the first horse that the gods had seen.</p>
-
-<p>As Poseidon told the gods in how many ways the beautiful
-animal could be of use to mortals, they thought that Athene
-would not be able to produce anything that could help men
-more.</p>
-
-<p>When she quietly bade the council to look at an olive-tree,
-the gods laughed her to scorn. But they soon ceased
-to laugh. For Athene told them how the wood, the fruit,
-the leaves, all were of use, and not only so, but that the
-olive-tree was the symbol of peace, while the horse was the
-symbol of war. And war did ever more harm than good to
-mortals.</p>
-
-<p>So the gods decided that it was Athene who had won
-the right to name the city, and she gave to it her own name
-of Athene, and the citizens ever after worshipped her as
-their own peculiar goddess.</p>
-
-<p>Of this city, which we know as Athens, you will hear
-much in this story.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">13</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE TWO WEAVERS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Athene</span> could not only wield the sword, she could also ply
-the needle.</p>
-
-<p>In these olden days there lived in Greece a Lydian maid
-who could weave with wondrous skill. So beautiful were
-the tapestries she wrought that her fame spread far and wide.
-Lords and ladies both came from distant towns to see the
-maiden’s skilful hands at work.</p>
-
-<p>Arachne, for that was the maiden’s name, lived in a
-cottage with her parents. They were poor folk, and had
-often found it hard to earn their daily bread. But now that
-their daughter was famous for her embroidery their troubles
-were at an end. For not only lords and ladies, but merchants,
-too, were glad to pay well to secure the young maid’s
-exquisite designs.</p>
-
-<p>And so all would have been well with Arachne and her
-parents had not the foolish girl become vain of her work.
-Soon her companions began to weary of her, for of nothing
-could she talk save of her own deft fingers, of her own
-beautiful embroideries.</p>
-
-<p>Those who loved Arachne grew sad as they listened to
-her proud words, and warned her that ‘pride ever goes
-before a fall.’</p>
-
-<p>But Arachne only tossed her pretty head as she listened
-to the wisdom of older folk. Nor did she cease to boast,
-even saying that she could do more wonderful work than
-the goddess Athene.</p>
-
-<p>Not once, but many times did Arachne say that she<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">14</span>
-wished she might test her skill against that of the goddess.
-And should a prize be offered, proudly she declared that it
-was she who would win it.</p>
-
-<p>From Olympus Athene heard the vain words of the
-maid. So displeased was she with her boldness that she
-determined to go to see Arachne, and if she did not repent
-to punish her.</p>
-
-<p>She changed herself into an old white-haired dame, and
-came to earth. Leaning upon a staff she knocked at the
-door of the cottage where Arachne lived, and was bidden
-to enter.</p>
-
-<p>Arachne was sitting in the midst of those who had come
-to see and to praise her work. Soon she began to talk, as
-she was quick to do, of her skill, and of how she believed
-that her work surpassed in beauty any that Athene could
-produce.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman pushed her way through the group that
-surrounded the maid, and laying her hand upon the shoulder
-of Arachne she spoke kindly to her.</p>
-
-<p>‘Be more modest, my child,’ she said, ‘lest the anger
-of the gods descend upon you, lest Athene take you at your
-word, and bid you to the contest you desire.’</p>
-
-<p>Impatiently Arachne shook off the stranger’s hand, and
-answered, ‘Who are you who dare speak to me? I would
-Athene might hear my words now, and come to test her skill
-against mine. She would soon see that she had a rival in
-Arachne.’</p>
-
-<p>Athene frowned at the insolence of the maiden. Then
-the little company were startled to see the old woman
-suddenly change into the glorious form of the goddess
-Athene. As they gazed they were afraid and fell at her
-feet.</p>
-
-<p>But Arachne did not worship the goddess. Foolish
-Arachne looked boldly in her face, and asked if she had
-come to accept her challenge.</p>
-
-<p>Athene’s only answer was to sit down before an empty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">15</span>
-loom. Soon each, in silence, had begun to weave a wondrous
-tapestry.</p>
-
-<p>Swift and more swift moved the fingers of the weavers,
-while the group of strangers, gathered now near to the door,
-watched the webs as they grew and grew apace.</p>
-
-<p>Into her tapestry Athene was weaving the story of her
-contest with Poseidon for the city of Cecrops. The olive-tree,
-the horse, the gods in the council, all seemed to live as
-they appeared on the web of the goddess.</p>
-
-<p>The tapestry woven by Arachne was also beauteous as her
-work was wont to be. In it you saw the sea, with waves
-breaking over a great bull, to whose horns clung a girl
-named Europa. And Europa’s curls blew free in the wind.</p>
-
-<p>At length Athene rose from the loom, her work complete.
-Arachne, too, laid down her spindle, and as she turned to
-look upon the tapestry of the goddess her courage suddenly
-failed.</p>
-
-<p>A glance had been enough to show her that her skill was
-as nothing before the wonder and the beauty of Athene’s
-work.</p>
-
-<p>Too late the maiden repented that she had defied the
-goddess. In her despair she seized a rope and tied it round
-her neck to hang herself.</p>
-
-<p>But the goddess saw what Arachne meant to do, and at
-once she changed her into a spider, bidding her from henceforth
-never cease to spin.</p>
-
-<p>And so when you see a spider weaving its beautiful embroidery
-on a dewy morning in the garden, or when you
-find a delicate web in your lumber-room, you will remember
-how Athene punished poor foolish Arachne in the days of
-old.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">16</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE PURPLE FLOWERS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Apollo,</span> the youngest and most beautiful of all the gods,
-dearly loved a lad named Hyacinthus.</p>
-
-<p>Ofttimes he would leave the other gods sipping nectar
-in Mount Olympus, ofttimes he would forsake the many
-beautiful temples in which he was worshipped on earth,
-that he might be free to wander through the woods with his
-little friend.</p>
-
-<p>For Hyacinthus was only a merry little lad, who loved
-to roam over hill and dale, and when the fancy seized him
-to hunt in the woods.</p>
-
-<p>Apollo was never happier than when he was with the
-boy. Sometimes he would go hunting with him, and then
-Hyacinthus was merrier than ever, for the world seemed
-more full of brightness when the Sun-god was by his side.
-Sometimes the friends would walk together over hill and
-dale, followed by the dogs Hyacinthus loved so well.</p>
-
-<p>One day they had wandered far, and the little lad was
-tired, so he flung himself down in a grassy meadow to rest,
-Apollo by his side. But the Sun-god was soon eager for a
-game. He sprang to his feet, crying, ‘Hyacinthus, let us
-play at quoits before the shadows fall.’</p>
-
-<p>Quoits were flat, heavy discs, and the game was won by the
-player who could fling the quoits the farthest through the air.</p>
-
-<p>Hyacinthus was ever willing to do as Apollo wished,
-and the game was soon begun. After a throw of more than
-usual skill and strength the friends laughed gleefully.</p>
-
-<p>O but it was good to be alive in such a happy world,
-thought Hyacinthus. And Apollo, as he looked at the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">17</span>
-merry face of the little lad, rejoiced that he was not sitting
-in the cold marble halls of Olympus, but was here on the
-glad green earth.</p>
-
-<p>By and by while they still played, Zephyrus, the god of
-the south wind, came fleeting by. He saw the Sun-god and
-his little playmate full of laughter and of joy.</p>
-
-<p>Then an ugly passion, named jealousy, awoke in the
-heart of the god, for he too loved the little hunter Hyacinthus,
-and would fain have been in Apollo’s place.</p>
-
-<p>Zephyrus tarried a while to watch the friends. Once as
-Apollo flung his disc high into the air, the Wind-god sent a
-gust from the south which blew the quoit aside. He meant
-only to annoy Apollo, but Hyacinthus was standing by, so
-that the quoit struck him violently on the forehead.</p>
-
-<p>The lad fell to the ground, and soon he was faint from
-loss of blood.</p>
-
-<p>In vain Apollo tried to staunch the wound; nothing he
-could do was of any use. Little by little the boy’s strength
-ebbed away, and the Sun-god knew that the lad would never
-hunt or play again on earth. Hyacinthus was dead.</p>
-
-<p>The grief of the god was terrible. His tears fell fast as he
-mourned for the playmate he had loved so well.</p>
-
-<p>At length he dried his tears and took his lyre, and as he
-played he sang a last song to his friend. And all the woodland
-creatures were silent that they might listen to the love-song
-of the god.</p>
-
-<p>When the song was ended, Apollo laid aside his lyre,
-and, stooping, touched with his hand the blood-drops of the
-lad. And lo! they were changed into a cluster of beautiful
-purple flowers, which have ever since been named hyacinths,
-after the little lad Hyacinthus.</p>
-
-<p>Year by year as the spring sun shines, the wonderful
-purple of the hyacinth is seen. Then you, who know the
-story, think of the days of long ago, when the Sun-god lost
-his little friend and a cluster of purple flowers bloomed
-upon the spot where he lay.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">18</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DANAE AND HER LITTLE SON</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> stories I have told you are about the gods of ancient
-Greece; the story I am going to tell you now is about a
-Greek hero.</p>
-
-<p>When you think of a hero, you think of a man who does
-brave, unselfish deeds. But to the Hellenes or Greeks a
-hero was one who was half god, half man—whose one parent
-was a god while the other was a mortal. So the god Zeus
-was the father of Perseus, the hero of whom I am going
-to tell, while his mother was a beautiful princess named
-Danae.</p>
-
-<p>From morning to night, from night till morning, Acrisius,
-the father of Danae, was never happy. Yet he was a
-king.</p>
-
-<p>A king and unhappy? Yes, this king was unhappy
-because he was afraid that some day, as an oracle had foretold,
-he would be slain by his grandson.</p>
-
-<p>The ancient Greeks often sent to sacred groves or temples
-to ask their gods about the future, and the answer, which
-was given by a priestess, was called an oracle.</p>
-
-<p>Now Acrisius, King of Argos, had no grandson, so it was
-strange that the oracle should make him afraid. He hoped
-that he never would have a grandson.</p>
-
-<p>His one child, beautiful, gentle Danae he had loved well
-until he had heard the oracle. Now he determined to send
-her away from the palace, to hide her, where no prince
-would ever find her and try to win her for his bride.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_018" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_018.jpg" width="1807" height="2503" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">The Wind-god sent a gust from the south</div></div>
-
-<p>So the king shut the princess into a tower, which was
-encased in brass and surrounded it with guards, so that no
-one, and least of all a prince, could by any chance catch
-a glimpse of his beautiful daughter.</p>
-
-<p>Very sad was Danae, very lonely, too, when she was left
-in the brazen tower, and Zeus looking down from Olympus
-pitied her, and before long sent a little son to cheer her
-loneliness.</p>
-
-<p>One day the guards saw the babe on his mother’s knee.
-Here was the grandson about whom the king had hoped
-that he would never be born.</p>
-
-<p>In great alarm they hastened to the palace to tell the
-king the strange tidings. Acrisius was so frightened when
-he heard their story that he flew into a passion, and vowed
-that both Danae and Perseus, as her little son was named,
-should perish. So he ordered the guards to carry the
-mother and her babe to the seashore, and to send them
-adrift on the waters in an empty boat.</p>
-
-<p>For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither
-and thither by the winds and the waves, while Danae, in
-sore dismay but with a brave heart, clasped her golden-haired
-boy tight in her arms.</p>
-
-<p>The child slept sound in the frail bark, while his mother
-cried to the gods to bring her and her treasure into a safe
-haven.</p>
-
-<p>On the third day the answer to her prayers came, for
-before her Danae saw an island with a shore of yellow
-sand. And on the shore stood a fisherman with his net,
-looking out to sea. He soon caught sight of the boat, and
-as it drew near he cast his net over it, and gently pulled
-it to the shore.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to Danae almost too good to be true, to stand
-once again on dry land. She thought it was but a dream,
-from which she would awake to find herself once more
-tossing on the great wide sea.</p>
-
-<p>But there stood Dictys, the fisherman, looking at her in
-wonder. Then Danae knew that she was indeed awake.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">20</span>
-She hastened to thank him for his help, and to ask him where
-she could find shelter for herself and her child.</p>
-
-<p>Then the fisherman, who was the brother of Polydectes,
-king of the island on which Danae had landed, said that if
-she would go with him to his home he would treat her as a
-daughter. And Danae went gladly to live with Dictys.</p>
-
-<p>So Perseus grew up in the island of Seriphus, playing on
-the sands when he was small, and when he had grown tall
-and strong going voyages to other islands with Dictys, or
-fishing with him nearer home. Zeus loved the lad and
-watched over him.</p>
-
-<p>Fifteen years passed, and then the wife of Polydectes
-died, and the king wished to marry Danae, for he loved her
-and knew that she was a princess.</p>
-
-<p>But Danae did not wish to wed Polydectes, and she refused
-to become his queen, for indeed she loved no one save
-her son Perseus.</p>
-
-<p>Then the king was angry, and vowed that if Danae
-would not come to the palace as his queen, he would compel
-her to come as his slave.</p>
-
-<p>And it was even so, as a slave, that Perseus found her,
-when he returned from a voyage with Dictys.</p>
-
-<p>The anger of the lad was fierce. How dare any one
-treat his beautiful mother so cruelly! He would have slain
-the king had not Dictys restrained him.</p>
-
-<p>Subduing his anger as well as he could, Perseus went
-boldly to the palace, and taking no heed of Polydectes, he
-brought his mother away and left her in the temple of Athene.
-There she would be safe, for no one, not even the king,
-would enter the sanctuary of the goddess.</p>
-
-<p>‘Perseus must leave the island,’ said Polydectes when
-he was told of the lad’s bold deed. He thought that if her
-son were banished Danae would perchance be willing to
-become his queen.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_020" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_020.jpg" width="1813" height="2506" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">For two days and two nights the boat was tossed hither
-and thither</div></div>
-
-<p>But Polydectes was too crafty to issue a royal command
-bidding Perseus leave Seriphus. That, he knew, would
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">21</span>make Danae hate him more than ever, so he thought of a
-better way to get rid of the lad. He arranged to give a great
-feast in the palace, and proclaimed that each guest should
-bring a gift to present to the king.</p>
-
-<p>Among other youths, Perseus, too, was invited, but he
-was poor and had no gift to bring. And this was what the
-unkind king wished.</p>
-
-<p>So when Perseus entered the palace empty-handed,
-Polydectes was quick to draw attention to the lad, laughing
-at him and taunting him that he had not done as the other
-guests and brought with him a gift. The courtiers followed
-the example of their king, and Perseus found himself attacked
-on every side.</p>
-
-<p>The lad soon lost his temper, and looking with defiance at
-Polydectes, he cried, ‘I will bring you the head of Medusa
-as a gift, O King, when next I enter the palace!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Brave words are these, Perseus,’ answered the king.
-‘See that you turn them into deeds, or we shall think you
-but boast as does a coward.’</p>
-
-<p>Then as Perseus turned and left the banqueting-hall
-the king laughed well pleased, for he had goaded the lad
-until he had fallen into the trap prepared for him. If
-Perseus went in search of the head of Medusa, he was not
-likely to be seen again in Seriphus, thought the king.</p>
-
-<p>And Perseus, as he walked away toward the sea, was
-saying to himself, ‘Yes, I shall go in search of Medusa, nor
-shall I return unless I bring her head with me, a gift for the
-king.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">22</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE QUEST OF PERSEUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Medusa</span> and her two sisters were named the Gorgons. The
-sisters had always been plain and even terrible to see, but
-Medusa had once been fair to look upon.</p>
-
-<p>When she was young and beautiful her home was in a
-northern land where the sun never shone, so she begged
-Athene to send her to the south where sunshine made the
-long days glad. But the goddess refused her request.</p>
-
-<p>In her anger Medusa cried, ‘It is because I am so
-beautiful that you will not let me go. For if Medusa
-were to be seen who then would wish to look at
-Athene.’</p>
-
-<p>Such proud and foolish words might not be suffered by
-the gods, and the maiden was sharply punished for her
-rash speech. Her beautiful curly hair was changed into
-serpents, living serpents that hissed and coiled around her
-head. Nor was this all, but whoever so much as glanced at
-her face was at once turned into stone.</p>
-
-<p>Terrible indeed was Medusa, the Gorgon, whose head
-Perseus had vowed to bring as a gift to Polydectes. She
-had great wings like eagles and sharp claws instead of
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>Now as Perseus wandered down to the shore after he
-had defied the king, his heart began to sink. How was he
-even to begin his task? He did not know where Medusa
-lived, nor did any one on the island.</p>
-
-<p>In his perplexity he did as his mother had taught him
-to do; he prayed to Athene, and lo! even as he prayed the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">23</span>
-goddess was there by his side. With her was Hermes, the
-fleet-footed, wearing his winged sandals.</p>
-
-<p>‘The gods will aid you, Perseus,’ said Athene, ‘if you
-will do as they bid you. But think not to find their service
-easy. For they who serve the gods must endure hardship,
-and live laborious lives. Will this content you?’</p>
-
-<p>Perseus had no fears now that he knew the gods would
-help him, and with a brave and steadfast heart he answered,
-‘I am content.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Pluto sent to the lad his magic helmet, which made
-whoever wore it invisible. Hermes gave to him the winged
-sandals he wore, so that he might be able to fly over land
-and sea, while Athene entrusted to him her shield, the dread
-Ægis, burnished bright as the sun. The shield was made
-from the hide of a goat, but the Hellenes thought of it as
-the great storm-cloud in which Zeus hid himself when he
-was angry. For it was the shield of her father Zeus that
-Athene used.</p>
-
-<p>Upon Medusa herself Perseus would not be able to cast
-a glance lest he be turned to stone, but looking at the shield
-he would see her image as in a mirror.</p>
-
-<p>The lad was now armed for his quest, but not yet did
-he know whither it would lead.</p>
-
-<p>But Athene could direct him. She said that the abode
-of the Gorgons was known to none save three sisters called
-the Grææ. These sisters had been born with grey hair,
-and had only one eye and one tooth between them, which
-they used in turn. Their home was in the north, in a land
-of perpetual darkness, and it was there that Perseus must
-go to learn the dwelling-place of the Gorgons. So at length
-the lad was ready to set out on his great adventure.</p>
-
-<p>On and on, sped by his winged sandals he flew, past
-many a fair town, until he left Greece far behind. On and
-on until he reached the dark and dreary land where the
-Grææ dwelt. He could see them now, the three grey
-sisters, as they sat in the gloom just outside their cave.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">24</span></p>
-
-<p>As Perseus drew near, unseen by them, because of his
-magic helmet, the sisters were passing their one eye from
-hand to hand, so that at that moment all three were blind.</p>
-
-<p>Perseus saw his chance, and stretching out his hand
-seized the eye. They, each thinking the other had it,
-began to quarrel. But Perseus cried, ‘I hold the eye in
-my hand. Tell me where I may find Medusa and you shall
-have it back.’</p>
-
-<p>The sisters were startled by a voice when they had
-neither seen nor heard any one approach; they were more
-startled by what the voice said.</p>
-
-<p>Very unwilling were they to tell their secret, yet what
-could they do if the stranger refused to give back their one
-eye? Already he was growing impatient, and threatening to
-throw it into the sea. So lest he should really fling it away
-they were forced to tell him where he would find the Gorgon.
-Then Perseus, placing the eye in one of the eager, outstretched
-hands, sped swiftly on his journey.</p>
-
-<p>As he reached the land of which the Grææ had told him,
-he heard the restless beating of the Gorgon’s wings, and he
-knew that his quest was well-nigh over.</p>
-
-<p>Onward still he flew, and then raising his burnished
-shield he looked into it, and lo! he saw the images of the
-Gorgons. They lay, all three, fast asleep on the shore.</p>
-
-<p>Unsheathing his sword, Perseus held it high, and then,
-keeping his gaze fixed upon the shield, he flew down and
-swiftly cut off Medusa’s head and thrust it into a magic
-bag which he carried slung over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Now as Perseus seized the terrible head, the serpents
-coiled around the Gorgon’s brow roused themselves, and
-began to hiss so fiercely that the two sisters awoke and knew
-that evil had befallen Medusa.</p>
-
-<p>They could not see Perseus, for he wore his magic helmet,
-but they heard him, and in an instant they were following
-fast, eager to avenge the death of their sister.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment the brave heart of the hero failed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">25</span></p>
-
-<p>Was he doomed to perish now that his task was
-accomplished?</p>
-
-<p>He cried aloud to Athene, for he heard the Gorgons
-following ever closer on his path. Then more swiftly sped
-the winged sandals, and soon Perseus breathed freely once
-again, for he had left the dread sisters far behind.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">26</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ANDROMEDA AND THE SEA-MONSTER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">As</span> Perseus journeyed over land and sea on his great
-quest, he often thought of the dear mother he had left in
-Seriphus. Now that his task was done he longed to fly
-over the blue waters of the Mediterranean to see her, to
-know that she was safe from the cruel King Polydectes.
-But the gods had work for Perseus to do before he might
-return to his island home.</p>
-
-<p>Again and again the lad struggled against wind and rain,
-trying ever to fly in the direction of Seriphus, but again and
-again he was beaten back.</p>
-
-<p>Faint and weary he grew, tired too of striving, so that he
-thought he would die in the desert through which he was
-passing.</p>
-
-<p>Then all at once it flashed across his mind that Hermes
-had told him that as long as he wore the winged sandals he
-could not lose his way. New courage stole into his heart as
-he remembered the words of the god, and soon he found
-that he was being carried with the wind toward some high
-mountains. Among them he caught sight of a Titan or
-giant named Atlas, who had once tried to dethrone Zeus,
-and who for his daring had been doomed to stand,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Supporting on his shoulders the vast pillar</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Of Heaven and Earth, a weight of cumbrous grasp.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The face of Atlas was pale with the mighty burden he
-bore, and which he longed to lay down. As he caught sight
-of Perseus he thought that perhaps the stranger would be able
-to help him, for he knew what Perseus carried in his magic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">27</span>
-bag. So as he drew near Atlas cried to him, ‘Hasten,
-Perseus, and let me look upon the Gorgon’s face, that I may
-no longer feel this great weight upon my shoulders.’</p>
-
-<p>Then in pity Perseus drew from the magic bag the head
-of Medusa, and held it up before the eyes of Atlas. In a
-moment the giant was changed into stone, or rather into a
-great rugged mountain, which ever since that day has been
-known as the Atlas Mountain.</p>
-
-<p>The winged sandals then bore Perseus on until he reached
-a dark and desolate land. So desolate it was that it seemed
-to him that the gods had forsaken it, or that it had been
-blighted by the sins of mortals. In this island lived Queen
-Cassiopeia with her daughter Andromeda.</p>
-
-<p>Cassiopeia was beautiful, but instead of thanking the
-gods for their gift of beauty, she used to boast of it, saying
-that she was fairer than the nymphs of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>So angry were the nymphs when they heard this, that
-they sent a terrible monster to the island, which laid it
-waste, and made it dark and desolate as Perseus had seen.</p>
-
-<p>The island folk sent to one of their temples to ask what
-they could do to free their island from the presence of the
-sea-serpent.</p>
-
-<p>‘This monster has been sent to punish Cassiopeia for her
-vain boast,’ was the answer. ‘Bid her sacrifice her daughter
-Andromeda to the sea-serpent, then will the nymphs remove
-the curse from your homes.’</p>
-
-<p>Andromeda was fair and good, and the people loved her
-well, so that they were greatly grieved at the oracle. Yet
-if they did not give up their princess their homes would be
-ruined, their children would perish before their eyes.</p>
-
-<p>So while the queen shut herself up in her palace to weep,
-the people took the beautiful maiden down to the shore
-and chained her fast to a great rock. Then slowly, sorrowfully,
-they went away, leaving her a prey to the terrible
-monster.</p>
-
-<p>As Perseus drew nearer to the sea he saw the maiden.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">28</span>
-The next moment he was gazing in horror at the sea-serpent,
-as with open, hungry jaws it approached its victim.</p>
-
-<p>Quick as lightning Perseus drew his sword and swooped
-down toward the monster, at the same moment holding
-before him the head of Medusa.</p>
-
-<p>As the eyes of the serpent fell upon that awful sight, it
-slipped backward, and before Perseus could use his sword,
-it was changed into a rock, a great black rock. And if you
-go to the shore of the Levant you may see it still, surrounded
-by the blue waters of the Mediterranean.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">29</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ACRISIUS IS KILLED BY PERSEUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">As</span> soon as Perseus saw that the monster was harmless, he
-took off his magic helmet, and hastening to Andromeda he
-broke the chain that held her to the rock. Then bidding her
-fear no more he led her back to the palace, where the queen
-sat weeping for her lost daughter.</p>
-
-<p>When the door of her room was opened Cassiopeia never
-stirred. Andromeda’s arms were around her, Andromeda’s
-kisses were on her cheek before she could believe that her
-daughter was in very truth alive. Then, indeed, the
-mother’s joy was boundless.</p>
-
-<p>So fair, so good was the maiden that Perseus loved her,
-and thanked the gods who had led him to that desolate
-land. Before many weeks had passed the princess was
-wedded to the stranger who had saved her from the terrible
-sea-monster.</p>
-
-<p>Twelve months later they left Cassiopeia, and sailed
-away to Seriphus, for Perseus longed to see his mother, and
-to bring to her his beautiful bride.</p>
-
-<p>Seven long years had passed since Perseus set out on
-his quest, and Danae’s heart was glad when she saw her son
-once more.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as their greetings were over, Perseus left Andromeda
-with his mother, and went to the palace, carrying with
-him the head of Medusa in the magic bag.</p>
-
-<p>The king was feasting with his nobles when Perseus
-entered the banqueting-hall. Long, long ago he had ceased
-to think of Perseus, for he believed that he had perished on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">30</span>
-his wild adventure. Now he saw him, grown to be a man,
-entering the hall, and he grew pale with sudden fear.</p>
-
-<p>Paying no heed to any, Perseus strode through the
-throng of merry courtiers until he stood before the throne
-on which sat Polydectes.</p>
-
-<p>‘Behold the gift I promised you seven years ago, O
-King!’ cried Perseus, and as he spoke he drew forth the
-head of Medusa and held it up for the king to see.</p>
-
-<p>Polydectes and his startled nobles stared in horror
-at the awful face of the Gorgon, and as they gazed the
-king and all his followers were changed into figures of
-stone.</p>
-
-<p>Then Perseus turned and left the palace, and telling the
-island folk that Polydectes was dead, he bade them now
-place Dictys, the fisherman, upon the throne.</p>
-
-<p>He then hastened to the temple of Athene, and with a
-glad heart gave back to the goddess the gifts which had
-served him so well—the helmet, the sandals, the shield.</p>
-
-<p>As his own offering to Athene he gave the head of the
-Gorgon. She, well pleased, accepted it, and had it placed
-in the centre of her shield, so from that day the Ægis became
-more terrible than before, for the Gorgon’s head still turned
-to stone whoever looked upon it.</p>
-
-<p>Danae had often talked to Perseus when he was a boy
-of Acrisius, her father, and of Argos, the city from which he
-had been banished when he was a babe. Perseus now
-resolved to sail to Argos with Danae and Andromeda.
-During these years Acrisius had been driven from his throne
-by an ambitious prince. He was in a miserable dungeon,
-thinking, it may be, of his unkindness to his daughter Danae,
-when she once again reached Argos.</p>
-
-<p>Perseus soon drove away the usurper, and for his mother’s
-dear sake he took Acrisius out of his dungeon and gave him
-back his kingdom. For Danae had wept and begged
-Perseus to rescue his grandfather from prison.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed as though the oracle that long ago had made<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">31</span>
-Acrisius act so cruelly would now never be fulfilled. But
-sooner or later the words of the gods come true.</p>
-
-<p>One day Perseus was present at the games that were
-held each year at Argos. As he flung a quoit into the air
-a sudden gust of wind hurled it aside, so that it fell upon
-the foot of Acrisius, who was sitting near.</p>
-
-<p>The king was an old man now, and the blow was more
-than he could bear. Before long he died from the wound,
-and thus the oracle of the gods was fulfilled.</p>
-
-<p>Perseus was kind as he was brave, and it grieved him
-that he had caused the death of his grandfather, although
-it had been by no fault of his own.</p>
-
-<p>Argos no longer seemed a happy place to the young king,
-so he left it, and going to a city called Mycenæ, he made it
-his capital. Here, after a long and prosperous reign, Perseus
-died. The gods whom he had served loyally, placed him
-in the skies, among the stars. And there he still shines,
-together with Andromeda and Cassiopeia.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">32</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ACHILLES AND BRISEIS THE FAIRCHEEKED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> story of Perseus belongs to the Heroic Age of Greek
-history, to the time when heroes were half mortal, half
-divine. Many other wonderful tales belong to the Heroic
-Age, but among them all none are so famous as those that
-are told in the <i>Iliad</i> and the <i>Odyssey</i>. The <i>Iliad</i> tells of
-the war that raged around the walls of the city of Troy; the
-<i>Odyssey</i> of the adventures of the goodly Odysseus.</p>
-
-<p>In the north-west corner of Asia, looking toward Greece,
-the ruins of an ancient city have been discovered. It was
-on this spot that Troy or Ilium was believed to have stood.</p>
-
-<p>Strange legends gathered round the warriors of the
-Trojan War, so strange that some people say that there
-never were such heroes as those of whom the <i>Iliad</i> tells.
-However that may be, we know that in long after years,
-when the Greeks fought with the people of Asia, they remembered
-these old stories, and believed that they were
-carrying on the wars which their fathers had begun.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Iliad</i> and the <i>Odyssey</i> were written by a poet named
-Homer, so many wise folk tell. While others, it may be
-just as wise, say that these poems were not written by one
-man, but were gathered from the legends of the people, now
-by one poet, now by another, until they grew into the collection
-of stories which we know as the <i>Iliad</i> and the <i>Odyssey</i>.</p>
-
-<p>At first these old stories were not written in a book; they
-were sung or told in verse by the poets to the people of
-Hellas. And because what is ‘simple and serious lives
-longer than what is merely clever,’ these grave old stories of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">33</span>
-two thousand years ago are still alive, and people are still
-eager to read them.</p>
-
-<p>Some day you will read the <i>Iliad</i> and the <i>Odyssey</i>. In this
-story I can only tell you about a few of the mighty warriors
-who fought at Troy, about a few of their strange adventures.</p>
-
-<p>If you look at a map of Greece you will easily find, in the
-south, the country called Peloponnesus. In Peloponnesus
-you will see Sparta, the capital city, over which Menelaus
-was king, when the story of the <i>Iliad</i> begins.</p>
-
-<p>Menelaus was married to a beautiful queen named Helen.
-She was the fairest woman in the wide world.</p>
-
-<p>One day there came to the court of the king a prince
-named Paris. He was the second son of Priam, King of Troy.
-Menelaus welcomed his royal guest and treated him with
-kindness, but Paris repaid the hospitality of the king most
-cruelly. For when affairs of State called Menelaus away
-from Sparta for a short time, Paris did not wait until he
-returned. He hastened back to Troy, taking with him the
-beautiful Queen of Sparta, who was ever after known as
-Helen of Troy.</p>
-
-<p>When Menelaus came home to find that Helen had
-gone away to Troy, he swore a great oath that he would
-besiege the city, punish Paris, and bring back his beautiful
-queen to Sparta; and this was the beginning of the Trojan
-War.</p>
-
-<p>Menelaus had not a large enough army to go alone against
-his enemy. So he sent to his brother Agamemnon, who
-was the chief of all the mighty warriors of Hellas, and to
-many other lords, to beg them to help him to besiege Troy,
-and, if it might be, to slay Paris.</p>
-
-<p>The chiefs were eager to help Menelaus to avenge his
-wrongs, and soon a great army was ready to sail across the
-Hellespont to Asia, to march on Troy.</p>
-
-<p>But before the army embarked, the warriors sent, as
-was their custom, to an oracle, to ask if their expedition
-would be successful.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">34</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Without the help of goodly Achilles, Troy will never be
-taken,’ was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>Achilles was the son of Thetis, the silver-footed goddess,
-whose home was in the depths of the sea. Well did she love
-her strong son Achilles. When he was a babe she wished to
-guard him from the dangers that would surely threaten him
-when he grew to be a man, so she took him in her arms and
-carried him to the banks of the river Styx. Whoever
-bathed in these magic waters became invulnerable, that is, he
-became proof against every weapon. Silver-footed Thetis,
-holding her precious babe firmly by one heel, plunged him
-into the tide, so that his little body became at once invulnerable,
-save only the heel by which his mother grasped him.
-It was untouched by the magic water.</p>
-
-<p>Achilles set sail with the other chiefs for Troy, so it
-seemed as though the city would be taken by his help, as
-the oracle foretold. With him Achilles took his well-loved
-friend Patroclus.</p>
-
-<p>For nine long years was the city of Troy besieged, and all
-for the sake of Helen the beautiful Queen of Sparta. Often
-as the years passed, she would stand upon the walls of Troy
-to look at the brave warriors of Hellas, to wonder when they
-would take the city. But when nine years had passed, no
-breach had yet been made in the walls.</p>
-
-<p>When the Hellenes needed food or clothing, they attacked
-and plundered the neighbouring cities, which were not
-so well defended as Troy.</p>
-
-<p>The plunder of one of these cities, named Chryse, was the
-cause of the fatal quarrel between Agamemnon and Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>In Chryse there was a temple sacred to Apollo, guarded
-by a priest named Chryses. His daughter Chryseis, and
-another beautiful maiden named Briseis the Faircheeked,
-were taken prisoners when the town was sacked by the
-Hellenes. Agamemnon claimed the daughter of the priest
-as his share of the spoil, while Briseis he awarded to Achilles.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_034" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_034.jpg" width="1806" height="2494" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">Often she would stand upon the walls of Troy</div></div>
-
-<p>When Chryses the priest found that his daughter had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">35</span>
-been carried away by the Greeks, he hastened to the tent of
-Agamemnon, taking with him a ransom great ‘beyond
-telling.’ In his hands he bore a golden staff on which he
-had placed the holy garland, that the Greeks, seeing it, might
-treat him with reverence.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now may the gods that dwell in the mansions of
-Olympus grant you to lay waste the city of Priam and to fare
-happily homeward,’ said the priest to the assembled chiefs,
-‘only set ye my dear child free and accept the ransom in
-reverence to Apollo.’</p>
-
-<p>All save Agamemnon wished to accept the ransom and
-set Chryseis free, but he was wroth with the priest and
-roughly bade him begone.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let me not find thee, old man,’ he cried, ‘amid the ships,
-whether tarrying now or returning again hereafter, lest the
-sacred staff of the god avail thee naught. And thy daughter
-will I not set free. But depart, provoke me not, that thou
-mayest the rather go in peace.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Chryseis was angry with Agamemnon, while for
-his daughter’s sake he wept.</p>
-
-<p>Down by the ‘shore of the loud-sounding sea’ he walked,
-praying to Apollo, ‘Hear me, god of the silver bow. If ever
-I built a temple gracious in thine eyes, or if ever I burnt to
-thee fat flesh ... of bulls or goats, fulfil thou this my
-desire; let the Greeks pay by thine arrows for my tears.’</p>
-
-<p>Apollo heard the cry of the priest, and swift was his
-answer. For he hastened to the tents of the Greeks, bearing
-upon his shoulders his silver bow, and he sped arrows of
-death into the camp.</p>
-
-<p>Dogs, mules, men, all fell before the arrows of the angry
-god. The bodies of the dead were burned on great piles of
-wood, and the smoke rose black toward the sky.</p>
-
-<p>For nine days the clanging of the silver bow was heard.
-Then Achilles called the hosts of the Greeks together, and
-before them all he spoke thus to Agamemnon: ‘Let us go
-home, Son of Atreus,’ he said, ‘rather than perish, as we surely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">36</span>
-shall do if we remain here. Else let us ask a priest why
-Apollo treats us thus harshly.’</p>
-
-<p>But it was easy to tell why Apollo was angry, and
-Calchas, a seer, answered Achilles in plain-spoken words.
-‘The wrath of the god is upon us,’ he said, ‘for the sake of
-the priest whom Agamemnon spurned, refusing to accept
-the ransom of his daughter. Let Chryseis be sent back to
-her father, and for sacrifice also a hundred beasts, that the
-anger of the god may be pacified.’</p>
-
-<p>Deep was the wrath of Agamemnon as he listened to the
-words of Calchas.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thou seer of evil,’ he cried, his eyes aflame with anger,
-‘never yet hast thou told me the thing that is pleasant.
-Yet that the hosts of our army perish not, I will send the
-maiden back. But in her place will I take Briseis the Fair-cheeked,
-whom Achilles has in his tent.’</p>
-
-<p>When Achilles heard these words he drew his sword to
-slay Agamemnon. But before he could strike a blow he
-felt the locks of his golden hair caught in a strong grasp, and
-in a moment his rage was checked, for he knew the touch was
-that of the goddess Athene. None saw her save Achilles,
-none heard as she said to him, ‘I came from heaven to stay
-thine anger.... Go to now, cease from strife, and let not
-thine hand draw the sword.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Achilles sheathed his sword, saying, ‘Goddess,
-needs must a man observe thy saying even though he be
-very wroth at heart, for so is the better way.’</p>
-
-<p>Yet although Achilles struck no blow, bitter were the
-words he spoke to the king, for a coward did he deem him
-and full of greed. ‘If thou takest from me Briseis,’ he cried,
-‘verily, by my staff, that shall not blossom again seeing it
-has been cleft from a tree, never will I again draw sword for
-thee. Surely I and my warriors will go home, for no quarrel
-have we with the Trojans. And when Hector slaughters
-thy hosts, in vain shalt thou call for Achilles.’</p>
-
-<p>Well did Agamemnon know that he ought to soothe the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">37</span>
-anger of Achilles and prevail on him to stay, for his presence
-alone could make the Trojans fear. Yet in his pride the king
-answered, ‘Thou mayest go and thy warriors with thee.
-Chieftains have I who will serve me as well as thou, and who
-will pay me more respect than ever thou hast done. As for
-the maiden Briseis, her I will have, that the Greeks may know
-that I am indeed the true sovereign of this host.’</p>
-
-<p>The Assembly then broke up, and Chryseis was sent home
-under the charge of Odysseus, one of the bravest of the
-Greek warriors.</p>
-
-<p>When the priest received his daughter again, he at once
-entreated Apollo to stay his fatal darts, that the Greeks
-might no longer perish in their camp. And Apollo heard
-and laid aside his silver bow and his arrows of death.</p>
-
-<p>Then Agamemnon called heralds, and bade them go to
-the tent of Achilles and bring to him Briseis of the fair
-cheeks. ‘Should Achilles refuse to give her up,’ said the
-angry king, ‘let him know that I myself will come to fetch
-the maiden.’</p>
-
-<p>But when the heralds told Achilles the words of the king,
-he bade Patroclus bring the damsel from her tent and give
-her to the messengers of Agamemnon. And the maiden,
-who would fain have stayed with Achilles, was taken to the
-king.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">38</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">MENELAUS AND PARIS DO BATTLE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> the heralds of Agamemnon had led Briseis away,
-Achilles stripped off his armour, for not again would he fight
-in the Trojan War. Down to the seashore he went alone
-to weep for the loss of Briseis the Faircheeked.</p>
-
-<p>As he wept he called aloud to his mother Thetis. From
-the depths of the sea she heard his cry, and swift on a wave
-she reached the shore. Soon she was by the side of her son,
-and taking his hand, as when he was a boy, she asked, ‘My
-child, why weepest thou?’</p>
-
-<p>Then Achilles told how Agamemnon had taken from him
-Briseis, whom he loved.</p>
-
-<p>‘Go to the palace of Zeus,’ he entreated her, ‘and
-beseech Zeus to give me honour before the hosts of the
-Greeks. Let him grant victory to the Trojans until the king
-sends to Achilles to beg for his help in the battle.’</p>
-
-<p>So Thetis, for the sake of her dear son, hastened to
-Olympus, and bending at the knee of Zeus she besought the
-god to avenge the wrong done to Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>At first Zeus, the Cloud-gatherer, was silent, as though he
-heard her not. ‘Give me now thy promise,’ urged Thetis,
-‘and confirm it with a nod or else deny me.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the god nodded, and thereat Olympus shook to its
-foundations. So Thetis knew that she had found favour in
-the eyes of Zeus, and leaving the palace of the gods she
-plunged deep into the sea.</p>
-
-<p>Zeus hastened to fulfil his promise, and sent to
-Agamemnon a ‘baneful dream.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">39</span></p>
-
-<p>As the king dreamed, he thought he heard Zeus bid him
-go forth to battle against the Trojans, for he would surely
-take the city. But in this Zeus deceived the king.</p>
-
-<p>When Agamemnon awoke in the morning he was glad,
-for now he hoped to win great honour among his warriors.
-Quickly he armed himself for battle, throwing a great cloak
-over his tunic, and slinging his sword, studded with silver,
-over his shoulder. In his right hand he bore the sceptre of
-his sires, the sign of his lordship over all the great hosts of
-Hellas.</p>
-
-<p>Then when he was armed, the king assembled his great
-army, and after telling his dream, he bade it march in silence
-toward the city.</p>
-
-<p>But when the Trojans saw the Hellenes drawing near,
-they came out to meet them ‘with clamour and with shouting
-like unto birds, even as when there goeth up before
-heaven a clamour of cranes which flee from the coming of
-winter and sudden rain.’</p>
-
-<p>As the Trojans approached, Menelaus saw Paris who
-had stolen his fair wife, and he leaped from his chariot that
-he might slay the prince. But Paris, when he saw the wrath
-of Menelaus, was afraid and hid himself among his comrades.</p>
-
-<p>Then Hector, his brother, who was the leader of the
-Trojans, mocked at him for his cowardice, until Paris grew
-ashamed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now will I challenge Menelaus to single combat,’ he
-cried. And Hector rejoiced at his words and bade the
-warriors stay their arrows.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hearken, ye Trojans and ye Greeks,’ he cried, ‘Paris
-bids you lay down your arms while he and his enemy
-Menelaus alone do battle for Helen and for her wealth.
-And he who shall be victor shall keep the woman and her
-treasures, while we will make with one another oaths of
-friendship and of peace.’ So there, without the walls of the
-city, oaths were taken both by the Greeks and the Trojans.
-But the heart of Priam, King of Troy, was heavy lest harm<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">40</span>
-should befall Paris, and he hastened within the gates of the
-city that he might not watch the combat. ‘I can in no wise
-bear to behold with mine eyes my dear son fighting with
-Menelaus,’ he said. ‘But Zeus knoweth, and all the
-immortal gods, for whether of the twain the doom of death
-is appointed.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Menelaus and Paris drew their swords, and Menelaus
-cried to Zeus to grant him his aid, so that hereafter men
-‘may shudder to wrong his host that hath shown him
-kindness.’</p>
-
-<p>But it seemed that Zeus heard not, for when Menelaus
-flung his ponderous spear, although it passed close to Paris,
-rending his tunic, yet did it not wound him, and when he
-dealt a mighty blow with his sword upon the helmet of his
-enemy, lo, his sword broke into pieces in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>Then in his wrath, Menelaus reproached the god: ‘Father
-Zeus,’ he cried, ‘surely none of the gods is crueller than thou.
-My sword breaketh in my hand, and my spear sped from my
-grasp in vain, and I have not smitten my enemy.’</p>
-
-<p>Yet even if Zeus denied his help, Menelaus determined
-to slay his foe. So he sprang forward and seized Paris by
-the strap of his helmet. But the goddess Aphrodite flew to
-the aid of the prince, and the strap broke in the hand of
-Menelaus. Before the king could again reach his enemy, a
-mist sent by the goddess concealed the combatants one from
-the other. Then, unseen by all, Aphrodite caught up Paris,
-‘very easily as a goddess may,’ and hid him in the city
-within his own house.</p>
-
-<p>In vain did Menelaus search for his foe, yet well did he
-know that no Trojan had given him shelter. For Paris was
-‘hated of all even as black death,’ because it was through his
-base deed that Troy had been besieged for nine long years.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">41</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">HECTOR AND ANDROMACHE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> gods were angry with Aphrodite because she had hidden
-Paris from the king, and they determined that, in spite of
-their oath, the two armies should again begin to fight.</p>
-
-<p>So Athene was sent to the Trojan hosts, disguised as one
-of themselves. In and out among the soldiers she paced,
-until at length she spoke to one of them, bidding him draw
-his bow and wound Menelaus.</p>
-
-<p>The soldier obeyed, and the arrow, guided by Athene,
-reached the king, yet was the wound but slight.</p>
-
-<p>When the Greeks saw that the Trojans had disregarded
-their oath, they were full of wrath, and seizing their arms
-they followed their chiefs to battle. ‘You had thought them
-dumb, so silent were they,’ as they followed. But as the
-Trojans looked upon the enemy there arose among them a
-confused murmur as when ‘sheep bleat without ceasing to
-hear their lambs cry.’</p>
-
-<p>Fierce and yet more fierce raged the battle. Valiant
-deeds were done on both sides, but when Hector saw that
-the Greeks were being helped by the gods, he left the battlefield
-and hastened to the city.</p>
-
-<p>At the gates, wives and mothers pressed around him,
-eager to hear what had befallen their husbands, their sons.
-But Hector tarried only to bid them go pray to the gods.</p>
-
-<p>On to the palace he hastened to find Hecuba, his mother.
-She, seeing him come, ran to greet him and to beg of him to
-wait until she brought honey-sweet wine, that he might pour
-out an offering to Zeus, and himself drink and be refreshed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">42</span></p>
-
-<p>But Hector said, ‘Bring me no honey-sweet wine, my
-lady-mother, lest thou cripple me of my courage and I be
-forgetful of my might. But go thou to the temple with all
-thy women, to offer gifts to Athene and to beseech her aid.’</p>
-
-<p>Then leaving his mother, Hector went to the house of
-Paris, and bitterly did he rebuke him, because he was not in
-the forefront of the battle.</p>
-
-<p>‘Stay but till I arm and I will go with thee,’ answered
-Paris. But Hector heeded him not, for he was in haste to
-find his dear wife Andromache and their beautiful boy,
-Skamandriss. By the people the child was called Astyanax,
-the City King, for it was his father who guarded Troy.</p>
-
-<p>Andromache was not in their house, but on the wall of
-the city, watching the battle, fearing lest harm should befall
-her lord. With her was her little son, in the arms of his
-nurse.</p>
-
-<p>Hector dared not linger to search for his wife, but as he
-hastened back to the gates she saw him and ran to bid him
-farewell ere he returned to battle.</p>
-
-<p>Close to his side she pressed, and her tears fell as she
-cried:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Too brave! thy valour yet will cause thy death.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Thou hast no pity on thy tender child,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Nor me, unhappy one, who soon must be</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Thy widow. All the Greeks will rush on thee</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To take thy life. A happier lot were mine</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">If I must lose thee to go down to earth,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For I shall have no hope when thou art gone—</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Nothing but sorrow. Father have I none,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And no dear mother....</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent30">Hector, thou</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Art father and dear mother now to me,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And brother and my youthful spouse besides,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">In pity keep within the fortress here,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Nor make thy child an orphan nor thy wife</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">A widow.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But Hector, though he dearly loved his wife, could not
-shrink from the battle. As Andromache ceased to plead<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">43</span>
-with him, he held out his arms to his little son, but the child
-drew back in fear of the great plumes that waved on his
-father’s shining helmet.</p>
-
-<p>Then Hector took off his helmet and laid it on the ground,
-while he caught his child in his arms and kissed him, praying
-Zeus and all the gods to defend him.</p>
-
-<p>Andromache gazed pitifully at her husband as, at length,
-he gave the child to its nurse, and he seeing her great grief,
-took her hand and said:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Sorrow not thus, beloved one, for me.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">No living man can send me to the shades</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Before my time; no man of woman born,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Coward or brave, can shun his destiny.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">But go thou home and tend thy labours there,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The web, the distaff, and command thy maids</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To speed the work. The cares of war pertain</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To all men born in Troy, and most to me.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then springing into his chariot, Hector drove swiftly
-back to the field of battle.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">44</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE HORSES OF ACHILLES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Hector</span> and Paris reached the battlefield at the same
-moment. The Trojans were encouraged to fight yet more
-fiercely when they saw the two princes, and soon so many of
-the Greeks were slain that Agamemnon grew afraid.</p>
-
-<p>‘Zeus hath sent me a deceiving dream,’ he said to his
-counsellors. ‘If the gods send not their help we must perish,
-unless indeed Achilles will forget his anger and come to our
-aid. Verily, Zeus loveth Achilles, seeing that he putteth the
-Greeks to flight that he may do him honour. But even as I
-wronged him in my folly, so will I make amends and give
-recompence beyond all telling.’</p>
-
-<p>Then, casting aside his pride, the king sent messengers
-to the tent of Achilles, to say that he would send back
-Briseis and give to him splendid gifts if he would but come
-to the help of the Greeks, for they were flying before the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>But the heart of Achilles was too bitter to be touched by
-the fair promises of the king, for had he not taken from him
-Briseis, the lady of his love? So he bade the messengers
-go back to Agamemnon and say that he would not fight, but
-he would launch his ships on the morrow and sail away to
-his own land.</p>
-
-<p>When the king heard that Achilles spurned his gifts, and
-refused to come to his aid, he was afraid. But his counsellors
-said, ‘Let us not heed Achilles, whether he sail or whether
-he linger by the loud-sounding sea. When the gods call to
-him, or when his own heart bids, he will fight. Let us go<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">45</span>
-once more against the Trojans, and do thou show thyself, O
-king, in the forefront of the battle.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Agamemnon rallied his men and led them against
-the foe, yet again he was driven back. Chief after chief
-was wounded, and at length the Hellenes fled to their ships to
-defend them from the Trojans. But Patroclus determined
-to plead with Achilles to save his countrymen from defeat.
-When he entered the tent of his friend he was weeping
-for pity of the dead and wounded.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wherefore weepest thou, Patroclus, like a fond little
-maid that runs by her mother’s side?’ asked Achilles as he
-looked up at the entrance of his friend and saw his tears.</p>
-
-<p>‘Never may such wrath take hold of me as that thou
-nursest, thrice brave, to the hurting of others,’ answered his
-comrade. ‘The Greeks are lying wounded and dead. If
-thou wilt not come to their help, let me lead thy men so that
-the enemy may be beaten back....’</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent32">‘And give</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The armour from thy shoulders. I will wear</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Thy mail, and then the Trojans, at the sight,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">May think I am Achilles, and may pause</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">From fighting.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Even as Patroclus pleaded with his friend, a great light
-flared up against the sky. The Trojans had set fire to the
-Greek ships.</p>
-
-<p>Then, at length, Achilles was roused. He would not go
-himself to the help of Agamemnon, but he bade Patroclus
-put on his armour, while he called together his brave warriors
-and commanded them to follow his friend to battle.</p>
-
-<p>Quickly Patroclus donned the well-known armour of
-Achilles, then calling to Automedon, the chariot driver, he
-bade him harness Xanthus and Balius, the immortal horses
-of his friend, for their speed was swift as the wind.</p>
-
-<p>As Patroclus vanished from sight in the chariot drawn
-by Xanthus and Balius, Achilles prayed to Zeus. ‘O Zeus,’
-he cried, ‘I send my comrade to this battle. Strengthen his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">46</span>
-heart within him, and when he has driven from the ships the
-war and din of battle, scathless then let him return to me and
-my people with him.’</p>
-
-<p>Down upon the Trojans swept the warriors led by
-Patroclus. They, seeing the armour of Achilles were afraid,
-and fled from the ships. But ere long they discovered that
-it was not Achilles but Patroclus who wore the well-known
-armour, and they returned to fight with new courage. And
-ever, where the battle raged most fiercely, did Patroclus
-bid Automedon drive his chariot.</p>
-
-<p>Then the gods bade Hector find Patroclus and slay him.
-Little trouble had the prince in finding the warrior who
-wore the armour of Achilles. Bravely the two heroes fought,
-but Patroclus was not able to stand against the great strength
-of Hector. Moreover, the gods betrayed him, striking him
-from behind on the head and shoulders, so that the helmet
-of Achilles fell in the dust. Apollo also snatched his shield
-from his arm and broke his spear in two.</p>
-
-<p>When Hector saw that his enemy was disarmed, he took
-his spear and struck him so fiercely that Patroclus fell</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘With clashing mail, and all the Greeks beheld</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">His fall with grief.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">The friend of Achilles was wounded to death.</p>
-
-<p>In his triumph Hector was merciless. He mocked at his
-fallen foe, saying, ‘Patroclus, surely thou saidst that thou
-wouldst sack my town, and from Trojan women take away the
-day of freedom, and bring them in ships to thine own dear
-country. Fool, ... I ward from them the day of destiny,
-but thee shall vultures here destroy.’</p>
-
-<p>Faint though he was, Patroclus answered, ‘It was not
-thou, Hector, who didst slay me, but Apollo, who snatched
-from me my shield and brake my sword in twain.’ Then
-his strength failed and he breathed his last.</p>
-
-<p>No pity yet showed Hector, for he stripped off the armour
-of Achilles from the body of Patroclus that he might wear it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">47</span>
-himself. But Zeus, as he looked upon the haughty victor,
-was displeased.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, hapless man,’ said the god to himself, ‘no thought
-is in thy heart of death that yet draweth nigh unto thee;
-thou doest on thee the divine armour of a peerless man before
-whom the rest have terror. His comrade, gentle and brave,
-thou hast slain, and unmeetly hast stripped the armour
-from his head and shoulders.’</p>
-
-<p>The immortal horses of Achilles wept when they knew
-that Patroclus was slain. Automedon lashed them, he spoke
-kindly to them, yet would they not move. As a pillar on
-a tomb, so they stood yoked to the chariot. From their
-eyes big teardrops fell, their beautiful heads hung down
-with grief so that their long manes were trailed in the dust.
-Thus sorely did the immortal steeds grieve for the death of
-Patroclus.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">48</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE DEATH OF HECTOR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Fierce</span> and long raged the battle around the body
-of Patroclus. And while the armies fought, a messenger
-hastened to the tent of Achilles to tell him that his comrade
-was slain and that the Trojans fought for his body as it lay
-naked on the ground, stripped of its armour. ‘Thy armour,’
-said the messenger, ‘Hector has taken for himself.’</p>
-
-<p>When Achilles heard the bitter tidings he took dust and
-poured it with both hands upon his head. ‘As he thought
-thereon, he shed big tears, now lying on his side, now on his
-back, now on his face, and then anon he would rise upon his
-feet, and roam wildly beside the beach of the salt sea.’
-As he cried aloud in his grief his mother, Thetis, heard in her
-home beneath the sea. Swiftly she sped to her son that she
-might learn why he wept.</p>
-
-<p>Achilles told her all that had befallen Patroclus, and how
-he himself cared no longer to live, save only that he might slay
-Hector who had killed his friend.</p>
-
-<p>Thetis bade her son wait but till the morrow before he
-went to battle, and she would bring him armour made by
-the great Fire-god.</p>
-
-<p>Then she left him and prayed the god Hephaestus,
-keeper of the forge, to give her armour for her dear son.</p>
-
-<p>Hephaestus was pleased to work for so goodly a warrior
-as Achilles. Quickly he set his twenty bellows to work, and
-when the fire blazed in the forge, he threw into it bronze and
-silver and gold. Then taking a great hammer in his hand he
-fashioned a marvellous shield, more marvellous than words<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">49</span>
-can tell. Before morning a complete suit of armour was
-ready for Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Hector had all but captured the body of
-Patroclus. But the gods spoke to Achilles, bidding him
-now succour the body of his friend. Without armour
-Achilles could not enter the fray, yet he hastened to the
-trenches that the Trojans might see him.</p>
-
-<p>Around his head gleamed a golden light, placed there by
-Athene. When the Trojans saw the flame and heard the
-mighty cry of Achilles, they drew back afraid.</p>
-
-<p>Three times the warrior shouted, and three times the
-Trojans drew back in fear. While they hesitated the Greeks
-rushed forward and carried away the body of Patroclus,
-nor did they lay it down until they laid it in the tent of
-Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>On the morrow Thetis came back to her son, bringing
-with her the armour made by Hephaestus. She found him
-weeping over the body of his friend.</p>
-
-<p>‘My child,’ she said, ‘him who lieth here we must let
-be, for all our pain. Arm thyself now and go thy way into
-the fray.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Achilles put on the armour of the god in haste, for
-he feared lest another than he should slay Hector.</p>
-
-<p>With Achilles once again at their head, the Greek warriors
-attacked the Trojans with redoubled fury. But it was
-Hector alone whom Achilles longed to meet, and soon he
-saw his enemy near one of the gates of Troy. Now he
-would avenge the death of Patroclus. But when Hector
-saw the great hate in the eyes of his enemy, lo, he turned
-and fled.</p>
-
-<p>‘As a hawk, fastest of all the birds of air, pursues a dove
-upon the mountains,’ so did Achilles pursue the prince
-until he was forced to stand to take breath. Then Hector,
-encouraged by the gods, drew near to him and spoke, ‘Thrice,
-great Achilles, hast thou pursued me round the walls of Troy,
-and I dared not stand up against thee; but now I fear thee<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">50</span>
-no more. Only do thou promise, if Zeus give thee the victory,
-to do no dishonour to my body, as I also will promise to do
-none to thine should I slay thee.’</p>
-
-<p>But Achilles, remembering Patroclus, cried out in anger
-that never would he make a covenant with him who had
-slain his friend.</p>
-
-<p>Then with fierce blows each fell upon the other, until at
-length Achilles drove his spear through the armour that
-Hector wore, and the Trojan prince fell, stricken to the
-ground.</p>
-
-<p>Achilles, his anger still burning fiercely, stripped the
-dead man of his armour, while many Greek warriors standing
-near thrust at him with their spears, saying to one
-another, ‘Go to, for easier to handle is Hector now, than
-when he burnt the ships with blazing fire.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Achilles tied the dead man to his chariot with
-thongs of ox-hide and drove nine times round the city walls,
-dragging the fair head of Hector in the dust.</p>
-
-<p>From the tower Priam and Hecuba saw the body
-of their son dragged in the dust, and bitter was their
-pain.</p>
-
-<p>But Andromache knew not yet what had befallen her
-lord, for she sat in an inner chamber wearing a purple cloth.
-Soon she bade her maids prepare a bath for Hector, for she
-thought that he would return ere long from the battle.
-She knew not yet that Hector would never return, but as
-the noise of the wailing of the people reached the room in
-which she sat, her heart misgave her. In haste she ran to
-the wall of the city, only to see the chariot of Achilles as it
-dragged Hector down to the loud-sounding sea.</p>
-
-<p>Then fainting with grief, Andromache fell to the ground,
-and the diadem which Aphrodite had given to her on her
-wedding morn dropped from her head, to be worn by her
-no more.</p>
-
-<p>Down by the seashore Achilles burned the body of
-Patroclus with great honour, and when the funeral rites were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">51</span>
-ended, he dragged the dead body of Hector round the tomb,
-weeping for the loss of his dear comrade.</p>
-
-<p>But Zeus was angry with Achilles for treating the Trojan
-prince so cruelly, and he sent Thetis to bid her son give back
-Hector’s body to Priam, who would come to offer for it a
-ransom. ‘If Zeus decrees it, whoever brings a ransom shall
-return with the dead,’ answered Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>Then Zeus sent a messenger to the house of Priam, where
-the mother and the wife of Hector wept, saying, ‘Be of good
-cheer in thy heart, O Priam.... I am the messenger of
-Zeus to thee, who though he be afar off, hath great care and
-pity for thee. The Olympian biddeth thee ransom noble
-Hector’s body, and carry gifts to Achilles that may gladden
-his heart.’</p>
-
-<p>So Priam set out alone, save for the driver of the wagon
-which was to bring Hector again to Troy, for so had the
-messenger commanded. But Hecuba feared to let the old
-man go alone to the tent of the enemy. When he reached
-the camp of the Greeks, Priam hastened to the tent of
-Achilles, and entering it before his enemy was aware, the
-old king fell at the feet of his enemy and begged for the
-body of his dear son.</p>
-
-<p>Achilles could not look upon the grief of the old man
-unmoved, but when Priam offered him gifts he frowned and
-haughtily he answered, ‘Of myself am I minded to give
-Hector back to thee, for so has Zeus commanded.’</p>
-
-<p>Then a truce for nine days was made between the Greeks
-and the Trojans, so that King Priam and his people might
-mourn for Hector and bury him undisturbed by fear of the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Priam tarried with Achilles until night fell. Then while
-he and his warriors slept, the king arose and bade the driver
-yoke the horses and mules. When this was done they laid
-the body of Hector upon the wagon, and in the silence of the
-night set out on their homeward journey.</p>
-
-<p>At the gates of Troy stood Andromache and Hecuba<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">52</span>
-watching until Priam returned. And when the wagon
-reached the city the Trojans carried Hector into his own
-house. Then Andromache took the head of her dear
-husband in her arms and said, ‘Husband, thou art gone
-young from life and leavest me a widow in thy halls. And
-the child is yet but a little one ... nor methinks shall he
-grow up to manhood, for ere then shall this city be utterly
-destroyed. For thou art verily perished who didst watch
-over it and guard it, and keptest safe its noble wives and
-infant little ones.’</p>
-
-<p>The following morning Priam bade his people go gather
-wood for the burial, and after nine days the body of Hector
-was laid on the pile and burned. Then his white bones,
-wrapped in purple cloth, were placed in a golden chest.
-Above the chest a great mound was raised, and thus Hector,
-the brave prince of Troy, was buried.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after the burial of Hector Achilles was killed by a
-poisoned arrow which Paris aimed at his heel, the one spot
-of his body that Thetis had failed to bathe in the magic
-waters of the river Styx. Paris himself perished soon after
-the death of Achilles.</p>
-
-<p>Troy still remained untaken. Then goodly Odysseus
-told the Greeks that although they could not take the city
-by storm, they might take her by a stratagem or trick.</p>
-
-<p>So the Greeks, as he bade them, built a huge wooden
-horse, which was hollow within. Here they hid a number
-of their bravest warriors, and then the main body of the army
-marched away, as though they were tired of trying to take
-the city. The wooden horse they left as an offering to
-Poseidon. Only a slave named Sinon was left behind to
-persuade the Trojans to drag the horse into the city. But
-the Trojans needed little persuasion. They came out of
-the city, gazed at the strange horse, half feared a trick, and
-then, like children amused with a new toy, they pulled it
-within the walls of Troy.</p>
-
-<p>So glad were the Trojans that the enemy had gone away,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">53</span>
-that they made a great feast. While they ate and drank,
-careless of danger, Sinon helped the Greek warriors out
-of the hollow wooden horse. They waited until it was
-late and all was quiet, then they slipped down to the
-gates and flung them open, while their comrades, who
-had not marched far away, rushed in to plunder and burn
-the city. Thus after many long years Troy was taken by
-the counsel of Odysseus.</p>
-
-<p>One of the first to sail away from the city was Menelaus,
-with his beautiful queen safe at his side. After many
-adventures he reached Sparta and lived with Helen ‘in
-peace, comfort, and wealth, and his palace shone in its
-splendour like the sun or the moon.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">54</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">POLYPHEMUS THE GIANT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Greek warriors burned and sacked the city of Troy, and
-then they set sail for the sunny isles of Greece. But storms
-overtook some, the gods sent misfortune to others, so that
-but few reached their own land in safety.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus, King of Ithaca, an island on the western coast
-of Greece, suffered greater hardships than any other. For
-ten years he was either tossed by the gods on stormy seas,
-or kept a captive in strange countries. Of some of his
-adventures I shall tell you now.</p>
-
-<p>When Odysseus and his comrades sailed away from
-Troy, they were driven by a fair wind to the shore of
-Ismarus. Here dwelt a rich and prosperous people called
-the Cicones.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks wished to take much spoil back with them to
-their homes, so they resolved to slay the Cicones and plunder
-their city.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the citizens escaped the sword of the adventurers
-and hastened to their kinsmen who dwelt farther from the
-shore. When they had told their terrible tidings, their
-comrades armed themselves and sped to the shore to punish
-the strangers.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus had tried in vain to make his followers go back
-to their ships. They had refused to be hurried, and were
-now sitting on the seashore eating and drinking, heedless
-of danger.</p>
-
-<p>Before they were aware the kinsmen of the Cicones had
-fallen upon them, and when the sun went down they had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">55</span>
-slain six men out of each of the strangers’ ships. The rest
-barely escaped with their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Scarcely had the Greeks reached their vessels and sailed
-away from Ismarus, when Zeus sent a north wind against
-them. For nine days their ships were driven hither and
-thither. Their sails were torn to shreds, when on the tenth
-day the sailors caught sight of land. It was the land of the
-lotus-eaters, where the people fed only on the fruit of the
-lotus, a fruit that brought sleep and forgetfulness to the
-eater.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus sent three sailors on shore to find out what
-manner of people the lotus-eaters were. No sooner had they
-landed than the inhabitants brought them fruit, which
-they ate with delight. But the honey-sweet flowers made
-them forget Odysseus, their comrades, and their ships. They
-had no wish save to stay for ever with the lotus-eaters to
-share their magic food.</p>
-
-<p>At length, Odysseus grew tired of waiting for the three
-sailors to return, and he himself with a few armed men went
-on shore to look for them. He thought that perhaps they
-had been taken prisoners and had been bound with chains,
-but he found them lying on the yellow sand, dreamy and
-content.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘And sweet it was to dream of Fatherland,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Of child, and wife, and slave; but evermore</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Most weary seem’d the sea, weary the oar,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Weary the wandering fields of barren foam.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>When the three sailors saw Odysseus they cried:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent16">‘“We will return no more”</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And all at once they sang, “Our island home</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Is far beyond the wave; we will no longer roam.”’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Odysseus and his comrades were offered fruit by the
-kindly lotus-eaters, but Odysseus waved it aside and bade
-his men drag away the three sailors who had already eaten.
-The sailors wept sore, for fain would they have dwelt for ever<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">56</span>
-in the land of dreams. But when they were once more on
-their vessels and had put out to sea, the breezes brought
-back health to their bodies, vigour to their minds. Soon
-they were able to rejoice that they had left the enchanted
-lotus-land far behind.</p>
-
-<p>Westward sailed the fleet of Odysseus, until it reached
-the island of Sicily, where the Cyclopes dwelt. The Cyclopes
-were giants who had each but one eye, fixed in the middle of
-his brow.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus, taking with him only his own crew, landed on
-the island, for he wished to see the Cyclopes. He had
-walked but a little way when he came to a great cave, in
-which stood baskets filled with cheeses and milkpans filled
-with milk. In this cave dwelt Polyphemus, one of the sons
-of Poseidon, and the fiercest of all the fierce Cyclopes.</p>
-
-<p>Into this cave went Odysseus and his comrades.
-Polyphemus was not within; he was out on the hills with his
-flocks.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let us take the cheeses and drive away the lambs and
-the kids that are here, before the giant returns,’ said the
-sailors. But Odysseus would not do as they wished, for, said
-he, ‘I greatly wish to see the giant shepherd who dwells in
-the cave.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Verily,’ said Odysseus, as he told the tale in after days,
-‘verily, his coming was not to be a joy to my company.’</p>
-
-<p>Evening drew on apace, and Polyphemus, driving his
-flocks before him, reached the cave. When he had driven
-his flocks in before him, the giant took a huge rock and placed
-it in the doorway.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus and his comrades had hidden themselves in the
-dimmest corners of the cave when Polyphemus entered.
-The giant lighted a great fire of pine wood and began to milk
-the ewes. Soon the flames lighted up every corner of the
-cave, and Polyphemus saw his unexpected guests.</p>
-
-<p>In a voice that struck terror even into the brave hearts
-of the Greeks, so gruff, so loud it was, the giant demanded,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">57</span>
-‘Strangers, who are ye? Whence sail ye over the watery
-ways? On some trading enterprise or at adventure do ye
-rove, even as sea-robbers over the brine?’</p>
-
-<p>Boldly then answered Odysseus, ‘“<em>No Man</em>” is my
-name. My ship, Poseidon, the shaker of the earth, broke
-it to pieces, for he cast it upon the rocks at the border of
-your country, and brought it nigh the headland, and a wind
-bore it thither from the sea. But I, with these my men,
-escaped from utter doom. Give us, we beseech thee, food
-and shelter.’</p>
-
-<p>As you know, Odysseus had not been shipwrecked, his
-vessel, safely anchored, awaited his return, nor was his true
-name <em>No Man</em>. He dared not tell the giant the truth, lest
-he should go in search of his ship and take it for firewood,
-while he and his companions were kept prisoners in the cave.</p>
-
-<p>The giant said not a word when Odysseus ended his tale,
-but he stretched out his great hand, seized two of the
-strangers, and devoured them before the eyes of their
-horrified companions. Then, well satisfied with his meal, he
-fell fast asleep.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning the giant finished his breakfast by eating
-two more of his guests, then, moving away the stone at the
-entrance of the cave as easily as if it had been a feather, he
-drove his flocks to pasture. He did not forget to replace the
-stone in the doorway before he turned away.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">58</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ODYSSEUS ESCAPES FROM THE CAVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Odysseus</span> was determined that he and his comrades should
-escape from the cave of the dread Cyclops. Hour after hour
-he pondered how he might persuade the giant to let them go,
-but at length he thought, ‘I will not persuade him, I will force
-him to let us go.’</p>
-
-<p>At that moment, his eye fell upon a great staff or club in
-a corner of the cave. He bade his companions make a sharp
-point to it. When this was done he hardened it in the fire
-and then hid it from sight.</p>
-
-<p>The day passed slowly, but at length evening came and
-Polyphemus returned to the cave. His guests shrank into
-the farthest corner as the giant began his supper, but ere he
-finished, he again stretched out his hand, seized two of his
-prisoners, and devoured them. Then Odysseus offered him
-a draught of wine which he had brought with him from
-Ismarus.</p>
-
-<p>Deep drank the giant, and ere he fell into a sound sleep he
-turned to Odysseus saying, ‘<em>No Man</em>, thee will I eat last in
-return for thy gift of wine.’</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus waited until he saw that Polyphemus was fast
-asleep, then he bade his comrades put the point of the great
-staff in the fire. When it was red hot he told them to
-thrust it deep into the eye of the giant. So great was the
-pain that the Cyclops leaped up from his sleep and hurled
-away the staff, uttering loud cries of agony.</p>
-
-<p>The giants who dwelt on the mountains round about
-heard the voice of Polyphemus, and together they hastened
-to the doorway of the cave.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">59</span></p>
-
-<p>‘What hath so distressed thee, Polyphemus,’ they cried,
-‘that thou criest thus aloud through the immortal night and
-makest us sleepless? Surely no mortal driveth off thy flocks
-against thy will; surely none slayeth thyself by force or
-craft?’</p>
-
-<p>‘<em>No Man</em> is slaying me by guile, nor at all by force,’
-answered Polyphemus, proud even in his pain.</p>
-
-<p>‘If no man is harming thee, it may be that Zeus has sent
-sickness upon thee,’ answered the giants. ‘Pray thou then
-to thy father Poseidon for aid. As for us, we will go back to
-our slumbers.’</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus laughed to himself as he heard their retreating
-feet, for now he was sure that he would be able to save
-himself and his comrades.</p>
-
-<p>When morning dawned, Polyphemus, still groaning with
-pain, groped his way to the door. Having found it he pushed
-the stone a little way to the side to allow his flocks to pass out
-of the cave. To make sure that his prisoners did not escape
-with the animals, he sat down by the entrance and touched
-the back of each ram as it passed. But Odysseus had tied
-his followers with osier twigs beneath the rams, and so, in
-spite of the care of the giant, all his prisoners escaped.
-Odysseus himself was the last to leave the cave, holding fast
-to the fleece of the largest ram.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had Odysseus rejoined his companions than
-he loosened the twigs with which he had bound them. Then
-together they ran to the shore, driving before them many of
-the giant’s best sheep. These they took on board their
-ship, and then rowed out some way from land.</p>
-
-<p>Polyphemus soon found that he had been outwitted, and
-he began to stumble down toward the sea.</p>
-
-<p>When Odysseus saw him, he bade his men rest on their
-oars, while he spoke to the giant in a loud voice.</p>
-
-<p>‘Cyclops,’ he cried, ‘so thou wert not to eat the company
-of a weakling by main might in thy hollow cave. Thine
-evil deeds were very sure to find thee out, thou cruel man,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">60</span>
-who hadst no shame to eat thy guests within thy gates,
-wherefore Zeus hath requited thee and the other gods.’</p>
-
-<p>In his rage Polyphemus took a great rock off the top of a
-mountain and hurled it in the direction from which the voice
-came. The rock fell near to the bow of the ship, so that the
-waters rose and pushed the vessel toward the shore.</p>
-
-<p>But Odysseus seized a pole and swiftly thrust the ship
-back from the land. Then he bade the sailors pull for the
-open sea with might and main.</p>
-
-<p>When the ship was once more some distance from the
-shore, Odysseus taunted the giant yet again with his evil
-deeds.</p>
-
-<p>‘Cyclops,’ he cried, ‘if any one of mortal men shall ask
-thee of the unsightly blinding of thine eye, say that it was
-Odysseus who blinded it, the Waster of Cities, son of Laertes,
-whose dwelling is in Ithaca.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the giant, in impotent anger, stretched out his
-hands to the heavens and cried, ‘Hear me, Poseidon, girdler
-of the earth, god of the dark hair, if indeed I be thy son....
-Grant that he may never come to his home, even Odysseus,
-waster of cities, son of Laertes, whose dwelling is in Ithaca;
-yet if he is ordained to see his friends and come into his well-builded
-house and his own country, late may he come, and
-in evil case, with the loss of all his company, in the ship of
-strangers, and find sorrows in his house.’</p>
-
-<p>And so it came to pass, even as the Cyclops prayed, for
-only after many wanderings did Odysseus reach his home,
-to find it in the hands of those who prayed that the king
-might never return to Ithaca.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">61</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ODYSSEUS RETURNS TO ITHACA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> small island of Ithaca, of which Odysseus was king, lay
-on the western shore of Greece. His subjects deemed that
-their king was dead, for ten years had passed since Troy had
-been destroyed, and yet he had not come home.</p>
-
-<p>But Penelope, the wife of Odysseus, would not believe
-that her lord was dead; she clung to the hope that he would
-yet return. Princes came to the palace to beg the queen to
-wed, but in vain did each one urge his suit, for hope
-whispered in the heart of Penelope, ‘My lord is still alive.’</p>
-
-<p>Laertes, the father of Odysseus, was too old, her little son
-Telemachus was too young, to help the queen, when the
-princes rudely insisted on living in the palace and in wasting
-the goods of Odysseus. Again and again they entreated her
-to wed one among them. But the queen grew angry and
-rebuked them for their insolence in living in the palace.
-From day to day, from week to week, from month to month,
-even from year to year, Penelope mocked at the impatience
-of her suitors.</p>
-
-<p>For she set up in the hall of the palace a large loom and
-began to weave a beautiful robe. ‘Ye princely youths, my
-wooers,’ she said, ‘now that Odysseus is dead, as ye declare,
-do ye abide patiently, how eager soever on this marriage of
-mine, till I finish the robe.’</p>
-
-<p>The princes agreed to wait until the robe was finished,
-but little did they dream how long the queen would take
-to her task.</p>
-
-<p>Day after day, day after day, they watched as Penelope<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">62</span>
-sat at her web weaving, ever weaving. But night after night,
-night after night, when the insolent princes had gone to bed,
-the queen carefully unravelled the work they had seen her do
-by day.</p>
-
-<p>For three long years did Penelope mock her suitors in this
-way, but when the fourth year came, and the robe was still
-incomplete, one of the queen’s serving-maids betrayed her
-secret to the princes.</p>
-
-<p>Then the queen could no longer refuse to wed, yet still
-she tried to put off the day as long as might be. So she
-promised to marry him who could most easily bend the great
-bow of Odysseus, and hit the mark on which she should
-decide. There was now but a little while until the day
-would dawn on which the trial of strength and skill was to
-take place.</p>
-
-<p>Telemachus meanwhile had grown into a tall lad, and,
-guided by Athene, he left the palace where the princes
-wasted his wealth to go in search of his father. It might be
-that Odysseus was a captive in some distant land.</p>
-
-<p>But Odysseus was on his way to Ithaca, sailing in the
-ship of a king who had befriended him.</p>
-
-<p>As the vessel glided into the harbour of the little island,
-Odysseus lay asleep on the deck. So the sailors lifted him
-in a rug on which he lay and put him down in his own
-kingdom by the side of the road.</p>
-
-<p>When he awoke Odysseus did not at first know where he
-was, for Athene had covered the land with a thick mist.</p>
-
-<p>‘O woe is me now, unto what mortals’ land am I now
-come?’ cried the king, well-nigh in tears with desire for his
-own country.</p>
-
-<p>Even as he spoke, Athene stood by his side disguised as a
-young man.</p>
-
-<p>‘What land is this?’ asked Odysseus, not yet knowing
-that it was the goddess to whom he spoke, but thinking that
-it was one of the country folk.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thou art witless, stranger, or thou art come from afar,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">63</span>
-if indeed thou askest of this land,’ said Athene. ‘Verily
-it is rough and not fit for the driving of horses, yet is it not a
-very sorry isle, though narrow withal. For herein is corn
-past telling, and herein, too, wine is found, and the rain is on
-it evermore and the fresh dew. And it is good for feeding
-goats and feeding kine; all manner of wood is here, and
-watering-places unfailing are herein. Wherefore, stranger,
-the name of Ithaca hath reached even unto Troyland.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Odysseus knew that it was the grey-eyed goddess
-Athene who spoke to him, and he answered, ‘Methinks that
-thou speakest thus to mock me and beguile my mind. Tell
-me whether, in very deed, I am come to mine own dear
-country?’</p>
-
-<p>The goddess did not answer, but silently she scattered the
-mist that the king might see that he was indeed in his own
-kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>Then Odysseus was glad and stooped to kiss the earth,
-knowing that at last his weary wanderings were at an end.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">64</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ARGUS THE HOUND DIES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Athene</span> knew that if Odysseus went to the palace, the princes
-would pretend that he was not the king, and would perhaps
-even slay him. So she bade him go, not to the palace, but
-to the hut of his swineherd Eumaeus, who had remained
-loyal to him and to his house.</p>
-
-<p>That no one, not even the swineherd, might recognise
-the king, Athene changed him into an old beggar man, with
-dirty, tattered garments.</p>
-
-<p>In this miserable guise Odysseus reached the hut of
-Eumaeus. Now Eumaeus believed that strangers were sent
-by Zeus, so he welcomed the beggar and gave him food.</p>
-
-<p>As he ate, the swineherd sat beside him, bewailing the
-absence of his king, who had never returned from the Trojan
-War.</p>
-
-<p>‘His name,’ said Eumaeus, ‘even though he is not here,
-it shameth me to speak, for he loved me exceedingly, and
-cared for me at heart; nay, I call him “worshipful,” albeit
-he is far from hence.’</p>
-
-<p>Much, too, did the swineherd tell of Penelope, of
-Telemachus, and of how the insolent suitors lived at the
-palace and wasted the king’s goods. As Odysseus listened,
-he longed to go at once to the palace to avenge his wrongs.</p>
-
-<p>That night the king spent in the hut of his swineherd,
-lying before the fire, while over him the swineherd flung a
-covering of goatskins. But Eumaeus did not sleep. He
-cast over his shoulders a rough mantle, and taking with him
-a sharp sword he went out to guard his herd of swine. And<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">65</span>
-the king was glad when he saw how well the swineherd cared
-for the flocks of his absent lord.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning, as Eumaeus kindled a fire and prepared
-breakfast for the stranger, footsteps were heard without.
-Telemachus had returned to Ithaca, having sought for his
-father in vain.</p>
-
-<p>Eumaeus hastened to welcome his master’s son and
-‘kissed him all over as one escaped from death.’ Then he
-set before the prince the best that his hut could provide.</p>
-
-<p>When Telemachus had eaten and had drunk sweet wine
-out of a wooden goblet, he bade Eumaeus hasten to the palace
-to tell his mother that he had come safely home. So the
-swineherd took his sandals, bound them on his feet and set
-out for the city. Odysseus and Telemachus were left alone.</p>
-
-<p>Then Athene came to the hut unseen, and changed
-Odysseus into his own goodly form, bidding him tell
-Telemachus who he was.</p>
-
-<p>At first the prince could not believe that this stranger,
-so strong, so fair, was Odysseus. But when at length he
-knew that it was indeed his father he embraced him, while
-tears of joy fell down his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>Then Athene bade them determine how the king should
-make himself known to Penelope, and how the greedy and
-insolent suitors should be punished.</p>
-
-<p>The father and son talked long together and they agreed
-that on the morrow Telemachus should go to the palace,
-but to none, no, not even to Penelope, was he to tell that
-Odysseus had returned.</p>
-
-<p>The arms that hung in the hall of the palace the prince
-was to hide in his own room, so that when the time for the
-king’s revenge should come the suitors might find neither
-sword nor shield with which to defend themselves. Odysseus
-was to follow his son to the palace when a few hours had
-passed, disguised once more as a beggar.</p>
-
-<p>So, on the morrow, Telemachus set out for the palace.
-As he entered the hall the first to see him was his father’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">66</span>
-old nurse Eurycleia. She was busy spreading the skins
-upon the oaken chairs, but she left her work and ran to
-greet the prince, ‘kissing him lovingly on the head and
-shoulders.’</p>
-
-<p>Penelope, too, coming from her chamber, saw him, and
-cast her arms about her dear son and fell a-weeping, and
-kissed his face and both his beautiful eyes. ‘Thou art come,
-Telemachus,’ she said, ‘a sweet light in the dark. Methought
-I should never see thee again.’</p>
-
-<p>While Telemachus was still telling his lady-mother all
-that had befallen him in his search for his father, the beggar,
-with Eumaeus by his side, entered the court of the palace.</p>
-
-<p>In the court lay Argus, the great hound that Odysseus
-himself had trained ere he went to Troy. Old was he now
-and despised, for no longer could he run in the hunt, swift as
-the wind. The princes had banished him from the hall,
-while by the servants he was spurned.</p>
-
-<p>As the beggar drew near, Argus raised his head, looked at
-the stranger, and began to wag his tail to show his joy. For
-rags could not hide his master from the faithful hound.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus turned his head away, that Eumaeus might not
-see his tears.</p>
-
-<p>‘Surely a hound so noble as this should not lie thus
-neglected in the yard,’ he said to the swineherd.</p>
-
-<p>‘In very truth,’ answered Eumaeus, ‘this is the dog of a
-man that has died in a far land. If he were what once he was
-in limb and in the feats of the chase, when Odysseus left him
-to go to Troy, soon wouldst thou marvel at the sight of his
-swiftness and his strength. There was no beast that could
-flee from him in the deep places of the wood when he was in
-pursuit of prey.’</p>
-
-<p>As the king and the swineherd passed on into the palace,
-Argus fell back content to die, for after watching and waiting
-for twenty years he had seen his master once again.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">67</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BOW OF ODYSSEUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the hall of the palace the suitors sat feasting, as was their
-custom. When Eumaeus entered, followed by the beggar,
-they no sooner caught sight of him than they began to mock
-at his rags. But Telemachus took a loaf and gave it to the
-stranger, bidding him go to each prince and beg for himself,
-for said he, ‘Shame is an ill mate of a needy man.’</p>
-
-<p>One haughty suitor, named Antinous, rebuked Eumaeus
-for bringing a beggar to the palace. ‘Have we not here
-vagrants enough,’ he said in angry tones, ‘killjoys of the
-feast?’ And he seized a footstool and struck Odysseus on the
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Penelope heard how Antinous had treated the stranger
-in her halls and she was angry. Turning to her old nurse
-Eurycleia she said, ‘Nurse, they are all enemies, for they all
-devise evil continually, but of them all Antinous is the most
-like to black fate. Some hapless stranger is roaming about
-the house, begging alms of the men as his needs bid him; all
-the others filled his wallet and gave him somewhat, but
-Antinous smote him at the base of the right shoulder with a
-stool.’</p>
-
-<p>Then she summoned Eumaeus and bade him send the
-stranger to her, for she wished to know if he had heard
-aught of Odysseus as he wandered from place to place.</p>
-
-<p>So when evening came the old nurse brought a settle,
-spread over it a fleece, and placed it near to Penelope. Then
-the beggar was brought to the queen’s room, and, sitting on
-the settle, he told to her many a tale, and some were true and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">68</span>
-some were false, for he would not yet have her know that he
-himself was her lord Odysseus.</p>
-
-<p>Penelope wept as she listened to the stories the stranger
-told. For he had seen Odysseus, and she thought that her
-husband might yet return in time to save her from the
-suitors whom she despised.</p>
-
-<p>But at length the queen dried her tears and called to
-Eurycleia to come wash the feet of the stranger, who was of
-the same age as her master.</p>
-
-<p>The old woman answered, ‘Gladly will I wash his feet,
-for many strangers travel-worn have ere now come hither, but
-I say that I have never seen any so like another as this
-stranger is like Odysseus, in fashion, in voice, and in feet.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the king feared lest his old nurse should know him,
-and he turned his face from the hearth. But she, as she
-tended him, saw a scar on the spot where a boar had wounded
-him long years before, and she knew her master had come
-home.</p>
-
-<p>Tears well-nigh choked her, yet she touched his chin
-lightly and said, ‘Yea, verily, thou art Odysseus, my dear
-child.’</p>
-
-<p>But when she would have told the queen, Odysseus bade
-her be silent, until he had taken revenge on the princes who
-were feasting in his palace.</p>
-
-<p>As she dismissed the stranger, Penelope told him that on
-the morrow the suitors held a feast, when they were to contend
-for her hand. ‘Him who shall most easily bend the bow
-of Odysseus I have promised to wed,’ she said. ‘Then will
-I go and forsake this house, this house of my wedlock, so fair
-and filled with all livelihood, which methinks I shall yet
-remember, aye, in a dream.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Odysseus answered, ‘Wife revered of Odysseus,
-no longer delay this contest in thy halls; for lo, Odysseus
-will be here before these men, for all their handling of this
-polished bow, shall have strung it and shot the arrow to the
-mark.’</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_068" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_068.jpg" width="1797" height="2510" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">‘Yea, verily thou art Odysseus’</div></div>
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">69</span></p>
-<p>Penelope scarce heard the stranger’s words, so troubled
-were her thoughts. She bade him farewell, then went to
-her room to weep for her absent lord until ‘grey-eyed Athene
-cast sweet sleep upon her eyelids.’</p>
-
-<p>On the morrow Odysseus awoke early, and as he thought
-of all that he hoped to do that day, he lifted up his hands
-to Zeus.</p>
-
-<p>‘O Father Zeus,’ he cried, ‘if thou hast led me to mine
-own country of good will, then give me a sign.’ And in
-answer the god thundered from Olympus, and Odysseus
-knew the voice of the god and was glad.</p>
-
-<p>Penelope too arose early on this fateful day, and when
-she had put on her royal robes she came down the wide staircase
-from her chamber, carrying in her hand the strong key
-of her lord’s treasure-chest.</p>
-
-<p>She unlocked the chest, and taking from it the great bow
-in its case she laid it upon her knees and wept over it. Then,
-drawing the bow from its case, she carried it into the hall
-where the suitors were feasting.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ye suitors,’ she said, as she laid down before them the
-bow and the quiver of arrows, ‘Ye suitors, who devour this
-house, making pretence that ye wish to wed me, lo! here is a
-proof of your skill. Here is the bow of the great Odysseus.
-Whoso shall bend it easiest in his hands and shoot an arrow
-nearest to the mark I set, him will I follow, leaving this house
-of my wedlock, so fair which methinks I shall yet remember,
-aye, in a dream.’</p>
-
-<p>Then each suitor in turn tried to bend the mighty bow,
-but each tried in vain.</p>
-
-<p>‘Give the bow to me,’ cried the beggar, as he saw that the
-suitors had failed to bend the mighty bow, ‘give it to me that
-I may prove that my hands are strong.’</p>
-
-<p>The princes laughed at the words of the stranger. How
-should the old man bend the bow which they in their youthful
-strength were unable to move?</p>
-
-<p>But Telemachus gave the bow into the stranger’s hands,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">70</span>
-for, said he, ‘I would fain see if the wanderer can bend the
-bow of Odysseus.’ Then turning to his mother, the prince
-besought her to go to her daily tasks until the contest was
-over, for not for her eyes was the dread revenge of Odysseus.
-So Penelope with her maidens went to her room, and as she
-spun she mourned for her absent lord.</p>
-
-<p>In the hall Odysseus stood with his beloved bow in his
-hand. Carefully he tested it lest harm had befallen it in his
-absence. Then taking an arrow from the quiver he placed
-it on the bow and drew the string, and lo! it sped to its
-mark and reached the wall beyond.</p>
-
-<p>At once Telemachus, his sharp sword in his hand, sprang
-to his father’s side, while Eumaeus, to whom the beggar’s
-secret had been told, followed him fast.</p>
-
-<p>The suitors leaped to their feet in dismay as the arrows
-of Odysseus fell swiftly among them. Then they turned to
-the walls to seek the arms which usually hung there, but
-Telemachus had carried them away.</p>
-
-<p>Not until the proud suitors were slain did Odysseus
-cease to bend his mighty bow. But at length all was over
-and none were left to mock at the stranger.</p>
-
-<p>Then Odysseus bade Eurycleia go tell Penelope that her
-lord had returned and awaited her in the hall.</p>
-
-<p>The queen lay on her bed fast asleep when the old nurse
-broke into her room, and, all tremulous with joy, told her that
-Odysseus had come and slain the suitors. Too good were the
-tidings for Penelope to believe.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear nurse,’ she cried, ‘be not so foolish. Why dost
-thou mock my sorrow? It may be that one of the gods hath
-slain the suitors, but Odysseus himself hath perished in a
-strange land.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nay, I mock thee not, dear child,’ answered Eurycleia.
-‘The stranger with whom thou didst talk yesterday is
-Odysseus.’</p>
-
-<p>Yet Penelope could not believe that her lord had returned.
-She spoke sadly to the old nurse, telling her that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">71</span>
-she was deceived and did not understand the ways of the
-gods. ‘None the less,’ she added, ‘let us go to my child,
-that I may see the suitors dead, and him that slew them.’</p>
-
-<p>Down in the hall Odysseus, clothed no longer in rags,
-but in bright apparel, awaited his wife.</p>
-
-<p>Then Penelope as she gazed upon him knew that it was
-indeed Odysseus, and she threw her arms around him and
-kissed him, saying, ‘Be not angry with me, Odysseus, that I
-did not know thee when I first saw thee. For ever I feared
-lest another than thou should deceive me, saying he was my
-husband, but now I know that thou art indeed he.’ So
-welcome to her was the sight of her lord, that ‘her white arm
-she would never quite let go from his neck.’</p>
-
-<p>Thus after twenty years did Odysseus come back to
-Ithaca.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">72</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE LAND OF HELLAS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> stories of gods and heroes are not pure history. They
-are myths or legends which have grown with the ages, until
-sometimes they are told as though they were true.</p>
-
-<p>Although the tales I have been telling you of the early
-days of Greece are myths, yet the Greeks who lived in later
-times would often speak of them as though they had actually
-happened.</p>
-
-<p>I am going to tell you now, not of gods or heroes, but
-of the true deeds of mortal men. And first of all you will
-wish to hear a little about the land in which the ancient
-Greeks lived.</p>
-
-<p>It was named, as you already know, Hellas, while the
-inhabitants were called Hellenes.</p>
-
-<p>But Hellas and her people had another name given to
-them by the Romans, who called Hellas Graecia, and the
-Hellenes Graeci, from a tribe that dwelt in a part of the
-country known as Epirus. Epirus was not a very important
-region, but it was well known to the Romans who dwelt in
-the south of Italy. We have altered these Roman names a
-little and call Hellas Greece, the Hellenes Greeks.</p>
-
-<p>If you open your atlas at the map of Europe, you will
-find in the south the little country of Greece, which although
-it is so small has yet flung its influence over all the wide
-world.</p>
-
-<p>On three sides Greece is bounded by the Mediterranean
-Sea, and the country is now usually known as the Balkan
-Peninsula.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">73</span></p>
-
-<p>Greece is a land of great mountains. Of its loftiest
-summit; Olympus, which in ancient days was the abode of
-the gods, you have already read.</p>
-
-<p>The coast-line is broken up much as is the coast of
-Scotland, by arms of the sea which run far inland, so far
-inland that it is easy to reach the water from any part of the
-country.</p>
-
-<p>Close to the shores of Greece lie the islands of the Ægean
-Sea. In these islands many Greeks settled, so that they
-became an important part of Greece. The Ægean Sea we
-now call the Archipelago.</p>
-
-<p>In the time of Homer all Greeks were called Achaeans.
-But in later days, only those Greeks were called Achaeans who
-lived in the narrow strip of land in northern Peloponnesus
-called Achaea.</p>
-
-<p>The ancient Achaeans dwelt in the valleys, which were
-cut off from one another by great spurs of mountains. They
-were united by an ancient league, and quarrelled less with one
-another than did the other peoples of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Besides the Achaeans there were three other great races
-in Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The Dorians came from a little country called Doris, near
-the famous Pass of Thermopylae, of which you have still
-to hear. The Ionians dwelt on the east side of the Ægean
-Sea, that is, they lived on the coast of Asia, while the Æolians
-were scattered here and there throughout Greece.</p>
-
-<p>All these different tribes were Greeks, and they were
-proud of their name, counting all other peoples barbarians,
-and despising them because they were not Greeks. Many of
-them were traders or adventurers from Asia, and they entered
-the new country from the north-east, through Thessaly, and
-that was not a difficult journey.</p>
-
-<p>Others crossed over from Asia by sea to search for a new
-home. But their galleys were rough, uncomfortable vessels,
-in which there was little room for the many who embarked.
-When storms arose they suffered great misery, huddled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">74</span>
-closely together on their small and unseaworthy boats.
-Fear, too, took hold of them and the horror of death.</p>
-
-<p>So the wanderers were glad when they saw the many
-little islands that were studded here and there over the
-Ægean Sea. Some of these islands, it is true, were mere
-rocks, desolate and without water. But there were others
-where people had already settled and made a home. On these
-the strangers landed to fight with the inhabitants, until, by
-the help of the gods, they had conquered and taken possession
-of them. Here they feasted, glad of heart that the perils of
-the sea were now at an end.</p>
-
-<p>In the Heroic Age the kings of the different tribes were
-believed to have descended from the gods, and each country
-or state had its own king. And so it was when the Heroic
-Age had passed away. Each tribe or little nation, living in
-its own valley or plain, still had its own separate sovereign,
-and each soon built for itself a city. The city might be
-small, but it was always surrounded by a wall, which was
-built for defence. If there was no wall it was not a city but
-a village, however large it might be.</p>
-
-<p>In those days kings were not ashamed to work. They
-were often to be seen in the fields at harvest time, not looking
-idly on, but toiling side by side with their people.</p>
-
-<p>Odysseus, King of Ithaca, is said to have built his own
-bedroom as well as his own boats. He claimed too to be a
-skilful ploughman and reaper. And still, for many years
-after the age of Odysseus, kings worked as hard as he had
-done.</p>
-
-<p>The queens and princesses were as diligent as the kings.
-Often they were to be found, like Penelope, sitting at a loom
-weaving or working beautiful embroideries. They even went
-to the well themselves to fetch water, and were sometimes
-to be seen by the riverside, where they helped to wash the
-linen of the household.</p>
-
-<p>In battle the king was always on the field, riding before
-his army in a war chariot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">75</span></p>
-
-<p>When peace reigned he often sat in the market-place to
-judge his people. Each suppliant told his own tale and
-brought his own witnesses. The elders of the city then gave
-their judgment of the case, after which the king, taking his
-sceptre in his hand, stood up to pronounce sentence.</p>
-
-<p>But above all else the king was the chief priest of his
-people, offering sacrifices for them, while they, with due
-reverence, looked upon him as a god.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">76</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">LYCURGUS AND HIS LITTLE NEPHEW</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Dorians were a brave and sturdy race, braver, perhaps,
-than any other of the Greek tribes. Apollo, the Sun-God, one
-of the noblest of the Olympians, was the god they held in
-greatest reverence.</p>
-
-<p>A band of these Dorians came from the north and settled
-in the valley of Laconia, through which flows the river
-Eurotas. Here they built villages and called themselves
-Lacedaemonians.</p>
-
-<p>Before long five of these villages joined together to form a
-city, which was named Sparta. Sparta became the capital
-or chief city in Laconia.</p>
-
-<p>At first the new city was weak, scarcely able to hold her
-own against the neighbouring tribes, and much less able to
-add to her dominion. She was indeed hardly able to keep
-order within her own borders.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta was ruled not by one king but by two, and so you
-might perhaps think that she would be governed better than
-any other city or state, but this was not so.</p>
-
-<p>The first kings were twin brothers, for an oracle had
-bidden the Spartans ‘to take both as kings, but to give
-greater honour to the elder.’</p>
-
-<p>Instead of helping each other to improve their country,
-the two kings often disagreed, and then spent their days in
-quarrelling. The people were content that they should do
-so, for while the kings quarrelled they had no time to frame
-stricter laws or to punish those who disturbed the peace of
-the city.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">77</span></p>
-
-<p>It soon became clear that if Sparta was to grow great
-and prosperous a strong man must be found to guide the
-kings as well as the people. This strong man was found
-in Lycurgus the famous lawgiver.</p>
-
-<p>History tells little about the life of the lawgiver, but
-many legends cluster around his name. It is told that
-Lycurgus belonged to one of the royal houses, and that when
-his elder brother died he became for a short time one of the
-kings of Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>The queen-mother was an ambitious woman, and she
-wished still to sit on the throne as she had done while her
-husband was alive. So she said to Lycurgus that she would
-kill her tiny baby boy who would one day be king, if he
-would marry her. But the lawgiver was angry, and rebuked
-the queen-mother for wishing to do such a wicked deed.</p>
-
-<p>One night as he sat at supper with the chief men of Sparta,
-Lycurgus ordered his little nephew to be brought to him.</p>
-
-<p>When the child was carried into the room he took him in
-his arms and holding him up for all to see, he cried, ‘Men of
-Sparta, here is a king born unto us.’ Before them all he
-placed the babe on the throne, and as the child had not yet
-been named, he called him Charilaus, the joy of the people.</p>
-
-<p>From that time Lycurgus became the guardian of his
-little nephew and the regent of the kingdom. So upright
-were his ways, so honest his words, that he was reverenced
-by the people as greatly as when he was king.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the queen-mother had not forgiven Lycurgus
-for thwarting her ambition, and she determined to punish
-him. So she spread a report among the people that Lycurgus
-meant to put his nephew to death that he might again
-become king.</p>
-
-<p>Before long the rumour spread by the queen-mother
-reached the ears of Lycurgus, and he at once made up his
-mind to leave Sparta until Charilaus was old enough to
-reign. As he journeyed from place to place Lycurgus
-studied the laws and manners of the different countries, so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">78</span>
-that when he returned to Sparta he might be able to improve
-the laws of his own land.</p>
-
-<p>At Ionia he is said not only to have read the works of
-Homer, but to have met the poet himself. So wise were
-many of the customs described in the poet’s books that he
-set to work to reframe those that he thought would be of
-most use in his own country.</p>
-
-<p>Some stories tell that Lycurgus made a copy of part of the
-poet’s works, for it is thought that the Greeks at this time
-(about 800 or 900 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>) already knew how to write. It was
-thus Lycurgus who made the works of Homer well known to
-his countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>But in all his travels what interested Lycurgus most was
-the way the soldiers were trained in Egypt. In other
-countries he had seen men who ploughed their fields or plied
-their trade, leave their work to fight when war broke out, but
-the Egyptian soldiers were soldiers and nothing else all the
-year round.</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus determined that he would train the youths
-of Sparta as strictly as the soldiers in Egypt were trained.
-They should be neither ploughmen nor merchants, but the
-best soldiers the world had ever seen.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">79</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">LYCURGUS RETURNS TO SPARTA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">While</span> Lycurgus was journeying from country to country,
-Sparta was ruled more badly than before. The laws were
-not obeyed, and no one punished those who disobeyed
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens who cared for the welfare of the State longed
-for the return of Lycurgus and even sent messengers to bid
-him come home.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kings, indeed, we have,’ they said, ‘who wear the marks
-and assume the titles of royalty, but as for the qualities of
-their minds they have nothing by which they are to be
-distinguished from their subjects. You alone have a nature
-made to rule and a genius to gain obedience.’</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus was at length persuaded to return to Sparta,
-but before he would attempt to reform the laws of his
-country he went to Delphi to ask the help and advice of
-Apollo.</p>
-
-<p>The oracle encouraged the future lawgiver, for it told
-him that he was the beloved of the gods, who heard his
-prayers, and that his laws would make Sparta the most
-famous kingdom in the world.</p>
-
-<p>Then Lycurgus hesitated no more. He went back to
-Sparta determined to spend his life for the good of his
-country.</p>
-
-<p>His first act was to call together thirty of the chief men
-of Sparta and tell them his plans. When they had promised
-to support him he bade them assemble armed, at the market-place
-at break of day, for he wished to strike terror into<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">80</span>
-the hearts of those who were ready to resist any change in
-the laws of the land.</p>
-
-<p>On the day appointed, the market-place was crowded
-with the followers of Lycurgus and the mob who had come to
-see what was going to be done.</p>
-
-<p>King Charilaus hearing the tramp of armed men was so
-frightened that he fled to the temple of Athene for sanctuary,
-or, as we should say, for safety. He believed that a plot had
-been formed against him and that his life was in danger.</p>
-
-<p>But Lycurgus soon allayed the king’s fears, sending a
-messenger to tell him that all he wished to do was to give
-better laws to the State, so that it might grow strong and
-prosperous.</p>
-
-<p>King Charilaus was a kind and gentle prince. His
-brother-king, who knew him well, said, ‘Who can say he is
-anything but good. He is so even to the bad.’</p>
-
-<p>When he had been reassured by his uncle, Charilaus left
-the temple of Athene, and going to the market-place he joined
-Lycurgus and his thirty followers.</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus began his reforms by limiting the power of the
-kings, for he decreed that on all important matters of State
-they should consult the Senate or Council of Elders.</p>
-
-<p>The plans of the Senate were laid before the assembly of
-the people, the members saying ‘Yes’ if they agreed to them,
-‘No’ if they disagreed. Nor were they allowed to talk together
-over the matter before they gave their answer.</p>
-
-<p>Long after the death of the lawgiver, five new rulers,
-called ephors or overseers, were chosen from the people.</p>
-
-<p>At first the ephors shared their power with the kings, but
-little by little they succeeded in getting more power into their
-own hands. They began their duties with this strange order
-to the people, ‘Shave your upper lip and obey the laws.’</p>
-
-<p>Although the kings lost some of their power through the
-laws that were made by Lycurgus, yet they kept their right
-as priests to offer each month solemn sacrifices to Apollo
-for the safety of the city. Before the army marched to battle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">81</span>
-it was usual, too, for the kings to pray to the gods to give
-them victory. But there were other priests in Sparta as
-well as those who belonged to the royal houses.</p>
-
-<p>The supreme command of the army belonged to the kings,
-who might go to war with any country as they pleased. If
-a noble or one of the people tried to interfere with their
-decision, he was punished. A bodyguard of a hundred
-always attended the royal commanders.</p>
-
-<p>But as the years passed, a new law was made declaring
-that only one of the kings should go to battle at the head of
-the army, and that one was forced to account to the people
-for the way in which he carried on the war.</p>
-
-<p>In still later times the power of the king on the battlefield
-was checked by the presence of two ephors. Sometimes a
-king was glad of their presence, and would even appeal to
-them to make the soldiers obey the royal commands.</p>
-
-<p>When a king died, no public work was done until ten
-days after the funeral. Herodotus, a great Greek historian,
-tells us how the news of the royal death was made known.
-‘Horsemen carry round the tidings of the event throughout
-Laconia, and in the city women go about beating a caldron.
-And at this sign, two free persons of each house, a man and
-a woman, must put on mourning garb (that is sackcloth
-and ashes), and if any fail to do this great pains are imposed.’</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus not only made laws to lessen the power of the
-kings. He tried also to alter the extravagant customs of the
-people. Gold and silver money was banished from the
-country, and large bars of iron were used in its place. These
-bars were so heavy, and took up so much room, that it was
-impossible to hoard them.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">82</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE TRAINING OF THE SPARTANS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Lycurgus</span> had seen the severe discipline which soldiers in
-Egypt were forced to undergo. He had made up his mind
-that his own countrymen should be trained as thoroughly.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans at this time were poor and their numbers
-were small, perhaps about ten thousand were fit to bear
-arms. They were surrounded by enemies whose attacks
-they found hard to repulse.</p>
-
-<p>But Lycurgus thought that if each citizen became a soldier,
-and that if each soldier was trained from his childhood to
-fight and to endure hardship, Sparta would soon have an
-army that no other power could conquer.</p>
-
-<p>So as soon as a baby boy was born in Sparta he was taken
-to the Council of Elders that they might decide if he should
-live or die. If the child was strong and healthy he was
-given back to his parents, if he was weak and ailing he was
-left alone on a hillside to die from cold and hunger.</p>
-
-<p>When he was seven years old, the Spartan boy was taken
-from his home to a public training-house. Here the strict
-discipline commanded by Lycurgus was begun.</p>
-
-<p>Shoes and stockings were never worn by the little lads of
-Sparta, although the hills and countryside were rough for
-unshod feet. In winter they were clad in one garment, just
-as in summer.</p>
-
-<p>Their beds were made of rushes, which they had themselves
-gathered from the banks of the river Eurotas. This
-was a hard task, for they were not allowed to cut them with
-a knife, but must break them with their hands. In winter<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">83</span>
-the boys used to scatter thistle-down on the rushes to give a
-little warmth to their hard couch.</p>
-
-<p>Each child, from the age of seven, cooked his own food,
-which was scanty and plain. If after their meals the boys
-were still hungry, so much the better, said Lycurgus. It
-would teach them to hunt the more keenly, that they might
-add to their daily portion of food. It would teach them to
-steal from the neighbouring farm-yards or gardens without
-being found out.</p>
-
-<p>So a hungry Spartan boy would often climb into a garden
-undiscovered, or even slip into a stranger’s larder in search of
-fruit and food.</p>
-
-<p>If the lads were caught, they were punished, not, I am
-sorry to tell you, for stealing, but for being so clumsy as
-to be found out.</p>
-
-<p>Once a Spartan boy stole a young fox and hid it under his
-coat. It soon began to scratch with its claws, to bite with
-its teeth, until the lad was in terrible pain, yet he would have
-died rather than tell what he was suffering. Such was the
-endurance taught to the lads of Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>If a boy shirked any hardship or flagged at his gymnastic
-exercises he was flogged, perhaps even tortured. One test of
-his endurance was a terrible scourging, under which he would
-die rather than utter a cry of pain.</p>
-
-<p>In public the boys were trained to be silent, or if they were
-spoken to, to answer as shortly as possible. Their short,
-abrupt way of talking was called laconic, because the name
-of their country was Laconia. We still use the word laconic
-when we hear any one speak in as brief a way as possible.</p>
-
-<p>Hard as the Spartan training was, cruel as it sometimes
-became, it yet made boys into strong and hardy soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Girls, too, were trained, although not so severely as boys.
-They ran, they wrestled, they boxed with one another, while
-boys and girls marched together in religious processions and
-danced on the solemn feast days.</p>
-
-<p>When they were twenty years of age, the girls usually<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">84</span>
-married. They had been taught, as had the boys, that they
-belonged to the State, and that they must love their country
-and serve her with all their strength. So when Spartan
-mothers sent their sons forth to war, they handed them their
-shields saying, ‘Return either with your shield or upon it,’
-for they feared death less than disgrace or defeat.</p>
-
-<p>The children were taught to sing in chorus as part of their
-drill. At some of the festivals three choirs took part, one of
-old men, one of young men, and one of boys.</p>
-
-<p>When the old men sang a song beginning, ‘We once were
-young and brave and strong,’ the young men answered,
-‘And we’re so now, come on and try,’ while the boys’ voices
-rang out bravely when their turn came, ‘But we’ll be strongest
-by-and-by.’</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan lads were twenty years old before they left
-the training-house to which they had been sent when they
-were seven. They were then fully-trained soldiers and left
-the training-house for the barracks.</p>
-
-<p>After they married, the men still had to take their meals
-in the barracks with their fellow-soldiers. Not until they
-were sixty years of age were the Spartans allowed to live
-and take their meals in their own house. In this way almost
-the whole of a Spartan’s life was given to the State.</p>
-
-<p>When war actually came and the Spartans were on the
-field, they were treated with more kindness than in time of
-peace. Their food was more plentiful and pleasant, their
-discipline less strict. This was done to make the soldiers
-look forward to war, and to desire it rather than peace.</p>
-
-<p>The younger soldiers, too, were allowed to curl their hair
-before the battle began, to wear gayer clothes, and to carry
-more costly arms. It is said that Lycurgus thought that
-‘a large head of hair added beauty to a good face and terror
-to an ugly one.’</p>
-
-<p>So famous became the bravery and the endurance of the
-Spartans, that even now we call one who suffers hardships
-without complaint ‘a Spartan.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">85</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE HELOTS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> Lycurgus made a law compelling soldiers to eat their
-meals in the barracks, some of the wealthier citizens were
-indignant.</p>
-
-<p>They did not wish to sit at table with their fellow-soldiers
-in batches of fifteen; they would rather have gone to their
-homes and taken their meals with their families.</p>
-
-<p>Nor did they enjoy the plain fare on which Lycurgus
-insisted, a share of which each citizen was forced to send to
-the mess table month by month.</p>
-
-<p>The most usual food in Laconia was black broth, which
-was not a palatable soup. When some one ventured to
-grumble at the broth, the cook answered, ‘It is nothing
-without the seasoning of fatigue and hunger.’ This black
-broth, with barley meal, cheese, and figs, was the Spartan’s
-daily fare. Meat was a luxury which they enjoyed only on
-special occasions.</p>
-
-<p>So great was the indignation against Lycurgus that a
-crowd assembled in the market-place to complain of his laws,
-and to speak harshly of his conduct.</p>
-
-<p>When they saw the great lawgiver coming toward the
-market-place they were so angry that they picked up stones
-to throw at him, and he was forced to fly for his life.</p>
-
-<p>His enemies followed him, but he outstripped them all
-save one, named Alexander. As he turned to see who
-pursued him so closely, Alexander struck his face with a stick
-and put out one of his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>As the others hastened up, Lycurgus showed them what<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">86</span>
-Alexander had done, and they, ashamed of his violence, told
-the lawgiver to take the rash youth and punish him as he
-would. They then went with him to his house, to show that
-they were sorry for what had happened.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached the door Lycurgus sent them all
-away save his prisoner. Then going into his dining-room, he
-dismissed his attendants and bade Alexander wait upon him.
-During the meal he uttered no word of reproach, although the
-lad had done him so great an injury.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander lived with Lycurgus until he learned not only
-to admire but to imitate the industry and the gentleness of
-his host. And so Lycurgus had the pleasure of seeing a rash
-and wilful lad become a grave and sensible citizen.</p>
-
-<p>Each Spartan had a portion or ‘lot’ of land given to him,
-on the produce of which he and his family had to live. But
-citizen soldiers had no time to dig the ground, to sow, to reap,
-for all their days were spent in drill and military exercises.
-So their land was cultivated for them by the Helots, who had
-owned Laconia before the Spartans conquered them and took
-possession of their land.</p>
-
-<p>The Helots were treated very much as slaves, although
-they had no taskmasters to drive them to their work. They
-were even allowed to own property. But they had many
-hardships to endure, and were always ready to rebel against
-their masters.</p>
-
-<p>One of their greatest hardships was that their lives were
-never safe. For while the Spartans were being trained, they
-were often sent into the country with orders to kill any
-Helot who was suspected of wishing to rebel.</p>
-
-<p>In time of war the Helots fought as light-armed troops.
-If they showed themselves brave and loyal in the service of
-the State, they were sometimes rewarded by being made free.</p>
-
-<p>Once during the great Peloponnesian War between Sparta
-and Athens, of which you will read in this story, the Spartans
-believed that the Helots had plotted to rise against them.
-They determined that the rising should never take place,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">87</span>
-and to prevent it they did a cruel deed. For they chose
-two thousand of the bravest Helots, set them free, and gave
-them a great feast to celebrate the event. Then when the
-feast was over and the Helots had gone away to their homes,
-suspecting nothing, the Spartans ordered each of the two
-thousand freed men to be put to death. When the bravest
-were killed, the others were not likely to rebel.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan army became strong as Lycurgus had foreseen
-it would, if it were trained according to his strict
-methods. It conquered Peloponnesus, and for a time Sparta
-was the chief city in that land.</p>
-
-<p>But there was one strange thing about these soldiers.
-Well as they had been trained, they could never learn how to
-attack or to take a town that was fortified. ‘Wall-fighting,’
-as the Greeks called it, was beyond their power. Even an
-ordinary wall or fence would stop them in their victorious
-course. At sea too they were not nearly so successful as
-on land.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta itself was not, like other Greek cities, surrounded
-by a wall. For when the citizens once sent to ask Lycurgus
-if it were necessary to enclose their city with a wall, his
-answer was, ‘The city is well fortified which hath a wall of
-men instead of brick.’</p>
-
-<p>When, after many years, Lycurgus had finished his code
-of laws, he called the people together and told them that he
-was going to Delphi to consult the oracle on an important
-matter which concerned the State.</p>
-
-<p>Before he set out he begged them, and also the two kings
-and the Senate, to take an oath to keep his laws unaltered
-until his return. This they gladly promised to do.</p>
-
-<p>Then Lycurgus journeyed to Delphi, and after offering
-sacrifices to Apollo, he asked the god if the laws he had
-made for his country were good laws.</p>
-
-<p>The oracle answered that the laws were good, and that as
-long as the people kept them their fame would endure.</p>
-
-<p>Lycurgus sent this answer in writing to Sparta. Then,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">88</span>
-that the Spartans might not be set free from their oath he determined
-never to go back to the city. Yet it seemed that he
-could not live away from her, and so, for the welfare of the
-State, as he believed, the lawgiver starved himself to death.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans kept the oath that they had taken, and
-when they died their sons and their sons’ sons observed it.
-For five hundred years, during the reigns of fourteen kings,
-the laws of Lycurgus were unaltered and strictly followed.</p>
-
-<p>After his death Lycurgus was worshipped as a god, and a
-temple was built for him in Sparta, where sacrifices were
-offered to him every year.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">89</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ARISTOMENES AND THE FOX</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Spartans were eager to fight and to add to their
-dominions. So they determined to attack the Messenians,
-whose country lay west of Laconia, close to their own
-borders.</p>
-
-<p>One day, while the Messenians were feasting and offering
-sacrifices to their gods, the Spartans sent three youths disguised
-as maidens across the borderland. Beneath their
-robes the young soldiers carried arms. They stole quietly
-in among the Messenians and attacked them in the midst of
-their feast.</p>
-
-<p>But although the Messenians were unarmed they soon
-captured the three Spartan lads. They then advanced
-against the Spartans, and in the tumult that followed,
-one of the kings of Sparta was slain.</p>
-
-<p>The war, which was thus begun in 743 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, lasted for
-many years, and was known as the First Messenian War.</p>
-
-<p>No great battle was fought until four years had passed.
-Even then neither side could claim a victory, but so many
-Messenians had fallen that Aristodemus, their chief, withdrew,
-with those of his followers who were left, to a mountain
-fortress called Ithomé.</p>
-
-<p>Then, as was their custom, when it was difficult to know
-what to do next, the Messenians sent to consult the oracle.
-The answer filled them with dismay, for the oracle declared
-that not until a maiden belonging to one of their ancient
-houses was sacrificed to the gods need they hope to conquer
-the Spartans. But Aristodemus loved his country so dearly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">90</span>
-that he did not hesitate to sacrifice his own daughter to the
-gods.</p>
-
-<p>When the Spartans heard what the brave chief had done,
-they hastened to make peace with the Messenians. They
-could not hope to conquer those for whom the gods would
-now fight.</p>
-
-<p>A few years passed, and then the Spartans determined to
-attack the Messenians once again, and to drive them from
-Ithomé their mountain fortress.</p>
-
-<p>Again a great battle was fought, and again neither side
-could claim the victory. But the king of the Messenians was
-killed, and Aristodemus was chosen to rule in his place.
-In the fifth year of his reign he defeated the Spartans and
-drove them from his dominions.</p>
-
-<p>The victory brought no happiness to the king, for omens
-of evil seemed to pursue him.</p>
-
-<p>In the temple a brazen shield fell from the hand of the
-statue of Artemis the goddess. The daughter of Aristodemus
-appeared to her father and bade him lay aside his armour.
-He obeyed, and she then placed on his head a crown of gold
-and clad him in a white robe. These things meant that the
-death of the king was near.</p>
-
-<p>Aristodemus believed that not only he but his country
-was doomed, and deeming that he had sacrificed his daughter
-in vain, he slew himself in his despair on her tomb.</p>
-
-<p>For twenty years the war still dragged on, and only then
-were the Spartans able to drive the Messenians from Ithomé
-and raze the fortress to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the conquered people fled, while those who
-remained were treated more harshly than were the Helots.
-For they were compelled to pay as tribute to the Spartans
-half the produce of their lands. This was the end of the First
-Messenian War.</p>
-
-<p>For almost thirty years the conquered people bore their
-cruel lot, then in 685 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> they rebelled, and the Second
-Messenian War was begun.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">91</span></p>
-
-<p>Aristomenes, the leader of the rebels, was a bold and daring
-foe. To show how little he feared the Spartans, he secretly
-crossed the borderland into the enemy’s country, and one
-night he succeeded in entering the city of Sparta itself. He
-made his way to the temple of Athene, and walking in boldly
-he hung up his shield beside the statue of the goddess, with
-these words tied to it: ‘Dedicated by Aristomenes to the
-goddess from the Spartan spoils.’</p>
-
-<p>With a band of his bravest followers, the chief made
-more than one successful raid into the heart of the enemy’s
-country, and plundered two of their cities.</p>
-
-<p>As in the first war, so in this second war, no decisive
-victory was gained at first by either side. But legend tells
-that Aristomenes did many valiant deeds.</p>
-
-<p>Three times he offered a strange sacrifice to the king of the
-gods, which one who had slain in battle a hundred of the
-foe was alone permitted to do. The sacrifice was named the
-Hekatomphonia.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans, alarmed at the daring of Aristomenes, sent
-to consult the oracle at Delphi. They were told to send to the
-famous city of Athens for a leader. Now the Spartans did
-not wish to do this, for they were not on good terms with the
-Athenians. Still, as they dared not disregard the oracle,
-they did as they were bid.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians did not wish to help the Spartans any
-more than they wished to ask for help, yet they too knew
-they could not ignore the oracle. So they got out of the
-difficulty, as they thought, by sending a lame schoolmaster,
-named Tyrtaeus. He would not be likely to lead an army
-far.</p>
-
-<p>But although Tyrtaeus was a lame man, he was also a
-poet. His war-songs roused the Spartans, and inspired them
-to fight more bravely than ever. When they marched again
-to battle they were singing the songs of Tyrtaeus and marching
-to victory. Aristomenes was forced to retreat to the
-mountains to a fortress called Ira.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">92</span></p>
-
-<p>For eleven years the war lingered on. The Spartans
-often encamped at the foot of Ira to keep the enemy
-in check. But again and again Aristomenes broke out
-of the fortress, and with a band of followers crossed the
-border and laid waste Laconia. Twice he was taken prisoner
-and twice he escaped, but the third time he was captured
-he was carried in triumph to the city of Sparta. With fifty
-of his countrymen he was flung from Mount Taygetus into a
-great chasm in the rock below.</p>
-
-<p>The fifty followers of Aristomenes were killed by the fall,
-but Aristomenes was saved by the gods. For, so the legend
-tells, an eagle with wings outspread carried him unhurt to
-the bottom of the pit.</p>
-
-<p>For three days Aristomenes lay in the cavern surrounded
-by the dead bodies of his comrades. To escape seemed
-impossible. But when no hope was left in the heart of the
-brave man, he noticed something move at the foot of the
-cave. At once he roused himself to look more closely at the
-moving object; it was a fox, prowling about in search of
-food.</p>
-
-<p>In an instant hope was alive in the heart of Aristomenes.
-If an animal had got into the cave, it was possible for him to
-get out of it.</p>
-
-<p>Weak though he was for want of food, Aristomenes
-managed to seize the tail of the fox, and to hold it fast when
-the animal tried to escape.</p>
-
-<p>Onward the fox struggled, until it reached a narrow hole
-in the rock. Then Aristomenes let his deliverer go, while he
-began at once to enlarge the hole.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, to the joy of his countrymen and to the
-alarm of his enemies, Aristomenes was again in the Messenian
-fortress.</p>
-
-<p>But there was a traitor in the camp of the Messenians, and
-one night, soon after the return of their leader, the mountain
-fortress at Ira was betrayed into the hands of the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>In the battle that followed, Aristomenes was wounded,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">93</span>
-but gathering together the bravest of his followers, he made
-a desperate charge through the lines of the enemy and
-escaped. Some time after he died in Rome, but it is told
-that two hundred and fifty years later, he was seen on a
-battlefield fighting against the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>The Second Messenian War ended, as had the first, in the
-triumph of the Spartans, who again treated their prisoners
-as slaves. In 464 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> war again broke out between the
-Messenians and Sparta. The Spartans were victorious, and
-the conquered people were driven from Peloponnesus. But
-in 369 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a great Theban leader called Epaminondas restored
-freedom to the Messenians, and brought them back again to
-their own country.</p>
-
-<p>The history of the Messenian War was written by the poet
-Tyrtaeus, whose songs were sung for many years by the
-Spartans as they marched to battle.</p>
-
-<p>Some of these songs we can still read for ourselves.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">94</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE OLYMPIAN GAMES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Greece</span> was made up of many separate States, each independent
-of the other. But there were several bonds which
-united the States. They spoke the same language, they
-worshipped the same gods, they kept the same great
-festivals.</p>
-
-<p>The festivals, held by a council called the Amphictyonic
-Council, were honoured by all the States. The council was
-made up of men chosen from twelve of the most ancient
-Greek tribes, and met twice each year.</p>
-
-<p>The temple of Apollo at Delphi was under the care of the
-Amphictyonic Council, and it was at Delphi that the spring-tide
-festival was held. Another great festival of the
-Amphictyonic Council was celebrated in the temple dedicated
-to Demeter at Thermopylae.</p>
-
-<p>The Amphictyons, as the members of the council were
-called, did not govern Greece as a parliament governs a
-country. But they often talked of what could be done for
-the good of the States, and of how their interests could be
-united more closely.</p>
-
-<p>Of more power to weld the States together than the
-council, were the national games, where members of all the
-different countries of Greece met together.</p>
-
-<p>The chief of these games was the Olympian Games,
-which were believed to have begun far back in the shadowy
-past, and to have been revived by Lycurgus the lawgiver in
-776 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Olympia, where the games were held, was in the country<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">95</span>
-of Elis in Peloponnesus. The King of Elis helped Lycurgus
-to renew the interest of the Greeks in the ancient games.</p>
-
-<p>It is said that when Apollo first saw the beautiful valley
-of Olympia he exclaimed, ‘Here will I make me a fair temple
-to be an oracle for men.’</p>
-
-<p>The ancient Stadium, or race-course, was erected in the
-valley, as well as a temple to Zeus, in which the victors of
-the games were given wreaths of wild olive. These wreaths
-were valued more than any other prize or distinction in
-Greece. Indeed at Olympia no other reward was given save
-the simple, wild olive branches, which were plucked from the
-sacred grove in the Olympian plain, and twined into a
-wreath.</p>
-
-<p>But when the victor returned to his own country, he was
-loaded with gifts and honours, for he had gained for his
-State and for his relations a glory which all longed to
-possess.</p>
-
-<p>In the Olympian temple, in later days, there was a
-marvellous statue of Zeus in gold and ivory, wrought by the
-genius of Pheidias, the greatest sculptor of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The games were open to all, and spectators as well as
-competitors flocked to Olympia from every state in Greece.
-To the Greeks these games were part of their religion; they
-were rites pleasing, so they believed, to the gods.</p>
-
-<p>Should there be war between any of the Greek States at
-the time of the games, all hostile acts were forbidden in
-Olympia. Until the festival was over, those who had been
-in arms, one against another, might meet in safety and in
-peace. Twice or thrice an armed force made its way into
-the sacred territory of Elis to interfere with the games.
-This to the Greeks was sacrilege.</p>
-
-<p>In the earliest times the games lasted only for one day,
-and a simple foot-race was the only event. But soon the
-festival came to last for five days, for there were now, not
-only foot-races, but wrestling, boxing, racing in armour, and
-above all else chariot races. In these races it was not the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">96</span>
-driver who, if successful, won the wreath of olive, but the
-owner of the chariot.</p>
-
-<p>On the first day of the games, sacrifices were offered to
-the gods, on the following three days the races were held,
-while on the last day the people marched in procession to the
-temple and again offered sacrifices and feasted.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of every four years the games were celebrated;
-the time between the games being called an Olympiad. The
-year 776 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> was counted as the first Olympiad, the second
-began in 772 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> In ancient times the Greeks reckoned
-their dates by the Olympiads, thus an event was said to
-take place in a certain year of a certain Olympiad.</p>
-
-<p>Games were held at many other places as well as at
-Olympia, but the three most important celebrations, after
-the Olympian, were the Isthmian, the Pythian and the
-Nemean.</p>
-
-<p>To these festivals came the poets of Greece, prepared to
-celebrate in song the skill of the victors. During the
-intervals between the games, great numbers of the people
-assembled in a hall to listen to the poets while they recited
-their poems.</p>
-
-<p>As the years passed the great Greek dramas or plays
-came to be acted also at these festivals. At first the stage
-was a simple wooden platform in the open air, but soon
-wooden buildings were erected. Plays were performed at
-Athens in a splendid theatre which was hewn out of the
-solid rock of the Acropolis or citadel of the city. Tier after
-tier was cut, until the theatre could hold thirty thousand
-spectators.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_096" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_096.jpg" width="1815" height="2508" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">In the earliest times a simple foot-race was the only event</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">97</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE LAST KING OF ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">You</span> remember how Cecrops came to Attica and built a city
-so beautiful that the gods marvelled, and how Athene made
-the first olive-tree and was therefore awarded the honour of
-naming the city and becoming its patron. The olive-tree
-was now said to grow on a rock in the stronghold or Acropolis
-of the city.</p>
-
-<p>In ancient days Sparta was a more important city than
-the beautiful one built by Cecrops, but little by little, as the
-years passed, Athens became supreme in Greece and the most
-glorious city of the world.</p>
-
-<p>At first Athens, like Sparta and the other States, was
-governed by kings. But while Sparta continued to be a
-monarchy, Athens became an oligarchy—that is, she was
-governed by a few, and these few were nobles.</p>
-
-<p>When Codrus, the last king of Athens, was on the throne,
-the State was invaded by the Dorians. An oracle had
-declared that unless the Athenian king was slain in the camp
-of the enemy, Athens would be taken.</p>
-
-<p>Codrus loved his city and determined to save it from the
-enemy. So he disguised himself as a peasant and went to
-the camp of the Dorians, where he killed the first soldier he
-met. The comrades of the dead man at once fell upon Codrus
-and, as he had hoped, he was speedily slain. Then as the
-oracle had foretold Athens was saved from the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians resolved that they would no longer
-have kings to rule over them, because they were sure that
-they could never find any worthy to follow Codrus who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">98</span>
-died for the sake of his country. This seems a strange reason
-for which to overturn the monarchy. In most countries
-it is the bad conduct of their kings which makes the people
-wish to get rid of them.</p>
-
-<p>As Athens would not have another king, the son of
-Codrus was given neither the power nor the title of royalty.
-He was named merely archon, or ruler. An archon ruled
-only for ten years.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the Athenians determined to choose nine archons
-each year, for they thought it would be well to divide the
-power among these men rather than entrust it to one ruler.</p>
-
-<p>The archons were obliged to consult a council of nobles
-before they made a new law, while the council had to lay
-their plans before the assembly of the people.</p>
-
-<p>In this way Athens became before long an oligarchy
-governed by a few nobles. The nobles often proved harsh
-rulers, taking from the people the rights that had been theirs
-when Athens was a monarchy.</p>
-
-<p>At length the people grew so angry that they determined
-to destroy the nobles who treated them so cruelly. But as
-they were helpless without a leader, they were glad to follow
-any ambitious noble who would place himself at their head
-and lead them to fight against their oppressors. Too
-often the deliverer seized the supreme power himself and
-oppressed the people more than had the oligarch.</p>
-
-<p>The usurper was called by the Greeks a tyrant. But
-the word tyrant did not mean to them, as it means to us, a
-cruel man. It meant simply one who had seized a power to
-which he had no real right.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the tyrants were cruel, but others used the power
-which they had seized for the good of the State.</p>
-
-<p>The years 700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> to 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> are known as the Age of the
-Tyrants, because there were few States, save Sparta, which
-did not fall under the power of a tyrant during those years.</p>
-
-<p>Often the people learned to hate a tyrant as greatly as
-they had hated the nobles under whose harsh treatment<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">99</span>
-they had groaned. But it was not easy to get rid of him,
-for he usually had hired soldiers to help him to keep the
-citizens from rebelling. One of the wisest and best of the
-tyrants was named Pisistratus, and he was a cousin of Solon,
-the great lawgiver of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Solon was not a tyrant, although had he wished he might
-have become one.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">100</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">CYLON FAILS TO MAKE HIMSELF TYRANT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> people of Attica were divided into three classes. There
-were the men of the Plain, who owned land and were wealthy;
-the men of the Shore, who were fisher-folk and traders; the men
-of the Hill or Uplanders, who were shepherds and herdsmen.</p>
-
-<p>These three parties, the Plain, the Shore, the Hill, as
-they were often called, were dissatisfied with the way in
-which they were treated by the nobles. For, little by little,
-they were taking possession of the land and making free men
-slaves.</p>
-
-<p>When the harvest failed, or when trade was bad, the poor
-were forced to borrow from the rich. And if a poor man
-could not pay his debt when it became due, his land and his
-goods were seized by the rich man. Nor was that the worst,
-for if the land and the goods were not enough to cover the
-debt, then the poor man himself was taken to be used or sold
-as a slave.</p>
-
-<p>So great was the discontent of the people, that in 632 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>
-a noble named Cylon determined to put himself at their
-head, overthrow those who were in power, and make himself
-tyrant. But Cylon did not trouble to gain the goodwill of
-the people. He succeeded in seizing the Acropolis, but it
-was by the aid of soldiers whom he had hired from the
-neighbouring city of Megara, not by the help of the people
-of Athens. The Athenians were indignant when they saw
-Megarian soldiers in their capital, and they looked on coldly
-and struck no blow for Cylon when the archons besieged the
-rebel noble in the citadel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">101</span></p>
-
-<p>Cylon did not stay to see his plans destroyed; he escaped
-from the city by night, but his followers held the Acropolis
-until famine stared them in the face. Then they gathered
-for sanctuary around the altar of Athene and threw open
-the gates of the citadel.</p>
-
-<p>Megacles, the chief archon, promised that the lives of the
-defenders should be spared, but no sooner had they left the
-altar than he ordered that they should be put to death.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians punished Megacles for this treacherous
-deed, for he and the family to which he belonged were
-banished from Athens, while their property was seized by the
-State. It is told that the city lay under a curse after the
-treacherous deed of Megacles, nor was she freed from it until
-a priest purified her with solemn religious rites.</p>
-
-<p>Cylon had neither gained his own ends nor had he helped
-the people by his rebellion.</p>
-
-<p>Poverty and debt were hard to bear, yet these the citizens
-might now have suffered in silence, but injustice drove them
-to demand that the laws should be reformed. For the
-archons punished as they pleased those who disobeyed the
-law, and at the courts, sentence was often passed in favour of
-those who had bribed or befriended the judge.</p>
-
-<p>When the people rose in 621 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> demanding that justice
-should be done in the land, the task of reforming the laws
-was entrusted to one of the archons named Draco.</p>
-
-<p>Until now the laws had not been written, and so many of
-them were unknown to the people. Draco ordered that the
-laws should be inscribed on tablets that they might be read
-by the people. Sometimes he was blamed for the severity of
-these laws, although all he had done was to make them known.</p>
-
-<p>But the code of laws which Draco drew up was so severe
-that in later days, as the Athenians read them, they exclaimed
-in horror, ‘The laws of Draco seem to have been written in
-blood rather than with ink.’ And indeed there was cause for
-dismay when the theft of a cabbage was punished with death.
-Draco was thus of little real help to the poor people of Athens.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">102</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">SOLON FREES THE SLAVES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Solon,</span> the wise lawgiver of Athens, was a descendant of
-King Codrus. His father had given away most of his wealth
-to help his city or his countrymen, so Solon became a
-merchant, as the sons of noblemen often did in these days of
-long ago. To increase his business, Solon journeyed through
-many of the states of Greece as well as to Asia. Wherever
-he went he studied the laws and manners of the people, just
-as Lycurgus the lawgiver of Sparta had done.</p>
-
-<p>Solon was not only a merchant, he was also a poet, and
-because he was both wise and learned he was counted one of
-the seven sages of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>When Solon returned from one of his journeys about
-593 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, he was made an archon and asked to reform the
-laws.</p>
-
-<p>His first act was a great and unexpected one, for he proclaimed
-that henceforth no one might be made a slave because
-he was unable to pay his debts. And more than that, he
-said that those who were already slaves were at once to be
-set free.</p>
-
-<p>Hundreds of men were thus delivered from slavery, many
-hundreds more were freed from the fear of becoming slaves.
-As these men ploughed their own lands and reaped their own
-harvests they were full of gratitude to Solon. For this law
-alone the name of Solon might well be held in reverence.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_102" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_102.jpg" width="1816" height="2523" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">Solon, the wise lawgiver of Athens</div></div>
-
-<p>So great was the joy of the people that the day the law
-was passed was kept each year as a festival. But the rich
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">103</span>nobles were not pleased with Solon’s act, for they lost many
-of their slaves and found it less easy to add to their
-wealth.</p>
-
-<p>The lawgiver also declared that if there was war or strife
-in the State, each citizen must take one side or the other. No
-one was to be allowed to look on idly, or side now with one
-party, now with another.</p>
-
-<p>Solon restored to the assembly of the people the rights
-that had been wrested from it, and he did all he could to add
-to its powers.</p>
-
-<p>In these ways Solon made Greece less and less of an
-Oligarchy and more and more of a Democracy. That is to
-say, Greece began to be governed by the many rather than
-by the few.</p>
-
-<p>The laws made by Solon, and there were many of which I
-have not told, were written on tables of wood and placed in
-frames that revolved. These frames were called axones
-and were numbered.</p>
-
-<p>When the laws had been written on the tables of wood
-they were placed in the public hall that they might be read
-by all. Other copies were made on stone pillars and kept in
-the portico of the king. Each citizen took an oath that he
-would keep these laws, which were to remain unaltered for a
-hundred years.</p>
-
-<p>Solon had enemies, as reformers in all ages have had.
-Some people complained because his laws were not bold
-enough, others because they were too bold.</p>
-
-<p>Once when he was asked if he believed that he had given
-to the Athenians the best possible laws, he answered, ‘The
-best they could receive.’</p>
-
-<p>The complaints of his enemies did not greatly disturb
-him. He declared that neither friend nor foe influenced him
-as he worked. ‘I threw my stout shield over both parties,’
-he said, and steadfastly refused to alter his code.</p>
-
-<p>When he ceased to be archon he left Athens and spent
-ten years seeing many strange people and many new places.
-It is said that during his absence he met Croesus, King of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">104</span>
-Lydia, the richest man in the world. As Solon and Croesus
-did not live at the same time, it is not possible that the wise
-lawgiver and the rich king could have met, but this is the
-story that is told.</p>
-
-<p>When Solon reached Lydia, he went to the court of
-Croesus. The nobles were clad in such rich garments and
-were attended by so many guards and pages that the
-Athenian thought that one of them must be the king himself.
-But when he actually stood in the presence of the
-monarch he must have smiled at his mistake, so gorgeously
-was the king arrayed in gold and purple, so plentifully was he
-bedecked with sparkling jewels.</p>
-
-<p>Croesus thought that Solon would be filled with awe at
-the sight of his grandeur, but he soon found that purple
-cloth and rare stones had no great interest for the Athenian.</p>
-
-<p>There were still his treasure-houses! These could not
-fail to impress the stranger. So the king led Solon through
-gallery after gallery that he might see his pictures, his statues,
-and all the wonderful things that his wealth had brought
-to him. Then in a glow of pride he turned to his guest,
-asking if he did not think that Croesus was the happiest man
-in the world.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nay, O king,’ answered Solon, ‘Tellus, one of my own
-countrymen, was happier than thou, for he died bravely on
-the battlefield in defence of his country.’</p>
-
-<p>Croesus thought Solon was foolish not to count that man
-happiest who owned the most gold. But he only said, ‘After
-Tellus, dost thou count me the happiest man in the world?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nay,’ again answered the wise man, ‘but two sons who
-loved their mother well, and served her with their strength.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the king was angry and he said, ‘Dost thou not
-count me a happy man?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Call no man happy until he dies,’ replied the wise man,
-‘for who knows what pains the gods may yet have in store
-for him while he lives.’</p>
-
-<p>Croesus was yet to learn the truth of what Solon said.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">105</span>
-For in days to come Cyrus, King of Persia, seized his city,
-took him prisoner, and condemned him to be burned to death.</p>
-
-<p>As he was being bound to the pyre, Croesus remembered
-the words of the Athenian, and he cried aloud three times, ‘O
-Solon, Solon, Solon.’</p>
-
-<p>The King of Persia had never heard of Solon, and he asked
-on what strange god his prisoner was calling.</p>
-
-<p>‘On no god,’ answered the miserable man, ‘but on one
-whom I would that all tyrants might meet and converse
-with.’ He then told Cyrus how Solon had said no one need
-count himself happy while he lived, as he could not know
-what misfortunes the gods had yet in store for him.</p>
-
-<p>Already the pyre had been set alight, but Cyrus, struck
-by the words he had heard and thinking that he did not
-know what fate might yet befall himself, ordered Croesus
-to be set free.</p>
-
-<p>But the flames had blazed up fiercely, and no one could
-quench the fire. Then Croesus besought Apollo to help him,
-and lo! the sky which had been clear grew dark, and a heavy
-downfall of rain soon extinguished the flames.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thus,’ says Plutarch, who tells this story, ‘Solon had
-the glory by the same saying to save one king and instruct
-another.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">106</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXI">CHAPTER XXXI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE ATHENIANS TAKE SALAMIS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Salamis,</span> an island lying about a mile from both Athens and
-Megara, was in the hands of the Megarians. Its position
-between the two States made it an important one. So the
-Athenians determined to proclaim war against the Megarians
-and try to win Salamis for themselves.</p>
-
-<p>But the war dragged on so long that the Athenians grew
-weary, and although the Megarians still held the island they
-longed for the war to end. The poor soldiers wished to
-go home to plough their fields, the rich wished to escape
-from the hardships of the camp to their own comfortable
-homes.</p>
-
-<p>So at length peace was made, and a law was passed by the
-Athenians forbidding any one either to say or to write, upon
-pain of death, that Athens ought still to try to win Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>There were many citizens both indignant and ashamed
-that such a law had been passed, yet lest they should be put
-to death they did not dare to say what they thought.</p>
-
-<p>Solon was away from Athens when this law was passed,
-and when he came back from his journey and found that
-peace had been made while Salamis was still in the hands of
-the Megarians, he was much displeased.</p>
-
-<p>Some time had passed since peace had been made, and
-Solon knew that the Megarians were not now as strong as
-they had been when the Athenians gave up fighting. So
-he determined that he would rouse his countrymen to try
-again to capture the island. Yet what could he do? He
-would be put to death if he defied the law, which said that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">107</span>
-no one must say or write that Athens ought still to try to
-win Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>At length he hit on a strange plan. He pretended that
-he was mad, and persuaded his own family to spread the
-report that this terrible fate had befallen him. He then
-wrote some verses, learned them by heart, and ran toward
-the market-place, a cap upon his head. In those days a cap
-was worn by a man only if he were ill.</p>
-
-<p>Solon soon attracted as much attention as he had hoped
-to do by his strange gestures and by the words he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>As the people crowded round him he jumped on to the
-platform from which heralds were used to announce important
-tidings, and began to recite the verses he had written.</p>
-
-<p>‘I came myself as a herald from lovely Salamis, but with
-song on my lips instead of common speech,’ so began the
-poem. It then went on to blame those who wished no longer
-to fight, and bade them ‘Arise and come to Salamis to win
-that fair island and undo our shame.’</p>
-
-<p>As the people listened they forgot that they had believed
-Solon was mad, and their hearts were stirred by his words.</p>
-
-<p>From that day so strong became the desire of the people
-to blot out their disgrace and win Salamis, that the law which
-had so displeased Solon was repealed. No one had thought
-of punishing the man who had broken it.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenian forces were again mustered; Solon himself
-being made commander of the troops. His cousin Pisistratus
-went with him to battle, and it was he who succeeded in taking
-the port of Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>In those days Athens had no fleet. Solon sailed toward
-Salamis in a ship, but his army followed him in a number of
-fishing-boats.</p>
-
-<p>When the Megarians caught sight of the Athenian ship,
-they sent one of their own vessels to find out the strength
-of the enemy’s fleet.</p>
-
-<p>Solon managed to capture this ship, and all on board
-were taken prisoners. The captured vessel was then manned<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">108</span>
-with Athenians, and the men were ordered to sail slowly
-and quietly to the island.</p>
-
-<p>Solon meanwhile reached the shore and, landing with his
-army, at once attacked the Megarians. While the fight still
-raged, the ship manned by Athenians sailed unnoticed to
-the port. The soldiers leaped to the ground, sped swiftly
-to the city, and took it almost before the citizens were aware
-of the presence of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>The island was soon in the hands of the triumphant
-Athenians, by whom it was held for many long years, until
-indeed Philip of Macedon conquered Greece.</p>
-
-<p>To celebrate the victory in after years, an Athenian ship
-used to sail to the island just as the victorious one had done
-on the actual battle day. When it reached the shore, a
-soldier, armed as though for battle, jumped to the ground,
-and with a loud shout ran toward the city, where he was met
-and welcomed by his countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>Close to the spot where Solon won this victory a temple
-was built and dedicated to the god of battle.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">109</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXII">CHAPTER XXXII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">PISISTRATUS BECOMES TYRANT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Solon</span> did not expect the laws he made to please each of the
-three parties in Attica. So he was not greatly surprised that
-while the Plain and the Coast were more or less content, the
-Hill was dissatisfied and even rebellious.</p>
-
-<p>Pisistratus wished to help the Hill folk, who were
-shepherds and herdsmen, and he hoped at the same time to
-fulfil his own ambition, which was to become tyrant of
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Solon did not think that it was good for the State to have
-a tyrant at its head. He warned the people again and again
-that Pisistratus would take away their freedom. But it was
-in vain that he spoke, no one would listen to him.</p>
-
-<p>One day as Pisistratus drove in a chariot to the market-place,
-the citizens saw to their horror that he had been
-wounded. They crowded round his chariot begging to be
-told what had happened. This was what Pisistratus wished.
-He pointed to his wounds, telling them that the men of the
-Plain had attacked him, because he was defending the rights
-of the poor Hill folk. But Pisistratus was deceiving the
-people, for he had given himself these wounds that he
-might gain the sympathy of the people and be voted a
-bodyguard.</p>
-
-<p>Lest he should be killed outright by his enemies, the
-citizens agreed that he should have a guard of fifty clubsmen.</p>
-
-<p>At first Pisistratus seemed content with his guard, but
-after a time he began to add to its number now one, then
-another, until he knew that he was strong enough to defy his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">110</span>
-enemies. He then seized the Acropolis and soon made himself
-master of the State.</p>
-
-<p>The leaders of the Plain and the Shore were forced to
-flee, and the people, in spite of the warnings of Solon, were
-amazed at the cunning and the boldness Pisistratus had
-shown.</p>
-
-<p>Solon himself felt that all he had done for the State was
-undone when a tyrant ruled at Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Old as he now was, he was brave enough to go to the
-market-place to upbraid the citizens for their folly in having
-allowed Pisistratus to deceive them, and to beg them not to
-lose their freedom without a struggle. ‘You might with
-ease,’ he said, ‘have crushed the tyrant in the bud; but
-nothing now remains but to pluck him up by the roots.’</p>
-
-<p>It is said that he even begged the people to take up arms
-against Pisistratus, but they were not bold enough to defy
-the tyrant.</p>
-
-<p>So Solon went home sadly, gathered together his arms and
-laid them on the threshold of his house, saying, ‘I have done
-my part to maintain my country and my laws, and I appeal
-to others to do likewise.’</p>
-
-<p>Here is a verse from one of the poems which he wrote at
-this <span class="locked">time—</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘If now you suffer do not blame the Powers,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For they are good and all the fault is ours.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">All the strongholds you put into his hands,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And now his slaves must do what he commands.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>His friends feared that Pisistratus would punish Solon
-for his bold words and actions, perhaps even take his life,
-so they begged him to leave the country, but he refused to go.</p>
-
-<p>When they asked him why he was not afraid, and to what
-he trusted to save him from the anger of the tyrant, he
-answered simply, ‘To my old age.’</p>
-
-<p>And his trust was well founded, for Pisistratus treated
-Solon with kindness and with respect. He even asked his
-advice in matters of State.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">111</span></p>
-
-<p>But the overthrow of his reforms was more than the old
-lawgiver could bear, and two years later, when he was
-eighty years of age, he died. It is said that by his own
-wish his ashes were scattered on Salamis, the island which
-he had won for Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Pisistratus was a good tyrant. For five years he ruled,
-doing all that he could for the welfare of the State. But his
-enemies, although they saw that Athens grew more prosperous
-under his control, were ever plotting to get rid of him. At
-the end of five years the Plain and the Coast joined together
-and succeeded in driving Pisistratus from the city.</p>
-
-<p>But Megacles, the leader of the Coast, quarrelled with the
-Plain, and he then offered to help Pisistratus to return to
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>It was by a strange trick that the Athenians were persuaded
-once more to allow the tyrant to rule.</p>
-
-<p>In one of the villages of Attica, Megacles knew of a woman
-named Phya, who was taller and more stately than most
-Greek women. He ordered Phya to be clad in armour, such
-as was worn by the goddess Athene, and then seating her in
-his chariot he drove to Athens. Before the chariot went a
-herald to proclaim that the goddess Athene was herself
-coming to bid them open their gates to Pisistratus and to
-restore him to power.</p>
-
-<p>The story tells that the Athenians believed that Phya
-was indeed the goddess, and they hastened to obey her
-behests. Pisistratus was allowed to enter the city and rule
-it as before.</p>
-
-<p>For six years all went well, then the tyrant quarrelled
-with Megacles, who again joined the Plain, and Pisistratus
-was expelled for the second time.</p>
-
-<p>But the tyrant was a patient and a persistent man. For
-ten years he lived in a province called Thrace, keeping in
-touch all the time with the Hill. In 535 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he was back
-again in Attica, with no goddess to help him, but with a
-band of hired soldiers to strengthen his party.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">112</span></p>
-
-<p>The Athenian army was sent against the invaders, but
-Pisistratus pretended that he did not mean to fight. So the
-Athenians, thinking themselves safe, sat down to their
-midday meal. Then, while they were eating and drinking,
-the tyrant fell upon them, scattering them with but little
-loss on either side. As the Athenians fled, the sons of
-Pisistratus, Hippias and Hipparchus, rode after them, crying
-aloud that all who went quietly home would be pardoned.
-The citizens saw that it was useless to resist, so Pisistratus
-entered Athens as tyrant for the third time.</p>
-
-<p>During the next eight years Pisistratus devoted himself
-to making Athens the most beautiful city of the world. He
-ordered that a new feast should be held in honour of the gods,
-and he began to build a magnificent temple to Zeus, which
-he did not live to finish. Many learned men were invited to
-Athens, and poets and historians were encouraged to write
-and to read their works to the people. It is even said that
-Pisistratus collected a library, which he urged the citizens to
-use, but of this we cannot be sure.</p>
-
-<p>Then, thinking perhaps that Athens was strong enough
-to defy her enemies, the tyrant ordered the walls of the city
-to be pulled down. So that for half a century Athens, like
-Sparta, was an unwalled town.</p>
-
-<p>In many of the States where tyrants ruled, Pisistratus
-had formed allies, and he even offered his friendship to Sparta,
-the State that despised tyrants and would not allow them to
-rule in Peloponnesus.</p>
-
-<p>Pisistratus died in 527 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, and was succeeded by his two
-sons, Hippias and Hipparchus.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">113</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIII">CHAPTER XXXIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">HARMODIUS AND ARISTOGITON</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Hippias</span> and Hipparchus were as eager as their father
-Pisistratus had been to govern Athens well. Nor did they
-quarrel as to the way in which they could best do this, as
-brother-tyrants might have done.</p>
-
-<p>But one day Hipparchus quarrelled with a citizen named
-Harmodius, and to quarrel with Harmodius meant to make
-an enemy of his great friend Aristogiton.</p>
-
-<p>Harmodius showed that he was angry with Hipparchus,
-who then used his power as tyrant to punish the citizen.
-This was unfair, as the quarrel was a private one.</p>
-
-<p>The tyrant even refused to allow the sister of Harmodius
-to carry a basket in the procession of the gods, an insult
-which the citizen could ill brook. He therefore resolved to
-revenge himself, and together with Aristogiton he made a
-plot to slay not only Hipparchus but his brother Hippias as
-well. Only a few friends were told of the plot, which they
-hoped to carry out on the day of the procession. As it
-was usual to carry arms at the festival, it would arouse no
-suspicion if the friends were seen to carry theirs.</p>
-
-<p>When the day arrived, Harmodius and Aristogiton
-appeared at the festival bearing lances, as did the other
-citizens. But to be the more certain of carrying out their
-plan, they also carried daggers concealed beneath their
-cloaks.</p>
-
-<p>The conspirators wished to kill Hippias outside the city
-gates, while he was arranging the order of the procession.
-But when they approached the tyrant he chanced to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">114</span>
-talking to one of those who knew of the plot, and the conspirators
-fled, thinking that Hippias had learned their secret.</p>
-
-<p>Hippias was saved, but rushing to the market-place
-the two friends fell upon Hipparchus and killed him.</p>
-
-<p>The conspirators expected the citizens to rally round
-them, but they stood aloof, while Harmodius was seized by
-the guards and put to death. Aristogiton was tortured to
-make him betray the names of those who knew of the plot,
-but he too died, steadfastly refusing to speak.</p>
-
-<p>Although at first the Athenians paid little attention to
-what Harmodius and Aristogiton had done and had suffered,
-they began ere long to think of them as heroes who had freed
-Athens from the rule of one of the tyrants. Perhaps this
-was because Hippias, frightened by his brother’s death,
-brought hired soldiers into the city, raised the taxes that he
-might have money with which to pay his mercenaries, and
-began to oppress the citizens in many other ways.</p>
-
-<p>The discontent of the people encouraged Cleisthenes, the
-son of Megacles, to put himself at their head and lead them
-against Hippias, but they were soon crushed by the hired
-soldiers of the tyrant.</p>
-
-<p>Cleisthenes then tried to do by a trick what he had been
-unable to do by force. He knew that he was liked by the
-priests at Delphi, for he had given munificent gifts to the
-temple. So he begged them if a Spartan came to consult
-the oracle, no matter about what, to answer always, ‘Athens
-must be set free.’ This the priests promised should be done.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans had been friendly with Pisistratus, and they
-did not wish to harm his son. But when the oracle’s one
-answer to all their requests was ‘Athens must be set free,’
-they knew that they must march against the tyrant if they
-wished their own affairs to prosper. At first they were
-defeated by the mercenaries of Hippias, but one of their
-kings then took command of the army and defeated the
-tyrant, who took refuge in the Acropolis.</p>
-
-<p>The citadel would stand a long siege, as Hippias was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">115</span>
-well aware. But he was soon forced to surrender, for his
-children whom he was sending secretly out of the country
-were captured by the Spartans. On condition that their
-lives should be spared, Hippias promised to leave the state
-within five days.</p>
-
-<p>So the children were released and sailed with Hippias,
-under a safe conduct, to Asia, where they lived in a small
-town which had belonged to Pisistratus.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">116</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIV">CHAPTER XXXIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE LAW OF OSTRACISM</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">After</span> Cleisthenes had set Athens free from the rule of
-Hippias, he began to reform the laws and to make Athens a
-more democratic State than she had yet been.</p>
-
-<p>Until now the Athenians had been divided into four
-tribes; Cleisthenes split up the four tribes into ten. Each of
-the ten tribes he then arranged in ten parishes or ‘demes.’</p>
-
-<p>In each tribe there were demes made up of the Plain, the
-Shore, and the Hill. As these demes had to fight together
-in time of war, the three different parties grew to be friends
-instead of enemies. And that was why Cleisthenes had
-arranged the tribes in this way, instead of making one tribe
-consist of ten demes of Hill men and another of ten demes
-of Plain or Coast men.</p>
-
-<p>Members from the new tribes were sent to the assembly
-of the people, and to the assembly Cleisthenes gave new
-powers. It could choose its own rulers, and punish those
-who ruled unjustly. It could impose taxes, make war, and
-settle terms of peace.</p>
-
-<p>But of all the laws which Cleisthenes made, the one which
-will interest you most is the one that was called the law of
-Ostracism. The word ostracism comes from the Greek
-<em>ostrakon</em>, a shell.</p>
-
-<p>In Athens there were often two leaders opposed to one
-another, but each as powerful as the other.</p>
-
-<p>Cleisthenes thought that it would be a good plan to be
-able to get rid of one of these leaders for a time and so save
-the city from civil war, which often threatened to overtake<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">117</span>
-it. So he said that when it was necessary to banish one of
-these leaders, the citizens should meet together, each being
-given an oyster-shell on which to write the name of the man
-of whom he disapproved.</p>
-
-<p>If six thousand votes were given against one leader he
-was said to be ostracised, and was compelled to leave the
-city within ten days for five or perhaps even for ten years.
-His exile was not a disgrace, it was enforced only for the good
-of the State. When the five or ten years had passed, the
-leader returned to Athens to hold as high a position as he had
-held before and to take possession of his property.</p>
-
-<p>The reforms of Cleisthenes displeased the nobles who
-wished Athens to be an oligarchy, and they were angry that
-so much power had been given to the assembly of the people.
-They said the city would soon be ruined, for how could the
-people who were unaccustomed to so much power use it
-well and wisely. But the fears of the nobles were groundless,
-for from this time Athens grew more prosperous as well as
-more powerful. She soon had a stronger army, a better
-fleet, and, as you shall hear, was victorious over her enemies
-both by land and by sea.</p>
-
-<p>Great writers and sculptors too added to the glory of
-Athens and made her the most famous city of Greece.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">118</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXV">CHAPTER XXXV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BRIDGE OF BOATS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Along</span> the western shore of Asia Minor there were many
-Greek colonies. One of these was called Ionia, and the chief
-city of the Ionian state was Miletus.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks who lived in these colonies owned, often
-against their will, the King of Persia as their overlord. In
-time of war they were forced to fight for him.</p>
-
-<p>In 521 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a great monarch, named Darius, became King
-of Persia. He added many kingdoms to his dominions during
-the first nine years of his reign. In 512 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he determined
-to conquer Greece and add it also to his possessions.</p>
-
-<p>So he assembled a great army and crossed the Bosphorus,
-but instead of going west to Thessaly which lies in the north-east
-of Greece, Darius turned first toward the north, and
-crossing the Balkans, he reached the river Danube. Beyond
-the river lay a wild and desolate country, the home of the
-Scythians, who wandered up and down the land, settling
-now here, now there, as their fancy pleased.</p>
-
-<p>The ‘great king,’ as the Persian monarchs were often called,
-bade the Ionian Greeks, who formed part of his army, throw
-a bridge of boats across the river. When this was done he
-bade them stay to guard the bridge, while he marched with
-the main body of his men into the wild Scythian country.
-Should he not return in sixty days, Darius told the Ionians
-that they might break up the bridge and go back to their
-homes.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had the great king crossed the bridge and
-marched into Scythia, than his difficulties began.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">119</span></p>
-
-<p>The foe he had come to seek was not to be found. Knowing
-that they were not strong enough to face Darius in battle,
-the Scythians had driven their herds far into the desert,
-while they themselves, like shadows, dogged the steps of
-the Persian army.</p>
-
-<p>Two months passed, and still the king had not been able
-to make the enemy fight. Their shadowy forms were sometimes
-seen, but they were never near enough to be attacked.</p>
-
-<p>Darius was unwilling to own that his expedition had been
-useless. Yet his men were sick from cold, and their provisions
-were nearly at an end, so he had almost made up his
-mind to order the retreat. But while he still hesitated, the
-story tells that the Scythians sent one of their number to
-the great king, carrying with him as gifts a bird, a mouse, a
-frog, and five arrows.</p>
-
-<p>The Persians demanded the meaning of these strange
-gifts, but the messenger had no answer to give. He had
-been but bidden to give them to the great king and return to
-his people.</p>
-
-<p>Then Darius called together his council to consider what
-the offering might betoken.</p>
-
-<p>The king himself thought that the presents were to show
-that the Scythians were ready to surrender their land, for
-on it the mouse found its home; their water, for in it dwelt
-the frog. The bird was a symbol of their war-steeds, and with
-the arrows showed that they were willing to lay down their
-arms. Darius was satisfied with his own explanation, but
-one of his councillors thought that the gifts had quite a
-different meaning.</p>
-
-<p>‘O Persians,’ he cried, ‘listen to my words and be wise.
-For unless ye become as birds and fly up into heaven, or go
-down like mice beneath the earth, or, becoming frogs, leap
-into the lake, ye will not escape being shot by these arrows.’</p>
-
-<p>As he listened to these alarming words, the king thought
-that after all perhaps this was the true meaning of the gifts,
-so he determined to return to the Danube. But the sick<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">120</span>
-men and the beasts of burden were left behind when the army
-set out, for they could not march as quickly as Darius
-wished. The groanings of these miserable men and the cries
-of the animals were heard by the Scythians, who soon discovered
-what had happened and set out in pursuit of Darius
-and his army.</p>
-
-<p>Now the Ionians in charge of the bridge had long been
-tired of waiting for the return of the great king. He had
-perished, they said one to the other, and it would be well for
-them to break up the bridge and return to their homes.</p>
-
-<p>Those who longed most to throw off their allegiance to
-the Persians muttered that even if the king had not already
-perished, he would soon do so, if he reached the Danube
-without provisions, to find the bridge was no longer there.</p>
-
-<p>Miltiades, an Athenian, was strongly in favour of withdrawing,
-but Histiaeus, tyrant of Miletus, begged the Ionians
-to remain, for Darius would come back, of that he felt certain.
-Then turning to the other tyrants, he cried, ‘O ye tyrants,
-be sure of this, that if we leave the Persians to perish, the
-men of our cities will rise up against us, because it is the king
-who strengthens us in our power; and if he die, neither shall
-I be able to rule in Miletus, nor you in those cities of which
-ye are tyrants.’ Then the other tyrants agreed with
-Histiaeus that it would be for their own good to wait for the
-king.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">121</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVI">CHAPTER XXXVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DARIUS REWARDS HISTIAEUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Meanwhile</span> a band of Scythians had reached the banks of
-the Danube. The Ionians had already loosed some of the
-boats on the farther side, that the enemy might think that
-the bridge was useless. And they, seeing this, and thinking
-that it would be impossible for Darius to cross the river,
-turned back to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>But that same night, after a terrible march, the great
-king reached the river unnoticed by the Scythians. He saw
-at once that there were no boats on his side of the river.
-Had the Ionians gone home and left him to fall into the hands
-of his enemy?</p>
-
-<p>Then he bade one of his men who was noted for the
-strength of his voice to call aloud for Histiaeus of Miletus.
-No sooner was this done than an answering shout was heard,
-and Histiaeus sent in haste to restore the bridge of boats.
-When the boats were secure, Darius with his weary army
-crossed to the other side, and was greeted with every token
-of loyalty by the Greeks.</p>
-
-<p>The king was grateful to Histiaeus when he heard that
-it was he who had persuaded the other tyrants to await his
-return, after the sixty days had passed, and he bade him
-ask for whatever he wished.</p>
-
-<p>Now the tyrant longed to build a strong city far from the
-control of the Persian power. So he asked for land in the
-country called Thrace, which stretches north of Macedon to
-the river Danube, and Darius granted his request.</p>
-
-<p>But Megabazus, the general of the great king, did not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">122</span>
-trust Histiaeus, and when he came to Sardis, where the king’s
-court was, he said to Darius, ‘O king, what hast thou done?
-Thou hast given to a Greek who is wise and crafty a city in
-Thrace, where there is much timber for building ships and
-blades for oars, and mines of silver, and round it there are
-many people, both Greek and barbarian, who will take him
-for a chief and do his will by night and by day. See then
-that he make not war against thee in time to come.’</p>
-
-<p>Darius feared lest Megabazus was right, and he determined
-to send for Histiaeus and keep him at his own court. Yet
-as Megabazus might have made a mistake, the message the
-king sent to the Greek was a kind one.</p>
-
-<p>‘O Histiaeus,’ said the king, ‘I have pondered it well, and
-I find none who is better minded to me and to my kingdom
-than thou art. This I know, for I have learnt it, not by
-words but in deed. And now I purpose to do great things.
-Come therefore to me in any wise, that I may entrust them
-to thee.’</p>
-
-<p>These words pleased Histiaeus. It seemed to him that
-the great king was treating him even as one of his counsellors.
-But when he reached the king’s court and was told what the
-commands of Darius were, he was not so well content.</p>
-
-<p>‘O Histiaeus,’ said the king, ‘there is nothing more
-precious than a wise and kind friend, and I knew that this
-thou art to me. So now thou must leave Miletus and the
-new city which thou hast built, and come with me to my court
-at Susa.’</p>
-
-<p>The Greek found it hard to hide his anger and disappointment.
-Rather would he be tyrant at Miletus, or ruler in
-his new city, than a favoured courtier at Susa.</p>
-
-<p>Aristagoras, the brother-in-law of Histiaeus, was now made
-tyrant of Miletus, while Darius appointed his own brother
-Artaphernes to be ruler of Sardis.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">123</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVII">CHAPTER XXXVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">HISTIAEUS SHAVES THE HEAD OF HIS SLAVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">For</span> a few years after Histiaeus was summoned to Susa, the
-Greek cities in Asia showed no disloyalty.</p>
-
-<p>But about 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the people of Naxos, an island in the
-Ægean Sea, rose and expelled the nobles from their city.
-This was the beginning of a war between Greece and Asia,
-known as the Ionian revolt.</p>
-
-<p>The nobles, when they were turned out of Naxos, went to
-Aristagoras, tyrant of Miletus, to beg him to help them to
-punish the rebels and to gain possession of the island.</p>
-
-<p>Aristagoras knew that alone he was not strong enough
-to regain Naxos for the nobles, but he said that he would ask
-Artaphernes, the Persian ruler in Sardis, to help him.</p>
-
-<p>So Aristagoras went to Sardis and begged Artaphernes to
-give him a hundred ships to sail against Naxos, promising if
-he would do so to reward him with money and with gifts.</p>
-
-<p>Artaphernes offered, if Darius would consent, to give not
-only a hundred, but two hundred ships. The great king
-bade his brother do as he thought well, so two hundred ships,
-under the command of Megabates, were sent from Sardis to
-join Aristagoras in his expedition against Naxos.</p>
-
-<p>The two leaders, Aristagoras and Megabates, had not
-sailed far together when they quarrelled, and it was because
-of this quarrel that the plans of Aristagoras went awry.</p>
-
-<p>One night Megabates found that no watch had been set
-on one of the ships belonging to Aristagoras. He was so
-angry with the captain for being careless that he ordered
-his head to be placed in one of the oarholes in the side of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">124</span>
-vessel. When this was done the unhappy man could do
-nothing to set himself free, but with hanging head he was
-forced to gaze into the water.</p>
-
-<p>When Aristagoras found what Megabates had done he
-went at once to ask him to set the culprit free. This
-Megabates refused to do, and the tyrant himself released the
-captain.</p>
-
-<p>To have his authority flouted in this way made Megabates
-angry, but when he would have spoken, Aristagoras proudly
-bade him be silent, saying, ‘Did not Artaphernes send you to
-serve under me?’</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps it would have been wiser to allow the Persian
-to speak, for now his anger smouldered in his heart, and
-he resolved to be revenged on Aristagoras. So he sent a
-messenger to Naxos to warn the citizens that an enemy was
-at hand.</p>
-
-<p>The Naxians at once strengthened their walls and brought
-provisions into their city, so that when Aristagoras arrived,
-he found to his astonishment that the citizens had been
-warned and were ready to resist an attack.</p>
-
-<p>For four months the Greeks and Persians besieged Naxos,
-but all their efforts to take the city were vain. Then, their
-money and their provisions having come to an end, Aristagoras
-was forced to order the fleets to withdraw.</p>
-
-<p>The tyrant was now in great trouble. He had neither
-gold nor gifts to give to Artaphernes as he had promised.
-He had wasted Persian money on a useless expedition, and he
-had made Megabates his enemy. What would Darius say
-when he heard these things? Aristagoras was afraid that
-the king would no longer allow him to be tyrant of Miletus.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to Aristagoras that the only way to save himself
-from disgrace was to persuade the Greeks in Asia Minor
-to revolt against Darius and himself to become their leader.</p>
-
-<p>Now just at this time Histiaeus was more than ever
-determined to escape from the court of Susa. He thought
-if Aristagoras would but incite the Greeks to rebel, Darius<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">125</span>
-would send him back to Miletus to restore order to the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>So while Aristagoras was still hesitating about rousing the
-citizens, a slave was shown into his presence. He came from
-Histiaeus, and said that his master had bidden him tell
-Aristagoras to shave off his hair and look at the message
-that was branded on his head.</p>
-
-<p>This was a strange way to send a message! But Histiaeus
-had been unable to think of any other way to tell Aristagoras
-what he wished him to do. So he had himself first shaved
-the head of his slave, and branded on it certain signs which
-meant that the tyrant was to revolt against the Persians.
-He had waited only until the slave’s hair had grown again,
-when he had at once sent him to Miletus.</p>
-
-<p>When Aristagoras looked at the slave’s head and learned
-that Histiaeus encouraged him to revolt, he hesitated no
-longer. He determined to rouse the Ionian Greeks, and he
-began with his own city Miletus. When he had assembled
-the citizens he told them that the time had come to throw off
-the Persian yoke. He then gave up his position as tyrant
-that Miletus might be made into a democracy. The example
-of Miletus was quickly followed by many other cities, and the
-Greeks were soon in open rebellion against Darius.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">126</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVIII">CHAPTER XXXVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">SARDIS IS DESTROYED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Ionians knew that they would not be able to throw off
-the Persian yoke without help from their kinsfolk in Greece.
-So Aristagoras was appointed to go to Sparta to beg king
-Cleomenes to help the Ionians, who were of the same race
-as were he and his people.</p>
-
-<p>When Aristagoras reached Sparta he tried to tempt the
-king to help the Ionians by telling him of the wealth he might
-gain for himself. After Artaphernes was conquered at Sardis
-it would, he said, be an easy matter to go to Susa and seize
-the treasures of the great king. He then showed Cleomenes
-a thing he had never seen before—a map engraved in
-bronze. Aristagoras pointed out to him all the countries
-he might make his own if he would aid the Ionians in their
-revolt.</p>
-
-<p>The king listened and looked, then he dismissed the Greek,
-promising to think over the matter. In three days he sent
-for Aristagoras and asked him how long it took to journey
-from Ionia to Susa.</p>
-
-<p>‘Three months,’ answered the messenger.</p>
-
-<p>‘O stranger,’ then said Cleomenes, ‘depart from Sparta
-before the sun goes down; thou art no friend to the Lacedaemonians
-when thou seekest to lead them three months’
-journey from the sea.’</p>
-
-<p>In spite of the king’s command, Aristagoras still tarried
-in Sparta. He had made up his mind that he would see
-Cleomenes once again ere he left the country.</p>
-
-<p>So one day, taking an olive branch in his hand as a sign<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">127</span>
-of peace, he went to the king’s house. He found Cleomenes
-alone with his little daughter Gorgo, a child about eight
-years old.</p>
-
-<p>Aristagoras begged the king to send his daughter away,
-but Cleomenes said, ‘Pay no heed to the child.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the Greek tried to bribe the king to send help to
-Ionia. Ten talents he offered, twenty, thirty, but in vain.
-Forty, fifty! Surely, thought Aristagoras, the king would
-be won by fifty talents.</p>
-
-<p>But at that moment little Gorgo interfered. ‘Father,’
-she cried, ‘the stranger will corrupt you unless you rise up
-and go.’</p>
-
-<p>Cleomenes listened to the child’s words and knew that
-they were wise. He rose and left the room, and Aristagoras
-knew that he had been beaten by the little princess.</p>
-
-<p>But although Sparta would not help, Athens might. So
-Aristagoras went to the beautiful city and found that the
-Athenians were willing to send twenty ships to the aid of
-the Ionians. ‘These ships,’ said Herodotus, ‘were the beginnings
-of evil both to the Greeks and to the barbarians.’</p>
-
-<p>In 498 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the Athenian fleet was ready. It sailed across
-the Ægean and the troops landed at Ephesus, where they
-were joined by the Ionians. Together they marched upon
-Sardis.</p>
-
-<p>Artaphernes saw that he could not hope to hold the town
-against the force that was approaching. So he left the city
-to be plundered, while he with a small band of soldiers took
-refuge in the Acropolis.</p>
-
-<p>As they met with little resistance, the Athenians at once
-began to pillage the town. One of the soldiers set fire to a
-house, and as many of them were made of wickerwork, while
-all the roofs were thatched, the flames spread quickly
-through the city until Sardis was destroyed. Then the
-Greeks, loaded with plunder, began to march back to
-Ephesus, but on the way they were met by a troop of
-Persians and defeated. The Athenians now determined to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">128</span>
-go home. Aristagoras begged them to stay, but they paid
-no heed to his request, and hastening to the shore they
-embarked and set sail for Athens. Nor did the Athenians
-take any further share in the Ionic revolt.</p>
-
-<p>But they had already done enough to rouse the anger of
-Darius. The great king knew that it would be easy to punish
-Aristagoras and the Ionians. As for the strangers who had
-burned Sardis, one of his capital towns, they, whoever they
-were, should suffer most heavily. He was told that the
-strangers were the Athenians.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Athenians—who are they?’ he demanded
-haughtily. And when he had been told he sent for a bow
-and shot an arrow high into the air, saying as he did so,
-‘O Zeus, suffer me to avenge myself on the Athenians.’
-He then bade one of his slaves say to him three times each
-day as he sat at dinner, ‘O king, remember the Athenians.’</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Aristagoras saw that there was little chance
-of the revolt being successful against the forces of Darius.
-So, like a coward rather than like a brave leader, he deserted
-those whom he had encouraged to rebel and fled to Thrace.
-Here, while besieging a town, he was slain.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">129</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIX">CHAPTER XXXIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SANDAL SEWN BY HISTIAEUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Now</span> when Darius heard that Sardis had been destroyed, he
-sent for Histiaeus and said to him, ‘O Histiaeus, I hear that
-the man to whom thou hast given thy city has been doing
-strange things. He has brought over men from Europe to
-help the Ionians whom I shall punish.... How can all this
-seem good to thee? And without thy counsels how could
-such a thing be done? See that thou bring not thyself into
-blame afresh.’</p>
-
-<p>Histiaeus tried not to think of the slave whose head he
-had shaved and whom he had sent to Aristagoras, as he
-told the king that he had had nothing to do with the revolt
-in Ionia. He begged to be allowed to go to help Artaphernes
-to put down the rebellion. He would do even more
-to show his loyalty; he would seize the rich island of Sardinia
-to add to the possessions of the great king.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yea, I swear by the gods whom the king worshippeth,’
-he cried, ‘that I will not put off the tunic in which I shall go
-down to Ionia, before I bring under thy power the mighty
-island of Sardinia.’</p>
-
-<p>It was not difficult to persuade Darius that Histiaeus was
-innocent, for since the Greek had tarried for him at the bridge
-of boats the king was ever ready to believe in his loyalty.
-So to his great delight, Histiaeus was bidden to go to Sardis
-and help Artaphernes to put down the revolt.</p>
-
-<p>But Artaphernes was less easily deceived than the great
-king. No sooner had Histiaeus arrived at Sardis than the
-Persian accused him of treachery.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">130</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Why did the Ionians rebel against the king?’ he asked
-the Greek in a stern voice.</p>
-
-<p>‘I cannot tell,’ answered Histiaeus. ‘I have marvelled
-at all the things which have happened.’</p>
-
-<p>‘O Histiaeus,’ said Artaphernes, ‘thou hast thus much
-to do with these matters. Thou didst sew this sandal and
-Aristagoras hath put it on.’</p>
-
-<p>Then at length Histiaeus was afraid lest his deceit had been
-discovered, and lest he should be punished. So when night
-came he stole out of the city and went as speedily as might be
-to the sea. From that time he became a sea-robber or pirate,
-seizing any vessel from which he could hope to get booty,
-whether it belonged to Greek or to barbarian.</p>
-
-<p>After a long time he was taken prisoner by the Persians.
-Artaphernes ordered that he should be crucified and that his
-head should be sent to Darius.</p>
-
-<p>But the great king was displeased that his general had
-not sent the Greek to him alive.</p>
-
-<p>‘If Histiaeus had been sent away alive to King Darius,’
-says Herodotus, ‘he would not, I think, have suffered any
-harm, but his trespass would have been forgiven him.’</p>
-
-<p>Even as it was, Darius was determined to show what
-honour was yet possible to his faithless servant. For he
-ordered his slaves to ‘wash the head and adorn it well, and
-to bury it as the head of one who had done much good to
-himself and to the Persians.’</p>
-
-<p>In 494 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, four years after the Athenians had sailed to
-the help of the Ionians, the revolt was crushed. Miletus,
-where the rebellion had begun, was punished more severely
-than the other rebellious cities.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">131</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XL">CHAPTER XL<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DARIUS DEMANDS EARTH AND WATER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Ionic revolt was ended, but Darius had yet to punish
-the Athenians for burning the city of Sardis. Eight years
-had now passed since she had been destroyed, yet his anger
-against the Greeks was as fierce as ever.</p>
-
-<p>Daily during all these years a slave had said to him as he
-sat at dinner, ‘Sire, remember the Athenians,’ and now, at
-length, his vengeance was at hand.</p>
-
-<p>Mardonius, one of the king’s generals, was ordered to
-invade Greece and to bring back with him to Susa the
-Athenians who had dared to destroy Sardis.</p>
-
-<p>So Mardonius crossed the Hellespont, and began to march
-through Thrace and Macedonia. His fleet, with part of his
-army, was to meet him later, beyond the perilous promontory
-of Mount Athos.</p>
-
-<p>The country through which Mardonius marched was wild,
-and inhabited by rough and savage tribes. These tribes
-attacked the Persian troops so fiercely that more than half
-of them were slain. Meanwhile the fleet had encountered
-a terrible storm, and three hundred ships were dashed to
-pieces upon the rocks near Mount Athos, while twenty
-thousand men were drowned.</p>
-
-<p>When Mardonius heard of this terrible disaster he knew
-that his troops would not now be strong enough to invade
-Greece. So he went back to Persia.</p>
-
-<p>But Darius was as determined as ever to punish the
-Athenians. He spent two years in preparations, and then,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">132</span>
-before he set out for Greece, he sent heralds to the different
-states, demanding from each earth and water. To give
-earth to the great king was to acknowledge him as ruler of
-their land, to give water was to own that he was monarch
-of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the states were afraid to refuse, and sent the earth
-and water which Darius demanded, but among these was
-neither Athens nor Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>So indignant were these two cities that a barbarian, as
-they called Darius, should send such a demand to the free
-States of Greece, that they treated his heralds with scant
-courtesy. The Athenians flung the messenger who came to
-their city into a deep pit, while he who went to Sparta was
-tossed into a well and told that there he would find the earth
-and water that his king desired.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring of 490 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Darius sent the army and fleet
-that he had assembled, across the Ægean Sea to the island of
-Euboea. Here there was a city named Eretria, whose inhabitants
-had shared in the destruction of Sardis. The
-Persians plundered the city and took its chief citizens
-prisoners, loading them with chains.</p>
-
-<p>Flushed with victory, the army then crossed over to
-Attica and landed near the plain of Marathon. There where</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">The mountains look on Marathon,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And Marathon looks on the sea,’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">a great battle was fought between the Greeks and the
-Persians.</p>
-
-<p>Hippias, the tyrant who had fled from Athens many years
-before, had been living under the protection of Darius and
-was now with the Persian army. It is said that it was he
-who had advised the enemy to land at Marathon.</p>
-
-<p>The army of Darius was much larger than that of the
-Athenians, for it was one hundred thousand strong, while
-the Greeks numbered only about ten thousand trained
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">133</span></p>
-
-<p>The Greeks were commanded by ten generals. If they
-did not agree how to attack the enemy or how to defend
-themselves, they consulted one of the archons called the
-polemarch, or commander-in-chief. The polemarch at this
-time was Callimachus. But the glory of the victory of
-Marathon belongs not to Callimachus but to the general
-Miltiades.</p>
-
-<p>It was Miltiades who had urged the Greeks to break up the
-bridge of boats at the Danube and to leave Darius to his fate,
-and he had ever rebelled against the lordship of the Persian
-king. He had done all he could to encourage the Ionian
-revolt, and when it was crushed he fled to Athens, to which
-city he belonged.</p>
-
-<p>When the Persians landed at Marathon the ten Greek
-generals met together to decide how best they might defend
-their country. Five of them, among whom Miltiades was
-the most urgent, wished to march at once to Marathon
-to attack the enemy. But the other five were more timid,
-and said that it would be better to wait until they were
-joined by the other Greek States before they risked a battle.</p>
-
-<p>Then Miltiades rose in the council of war to beg
-Callimachus to give his vote for war without delay. So
-sure was he of success that his eagerness decided the polemarch
-to give his vote as Miltiades wished. Thus it was
-settled that the army should march to Marathon without
-delay.</p>
-
-<p>At this time an army was usually drawn up for battle in
-three divisions—the right wing, the left wing, and the centre.</p>
-
-<p>On the field of Marathon, Miltiades made his wings as deep
-as possible, but as his army was small, this left his centre
-less strong than that of the enemy.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">134</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLI">CHAPTER XLI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF MARATHON</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">While</span> the council of war was being held, a youth named
-Philippides was on his way to Sparta to beg the citizens to
-hasten to the help of their country. Philippides was sometimes
-called by his friends Pheidippides.</p>
-
-<p>As Philippides sped on his errand a strange adventure
-befell him, for it is told that he met the great god Pan:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘There, in the cool of a cleft, sat he—majestical Pan.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Ivy drooped wanton, kissed his head, moss cushioned his hoof,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">All the great God was good in the eyes grave-kindly—the curl</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Carved on the bearded cheek, amused at a mortal’s awe,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">As under the human trunk, the goat thighs grand I saw.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Halt, Pheidippides!” halt I did, my brain in a whirl;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Hither to me; why pale in my presence?” he gracious began.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The young Athenian was too amazed to answer, he but
-gazed at the god in silence. Then Pan asked why he was no
-longer worshipped in Athens, and promised that he would
-fight among the ranks of the Athenians against Persia, so
-that henceforth they would worship him in gratitude for
-his help.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent36">‘Test Pan, trust me!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Go bid Athens take heart, laugh Persia to scorn; have faith</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">In the temples and tombs. Go say to Athens, “The Goat-God saith;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">When Persia—so much as strews not the soil—is flung under the sea,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Then praise Pan who fought in the ranks with your most and least,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Goat-thigh to greaved-thigh, made one cause with the free and the bold.”’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">As a pledge the god then gave to Philippides a handful of
-a herb called fennel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">135</span></p>
-
-<p>The youth then sped on as before until he reached
-Sparta. But although the Spartans said they were willing
-to fight, they could not march until the moon was full, for
-their religious rites forbade that they should.</p>
-
-<p>So Philippides, having done his errand, hastened back to
-Athens and told the citizens all that had befallen him.</p>
-
-<p>Glad that the god had promised his aid the Athenians at
-once set out on their march to Marathon. Here they were
-joined by a force of one thousand men from the little town
-of Plataea. They came to show their gratitude to the
-Athenians who had sent help to them when they were
-attacked by their enemies.</p>
-
-<p>From their camp on a hill above the plain of Marathon,
-the Greeks looked down upon the vast army of the Persians.
-For several days no battle was fought, the Persians being
-unable to attack the Athenians without danger as they were
-on the hill.</p>
-
-<p>At length Miltiades, whom the other nine generals were
-willing to follow, resolved to wait no longer. He ordered
-his men to advance at a sharp run down the hill and to charge
-the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>When they had started, the soldiers could not stop themselves.
-Quicker and quicker they ran, until, when they
-reached the plain, they crashed into the Persian army with
-tremendous force.</p>
-
-<p>The shock was so great that the enemy gave way before
-it and was driven by the Athenians toward the sea or
-toward a small marsh that lay at one end of the plain.</p>
-
-<p>But while both wings of the Greek army were victorious,
-the centre, which was weak, would have been beaten, had
-not Miltiades seen the danger and called back those who were
-pursuing the scattered Persian wings. Only after a fierce
-struggle was the centre of the Persian army also driven to
-the shore in utter confusion.</p>
-
-<p>Those who escaped the sword of the Athenians tried to
-reach their ships, but seven of the vessels had been seized by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">136</span>
-the victors. In the struggle on the shore, Callimachus the
-polemarch was slain.</p>
-
-<p>The battle of Marathon was won, and the glory of the
-victory was due to the prowess and skill of Miltiades.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner was the victory certain, than the whole army
-cried that Philippides should race once again, but this time
-to the Acropolis, to tell Athens that by the help of Pan she
-was indeed saved.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘So Pheidippides flung down his shield,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Ran like fire once more; and the space ’twixt the Fennel-field</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And Athens was stubble again, a field which a fire runs through,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Till in he broke; “Rejoice, we conquer.” Like wine through clay</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Joy in his blood bursting his heart, he died—the bliss!...</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">So is Pheidippides happy for ever, the noble, strong man</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Who could race like a god, bear the face of a god, whom a god loved so well.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">He saw the land saved he had helped to save and was suffered to tell</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Such tidings, yet never decline, but gloriously as he began</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">So to end gloriously—once to shout, thereafter be mute:</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">“Athens is saved!” Pheidippides dies in the shout for his meed.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div id="if_i_136" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_136.jpg" width="1807" height="2501" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">They crashed into the Persian army with tremendous force</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">137</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLII">CHAPTER XLII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">MILTIADES SAILS TO THE ISLAND OF PAROS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Until</span> the Greeks won their great victory at Marathon, in
-490 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, they had always feared the Persians. Now their
-fear was forgotten. They had still a long struggle before the
-Persians were banished from their land, but, inspired by
-the memory of Marathon, the Greeks fought bravely and
-were sure always that they would be the victors. ‘It was
-as though on the day of Marathon the gods had said to the
-Athenians, “Go on and prosper.”’</p>
-
-<p>Among those who fought on this famous field was
-Themistocles. He was young then and fought in the ranks,
-but he was yet to become one of the greatest men that
-Athens ever knew. Aristides too was there, of whom as of
-Themistocles there are many things to tell; Æschylus, the
-great tragic poet, also bore arms at Marathon.</p>
-
-<p>When the battle was over, it was found that the Athenians
-had lost only one hundred and ninety-two men, while of the
-Persians six thousand four hundred lay dead upon the field.
-In spite of this the army of the Persians was still large enough
-to attack the unwalled city of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after the battle a bright shield was hung on one of
-the heights of the city, and it was said that a traitor had
-signalled to the enemy that now was the time to attack her.
-But Miltiades saw the light as well as the Persians, and
-guessing what it meant, he took his army back to Athens by
-a forced march. He arrived in time to see the fleet of the
-enemy as it approached the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>But when the Persian general saw that he need not hope<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">138</span>
-to take the city unawares, he did not venture to risk another
-battle. An army already flushed with victory would soon
-scatter his dejected troops. So he ordered the fleet to sail
-for Asia.</p>
-
-<p>While Miltiades was making a forced march back to
-Athens, Aristides was left at Marathon with a band of
-soldiers to guard the prisoners and the plunder, for his
-honesty was already well known.</p>
-
-<p>Neither he himself touched any of the treasures of the
-Persian camp, nor did he allow his followers to plunder.
-Callias, the torchbearer, ‘most cruel and impious of men,’
-did, it is true, seize a treasure, but he did so unknown to
-Aristides. For one of the Persians, thinking Callias was of
-noble rank and hoping to win his favour, fell at his feet,
-and then, rising, took his hand and led him to a ditch in
-which a large quantity of gold had been hidden.</p>
-
-<p>Callias seized the treasure, then lest the Persian should
-tell what had happened, he slew him.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans who had promised to help to fight against
-their country’s foe did not forget to march to Marathon when
-the moon was full. They even marched one hundred and
-fifty miles in three days, but in spite of this they reached the
-battlefield too late to share in the victory.</p>
-
-<p>A mound was raised over the Athenians who had perished,
-about half a mile from the sea. If you go to where</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘The mountains look on Marathon,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And Marathon looks on the sea,’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0">you may see it still.</p>
-
-<p>After the victory, Miltiades was the hero of Athens.
-He knew that the citizens would grant what he chose to
-ask, so he begged for a fleet of seventy ships. He knew of a
-land where gold and treasures were to be had in abundance.
-Thither would he sail and return to enrich the city.</p>
-
-<p>The fleet was entrusted to him, but Miltiades did not sail
-to the wonderful land of which he had told, but, so it is said,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">139</span>
-to the island of Paros. Here in the capital city, which was
-also called Paros, dwelt a citizen with whom the Athenian
-had a quarrel. To punish him, Miltiades laid siege to the
-town, but again and again his attacks were repulsed. Then
-one day as he was on his way to the temple of Demeter,
-Miltiades was seized with sudden panic. In his haste to
-leave the sacred grove he leaped over a fence, and in doing
-so he hurt his thigh.</p>
-
-<p>When he returned to Athens he was no longer in favour
-with the people whom he had deceived. Wounded as he
-was, he was carried into court on a couch and was condemned
-to pay a heavy fine. But he died before he had
-collected the money.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Darius heard how his army had been defeated
-at Marathon. In his wrath he vowed that he would never
-rest until he had conquered Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Three years he spent, preparing once again to invade
-Europe. His heralds were sent all over his wide dominions
-to gather together a great army. Horses and corn too the
-king demanded should be sent ‘much more than before.’</p>
-
-<p>But the great king never carried out his plan of again
-attacking Greece, for he died in 485 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, after having
-reigned for thirty-six years. His son Xerxes succeeded to
-the throne of Persia.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">140</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIII">CHAPTER XLIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ARISTIDES IS OSTRACISED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Four</span> years after the battle of Marathon, Themistocles and
-Aristides were the two chief citizens in Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles wished to make Athens a great sea-power,
-for he was sure that some day the Persians would return.
-He believed that if the Athenians were able to destroy the
-Persian fleet, all would be well. The land forces of the
-enemy would be powerless to conquer Greece.</p>
-
-<p>But if Athens was to have a better fleet, Themistocles
-knew that she must first have a better harbour. The one
-that the Athenians used was at Phalerum, where the sea
-almost reached the city. It was only an open roadstead,
-a place where ships might ride at anchor, which would be of
-little use to protect vessels from an enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles knew a better site than Phalerum, where a
-strong harbour might be built. This was the rocky peninsula
-of Piraeus, which was about four miles from Athens.</p>
-
-<p>By his advice three harbours were made here, into
-which the largest vessels could enter. Yet the opening to
-all three was such that it could be closed easily with chains
-and logs, so as to prevent the entrance of an enemy. The
-Piraeus soon grew into a large town, for those who did not
-own land flocked to the port in the hope of finding work.</p>
-
-<p>Not only did Themistocles persuade the Athenians to
-fortify the Piraeus, but he also made Athens a great sea-power.</p>
-
-<p>At this time there was money to spare in the public
-treasury, for a rich bed of silver had been discovered in an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">141</span>
-old mine. This money was to be divided among the
-Athenians. Themistocles was brave enough to risk the anger
-of the people by proposing that it should not be given to
-them, but should be used to build ships.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were eager to conquer the people of
-Ægina who for years had harried their coasts, and they
-agreed to his proposal more readily than Themistocles had
-dared to hope. With the money the State built two hundred
-ships, so the people were able to conquer their enemy and
-were well content. But it was Themistocles alone who
-wished to prepare Greece for a great Persian invasion. Of
-this the Athenians had no fear.</p>
-
-<p>When the ships were ready, Themistocles saw that the
-soldiers must be trained to manage the vessels, to become
-indeed good sailors.</p>
-
-<p>A wise Greek named Plato tells us that Themistocles
-‘from steady soldiers turned the Greeks into mariners and
-seamen, tossed about the sea, and gave occasion for the
-reproach against him, that he took away from the Athenians
-the spear and the shield, and bound them to the bench and
-the oar.’</p>
-
-<p>Aristides and Themistocles were rivals. They were
-brought up together, and when they were boys they usually
-took different sides, just as they continued to do when they
-were men.</p>
-
-<p>If you could have watched the boys in school or in the
-playground you would have seen at once how different they
-were. Themistocles was impetuous and bold, artful too, if
-by being so he could gain his own ends. Aristides was gentle
-and retiring, honest as the day, in work as in play.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was not fond of lessons nor yet of games.
-But he knew a great deal even as a boy of what was going
-on in the city and in the State, and he was eager to
-know more.</p>
-
-<p>While Aristides and his comrades were laughing and
-shouting over their game of quoits, Themistocles was walking<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">142</span>
-up and down alone in a quiet corner of the playground. He
-was rehearsing a speech, which he would soon begin to recite
-aloud.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes, in more friendly mood, he called his playfellows
-together and delivered his speech to the crowd of
-little critics. It was usually about the affairs of State—about
-politics, as we would say.</p>
-
-<p>His schoolmaster saw that although the lad did not love
-lessons, he could be an earnest student if he were interested
-in a subject. One day he said to him, ‘You, my boy, will
-be nothing small, but great, one way or other, for good or
-else for bad.’</p>
-
-<p>From his boyhood Themistocles was ambitious, and when
-he grew up he accepted bribes, if by doing so he thought he
-could reach a higher position in the State.</p>
-
-<p>When he became a judge he showed favour to his friends,
-even though to do so was unjust. One of them once said
-to him that he would be a good judge, if he would give
-sentence ‘without respect of persons.’ But in no way
-abashed, Themistocles answered, ‘May I never sit upon the
-seat of judgment where my friends shall not receive more
-favour from me than strangers.’</p>
-
-<p>Aristides was in this, as in other things, the opposite of
-his rival, for he was an honourable and upright judge. He
-was ever ready to please or to help a friend, but to do so he
-would stoop to no act of injustice. Once he accused one of
-his enemies of a crime, and the people, with whom Aristides
-was at that time a favourite, wished to condemn the man
-without listening to his defence. But this Aristides would
-not allow.</p>
-
-<p>When he himself was judge, two people came before him,
-one of whom was an enemy of his own. The other, knowing
-this, felt sure that he would win his suit, and instead of telling
-of what he accused the man, he began to remind Aristides
-that it was an enemy of his own who stood before him. But
-Aristides bade him be silent. ‘Tell me not,’ he said, ‘what<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">143</span>
-injury he has done to me, but what harm you have suffered
-from him, for I am trying your cause and not my own.’</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles not only took bribes, but he often tried to
-make others accept them. Many of the Greeks did so, for
-they could not easily resist gold, but Aristides was never one
-of those who took money from Themistocles, or indeed from
-any one.</p>
-
-<p>When Themistocles urged the Athenians to increase their
-fleet, Aristides opposed him with all his strength. And he
-did this, not because he disliked his rival, but because he
-believed that it would be better for the State to increase her
-army rather than to have a powerful navy.</p>
-
-<p>About this, as about other important affairs, the two great
-men disagreed so often and so long, that the people thought
-the city would be governed better if one of the leaders was
-ostracised.</p>
-
-<p>So they assembled in the market-place, where each was
-given an oyster-shell on which to write the name of the man
-he wished to be banished from Athens.</p>
-
-<p>As the citizens were busy writing on their shells, a rough
-country fellow who could not write came up to Aristides
-and, handing him his shell, asked him to put down the name
-of Aristides. The countryman did not know that he was
-speaking to Aristides himself.</p>
-
-<p>‘Has Aristides done you an injury?’ asked the Athenian,
-as he took the shell.</p>
-
-<p>‘None at all,’ answered the fellow, ‘neither know I the
-man, but I am tired of everywhere hearing him called the
-Just.’ Aristides did not answer the ignorant countryman,
-but he quietly wrote his own name upon the shell and handed
-it back to its owner.</p>
-
-<p>The necessary number of votes being recorded against
-him he was ostracised. As he left the city he lifted up his
-hands to heaven and prayed that the Athenians ‘might
-never have any occasion which should constrain them to
-remember Aristides.’ And this he did although it was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">144</span>
-bitter thing to him to leave the city that he loved so well.
-In his absence he knew that Themistocles would be able to
-carry out his plans unopposed, and this added to his pain.</p>
-
-<p>But Themistocles was wiser than Aristides when he urged
-the Athenians to increase their fleet. For although the great
-king Darius was dead, Xerxes his son was preparing to
-invade Greece as his father had hoped to do. And without
-a large and well-equipped fleet, the Athenians would have
-been unable to meet the Persians at sea.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">145</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIV">CHAPTER XLIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE DREAM OF XERXES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Xerxes,</span> the new ruler of Persia, looked every inch a king.
-He was tall and handsome, standing head and shoulders
-above the great warriors he led to battle. But although he
-looked a king among men, in character he was most unkingly,
-for he was both weak and foolish. It is true that he was
-sometimes good-natured, but it was not wise for his people
-to trust his temper, for he was often seized by sudden fits
-of rage, when he would do deeds of terrible cruelty.</p>
-
-<p>In 483 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Xerxes put down a revolt in Egypt. Then
-his captain and kinsman, Mardonius, begged the king to go
-to Greece to avenge the Persian defeat at Marathon.</p>
-
-<p>‘O king,’ said Mardonius, ‘it is not seemly that the
-Athenians, who have done much wrong to the Persians,
-should not suffer for their doings.... And now, will any
-one dare to face thee, O king, with thy great army from Asia
-and all thy ships? Sure I am that the Greeks are not so
-desperate. But if I am wrong and in their rash folly they
-come out to battle, they will find that of all men we are the
-bravest.’</p>
-
-<p>To tempt Xerxes yet farther to do as he wished,
-Mardonius told him how fair a country Europe was, how
-rich in fruit and trees. ‘Such a country,’ said the subtle
-flatterer, ‘should belong to none save to thee, O king.’
-Mardonius hoped that if Greece was made a province of
-Persia, he himself would become her ruler.</p>
-
-<p>But while Mardonius urged one thing, Artabanus the
-king’s uncle urged another.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">146</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Thou, O king,’ said Artabanus, ‘art going against men ... who
-are said to be most brave and strong both by sea
-and land. And it is right I should say why we ought to fear
-them. Thou sayest that thou wilt make a bridge over the
-Hellespont and carry thine army through Europe against
-Hellas: and so we may be beaten either by land or by sea
-or by both; for the men are said to be strong, and it would
-seem that they are, if by themselves alone the Athenians
-destroyed the great host that landed at Marathon.’</p>
-
-<p>Now Xerxes was, as I told you, a timid king. So as he
-listened now to one, now to another of his counsellors, he did
-not know what to do. First he thought that he would go
-to Greece, then he thought that he would not go. One night,
-while he still hesitated, the king had a strange dream. In
-his dream a man fair and tall stood over him, who said,
-‘Dost thou repent, O Persian, from leading an army against
-Hellas, when thou hast charged thy people to gather their
-hosts together? Thou doest not well in thy change of
-counsel, neither is there any one who will forgive thee. Go
-thou on the road in which thou didst purpose to walk on the
-day that is past.’</p>
-
-<p>When Xerxes awoke he tried to thrust away the memory
-of his dream, for he now wished to follow the advice of
-Artabanus and stay at home.</p>
-
-<p>But the next night, as he slept, he saw the same fair, tall
-man, who chided him for putting aside his words ‘as though
-they had never been spoken.’ ‘But be thou sure,’ he said,
-‘that if thou set not out forthwith, as thou hast become great
-and mighty in a little while, so in a little while shalt thou be
-made low.’</p>
-
-<p>The king awoke from this second dream in sudden fear,
-and springing from his bed, he bade his servants bring
-Artabanus to him without delay.</p>
-
-<p>When his uncle stood before him, Xerxes told his vision
-in feverish haste.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now if it be a god who sends it,’ said the king, ‘and if it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">147</span>
-must be that an army go against Hellas, then the same vision
-will come to thee.’</p>
-
-<p>The foolish king then begged Artabanus to put on his
-clothes, to sit upon his throne, and afterwards to lie down
-upon his bed.</p>
-
-<p>At first Artabanus refused to do as the king wished. For
-he said, ‘If the vision must come, it ought to come to me no
-more if I put on thy dress than if I wear my own, and if I
-rest on thy couch than if I sleep on my own. For that which
-comes to thee in thy sleep, whatever it be, is surely not so
-silly as to think on seeing me that it looks upon thee, judging
-by thy vesture.’</p>
-
-<p>But at length Artabanus was persuaded to do as the king
-wished, and lo! when he had lain down on the royal couch,
-‘the dream of Xerxes came and stood over him, saying,
-“Neither now nor hereafter shalt thou go unscathed, if
-thou seekest to turn aside that which must be.”’ Then the
-dream appeared as though it were about to sear out his eyes
-with hot irons.</p>
-
-<p>Artabanus awoke in great fear, and leaping from the couch
-he told Xerxes what he had seen and heard. From that
-night Artabanus was as ready as Mardonius to urge the king
-to invade Greece.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">148</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLV">CHAPTER XLV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">XERXES ORDERS THE HELLESPONT TO BE SCOURGED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the autumn of 481 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Xerxes led his vast hosts to Sardis.
-His warriors were of many different races, and each was clad
-in the dress of the country from which he came. Each,
-too, was armed with his own weapon, and each talked his
-own language. So you can picture to yourself with what a
-strange army Xerxes set out to conquer Greece.</p>
-
-<p>From Sardis he sent heralds, with an interpreter, into
-Greece, to demand from the people earth and water, the signs
-of their subjection to the great king of Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was so angry with the interpreter, who was
-a barbarian, for daring to utter the demands of Xerxes in the
-Greek language, that he ordered him to be put to death.</p>
-
-<p>Another messenger was then sent by Xerxes, and he
-brought with him gold to bribe the Athenians to join the
-Persians. Him also Themistocles punished.</p>
-
-<p>Now that danger was near, the Athenians recalled
-Aristides from exile. They were afraid lest he should join
-the Persians, for they knew that if he did so, many of his
-friends would go over to the enemy with him. But it was a
-needless fear, and the citizens might well have trusted the
-exile not to betray his country. Even before he knew that
-his banishment was over, Aristides had begun to stir up the
-Greeks that were with him to fight against the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles, too, was using all his influence to persuade
-the different States to lay aside the quarrels they had with
-one another and to fight together against the force that was
-coming to invade their land.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">149</span></p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Xerxes, to avoid sailing across the Hellespont
-with his vast army, ordered a bridge to be built across it.
-But soon after the bridge was finished, a violent storm
-dashed it into fragments.</p>
-
-<p>When Xerxes heard of the disaster, his cruel and childish
-temper was roused. He ordered the engineers who had
-planned the bridge to be beheaded, and that was a cruel act.
-He also commanded that the Hellespont should be scourged
-with three hundred stripes and that a pair of fetters should
-be cast into the sea, and these were foolish acts. ‘He sent
-branders, too, as some say, to brand the Hellespont; and he
-charged them to rebuke the water and cry unto it, “O bitter
-water, thus doth the king punish thee, because without wrong
-from him thou hast done him harm.”’</p>
-
-<p>Before long a new bridge was built, with hedges planted
-on either side, so that the horses as they passed across might
-not be frightened by seeing the water.</p>
-
-<p>First of the great host came a thousand gallant Persian
-troops, followed by a thousand spearmen. The points of
-their lances were turned downward; on the handles, which
-were held aloft, shone golden pomegranates.</p>
-
-<p>Ten sacred horses, with splendid trappings, stepped
-behind the spearmen, while after the horses came a chariot,
-dedicated to Zeus, and drawn by eight white horses. No
-driver was allowed to mount the sacred chariot, he might
-only walk behind, holding the reins in his hands.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes himself was in another chariot, surrounded by a
-thousand guards, bearing spears, upon which glistened
-apples of gold. Ten thousand of the king’s own bodyguard
-were named the Immortals, for, if one of their number was
-slain or if one died, his place was at once filled, so that
-the number of the Immortals might never become less.</p>
-
-<p>As I told you, the Persian army was made up of many
-different tribes.</p>
-
-<p>‘Æthiopians from beyond Egypt were there, clad in
-leopard skins, and carrying bows made of the central rib of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">150</span>
-the palm leaf, while their arrows were reeds tipped with
-sharp fragments of stone. They carried as well spears,
-pointed with gazelles’ horns or knotted clubs. Half their
-body they painted white and half red before going into
-battle.’ Some had no arms but only a lasso and a long
-knife; others bore staves that had had their points hardened
-in the fire.</p>
-
-<p>From Caucasus came wild tribes that had no armour to
-protect their bodies, and only wooden hats to guard their
-heads.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes’s army was indeed vast, but with so many half-clad
-and but poorly armed barbarians in his ranks, he
-would, had he been wise, have feared to face the small but
-well-armed and well-trained forces of the Greeks.</p>
-
-<p>On the shore of the Hellespont a throne of white stone
-or marble was placed, and here Xerxes took his seat to
-watch his army cross the bridge which led from Asia into
-Europe.</p>
-
-<p>But before the vast host began to move ‘Xerxes poured
-wine from a golden cup into the sea and prayed to the Sun
-that no harm might happen to him, which might prevent
-him from conquering all Europe. Then he threw the cup
-into the Hellespont with a golden goblet and a Persian
-dagger.’</p>
-
-<p>It is said that the king called himself a happy man as he
-watched the countless numbers of his troops crossing the
-bridge. But soon after Artabanus was amazed to see him
-burst into tears.</p>
-
-<p>‘O king,’ he said, ‘thou doest strange things; even now
-thou didst call thyself happy and yet thou weepest.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Thought came upon me and sorrow for the shortness of
-the life of man,’ answered Xerxes, ‘because after a hundred
-years, of all this great host not one shall remain alive.’</p>
-
-<p>When the army had crossed the bridge, it marched on
-toward the plain of Thessaly, while the fleet, sailing round the
-south-east point of the same country, anchored near the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">151</span>
-promontory of Magnesia. Here it was as near to the army
-as it was possible for it to be. Not long after the fleet had
-anchored, a sudden storm arose, and for three days did much
-damage to the ships.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks meanwhile had been preparing to fight the
-invaders. They had sent spies to Sardis to find out, not
-only the numbers of the Persian host, but its mettle.</p>
-
-<p>As it chanced, the spies were captured and were on the
-point of being put to death, when Xerxes ordered them to be
-brought before him.</p>
-
-<p>When they stood in his presence, he demanded why they
-had ventured into the camp of the enemy. On hearing the
-reason he bade an officer show them the strength of his army
-and then send them back unharmed to their own country,
-‘For,’ said the king, ‘if the spies had been killed, the Greeks
-could not have heard beforehand of all my great might, yet it
-would do them but little hurt to slay three men. But now
-will I have no trouble by marching against them, when the
-spies have already told of my mighty army.’</p>
-
-<p>So confident was the king that he would conquer the
-enemy without difficulty, that when vessels filled with corn
-sailed past his fleet on the way to Athens, he would not allow
-any of his ships to pursue them.</p>
-
-<p>‘Whither are they sailing?’ asked Xerxes when the corn
-ships were pointed out to him.</p>
-
-<p>‘To thy enemies, O king, laden with corn,’ answered his
-anxious councillors.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why, we are going thither also,’ said the king. ‘What
-harm do they do by taking corn for me?’</p>
-
-<p>Now that the Persians were actually at hand the Spartans
-and Athenians summoned the Greek states to a council of
-war to be held at the Isthmus of Corinth. But some of the
-states were afraid, and instead of attending the council they
-sent earth and water to Xerxes.</p>
-
-<p>Thessaly, in the north, would be the first to suffer from
-the invading army. So a Greek force was sent to the Pass<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">152</span>
-of Tempe, between Mount Olympus and Mount Ossa, to try
-to stop the advance of the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>But there were other ways by which the enemy could
-slip past the Greeks, so after a time they determined to withdraw
-from Thessaly. The northern people, being thus left
-defenceless, hastened to submit to Xerxes while there was
-still time.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">153</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVI">CHAPTER XLVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">‘THE BRAVEST MEN OF ALL HELLAS’</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Through</span> the Pass of Thermopylae lay the entrance from the
-north to the south of Greece. It was this pass that the
-Greeks determined to hold against the Persians when they
-withdrew from the Pass of Tempe.</p>
-
-<p>The Pass of Thermopylae was about a mile long and the
-narrow road ran between the mountains and the sea. At each
-end of the pass the mountains were sheer cliffs, descending
-so close to the sea that the only pathway was a mere strip
-of sand.</p>
-
-<p>To enter the pass, at either end, it was necessary to go
-through a narrow entrance called Pylae or the Gates. In the
-road between the Pylae or Gates there were hot springs.
-The Greek word for hot is thermos, and that is how the
-pass came to be named Thermopylae or Hot-Gates.</p>
-
-<p>At the narrowest part of the pass stood an old broken-down
-wall, and this wall was repaired by the order of
-Leonidas, King of Sparta, that it might form a defence
-against the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>A short distance from the mainland lay the island of
-Euboea, the strait between being at one place only two and
-a half miles in breadth. Here the Greek fleet took up its
-position under the command of the Spartan Eurybiades,
-Themistocles being second in command. Themistocles
-would have held the chief command had not some of the
-States refused to serve under an Athenian admiral.</p>
-
-<p>The land army was led by Leonidas, one of the kings of
-Sparta. But because this was now the month of June<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">154</span>
-480 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the time when the Olympic games were held, many
-of the Spartans did not march with Leonidas to Thermopylae.
-For although the country was in danger, the games, being
-also religious rites, must be held as usual, and numbers of
-brave soldiers stayed at home to take part in the festival.</p>
-
-<p>When Leonidas set out on his march to defend the
-entrance to the south of Greece, he had with him only three
-hundred Spartans. On the way to Thermopylae he was
-joined by troops from other States, so that when he reached
-the pass he was at the head of seven thousand men.</p>
-
-<p>Now there was only one narrow hill track by which the
-enemy could reach the rear of the Spartans, and strangers to
-the country were little likely to find it. Yet Leonidas bade
-the Phocians, who lived in the district, guard well this narrow
-footpath. He would leave nothing to chance.</p>
-
-<p>When Xerxes with his great army reached Thermopylae,
-he was told that it was in the hands of a small band of
-Spartans, under king Leonidas. The tidings did not disturb
-the Persian monarch, he was sure that the Spartans
-would soon leave their post, when they saw his great army.</p>
-
-<p>But the Spartans did not retreat, although they could
-see plainly the vast hordes that had come against them.</p>
-
-<p>By and by Xerxes grew impatient and sent a horseman to
-reconnoitre. The horseman could not see the Spartan camp,
-for it was hidden by the old wall that had been repaired, but
-he could see the men themselves without the wall. Their arms
-were piled up against it in stacks, as though no enemy was
-near. Some of the soldiers were wrestling with each other,
-others were combing their hair, as if they were getting ready
-for a festival rather than for a battle.</p>
-
-<p>The Persian was astonished at what he saw. As the
-Spartans took no notice of him, he stayed to count their
-number, and then rode quietly back to tell Xerxes all that
-he had seen.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes, too, was amazed. Why should soldiers trouble
-to comb their hair before fighting? Why should they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">155</span>
-wrestle with one another as though no danger lay before
-them? He thought that they were doing ‘childish and silly
-things,’ for he did not understand that this was the Spartans’
-way of getting ready either to die or to slay their enemies.</p>
-
-<p>In the Persian camp was an exiled King of Sparta, named
-Demaratus. Xerxes sent for him to ask why his countrymen
-wasted their time, wrestling and combing their long curls.</p>
-
-<p>‘These men,’ answered Demaratus, ‘are here to fight for
-the pass; and when they have to face a mortal danger, their
-custom is to comb and deck out their hair. Be sure then,
-that if thou canst conquer these and all the rest who remain
-behind in Sparta, there is no other nation which shall dare
-to raise a hand against thee, for now art thou face to face with
-the bravest men of all Hellas.’</p>
-
-<p>But Xerxes laughed at the thought of a small band of
-men like the Spartans daring to fight against his great army.
-He dismissed Demaratus and sent to demand that the Spartans
-should give up their arms. But the only answer that
-Leonidas sent back was to bid the king ‘to come and take
-them.’ It was plain that the Spartans did not fear the
-enemy. When one of them was told that the Persian host
-was so numerous that ‘the flight of their arrows would
-darken the light of the sun,’ he answered carelessly, ‘So
-much the better, we shall fight in the shade.’</p>
-
-<p>For four days Xerxes waited, expecting the Spartans to
-flee, but on the fifth day they were still there, wrestling and
-combing their hair as before.</p>
-
-<p>Then the king sent a band of soldiers to the enemy’s
-camp, bidding it take these bold Spartans alive and bring
-them bound into his presence.</p>
-
-<p>But the Persians could not push their way through the
-narrow gates which were guarded by the enemy. They were
-not only kept at bay, they were thrust back again and again,
-and many of their number were slain by the long spears of
-the Spartans.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">156</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVII">CHAPTER XLVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF THERMOPYLAE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Xerxes</span> looked on while his soldiers fought at the entrance
-to the pass. And they did their best, for they were unwilling
-that their king should see them beaten back by men
-who had spent their days in games or in bedecking their hair.
-But they could not stand against the fierce attacks of the
-Spartans, and at length, when many of their number had been
-slain, they withdrew.</p>
-
-<p>The king then ordered his own chosen bodyguard, the
-ten thousand famous Immortals, to advance against the
-gallant defenders of the pass.</p>
-
-<p>Even at the approach of these renowned warriors, the
-Spartans did not waver. They pretended to flee, only to
-turn and slay the barbarians who had followed them into
-the pass. At length after a furious conflict, the Immortals
-were forced to give way and return to their camp.</p>
-
-<p>Three times as he watched his Immortals, Xerxes sprang
-from his throne, thinking that all was lost. But the next
-day he sent them against the foe once more, for now he
-believed that the Spartans would be too weary to fight.</p>
-
-<p>But Leonidas was careful of the little band he commanded.
-It was easy to hold the pass with only a small
-number of men. As each company grew tired, the king
-ordered it to withdraw and sent a fresh one to take its place.
-Soon the entrance to the pass was choked with the dead
-bodies of the barbarians.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the most valiant of Xerxes’ warriors were next
-sent against the enemy. But they were cowed by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">157</span>
-bravery of the Spartans, and as they saw their comrades
-falling around them, they turned to flee. Then their officers
-drove them back with lashes.</p>
-
-<p>For two days, the terrible slaughter never ceased, and
-Xerxes was almost ready to leave the pass to its brave
-defenders, so hopeless seemed the task of taking it.</p>
-
-<p>But that night, a Greek named Ephialtes came to the
-great king, and for a large sum of money, he offered to show
-the Persians a path which led over the hill down to the pass
-of Thermopylae. The path was the tiny track that was
-guarded by the Phocians.</p>
-
-<p>The offer of the traitor was at once accepted, and at midnight
-Xerxes sent his officer Hydarmes, at the head of his
-Immortals, to follow Ephialtes.</p>
-
-<p>‘All night long they followed the path with the mountains
-on the right and on the left. The day was dawning when
-they reached the peak of the mountain, and there the
-thousand Phocians were keeping watch and guarding the
-pathway. While the Persians were climbing the hill, the
-Phocians knew not of their coming, for the whole hill was
-covered with oak trees, but they knew what had happened
-when the Persians reached the summit. Not a breath of
-wind was stirring, and they heard the trampling of their
-feet as they trod on the fallen oak leaves.’</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had they heard than the arrows of the
-Immortals were pouring in upon them. They fell back,
-leaving the pathway free, while they hastily put on their
-armour and prepared to fight to the death. They did not
-dream that the Immortals had no wish to fight with them.
-But so it was, for the Persians took no more notice of them,
-but finding the hill path free, they sped downward to the pass
-to take the Spartans in the rear. The Phocians were left
-alone on the heights almost before they were aware.</p>
-
-<p>Leonidas had heard of the treachery of Ephialtes soon
-after the traitor left the Persian king. He knew that to try
-to hold the pass now that he would be attacked in the rear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">158</span>
-was certain death. Yet the brave king did not hesitate, for
-his orders had been to hold the pass at all costs.</p>
-
-<p>Nor did he waver as he remembered the ominous words
-of the oracle, ‘Sparta must be overthrown or one of her
-kings must perish.’ It seemed that he was the king who was
-doomed to die, but what of that if his country was saved?</p>
-
-<p>He resolved that to Sparta alone should belong the glory
-of the defence of Thermopylae. So while there was still
-time, he sent away all his allies, keeping with him only his
-three hundred Spartans, seven hundred Thespians who
-refused to leave him, and four hundred Boeotians, lest they
-should join the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Then ‘when the sun arose, Xerxes poured out wine to
-the gods and the barbarians arose for the onset, and the
-men of Leonidas knew now that they must die.’ But they
-would die fighting, and before they were attacked in the rear
-they would do great deeds.</p>
-
-<p>Fierce and desperate was their defence, and before the
-fury of their blows the barbarians fell in heaps. Once again,
-the Persian officers, armed with whips, had to drive their
-men forward to face the small but undaunted band.</p>
-
-<p>In the confusion many of the great host of Xerxes were
-pushed into the sea, while many more were trampled to
-death by their comrades.</p>
-
-<p>So furious was the struggle, that at length the spears of
-the Spartans were broken in their hands. In a moment,
-they had seized their swords and hundreds of the Persians
-fell before their terrible thrusts.</p>
-
-<p>But now the worst that could befall the Spartans
-happened. Leonidas, their brave king Leonidas, was slain
-where he fought in the forefront of the battle. A terrible
-struggle at once began for the body of the king.</p>
-
-<p>Four times the Spartans drove back the Persians, and
-then with one tremendous effort they carried away the
-body of their king.</p>
-
-<p>It was at this moment that the Immortals, led by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">159</span>
-traitor, Ephialtes, reached the pass. The Spartans hastily
-withdrew behind the wall, which had been repaired by the
-order of their king. Here, on a hillock, ‘they defended themselves
-to the last, such as had swords using them, and the
-others resisting with their hands and teeth; till the barbarians,
-who had in part pulled down the wall and attacked
-them in front, in part had gone round and now encircled them
-upon every side, overwhelmed and buried the remnant which
-was left, beneath showers of missile weapons.’</p>
-
-<p>As you read the story of the brave defence of Thermopylae,
-you do not wonder that Leonidas and his three hundred
-Spartans have won for themselves immortal fame.</p>
-
-<p>On the hillock where the little band took their last stand,
-a stone lion was placed in honour of king Leonidas, while in
-the pass itself a pillar was erected on which were written these
-<span class="locked">words:—</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentsq">‘Go, tell the Spartans, thou that passest by,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">That here obedient to their laws we lie.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>When the battle was over, Xerxes ordered his men to
-search for the body of Leonidas. When it was found he
-ordered the head to be cut off and the body to be hung upon
-a cross.</p>
-
-<p>It was the custom of the Persians to honour the bodies of
-those who had fallen fighting bravely against them. This
-unusual and cruel treatment was but a proof of the fear the
-brave Spartan had inspired in the heart of Xerxes. Nor
-could the king forget that he had been on the point of leaving
-the pass in the hands of its brave defenders.</p>
-
-<p>Demaratus could not look at the slaughter of his countrymen
-unmoved. He had seemed to be a friend of the great
-king, yet now he longed to warn the Spartans who had
-stayed at home that the Persians were ready to march
-against them.</p>
-
-<p>But how could he send a message unknown to the
-Persians. He soon thought of a strange and less cruel way<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">160</span>
-than had Histiaeus, who, you remember, branded his secret
-on the head of his slave.</p>
-
-<p>The exiled king took a writing tablet and scraped away
-the wax on which letters were usually engraved. On the
-wood beneath he scratched the message he wished to send.
-He then poured melted wax on the top of what he had
-written, and the tablet looked as any other tablet looked.</p>
-
-<p>When it reached Sparta, the peopled studied it with
-amazement. There was a tablet, but where was the
-message? They turned it this way and that, they peered
-at it now on one side, now on another—nothing was to
-be seen.</p>
-
-<p>Then Gorgo, whom you heard of last as a little maiden
-of eight years old, gave the people advice as wise as she had
-given to her royal father long before. She was grown up
-since those days and had been married to brave king
-Leonidas.</p>
-
-<p>‘Scrape off the wax,’ she said to the people, ‘and see if
-the message lies on the wood beneath.’</p>
-
-<p>And when this was done, there stood the warning words
-of Demaratus, so that all might read.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">161</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVIII">CHAPTER XLVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF ARTEMISIUM</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">While</span> Leonidas was fighting so bravely on land,
-Themistocles was with the fleet at Artemisium. If the
-Persians passed this point and entered the Malian Gulf, they
-would be able to land troops behind Leonidas and secure the
-pass of Thermopylae without difficulty.</p>
-
-<p>But before the Persian fleet reached Artemisium, a
-sudden storm arose and dashed some of the ships upon the
-rocks, some against each other. For three days the tempest
-raged, and when at length the sea grew calm, four hundred
-ships had been destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of this disaster, the Persian fleet was still large
-enough to alarm the Greeks. When they saw it sailing off
-the north of the island of Euboea, Eurybiades, the Greek
-admiral, wished to sail away.</p>
-
-<p>But the inhabitants of the island went to Themistocles
-to beg him not to let the fleet desert them. So fearful were
-they, that they offered him thirty talents (about £5800) if
-he would use his influence to persuade the other admirals
-to stay and protect their island.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles readily took the money, and sent eight
-talents (about £1552) to Eurybiades and his colleagues to
-bribe them to remain at Euboea.</p>
-
-<p>The next night another storm arose, and again many of
-the Persian ships were scattered or dashed to pieces on the
-rocks. But when the wind fell the ships were repaired and
-the two fleets met in battle.</p>
-
-<p>The struggle was fierce and long, but though the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">162</span>
-Persians lost a greater number of ships than did the
-Greeks, yet the fleet under Eurybiades was so heavily
-damaged that even Themistocles saw that safety lay in
-retreat. At the same time tidings reached him of the
-defeat of Thermopylae, and he knew that Xerxes would soon
-be marching to the south. The fleet must hasten home to
-protect her own coasts.</p>
-
-<p>So the Greek fleet set sail down the long Euboean strait
-and did not stop until it reached the island of Salamis.
-But as they sailed, Themistocles bade the captains of the
-Athenian fleets send some of their ships to the rocks where
-the Persians would search for water.</p>
-
-<p>On these rocks Themistocles ordered to be cut in large
-letters these words, ‘Ye do wrong, O Ionians, by going against
-your fathers and bringing Hellas into slavery. If ye can,
-take our side; if ye cannot, then fight for neither. But
-if this also is impossible, at least in the battle be slack and
-lazy, remembering that ye are sprung from us and that we
-are fighting in a quarrel which ye began.’</p>
-
-<p>By these words Themistocles hoped to win the Ionians
-to his side; or, if that might not be, he hoped at least to make
-Xerxes so suspicious of them that he would be afraid to let
-them take part in the battles which had yet to be fought.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">163</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIX">CHAPTER XLIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THEMISTOCLES URGES EURYBIADES TO STAY AT
-SALAMIS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">After</span> Xerxes had secured the pass of Thermopylae, a march
-of six days would bring him to Athens. There was no army
-in his way, for the Spartans and other tribes in Peloponnesus
-were now fortifying the Isthmus of Corinth, so as to protect
-their cities from the foe.</p>
-
-<p>If the Athenians wished to save themselves they would
-have to desert their city and seek refuge elsewhere, for
-it was impossible to hold Athens against the great army that
-was marching towards her. Yet even to save their lives how
-hard it was to leave their homes, their temples, their gods!</p>
-
-<p>The oracle at Delphi was consulted, and told them that
-‘when all was lost a wooden wall should still shelter the
-Athenians.’ Some there were who believed that the oracle
-meant that if the Acropolis were fortified with timber it
-would not be taken by the Persians, and these shut themselves
-up in the citadel and refused to leave the city.</p>
-
-<p>But Themistocles knew that the only way to save the
-people was to get them away from Athens, and he used all his
-eloquence to make them willing to go. When it seemed that
-he had failed, he tried another way—he began to work upon
-their superstitious fears. He told them that Athene, their
-own goddess, had already deserted the city, and taking with
-her her pet snake had gone to the sea. He assured them
-that the ‘walls of wood,’ of which the oracle had spoken,
-were the good ships that were at Salamis, waiting to
-defeat the Persians and put their fleet to flight.</p>
-
-<p>At length his words prevailed, and the old men, women,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">164</span>
-and children were sent to the island of Salamis, while the
-fighting men joined the fleet.</p>
-
-<p>In the confusion, many faithful animals were forgotten.
-These ran along the shore, while the ships carrying the
-fugitives sailed away. One faithful dog leaped into the water
-and followed his master’s ship until it reached Salamis. But
-when he had dragged himself out of the water the poor creature
-was so exhausted that he lay down on the shore and died.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Xerxes was marching toward Athens. On
-the way he ordered a large company to break off to the west
-to seize Delphi and the sanctuary of the oracle, in which, as
-the king knew, vast treasures were kept. No Greek would
-have dared to rob the sacred temple.</p>
-
-<p>When the Delphians heard that the Persians were
-approaching, they fled to Parnassus, leaving only sixty men
-and the priest to defend the sanctuary. They did not think
-that the treasures would be stolen, for the gods would
-protect their own.</p>
-
-<p>And as soon as the barbarians were close to the city,
-strange things are said to have taken place. The sacred
-arms, which none might touch, were mysteriously carried out
-and placed in front of the temple. The sky was ablaze with
-brilliant flashes of lightning, while two great crags were
-wrenched from the heights of Mount Parnassus and fell with
-a loud crash upon the enemy. At the same time, from the
-temple of Athene a shout as of a mighty warrior was heard.</p>
-
-<p>The barbarians were stricken with terror at these strange
-sights and sounds, and they fled, pursued, so they declared,
-by two Greeks, each taller and more fearful than any mortal
-they had ever seen.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes had now reached Athens, to find the city deserted,
-save for the few who had taken refuge in the citadel. These
-defended themselves bravely, and as it was difficult to scale
-the height on which the Acropolis stood, they were able for
-a time to keep the enemy at bay.</p>
-
-<p>But at length the wooden defences, in which the people<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">165</span>
-had put their trust, were set on fire by the burning brands of
-the enemy. At the same time a band of Persian soldiers
-discovered a secret path on the north side of the citadel.
-Although it was steep, they at once began to climb, and
-before long they reached the summit and entered the citadel.
-The defenders were slain; the temples were plundered and
-burned.</p>
-
-<p>As the Greek fleet lay in the narrow strait between
-Salamis and the Attic coast, the Athenians saw smoke
-and flames rising from the burning city. They were filled
-with grief as they gazed upon the destruction of their homes
-and their temples, while their wrath burned hot against the
-destroyers.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles and the Athenians wished to stay where
-they were to await the enemy. But the other admirals
-were anxious to sail to the Isthmus of Corinth, where they
-would be within reach of the Peloponnesian army.</p>
-
-<p>A council of war was called, at which Themistocles urged
-that they should stay where they were to fight and to conquer
-the Persian fleet. He reminded the other admirals that in
-the narrow strait of Salamis the big and heavy ships of the
-Persians would have no room to move and would be captured
-without great difficulty. But no one agreed with the
-Athenian general, and the council broke up, after having
-agreed that the fleet should sail to the Isthmus of Corinth on
-the following day.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was so sure that it was a mistake to move,
-that he went alone to Eurybiades and earnestly begged him
-not to withdraw. His gravity impressed the commander,
-and he promised to recall the council to discuss the matter
-once more.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had the admirals again assembled than
-Themistocles rose, without waiting until the council was
-opened in the usual way, and again explained the urgent
-reasons why the fleet should stay to fight at Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>The Corinthian admiral was angry already because the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">166</span>
-council had been reopened; he was angrier still as he listened
-to the words of Themistocles.</p>
-
-<p>At length he could keep silent no longer, and he interrupted
-the orator, saying in a harsh voice, ‘Themistocles,
-at the games they who start too soon are scourged.’</p>
-
-<p>‘True,’ answered the Athenian, ‘but they who loiter are
-not crowned.’</p>
-
-<p>Even Eurybiades lost his temper as Themistocles urged
-his wish more and more vehemently, and at length he raised
-his staff as though he would strike the persistent orator.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles looked calmly at the admiral and said
-‘Strike if you will, but at least hear me.’ His self-control
-pleased the Spartan commander. He let his arms drop
-to his side and listened until Themistocles had ended his
-speech.</p>
-
-<p>But although Eurybiades said nothing, an officer began to
-taunt Themistocles, saying that he was the last man who
-should urge them to stay at Salamis, for he had now no city
-to defend, as Athens was in the hands of the barbarians.</p>
-
-<p>‘A base fellow art thou to use such a taunt,’ answered
-Themistocles. ‘True it is that we have left our houses and our
-walls, for we will not endure to be made slaves for such things.
-But in these two hundred ships here ready to defend you all,
-we still possess the fairest city in Greece.’</p>
-
-<p>Then turning to Eurybiades he said, ‘By remaining here,
-thou wilt show thyself a brave man. By going away, thou
-wilt destroy all Hellas, for with the war on land the Athenians
-have nothing more to do. If thou wilt not stay, we will sail
-away with our two hundred ships and build a city in the west,
-where the Persians will not trouble us.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Eurybiades grew afraid, for he knew that without
-the help of the Athenians the Greeks need not hope to
-conquer the enemy, so he agreed to stay to fight at Salamis.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">167</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_L">CHAPTER L<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THEMISTOCLES TRICKS THE ADMIRALS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Eurybiades</span> had determined that the fleet should stay at
-Salamis. But the other admirals were dissatisfied. When
-great numbers of the Persian ships were sighted, and when at
-the same times Xerxes was seen marching with his vast land
-forces toward the shore, they were more than dissatisfied,
-they were afraid.</p>
-
-<p>So they called a secret council at which they resolved to
-retreat to Corinth, as they had wished to do from the first.
-To settle the matter they bade the pilots get ready to sail.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles soon heard what had been done, but he was
-determined to thwart the plans of his adversaries. He
-would force them to fight in the narrow strait of Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent a message to the King of Persia, and pretending
-to be his friend, he warned him that the Greek fleet had
-determined to escape. ‘If you wish to win a great victory,
-O king,’ ran the message, ‘seize each end of the strait before
-the Greek fleet sails away.’</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes was overjoyed when he heard that the Greeks
-wished to escape, for it seemed to him that they must be
-cowards whom it would be easy to beat.</p>
-
-<p>So while Themistocles called together a last council of
-war and did all that he could to delay the fleet, Xerxes was
-busy securing the strait as Themistocles had bidden him do.</p>
-
-<p>The pilots were on board the Greek ships, impatient to
-sail, the admirals were listening to Themistocles with but
-scant courtesy, when the messenger the Athenian was so
-anxiously awaiting arrived.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">168</span></p>
-
-<p>Themistocles hastened from the council to find that it
-was Aristides, his old rival, who had brought the tidings, that
-the Greek fleet was shut in by the Persian ships. Flight was
-no longer possible.</p>
-
-<p>Then Themistocles told Aristides the trick he had played
-on the Persian king, and how he had at the same time duped
-the other admirals.</p>
-
-<p>Whether Aristides approved or disapproved of what his
-old rival had done, he believed that it was well that the battle
-should be fought in the straits, and he determined to support
-Themistocles. He himself hastened to the council, to tell
-the admirals that they were surrounded by the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>At first the admirals refused to believe such evil news.
-They did not guess the truth, but they came so near to it that
-they said Themistocles had probably started the rumour, so
-as to delay their flight.</p>
-
-<p>While they still talked, some sailors who had deserted
-from the Persians brought the same tale. The Greek
-admirals were at last convinced that a battle was inevitable.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">169</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LI">CHAPTER LI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF SALAMIS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">On</span> the morning of the battle, Xerxes ascended a golden
-throne which had been placed for him upon a rock that overlooked
-the sea. Around him sat scribes ready to record the
-events of the battle. That they would all be to the honour
-of his fleet Xerxes never doubted.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles saw with pleasure that the wind was rising,
-making it difficult for the Persians to manage their unwieldy
-vessels. As he watched their efforts he urged the Greeks to
-attack them at once.</p>
-
-<p>The narrowness of the strait, as well as the force of the
-wind, added to the confusion of the enemy and made the
-number of its ships of little use. Yet the Persians fought
-bravely, remembering that the eyes of the great king were
-upon them.</p>
-
-<p>One of the ships was commanded by a queen named
-Artemisia. She was fighting fiercely when her ship was
-attacked by an Athenian vessel at close quarters.</p>
-
-<p>Artemisia tried to escape, but as her ship sailed away it
-was followed by the enemy. Straight in her path lay one of
-Xerxes’ vessels. The queen did not try to avoid it, but
-pursuing her course struck the ship, so that her own countrymen
-who were on board were sent to the bottom.</p>
-
-<p>When the Athenian captain saw what the queen had
-done, he thought, as perhaps she meant him to do, that
-she had deserted her own side and was now fighting for the
-Greeks, so he turned back and followed her no more.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">170</span></p>
-
-<p>From his golden throne, Xerxes too saw what Artemisia
-had done, and he supposed it was a Greek vessel that she
-had run down. In his delight he exclaimed, ‘My men are
-become women, my women men.’ This was a hard thing to
-say of his soldiers who were fighting gallantly for their king.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime the Persian ships were driven into the narrow
-strait. Ship dashed against ship till the Persian dead
-strewed the deep ‘like flowers.’ When evening fell, two
-hundred Persian ships had been destroyed and the Greeks
-had won the great sea-battle of Salamis. The glory of the
-victory was due to Themistocles. There might indeed
-have been no battle at Salamis had he not tricked both the
-Persian king and the Greek admirals.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenian was proud of his success, and he now
-determined by another crafty message to Xerxes to drive
-him out of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>But first he sent for Aristides, and to test his wisdom he
-told him that he thought they should sail to the Hellespont
-to destroy the bridge by which Xerxes had crossed into
-Europe and by which he could return to Asia.</p>
-
-<p>‘Rather than break down the bridge,’ answered Aristides,
-‘we should build another, if by so doing we may hasten his
-departure.’</p>
-
-<p>Now this was what Themistocles himself really wished—to
-hasten the king’s retreat. So although he did not mean
-to destroy the bridge, he sent once again to Xerxes, and this
-is what he said: ‘O king, the Greeks are hastening to the
-Hellespont to destroy the bridge by which alone thou canst
-return to Asia. Hasten then to reach the bridge, while I
-delay the Greek fleet, lest evil overtake thee.’</p>
-
-<p>Once more the king fell into the trap Themistocles had
-prepared for him. For he set out in haste with the main
-body of his army for the Hellespont, leaving Mardonius with
-a large force to carry on the war as well as he could.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_170" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_170.jpg" width="1808" height="2512" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">Ship dashed against ship, till the Persian dead strewed the deep
-‘like flowers’</div></div>
-
-<p>The march to the Hellespont was a terrible one, for Xerxes
-had himself laid waste the land when he advanced upon
-Athens, and now there was neither food nor shelter for his
-army. The soldiers who were starving ate plants, grass, the
-bark of trees—anything to satisfy their hunger.</p>
-
-<p>In their weakness they were attacked by plague, and
-hundreds perished long before the Hellespont was in sight.
-Even when at length the gleam of water gladdened the
-hearts of the soldiers, they were soon stricken again with
-fear, for where was the bridge?</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks had not outstripped them, so this was not
-their doing. A storm had destroyed the bridge. Weak
-and hungry as they were, the soldiers had to rebuild it
-before they could cross over to Asia, where food and shelter
-awaited them.</p>
-
-<p>When the Greeks saw that the Persians were marching
-to the Hellespont, they were eager to follow them. But
-Themistocles persuaded them to go back to Athens to rebuild
-the city.</p>
-
-<p>Then he sent yet another message to Xerxes, saying,
-‘Themistocles, the leader of the Athenians and the best and
-wisest of the Greeks, has out of goodwill to thee held back
-the allies from chasing thy ships and breaking up the bridge
-at the Hellespont. So go thy way in peace.’</p>
-
-<p>Although Themistocles sent these proud words to the
-great king, he really believed it was wiser for the Greeks not
-to pursue the retreating army. But he also wished to make
-Xerxes his friend, so that if at any time he was ostracised by
-the Athenians, he would find a welcome at the Persian court.</p>
-
-<p>Greece was full of rejoicing when she heard of the
-victory of Salamis. The generals of the different states met
-at Corinth to propose a reward for the bravest and wisest
-among themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Each general wrote on a tablet the names of two whom
-he believed to be worthy of a prize. They were not very
-modest, these brave soldiers of Greece, for each general wrote
-his own name first, though nearly all added beneath, the name
-of Themistocles.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">172</span></p>
-
-<p>The Spartans gave their meed of honour to the great
-Athenian, for a crown of olive was placed upon his head and
-he was presented with the most magnificent chariot that
-Sparta had ever produced.</p>
-
-<p>Æschylus, one of the great Greek poets, wrote a tragedy
-on the fall of Xerxes, called <i>The Persians</i>, which was acted
-in 472 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, eight years after the battle of Salamis. Sculptors
-too wrought statues to commemorate the war, which were
-placed in the temple of Athene.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">173</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LII">CHAPTER LII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF PLATAEA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Mardonius</span> stayed with his troops in Thessaly during the
-winter months. But in the spring of 479 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he determined
-to win Athens from the league which she had formed with
-the other Greek states, or if he failed to do this, to drive the
-citizens once again away from their city and occupy it
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent an ambassador to the Athenians to offer, in the
-name of Xerxes, not only to repair all the harm that the
-Persians had done to Athens and to the country round about
-the city, but to give them new lands and to treat them as
-independent allies, if they would make a treaty with the
-great king.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans were afraid that the Athenians would
-accept so generous an offer, and they knew that alone they
-could not hope to conquer the large Persian army which
-Mardonius commanded. So they sent to the Athenians to
-beg them to be true to the league, promising that if they were
-so, Spartan soldiers would be sent to help them against the
-attacks of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>But the Athenians did not need to be entreated to refuse
-the offer of the great king, for they loved their city and their
-liberty.</p>
-
-<p>‘Tell Mardonius,’ they said to the ambassador whom
-the Persian general had sent, ‘so long as the sun moves in
-his present course we will never come to terms with Xerxes.’</p>
-
-<p>After receiving this defiant message, Mardonius marched
-with his army against Athens. The Spartans, in spite of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">174</span>
-their promises, sent no troops to defend the city, and
-the Athenians were forced once again to take refuge at
-Salamis.</p>
-
-<p>Then they reproached the Spartans, and in bitter anger
-they declared that if an army was not sent at once to Attica
-to attack Mardonius, they would be forced to make an
-alliance with the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Again the Spartans grew alarmed for their own safety.
-Without further delay they sent a force of five thousand
-citizens, each attended by seven helots. Other troops soon
-followed, and all were under the command of Pausanias,
-who was a relation of Leonidas, the hero of Thermopylae.</p>
-
-<p>The Persians had reached the province of Boeotia and
-were encamped on the plain of Plataea, while the Athenians
-and the Spartans set up their camp on a hill above the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Masistius, the favourite and most famous officer of the
-Persians, led his cavalry against the cavalry of the enemy and
-soon a fierce conflict was raging. Only after their leader fell
-wounded from his horse and was slain, were the Persians
-repulsed. The armour of Masistius could not be pierced
-by any weapon, but a spear which was thrust into his eye
-caused his death. In vain the soldiers tried to recover the
-body of their general, again and again they were driven
-back.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then there was a great mourning throughout the army
-of the Persians, for all lamented for Masistius, shaving
-themselves and their horses, and their beasts of burden.
-And there was a great cry through all the host, and the
-sound of it went through all Boeotia, as for the death of one
-who next to Mardonius was of most note among the Persians
-and with the king.’</p>
-
-<p>As for the Greeks, after having driven the Persian
-cavalry from the field, they ‘became much more bold and
-cheerful, and putting the dead body of Masistius on a car,
-they drew it along their ranks; and so wonderful was it for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">175</span>
-its stature and its beauty, that the men left their places and
-came forward to look upon Masistius.’</p>
-
-<p>Pausanias now determined to lead his troops down to the
-plain. Here he encamped, opposite the Persians, with only
-the little river Asopus between the two armies.</p>
-
-<p>The oracles had foretold that the side which began the
-attack would be conquered; so day after day passed, neither
-army daring to move.</p>
-
-<p>But although the Persians dared not attack the Greeks,
-they did them all the harm that they could, for they filled
-up the springs to which the enemy went for water, and cut
-off several convoys with provisions.</p>
-
-<p>Pausanias was in despair when the water supply was
-stopped, and he determined to withdraw and take up a
-position nearer to Plataea, where both food and water would
-be secure.</p>
-
-<p>Discipline had grown slack in the Greek camp, and the
-retreat, which began at night, was carried out in a disorderly
-manner.</p>
-
-<p>One company set off in haste, but did not halt where
-Pausanias had arranged that it should. The Spartans
-refused to move at all. One of their captains, ‘lifting a
-piece of rock with both hands and flinging it at the feet of
-Pausanias, cried, “Thus do I cast my vote against the counsel
-of flying from the strangers.”’ Only when the retreat was
-nearly ended did the Spartans tardily obey the order to
-withdraw. This was how it happened that, when morning
-dawned, the Persians found that the enemy had disappeared,
-all but the Spartans, whose captain had delayed to follow
-the orders of Pausanias.</p>
-
-<p>When Mardonius caught sight of the loiterers he ordered
-his men to set out in pursuit of them, and before the Spartans
-could get into position the Persians were upon them. But
-Pausanias soon learned what was taking place in his rear,
-and he hastened back with the troops that were with him
-to aid the disobedient Spartans.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">176</span></p>
-
-<p>The Persians had thrust their shields into the ground to
-form a rough barrier between them and the Spartans, while
-they sent shower after shower of arrows upon the loiterers.
-The Spartans soon tore down the breastwork of shields,
-and with their swords in their hands advanced upon the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Mardonius did all he could to encourage his men, but
-they had no armour to protect them from the blows of the
-Spartans, and they were forced back toward the river,
-throwing into confusion those of their own army who were
-still advancing.</p>
-
-<p>In the thick of the battle Mardonius rode on a white
-horse, surrounded by ten thousand chosen Persians. He
-was easily known by his white charger, and many were the
-spears that were aimed at him by the angry Spartans. At
-length one smote him so that he fell dead to the ground.
-‘Thus,’ says Herodotus, ‘Mardonius paid the recompence
-for the murder of Leonidas.’</p>
-
-<p>No sooner was their leader slain than the Persians fled
-in utter confusion, all but forty thousand who were led off
-the field by one of the generals, and these marching north
-reached the Hellespont and crossed over to Asia in safety.</p>
-
-<p>Those who fled from the field took refuge in their camp,
-where the Spartans attacked them. But the barricades were
-strong, and the camp was not taken until the Athenians had
-returned and joined in the assault.</p>
-
-<p>As the Greeks swarmed into the camp they slaughtered
-the enemy without mercy. So severe was the defeat of
-Plataea that the Persians were utterly crushed.</p>
-
-<p>The spoil in the camp was enormous. Gold and silver
-dishes were there in abundance, rich carpets too, and weapons
-inlaid with precious stones. Horses, camels, mules were
-captured in great numbers.</p>
-
-<p>It is told that the great king had left his own magnificent
-war camp for Mardonius to use.</p>
-
-<p>When Pausanias saw it ‘all blazing with gold and silver<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">177</span>
-and embroidered hangings, he commanded the cooks and
-bakers to make ready for him a banquet, as they had been
-used to do for Mardonius.</p>
-
-<p>When all was ready, he saw couches and tables of gold
-and silver, all fairly spread and a banquet splendidly set
-forth; and then, marvelling at this magnificence and glory,
-he charged his own servants, by way of mockery, to prepare
-a Spartan feast.</p>
-
-<p>So the meal was made ready, but it looked not much like
-the other, and Pausanias laughed, and sending for the generals
-of the Greeks, pointed to the two banquets, saying, ‘Men of
-Hellas, I have brought you together that ye may see the
-madness of the Medes, who faring thus sumptuously came to
-rob us of our sorry food.’</p>
-
-<p>While the battle of Plataea was being fought, the Greek
-fleet was lying at Delos, an island in the Ægean Sea. The
-Persian fleet was near Samos, which is not far from the coast
-of Africa, while close at hand, at Cape Mycale, the Persian
-land forces were encamped.</p>
-
-<p>The Samians were afraid when they saw the Persian
-army, and begged the Greeks to come to their aid. This
-they readily agreed to do, and sailing to Cape Mycale
-they landed and attacked and burned the Persian camp.
-The victory would have been harder to win had not the
-Ionian Greeks who were with the Persians deserted and
-fought with those of their own race.</p>
-
-<p>Both the victory of Plataea and that of Mycale were said
-to have been gained on the same day in August 479 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Bands of Persians had still to be driven from some of
-the islands of the Ægean and from some of the Greek cities
-in Asia. But the victory of Mycale freed the Ionians from
-the rule of the great king, ended the Persian war, and laid the
-foundations of the Athenian Empire.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">178</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIII">CHAPTER LIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE DELIAN LEAGUE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">For</span> at least forty years Sparta was the chief city in Greece,
-and she was the head of the league which bound the cities
-of Peloponnesus together. It was her brave king Leonidas
-who had fallen gloriously at Thermopylae, it was her admirals
-who had been the chief commanders at Salamis and at
-Mycale. The decisive victory of Plataea had been won by
-the Spartan Pausanias.</p>
-
-<p>But after the Persian war was ended, the power of Sparta
-grew less and less, while that of Athens increased by leaps
-and bounds, until it was she who held the first place among
-all the cities of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>One reason for this was that Athens, owing to the foresight
-of Themistocles, owned a well-equipped navy and
-could therefore rule the islands of the Ægean which had
-been wrested from the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta had no navy, nor had she any great statesman to
-tell her that she must become a great sea-power if she
-wished still to hold the chief place among the cities of Greece.
-Sparta was content to drill her soldiers as she had been
-taught to do by Lycurgus, and she looked with contempt
-or with suspicion on what was new or unusual. It was only
-after Athens had far surpassed her in glory and in empire
-that her ambition was at length aroused, and she determined
-to win fame for herself by destroying her rival. Of Sparta’s
-efforts to conquer Greece you will read when I tell you about
-the Peloponnesian wars.</p>
-
-<p>After the battle of Plataea, Sparta soon lost the command<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">179</span>
-of the allied fleet, through the folly and treachery of
-Pausanias.</p>
-
-<p>The admiral was sent to drive the Persians from some of
-the Greek cities in the east. His success at Plataea had
-made him haughty and proud, and he treated his officers
-with contempt. He flogged his men for small offences or
-made them stand with an anchor on their shoulders. If
-food or water were scarce, he forbade them to help themselves
-until his own Spartan troops had been fed.</p>
-
-<p>Aristides and another admiral named Cimon, who treated
-their officers with courtesy and their men with kindness,
-went to Pausanias to beg him to behave more justly. But
-the Spartan would not listen to the remonstrances of the
-Athenians. ‘I have no time to hear complaints,’ was his
-sorry excuse.</p>
-
-<p>When Pausanias succeeded in taking Byzantium, which
-we now know as Constantinople, his pride and ambition
-increased, and he determined to play into the hands of the
-Persian king.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent for some of the prisoners, and, setting them free,
-he bade them carry letters to Xerxes their king. In these
-letters he offered, as only a traitor could do, to subdue
-Sparta and the other states of Greece, and to hold them
-for the Persian monarch. He asked Xerxes to grant
-him money to carry on the war, and as a reward for his
-services he requested the hand of his daughter. Pausanias
-hoped in this way to gain his great ambition and become
-tyrant of all Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes was pleased with the Spartan’s letter, nor did he
-stay to wonder if so disloyal a citizen would be a faithful
-ally. He sent a letter to bid the traitor ‘work on night and
-day to accomplish his purpose, without letting himself be
-held back by lack of gold or silver, or want of troops, for all
-should be at his command.’</p>
-
-<p>When Pausanias held the king’s letter in his hand, and
-saw the king’s money at his disposal, he began to behave as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">180</span>
-though he was already the son-in-law of the great king. He
-clad himself as a Persian prince, he journeyed from place to
-place in royal state, attended by Persian guards. The
-Spartan simplicity in which he had been trained was forgotten,
-and he lived in as great luxury as did his new friends.</p>
-
-<p>Rumours of the strange way in which Pausanias was
-behaving soon reached Sparta. When it was found that the
-rumours were true, Pausanias was ordered to come home, and
-another commander, named Dorcis, was sent to take his place.</p>
-
-<p>But before Dorcis reached Byzantium, the fleet had refused
-to obey Pausanias and had placed itself under Aristides,
-the admiral of the Athenian ships.</p>
-
-<p>A league, called the Delian League, was then formed, to
-enable Greece to carry on the war against Persia. It was
-named the Delian League because its treasures were kept in
-the temple of Apollo, on the sacred island of Delos.</p>
-
-<p>Athens became the head of the league, Aristides its
-leader, and so greatly was he trusted that he was asked to
-arrange the sum of money or the number of ships which each
-city belonging to the league should provide.</p>
-
-<p>Most of the Greek cities in the Ægean islands joined the
-Delian League, as well as those on the north and east coasts of
-the Ægean Sea. Those who joined took solemn oaths to
-be true to the demands of the league, and their oaths were
-ratified by sinking masses of iron in the sea. Not until
-these reappeared might the people be set free from the vows
-which they had taken.</p>
-
-<p>Pausanias had now returned to Sparta, where he was
-thrown into prison. But though there was abundant proof
-of his foolish conduct there was none of his treachery, and he
-was soon set free.</p>
-
-<p>The traitor continued to send letters to Xerxes by his
-slaves, and those who carried them never returned, for
-Pausanias feared lest they should betray him.</p>
-
-<p>One of his slaves noticed that those who carried letters
-to the great king never came back. He made up his mind<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">181</span>
-that when his turn came to go to Xerxes, he would find out
-what was in the letter he carried before he delivered it.</p>
-
-<p>So when one day he was bidden to hasten with a letter
-to the Persian king, he no sooner left the presence of his
-master than he broke the seal, opened the letter, and found
-among other things an order for his death. This was what
-he expected, and he at once carried the letter to the ephors.
-It contained proof of the traitor’s guilt.</p>
-
-<p>But, so it is told, the ephors wished to hear that Pausanias
-was guilty from his own lips, so they laid a trap for him.</p>
-
-<p>The slave was sent to take refuge in a hut that stood
-in a sacred grove. Pausanias soon heard of the strange
-conduct of his slave, and, as the ephors had foreseen, he at
-once hastened to the hut to demand why his servant had
-not sped on his master’s errand.</p>
-
-<p>Two of the ephors were hidden behind the hut and could
-hear all that Pausanias said to his slave.</p>
-
-<p>In his anger the admiral forgot to be prudent, and
-exclaimed that he meant to subdue Greece and deliver
-her into the hands of Xerxes. The ephors had heard what
-they wished. They hastened home and at once ordered that
-the traitor should be seized.</p>
-
-<p>But either Pausanias was warned or he was filled with
-sudden foreboding, for he fled to the temple of Athene for
-sanctuary. It was forbidden to drag a fugitive out the
-temple, so the ephors ordered that the door should be built
-up, that he might starve to death.</p>
-
-<p>His mother, in bitter anger because her son had wished
-to betray his country, herself placed the first stone at the
-door of the temple.</p>
-
-<p>When hunger had all but done its work, Pausanias was
-carried out of the sacred place to breathe his last, lest the
-temple should be polluted by the death of a traitor.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">182</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIV">CHAPTER LIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THEMISTOCLES DECEIVES THE SPARTANS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">After</span> the battle of Plataea, the Athenians brought their
-wives and children back to the city, which the Persians had
-again left in ruins. Not only were the temples and the
-houses burned, but of the city wall scarce a trace was to be
-found.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles encouraged the citizens to rebuild the city,
-and this they did with good will. More beautiful temples,
-better houses, soon sprang up under the eager hands of the
-citizens.</p>
-
-<p>The wall they determined to make so strong and so high
-that they would be able to defend their city against any
-attack rather than be compelled again to forsake her.</p>
-
-<p>But Sparta was alarmed at her neighbour’s industry;
-she was more than alarmed, she was suspicious and angry.
-Athens was making herself too strong, the Spartans
-murmured in ungenerous mood.</p>
-
-<p>The wall had risen but a little way from the ground
-when the Spartans sent to ask the Athenians not to go on
-with their work. The reason they gave was a selfish one, for
-they said, ‘If the Persians return and take a strongly walled
-town so near to Peloponnesus, our cities will not be safe.’
-They then promised to offer shelter to the Athenians, should
-they again be forced to leave their city, but only on condition
-that they would stop building a wall round Athens.
-They even asked the Athenians to help them to destroy the
-walls that already surrounded the other cities of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were in a dilemma. They were determined<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">183</span>
-to finish the wall, yet they dared not anger the
-Spartans, lest they attacked their city while the wall was still
-unfinished.</p>
-
-<p>In their perplexity they turned to Themistocles, who had
-before now saved them by craft when open defiance threatened
-to ruin them.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was not long in solving the difficulty. He
-said that he would go as an ambassador to Sparta to talk
-over the matter. Other ambassadors were to follow him
-only when the walls were nearly complete, and meanwhile
-men, women and children, all must work day and night, so
-that the wall might grow apace.</p>
-
-<p>When Themistocles reached Sparta, he at once said to
-the council that he could do nothing until his fellow
-ambassadors arrived, and he pretended that he expected
-them every day.</p>
-
-<p>He refused to attend the council alone, and when the
-Spartans grumbled, he assured them that the Athenians were
-not going on with the wall. When they grew impatient he
-amused them so well by his clever speeches that they forgot
-for a little while to be angry with him.</p>
-
-<p>But when day after day passed and still the other
-ambassadors did not come, the Spartans did not hide their
-suspicion that they were being deceived. When a rumour
-reached them that the Athenians had never ceased to build
-the wall, which was now nearly complete, they were angry
-indeed, and going to Themistocles they demanded that he
-should tell them the truth.</p>
-
-<p>He still denied that the citizens had been building the
-wall in his absence, but if they doubted his word, he bade
-them send ambassadors to Athens, that they might see for
-themselves whether he was deceiving them or not.</p>
-
-<p>So the Spartans sent ambassadors to Athens, and then
-Themistocles bade his colleagues join him, for he knew
-that now both he and they would be safe. The Spartan
-ambassadors would be hostages for their lives.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">184</span></p>
-
-<p>The first thing the Spartans saw as they approached
-Athens was a high, strong wall. Then they knew that they
-had been deceived, and they sent a messenger to tell their
-countrymen that Themistocles had played them false.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was no coward. He went into the council
-and boldly told the Spartans that it was true he had
-deceived them, so that the walls of Athens might be built
-before they could interfere.</p>
-
-<p>Indignant as the Spartans were and ashamed of their
-own folly in being deceived by the crafty Athenian, they
-dared not harm the ambassadors lest their own messengers
-should not return in safety.</p>
-
-<p>So they sent them away, and Themistocles and his fellows
-returned in triumph to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after this the city wall was finished, and
-Themistocles then urged the people to build another great
-wall round the Piraeus. When this was done, Athens had
-the largest and safest harbour in Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The other states now appointed her to be the head of the
-allied fleet, and no one was more proud of this than
-Themistocles. For it was he who had first persuaded the
-Athenians to make themselves into a great sea-power.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">185</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LV">CHAPTER LV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THEMISTOCLES IS OSTRACISED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">For</span> many years Themistocles had been a favourite with the
-Athenians. But soon after the walls of the city were complete
-he began to grow less popular.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps this was his own fault, for he tired the people by
-boasting continually of the good he had done to the city.
-It was known too that he did not hesitate to take bribes, and
-the citizens were indignant that he should have grown rich
-in this dishonourable way.</p>
-
-<p>One day, as he was talking in public with Aristides, he
-said, ‘The chief excellence of a statesman is to be able
-to prove and frustrate the designs of public enemies.’
-Aristides answered, ‘Another very excellent and necessary
-quality in a statesman is to have clean hands.’ And those
-who listened applauded Aristides the Just, for they knew
-well that he had never soiled his hands with the gold of his
-country’s foes.</p>
-
-<p>In 471 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the people determined to ostracise
-Themistocles, so weary had they grown of the claims he
-made upon their gratitude. At the time of Pausanias’
-death he was living at Argos, which city lies south of Corinth.
-When the papers of the traitor were read it was found that
-Themistocles had written to him. There was nothing in
-his letters to show that he had meant to help Pausanias to
-betray his country, yet he was accused of treason.</p>
-
-<p>When he heard of the charge that was brought against
-him, he wrote to the council at Athens, ‘I, Themistocles,
-who was born to command and not to serve others, could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">186</span>
-not sell myself, and Greece with me, into servitude to the
-enemy.’</p>
-
-<p>These proud words only angered the Athenians the more,
-and the council sent men to arrest him. But Themistocles
-did not wait to be captured. He fled from Greece to Epirus,
-where he hoped that King Admetus, whom he had once
-befriended, would shelter him from his foes.</p>
-
-<p>Admetus was not at home when the exile reached the
-palace, so he threw himself upon the mercy of the queen.</p>
-
-<p>She bade him take her little son in his arms and go sit
-by the hearth until her lord returned.</p>
-
-<p>Then, when the king arrived, Themistocles arose, and
-begged Admetus to protect him, while the little prince
-stretched out suppliant arms to his royal father.</p>
-
-<p>This was the most sacred way to proffer a request, and
-according to the custom of his country the king was pleased
-to do as Themistocles asked. He refused to give him up
-to the Athenians, and sent him in safety to the Persian court,
-where Artaxerxes now reigned.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles begged one of the officers to take him to
-Artaxerxes, saying that he was a Greek who had come to
-see the king on important matters.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you will promise to prostrate yourself before the
-monarch, as is the custom in my country, I will do as you
-wish,’ answered the Persian.</p>
-
-<p>Some Greeks would have refused to prostrate themselves
-before any king, but it was easy for Themistocles to conform
-to the customs of the country in which he found himself.</p>
-
-<p>‘I that come hither,’ he said, ‘to increase the power and
-glory of the king, will not only submit myself to his laws,
-but will also cause many more to be worshippers and adorers
-of the king.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Who shall we tell him you are?’ asked the officer, ‘for
-your words signify you to be no ordinary person.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No man,’ replied Themistocles, ‘must be informed of
-this before the king himself.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">187</span></p>
-
-<p>So at length the Athenian was brought into the presence
-of Artaxerxes, and after having prostrated himself he stood
-silent before the king.</p>
-
-<p>‘Who art thou?’ asked Artaxerxes.</p>
-
-<p>‘O king,’ answered the exile, ‘I am Themistocles the
-Athenian, driven into banishment by the Greeks. I come
-with a mind suited to my present calamities; prepared alike
-for favours and for anger. If you save me you will save
-your suppliant; if otherwise, you will destroy an enemy of
-the Greeks.’</p>
-
-<p>Artaxerxes liked the courage the exile showed, but he
-gave him no answer that day. At night, in his sleep, he was
-heard to cry aloud for joy three times, ‘I have Themistocles
-the Athenian.’</p>
-
-<p>In the morning he commanded his courtiers and captains
-to assemble in the hall, while the stranger was brought before
-him.</p>
-
-<p>As the Athenian passed close to the captains, one of them
-whispered to him, ‘You subtle Greek serpent, the king’s
-good genius hath brought thee hither.’</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles thought these were ominous words, but to
-his surprise the king greeted him kindly.</p>
-
-<p>A reward had been offered to whoever should bring the
-famous Athenian to the court of the great king. This reward
-Artaxerxes now declared should be given to Themistocles
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>The Greek besought the king to grant him a year in which
-to learn the Persian language. He promised that when he
-could speak without an interpreter he would tell Artaxerxes
-the best way to subdue Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Artaxerxes not only granted his request, but showed
-him great kindness. For he gave to him three cities, and
-ordered the inhabitants to supply him with bread, meat, wine
-and whatever else he might need for himself and his family.</p>
-
-<p>In Magnesia, one of these cities, the Athenian lived content
-for many years. But at length Artaxerxes assembled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">188</span>
-an army to invade Greece, and he sent for the Greek to come
-to lead it into his own country.</p>
-
-<p>But whatever promises he had made to ensure his own
-safety, Themistocles had never really meant to harm the
-land he loved so well.</p>
-
-<p>So when the message of Artaxerxes reached him, the
-Athenian invited his friends to a feast, and after bidding
-them farewell he offered sacrifices to the gods. He then
-took poison and soon after died.</p>
-
-<p>Artaxerxes respected the Athenian, because he had died
-rather than betray his country, and he ordered his family to
-be treated with kindness.</p>
-
-<p>Themistocles was buried without the walls of Magnesia,
-and the Magnesians erected a statue to him in their market
-place, because he had been the ‘Saviour of Greece.’</p>
-
-<p>In 464 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, three years after the death of Themistocles,
-Aristides died. The Athenians, both rich and poor, mourned
-for his loss, because his rare justice, his true patriotism, had
-made him to be loved and honoured by all who knew him.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_188" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_188.jpg" width="1814" height="2507" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">He stood silent before the king</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">189</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVI">CHAPTER LVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE ELOQUENCE OF PERICLES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">After</span> the death of Aristides, Cimon became commander-in-chief
-of the allied fleet.</p>
-
-<p>Cimon was beloved by the Athenians, for he showed them
-great kindness. Every day he invited some of the poorer
-citizens to supper. When he walked through the city he
-ordered several well-dressed slaves to follow him. Then, if
-he met a citizen clad in shabby or threadbare garments, he
-would order one of his slaves to exchange clothes with him.</p>
-
-<p>The allied fleet gained many victories while Cimon was
-at its head.</p>
-
-<p>In 470 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, he sailed to an island named Scyrus, in which
-dwelt a race of pirates, who had for many years fallen upon
-and captured the merchant vessels of Greece. The island of
-Scyrus lay between Athens and Thrace.</p>
-
-<p>The Greek traders were pleased when Cimon banished the
-pirates, as he was soon able to do. A number of Athenians
-were sent to settle in Scyrus, which from that time belonged
-to Attica.</p>
-
-<p>Now there was a legend which said that in this island
-there was a grave where lay the bones of Theseus, one of the
-old heroes of Hellas.</p>
-
-<p>It may be that Cimon ordered his men to search for the
-spot where the hero was said to be buried; in any case a
-grave was found in which lay the body of a giant warrior.
-No one doubted that this was the body of Theseus, and, as
-the oracle had commanded, the bones were brought to
-Athens and placed in a temple which was henceforth called<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">190</span>
-Theseum. The Athenians were loud in the praise of Cimon
-because he had obeyed the commands of the oracle, and had
-brought the bones of the hero to Attica.</p>
-
-<p>Four years later Cimon gained two great victories over
-the Persians, by which those Greek cities which had been
-left under the yoke of the great king were set free. They
-then hastened to join the Delian League.</p>
-
-<p>Cimon was now at the height of his power, but his friendship
-with Sparta, on which the Athenians had always looked
-with dislike, soon led to his downfall.</p>
-
-<p>In 464 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> there was an earthquake in Peloponnesus.
-Chasms yawned in the valleys, landslips changed the face of
-the mountains. The loss of life in Sparta itself was terrible,
-while both houses and temples were destroyed. The Helots,
-who were always ready to revolt, did so now that their
-masters were overwhelmed by this great calamity.</p>
-
-<p>Cimon begged the Athenians to forget their old grudge
-against the Spartans and to send to her help, remembering
-only how they had shared in the glory of the Persian war.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do not let Greece be lamed of one foot,’ he urged,
-‘and Athens herself be left to draw without her yoke-fellow.’</p>
-
-<p>An Athenian, named Pericles, who was now one of the
-chief citizens, did all he could to make the people refuse to
-send help to Sparta, but Cimon’s entreaties were successful.
-He was himself sent at the head of the Athenian troops to
-help the Spartans to subdue the Helots.</p>
-
-<p>The rebels had taken refuge in a fortress, and Cimon tried
-in vain to expel them from their stronghold.</p>
-
-<p>Always ready to suspect an Athenian, the Spartans
-began to think that Cimon did not really wish to dislodge the
-Helots. They accused him of treachery, and roughly bade
-him return with his troops to Athens, as they no longer
-wished for his help.</p>
-
-<p>During Cimon’s absence, Pericles and a statesman named
-Ephialtes had made several changes in the ancient courts of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">191</span>
-Athens. These changes did not meet with the approval of
-Cimon, and he tried to restore the old customs.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens soon grew angry with the two leaders because
-each tried to govern Athens in a different way, and, instead
-of peace, discord ruled in the city. They determined that
-one of them should be ostracised.</p>
-
-<p>In 461 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> it was resolved to put the matter to the vote.
-The citizens assembled in the market place, and shells were
-given to them on which to write the name of the leader they
-wished to be banished. When the names were counted it was
-found that Cimon was ostracised.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after Cimon left Athens, Ephialtes was slain in his
-own house, and it was believed that this cruel deed had
-been done by the order of some of Cimon’s friends, in revenge
-for the ostracism of their chief.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles was now left alone to govern Athens.</p>
-
-<p>He was not rich, so he could not himself do all that Cimon
-had done for the people, but he used the public money for
-the good of the citizens. And he pleased them by taking
-from the court of the Areopagus most of its ancient power,
-and giving it to the popular assembly.</p>
-
-<p>Tickets, too, were given by his orders to the poorer folk
-in Athens, so that they might be able to go to the theatres
-and other places of public amusement. By these and other
-acts, Pericles soon won the goodwill of the people.</p>
-
-<p>When he was a boy Pericles had been trained by a
-philosopher named Anaxagoras, who had taught him much
-wisdom. When storms arose they seemed unable to disturb
-the calm of the philosopher’s pupil.</p>
-
-<p>One day, as he was busy in the market place with affairs
-of State, a rude fellow never ceased to mock and to speak ill
-of him.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles heard all that the man said, but he took no
-notice, and when he had finished his task he set out for home.
-The rough fellow followed, throwing at him, not stones, but
-cruel, wicked words.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">192</span></p>
-
-<p>It was dark when Pericles reached his house. Turning
-to one of his servants he bade him take a light and see that
-the man reached home in safety. And this he did although
-he had been treated so badly.</p>
-
-<p>Because he was a great orator, Pericles was named the
-Olympian, but by some it was said that he was so called
-because of the beautiful buildings with which he adorned
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>At this time comedies were acted on the stage, and in
-these comedies great statesmen were often ridiculed; that
-is, fun was made both of themselves and of their actions.</p>
-
-<p>Those who wrote these plays were allowed to use their wit
-on any one or anything that they chose. It was soon seen
-that the Athenians could laugh heartily at themselves, and
-that is a good thing that some people can never learn to do.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles was too well known to be left alone by the
-writers of comedy. Sometimes hard words were spoken of
-him, as when a writer said that he had a ‘dreadful thunderbolt
-in his tongue.’ But he who said this knew that the
-eloquence of Pericles was a great power, and that the orator
-could make people believe almost anything that he wished
-them to believe.</p>
-
-<p>It is said that one of the kings of Sparta once asked a
-noble citizen, named Thucydides, if he or Pericles were the
-stronger wrestler.</p>
-
-<p>‘When I,’ answered Thucydides, ‘have thrown him and
-given him a fair fall, by persisting that he had no fall he gets
-the better of me, and makes the bystanders, in spite of their
-own eyes, believe him.’ Thucydides said this in jest, to
-show what wonders Pericles could work by his eloquence.</p>
-
-<p>But although others might make fun of Pericles’ great
-gift of speech, he himself thought of it with reverence. ‘He
-was very careful what and how he was to speak, insomuch
-that, whenever he went up to the hustings, he prayed the
-gods that no one word might unawares slip from him,
-unsuitable to the matter and the occasion.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">193</span></p>
-
-<p>Pericles encouraged the Athenians to war against many
-of the Greek States, and when they had subdued them, he
-bade these States pay tribute to Athens. Year by year,
-under his guidance, the city grew more powerful.</p>
-
-<p>In 449 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Cimon, who had been recalled from exile,
-sailed with a fleet of two hundred ships to Cyprus, where
-several cities still owned Artaxerxes, the Persian king, as
-their master. He laid siege to the town of Citium, but before
-it was taken he fell ill. Although he was forced to stay in
-bed, he still sent orders to his men, which helped them to
-gain two brilliant victories.</p>
-
-<p>Cimon did not recover from his illness, and after the death
-of its commander the fleet returned to Athens.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">194</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVII">CHAPTER LVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">PERICLES AND ELPINICE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Athens</span> was at first the leader of the Delian League; she soon
-became its ruler.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the allied cities offered to send, as their contribution
-to the league, money instead of ships. To this Athens
-agreed gladly, and with the money she added ship after ship
-to her own fleet. So the navy of Athens continued to grow
-while that of the other states dwindled until they possessed
-only a few vessels.</p>
-
-<p>The treasury of the league, which had been kept in the
-small but sacred island of Delos, was moved to Athens with
-the consent of the allies.</p>
-
-<p>But after a time the other cities grew discontented. They
-complained that the money they sent to the league was not
-spent on ships alone. Some of it, at least, was used to build
-beautiful temples for the city of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>So dissatisfied were they that they declared that they
-would leave the league. But they soon found that it would
-be difficult to carry out their threat, for Athens was too
-anxious to receive their contributions of money to let
-them go.</p>
-
-<p>When the people who lived on the island of Samos revolted,
-Pericles went with an army to besiege their capital
-town, and after nine months the Samians were forced to
-surrender. The walls of the city were pulled down, the ships
-belonging to the island were seized, and the inhabitants were
-forced to pay a heavy fine.</p>
-
-<p>On his return to Athens, Pericles was welcomed by his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">195</span>
-own party, but Elpinice, the sister of Cimon, was indignant
-that the citizens should rejoice at a victory gained over their
-own countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>One day, soon after his triumphant return, Elpinice waylaid
-Pericles as he was walking along the streets, and said
-to him, ‘These are brave deeds, Pericles, that you have done,
-and such as deserve our chaplets, who have lost us many a
-worthy citizen, not in a war with Phoenicians or Medes, like
-my brother Cimon, but for the overthrow of an allied and
-kindred city.’</p>
-
-<p>Elpinice hoped to make Pericles ashamed that he had
-fought with people of his own race.</p>
-
-<p>And now for two years, from 447 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> to 445 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, loss after
-loss befell Athens. While she was struggling with her
-other enemies, the king of Sparta marched into Attica with
-an army. Athens herself was in danger.</p>
-
-<p>But before the army reached the city, it was ordered
-to halt, and soon after it withdrew from Attica.</p>
-
-<p>No one knew what had made the Spartans spare Athens,
-but it was said that Pericles had paid their king a large sum
-of money on condition that he took his army back to his
-own country.</p>
-
-<p>In 445 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Athens signed a Thirty Years’ Truce with
-Sparta, and at the same time peace was made with Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles was now able to devote himself to the work
-which was his greatest pleasure. He spent fourteen years
-in making Athens so beautiful that it became the wonder
-city of the world.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">196</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVIII">CHAPTER LVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE CITY OF ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> the Persians entered Athens they destroyed her
-temples. Some of these temples had been hastily repaired,
-others had been hastily built, when the Athenians returned
-to their own city.</p>
-
-<p>But now that peace had been made with the Persians,
-Athens determined to show her gratitude to the gods by
-building in the city, temples, ‘exceeding magnifical,’ more
-beautiful indeed than any that had yet been built.</p>
-
-<p>The most famous of these temples was the Parthenon or
-Temple of the Virgin, built on the Acropolis, and sacred to
-the virgin goddess Athene.</p>
-
-<p>This marvellous temple was planned by a great architect
-named Ictinus, and adorned by a yet greater sculptor called
-Pheidias.</p>
-
-<p>The architecture of the Parthenon was Doric, which was
-the oldest, the strongest as well as the most simple, of the
-four kinds of Grecian buildings. There were two rooms
-in the Parthenon with no entrance from one to the other.</p>
-
-<p>The figure of the goddess, fashioned by the magic hands
-of the sculptor Pheidias, was a colossal one. Calm, majestic,
-with a smile upon her face, she stood in her wondrous temple,
-clad in a robe of gold.</p>
-
-<p>On her head she wore a helmet, in her right hand she held
-fast a little golden figure of the goddess of victory, while
-her left lay upon her shield. At her feet a snake lay
-coiled.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_196" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_196.jpg" width="1802" height="2510" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">The figure of the goddess was a colossal one</div></div>
-
-<p>Neither of marble nor of bronze was the statue, but of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">197</span>
-ivory and pure gold, ivory being used for the flesh, gold for
-the robe and armour, which was studded with precious
-stones.</p>
-
-<p>Nowhere was there so marvellous a statue as this of the
-goddess Athene wrought by Pheidias, save perchance the Zeus
-at Olympia, which was also moulded by the famous sculptor.</p>
-
-<p>The statue of Zeus had a strange power over those who
-gazed upon it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let a man sick and weary in his soul, who has passed
-through many distresses and sorrows, whose pillow is unvisited
-by kindly sleep, stand in front of this image; he will,
-I deem, forget all the terrors and troubles of human life.’</p>
-
-<p>Close to the Parthenon was an older temple, built not in
-the Doric but in the Ionic style of architecture. It, too,
-was sacred to Athene and also to Poseidon.</p>
-
-<p>This temple, which was called the Erechtheum, was held
-in awe and reverence by the Athenians, for in it was kept an
-ancient wooden image of the goddess. So ancient was this
-‘most holy idol’ of the people that it looked more like a
-rough block of wood than a carved figure. The holy olive
-tree, too, was there, which the Persians had cut down, but
-which they had been unable to kill, as well as the living
-snake, the symbol of the presence of the goddess.</p>
-
-<p>The Erechtheum was to the Athenians a shrine, in
-which lay hidden the story of their past, the Parthenon was
-to them a sign of the power and the splendour of the age
-of Pericles.</p>
-
-<p>On the western side of the Acropolis rose a magnificent
-marble wall called the Propylaea. The marble had been
-pierced at intervals to make five great gateways, the centre
-one being for chariots, those on either side leading by steps
-to the Parthenon. Through these gateways the Athenians
-marched in solemn procession on their feast days.</p>
-
-<p>A great theatre, sacred to the god Dionysus, was finished
-in the age of Pericles, and an Odeon or great hall of music
-was added to it, where contests of song and music were held.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">198</span>
-The roof of the Odeon was pointed like a tent, and was made
-of the masts of ships that had been captured from the
-Persians.</p>
-
-<p>This pointed roof was said by the wits of Athens to be
-like the helmet of Pericles, whose head was curiously formed,
-and who often wore a helmet to conceal its strange shape.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here comes Pericles,’ says a comic poet of those days,
-‘with the Odeon set on his crown.’</p>
-
-<p>Another great statue of Athene, called Athene Promachos,
-or Athena Foremost in Battle, stood just within the
-Propylaea. It was wrought in bronze and showed Athene
-in armour, holding shield and spear outstretched. This
-statue, also by Pheidias, was fifty feet high and stood on a
-pedestal that raised it twenty feet higher, so that it towered
-above the roofs of the temples. The golden plume on the
-helmet of the goddess was seen by sailors far out at sea.</p>
-
-<p>With these and many other great works of art, Pericles
-adorned the city of his love. The Acropolis he said should
-be no longer a fortress, but a sanctuary.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the Athenians, among them Thucydides,
-grumbled because Pericles spent the public money on these
-beautiful buildings.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles heard that the citizens were discontented, and
-in the open assembly he rose and bade them tell him if they
-thought he used more money than he ought, to adorn the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>‘Too much a great deal,’ was the speedy retort.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then,’ said Pericles, ‘since it is so, let the cost not go to
-your account but to mine, and let the inscriptions upon the
-buildings stand in my name.’</p>
-
-<p>But the people, surprised at his generosity, and perhaps
-wishing to share in the glory of his work, were ashamed that
-they had complained. They bade him spend as much of the
-public money as he deemed right and ‘spare no cost until all
-was finished.’</p>
-
-<p>In 479 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the Persians had reduced Athens to ruins.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">199</span>
-Fifty years later she had been built anew and adorned with
-temples and statues that made her the wonder of the world.</p>
-
-<p>Marble was found in Attica, gold and ivory were bought
-with money out of the treasury, but without the magic hand
-of Pheidias, marble, gold, and ivory had been bought in vain.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">200</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIX">CHAPTER LIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">GREAT MEN OF ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Athens,</span> in the age of Pericles, was the home of literary men
-as well as of sculptors and architects.</p>
-
-<p>Æschylus, one of the greatest men of the age, was a diligent
-writer of tragedies or serious plays. You will think that he
-was diligent indeed, when I tell you that he wrote ninety
-plays, although only seven are known to us now. His
-tragedies were acted in the great theatre of Dionysus. The
-<i>Persae</i>, his first play, was written eight years after the great
-sea-fight at Salamis, to tell of the victory the Athenians had
-won over the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>Just as races were run, and music was written by competitors
-to win renown and gain prizes at the festival of
-Dionysus, so plays were written and prizes were awarded to
-the successful author at this great feast. These plays might
-be about the things that were taking place in Greece at that
-very time, or the plot might be taken from the old-world
-stories of Troy. Proud and dauntless were the men and
-women whom Æschylus made to live upon the stage of
-Athens. Of many of these you will some day read yourself.</p>
-
-<p>Sophocles and Euripides also wrote tragedies, and
-Euripides is known, too, for the beauty of his songs. He was
-a magician who made all that he touched radiant with
-beauty. Many people loved Euripides because of the
-wonderful songs and plays which he wrote, but some hated
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Aristophanes, the writer of comedies or amusing plays
-that made the Athenians laugh with uncontrollable glee,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">201</span>
-was one of those who disliked Euripides and held up some
-of his works to scorn. But Socrates, a greater man than
-he, loved Euripides and called him his favourite poet.</p>
-
-<p>Herodotus was the first great Greek historian. He was
-not born in Attica, but he lived some years in Athens. He
-wrote the story of the Persian wars, while Thucydides wrote
-that of the Peloponnesian war.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the greatest teachers in Greece at this time were
-called Sophists. A Sophist meant, at first, one who was
-clever in any special art. It did not matter what the art
-was; it might be cooking, gardening, teaching.</p>
-
-<p>Protagoras was one of the most famous Sophists, but the
-Athenians did not treat him well. For he wrote a book
-which displeased them, so that they condemned it and
-accused him of writing against the gods of Greece. So angry
-were his enemies that Protagoras knew that he could no
-longer live safely in Athens. He fled from the city and set
-sail for Sicily, but he was drowned before he reached the
-island.</p>
-
-<p>It was of his dead friend Protagoras that Euripides was
-thinking when he wrote in one of his plays, ‘Ye have slain,
-O Greeks, ye have slain the nightingale of the muses, the
-wizard bird that did no wrong.’</p>
-
-<p>These are a few of the great men who, with Ictinus,
-Pheidias, and many another of whom I have not told, made
-the glory of Greece known throughout the wide world.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">202</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LX">CHAPTER LX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE THEBANS ATTACK THE PLATAEANS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> cause of the Peloponnesian War was jealousy—jealousy
-between Athens and Sparta. Each wished to be the chief
-State in Greece, and the only way to settle the dispute in
-those days was by an appeal to arms.</p>
-
-<p>Athens had a great navy and much wealth. She was at
-the head of an empire, but the States which she had subdued,
-and which she had forced to pay tribute, were discontented
-and unlikely to prove useful allies.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta was the head of the Peloponnesian States. She
-had a strong army, but she had not money with which to
-carry on war, nor had she, or any of her allies save Corinth,
-a fleet that would be of any use against the large, well-equipped
-fleet of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>As long as Athens could keep the mastery of the sea, she
-would be able to defy the enemy. Famine would soon
-subdue her if she lost this mastery, for much of her corn
-supply came from abroad, and if the corn ships did not reach
-the Piraeus with their precious freight, the people would
-starve.</p>
-
-<p>On land Athens could not hope to hold her own against
-Sparta. Pericles knew this well, and so he urged the
-Athenians to place their trust in their ships.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let us give up lands and houses,’ he said, ‘but keep a
-watch over the city and the sea. We should not, under any
-irritation at the loss of our property, give battle to the
-Peloponnesians, who far outnumber us. Mourn not for
-houses or lands, but for men; men may give these, but these<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">203</span>
-will not give men. If I thought that you would listen to me,
-I would say to you, “Go yourselves and destroy them, and
-thereby prove to the Peloponnesians that none of these
-things move you.” Such is the power which the empire of
-the sea gives.’</p>
-
-<p>The Peloponnesian War began in the early spring of
-431 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> when the citizens of the little town of Thebes made a
-treacherous attack upon the town of Plataea.</p>
-
-<p>Thebes belonged to the Boeotian League, which was on
-good terms with Sparta, upon bad terms with Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Plataea was in alliance with Athens, but there were
-traitors among the citizens, and these determined to betray
-their city into the hands of the Thebans.</p>
-
-<p>One dark, stormy night the gates of the city were opened
-to admit a band of three hundred Thebans. The main body
-of the Theban force was still some distance off. At midnight
-the citizens of Plataea were awakened by the sound of
-trumpets. They dressed in haste, and then rushing to the
-market place found it in the hands of the Thebans, who were
-calling upon the citizens to forsake Athens and to join the
-Boeotian League.</p>
-
-<p>At first the Plataeans thought it would be useless to
-resist the enemy, but before long they found that there was
-only a small band of Thebans in the market place. Heavy
-rains had made the river Asopus rise, and the main body of
-the enemy was still on the farther side of the river, looking
-in vain for a ford.</p>
-
-<p>So the Plataeans shut their gates, barricaded their streets
-with wagons, and then boldly attacked the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>The Thebans were soon separated from one another and
-lost their way in the unknown and dusky streets. To add
-to their confusion, from windows and roofs, heavy missiles
-were hurled down upon them by the angry Plataean women.
-A few scaled the city wall and escaped, but the greater
-number, rushing through a large door which they mistook
-for one of the city gates, found themselves in a granary from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">204</span>
-which there was no escape save by the door through which
-they had entered. It was already held by the Plataeans,
-and the Thebans were taken prisoners and commanded to
-lay down their arms.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the main body of the Thebans had reached
-the city gates to find them guarded by the inhabitants. A
-herald was sent to bid them withdraw, after releasing the
-prisoners whom they had taken on their march to the city.
-Unless this was done without delay, the Plataeans threatened
-to put to death the Thebans whom they had captured.</p>
-
-<p>It was plain that their plot had failed; so, to save their
-comrades, as they believed, the Thebans released their
-prisoners, recrossed the Asopus, and went back to their own
-city. Then the Plataeans did a cruel and treacherous deed,
-for they slew two hundred of their Theban prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>The Plataeans sent to Athens to ask for help when the
-Theban army appeared without their walls, but the danger
-was over before help could reach them.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, lest the Thebans should return, the women and
-children were taken to Athens for safety, while eighty
-Athenians were sent to garrison the walls of Plataea.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">205</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXI">CHAPTER LXI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ATTICA IS INVADED BY THE SPARTANS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the month of May 431 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Attica itself was invaded by a
-large Spartan army, under king Archidamus.</p>
-
-<p>Before he crossed the border into Attica the king bade
-his army halt, while he sent an ambassador named Melesippus
-to the Athenians, to offer them terms if they would submit
-to him. But Pericles persuaded the council to refuse even
-to listen to Melesippus, who had been told to return to his
-own army before the setting of the sun. As he turned away
-from the council, Melesippus said to the Athenians, ‘This day
-will be the beginning of many woes to the Greeks.’</p>
-
-<p>Pericles knew that the Spartans would march into Attica,
-as soon as their ambassador had returned, so he ordered the
-country folk to hasten within the strong walls of Athens for
-safety. Their cattle he bade them send to the island of
-Euboea.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans found the Attic farms deserted, but they
-destroyed and burned them, while they trampled down the
-cornfields and spoiled the olive groves and orchards.</p>
-
-<p>As the invading army drew nearer to Athens, the people
-within the city walls could mark its progress by the smoke
-that rose from burning farms and villas. The men rushed
-to the gates, eager to go to attack the enemy, and it was all
-but beyond the power of Pericles to restrain them.</p>
-
-<p>As winter drew near, Archidamus was forced to retreat,
-for he had neither money nor food to keep his troops longer
-in the country of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Then Pericles, knowing that the way was clear, sailed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">206</span>
-from Athens with thirteen thousand men, and surprised
-many villages on the Peloponnesian coast. He also burned
-the farms and houses in the district of Megara.</p>
-
-<p>When Pericles returned from Megara, a public burial was
-given, as was the custom, to those who had been slain in battle.</p>
-
-<p>A cedar box, in which were placed the bones of the fallen,
-was carried without the walls of the city and buried. For
-those whose bodies had not been recovered, there was an
-empty bed covered with a pall. The funeral oration, or
-Panegyric as it was named, was spoken by Pericles.</p>
-
-<p>Here are a few of the sentences which Thucydides, the
-historian, heard, as he stood among the people and listened
-to the Panegyric.</p>
-
-<p>‘Our city is equally admirable in peace and in war. For
-we are lovers of the beautiful, yet simple in our tastes, and
-we cultivate the mind without loss of manliness. Wealth
-we employ, not for talk and ostentation, but when there is
-real use for it. To avow poverty is with us no disgrace; the
-true disgrace is in doing nothing to avoid it.</p>
-
-<p>‘An Athenian citizen does not neglect the State because
-he takes care of his own household; and even those of us
-who are engaged in business have a very fair idea of politics.
-We alone regard a man who takes no interest in public
-affairs, not as harmless, but as a useless character....</p>
-
-<p>‘I would have you day by day fix your eyes upon the
-greatness of Athens until you become filled with the love of
-her; and when you are impressed with the spectacle of her
-glory, reflect that this empire has been acquired by men who
-knew their duty and had the courage to do it ... they
-freely gave their lives to her as the fairest offering which
-they could present at her feast. The whole earth is the
-sepulchre of famous men; not only are they commemorated
-by columns and inscriptions in their own country, but in
-foreign lands there dwells also an unwritten memorial of them,
-graven, not on stone, but in the hearts of men. Make them
-your example.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">207</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXII">CHAPTER LXII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE LAST WORDS OF PERICLES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> the Spartans marched out of Attica, the country folk
-left the sheltering walls of Athens to go back to their fields,
-to dig, to plough, to sow.</p>
-
-<p>They hoped in due time to reap a plenteous harvest, for
-their last year’s crops had been destroyed by the enemy.
-But before the corn was ripe they knew their hopes were
-vain. The Spartans had come back, and once again the
-people were forced to leave their fields and take refuge within
-the walls of the capital.</p>
-
-<p>But in the city itself an enemy appeared, an enemy that
-worked more dreadful havoc than even the Spartan army.
-The plague had come to Athens. It spread rapidly, for the
-people were crowded together, some in sheds, some in tents,
-and these rough shelters were not kept clean. Squalor and
-lack of room added to the misery of the sick folk.</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of those who had fled for safety to the city
-were stricken by the plague, and at first few recovered. For
-fear seized upon those whom the plague spared and they left
-the sick untended, to die, tortured by thirst, and alone.</p>
-
-<p>At length even the Spartans grew afraid, lest upon them
-too the plague should fall, and they again withdrew from
-Attica.</p>
-
-<p>Then Pericles sailed to Peloponnesus and attacked the
-enemy in its own country, but with little or no success.
-But in Thrace, the town of Potidaea, which had been besieged
-by the Athenians for a year, was forced to surrender.</p>
-
-<p>No breach had been made in the walls, but the famine-stricken<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">208</span>
-people could no longer bear the pangs of hunger,
-nor had they strength left to defend their city.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians allowed the miserable inhabitants to leave
-Potidaea, but the men were forbidden to take anything with
-them save one garment, while the women were permitted to
-take two. Before long Athenian families were sent to settle
-in Potidaea, which then became a colony belonging to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>During the war the popularity of Pericles began to wane.
-It was he who had advised the Athenians to carry on war
-with the Spartans, and they now accused him of causing all
-the misery which they had to endure.</p>
-
-<p>While he was absent with the fleet in 430 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Cleon, the
-head of those who were opposed to Pericles, tried to make
-peace with the enemy, but his efforts were in vain.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon was determined, if it were possible, to cause the
-downfall of Pericles. So when he returned to Athens, he
-accused him of using public money for his own ends.</p>
-
-<p>When the public accounts were examined a small sum
-was missing and Pericles was fined by the law courts, but no
-stain was left on his character.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were a fickle people, and before long they
-forgot their anger and Pericles found himself as popular
-as ever. They were even eager to carry on the war with
-Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>Once before Pericles had been attacked by his enemies.
-He was accused, along with Pheidias the sculptor, of having
-kept some of the gold which was intended to adorn the
-statue of Athene in the Parthenon. But it was easy to
-prove that the charge was false, for the gold had been fixed
-to the statue in such a way that it could be easily detached.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles demanded that this should be done, so that the
-gold might be weighed. His enemies could not refuse the
-test. So the gold was taken off the statue, weighed, and
-found to be correct.</p>
-
-<p>Against Pheidias there were other charges, one being that
-in the frieze of the Parthenon there were sculptured portraits<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">209</span>
-of himself and Pericles. In 432 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the great sculptor was
-thrown into prison, where he died before the day fixed for
-his trial.</p>
-
-<p>The plague, which had disappeared for a year, broke out
-again in 429 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> with new violence.</p>
-
-<p>Pericles had already lost two sons through the terrible
-scourge. When Paralus, his favourite child, died, he placed
-a garland upon his body, and shut himself in his house to
-mourn. Nor could he be persuaded afterward to take much
-interest in the affairs of the State.</p>
-
-<p>A year later, he was himself stricken by the plague. He
-recovered, but was soon after attacked by fever which he
-was too weak to resist.</p>
-
-<p>As he lay dying, his friends gathered around his bed.
-Thinking that he did not hear what they said, they began to
-speak to one another of the great things he had done during
-his life.</p>
-
-<p>But Pericles heard, and interrupting them said, ‘What
-you praise in me is partly the result of good fortune, and, at all
-events, common to me with many other commanders. What
-I am most proud of, you have not noticed. No Athenian
-ever put on mourning for an act of mine!’ These were his
-last words.</p>
-
-<p>Plutarch tells us that ‘Pericles was indeed a character
-deserving our high admiration, not only for his equitable
-and mild temper, but also for the high spirit and feeling
-which made him regard it the noblest of all his honours, that,
-in the exercise of such immense power, he never had treated
-any enemy as irreconcilably opposed to him. And it
-appears to me,’ says Plutarch, ‘that this one thing gives that
-otherwise childish and arrogant title a fitting and becoming
-significance; so dispassionate a temper, a life so pure and
-unblemished, might well be called Olympian, in accordance
-with our conceptions of the divine beings to whom, as
-the natural authors of all good and of nothing evil, we ascribe
-the rule and government of the world.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">210</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIII">CHAPTER LXIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SIEGE OF PLATAEA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Peloponnesian War began with an attack upon the
-little town of Plataea. Two years later, in the early summer
-of 429 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Plataea was again attacked, this time by the
-Spartans, who were led by their king Archidamus. The
-town, small though it was, was an Athenian fortress, so the
-Spartans were eager to raze it to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>But Plataea stood on sacred territory; for Pausanias,
-after his great victory over the Persians, had declared that
-in time of war it should ever be left undisturbed.</p>
-
-<p>The Plataeans reminded the king of the promise of the
-Spartan general, and begged him to withdraw his troops.</p>
-
-<p>Archidamus would not lead his army away, but he
-promised to do the Plataeans no harm if they would become
-allies of Sparta, or if they would give up their alliance with
-Athens and fight on neither side. But the Plataeans would
-not agree to either of these plans.</p>
-
-<p>Then the king offered to let them leave the town. He
-promised that their homes, their orchards, their fields would
-be kept in good order as long as the war lasted, and that they
-would be given back to them when peace was made.</p>
-
-<p>It was a generous offer, and the Plataeans begged to be
-allowed to send to Athens to ask her advice. Her answer
-speedily settled the matter.</p>
-
-<p>‘Athens,’ so ran the message, ‘never deserted her allies,
-and would not now neglect the Plataeans, but succour them
-with all her might. Wherefore the alliance must stand and
-the attack of the Spartans be withstood.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">211</span></p>
-
-<p>When Archidamus heard what Athens had said to the
-Plataeans, he determined to besiege the town. The Thebans
-who were with the Spartan army rejoiced that war was to
-begin, for they were ever bitter enemies of the Plataeans.</p>
-
-<p>The little town prepared to defend herself against the
-enemy, sending away the women and children to a place of
-safety. A hundred women slaves only were kept to cook and
-wash for the garrison, which was small. Yet few in number
-as they were, the doughty citizens withstood the attacks of
-the Spartans for two years.</p>
-
-<p>When Archidamus ordered his men to raise a mound as
-high as the wall around the town, the Plataeans at once
-added to the height of their defences. They also dug
-beneath the mound of the enemy, and so undermined it
-that it was continually sliding down.</p>
-
-<p>Then lest the walls should at length be scaled by the
-enemy, the citizens built an inner wall to protect the city yet
-more strongly.</p>
-
-<p>Often the little garrison looked wistfully for the help that
-Athens had assured them would be sent, but month after
-month passed and no help came from the plague-stricken
-city. Yet the Plataeans did not dream of surrender.</p>
-
-<p>Archidamus was in despair, for he knew that his soldiers
-were seldom able to take a walled town. His pride was hurt
-at the thought of being beaten by a mere handful of men.
-He had with him the whole Peloponnesian army, yet a
-garrison of five hundred had been able to defy all his efforts
-to capture the city.</p>
-
-<p>The king determined, since he could not take the town
-by assault, to starve it into submission. So he now ordered
-two great walls to be built round the city, placing on them
-here and there towers or battlements. The walls were a
-certain space apart, and this space was covered over, so that
-the soldiers could live in it as in a camp, while armed sentinels
-paced up and down on the roof.</p>
-
-<p>When the second year of the siege began, food grew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">212</span>
-scarce in Plataea. Either the little garrison must force its
-way out or die of hunger. To escape, the soldiers would
-have to scale the wall, without attracting the attention of
-the sentinels, and reach the ground on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>More than half the garrison resolved to stay where it was,
-but about two hundred determined to make the perilous
-attempt.</p>
-
-<p>So one cold, dark night in the month of December, when
-the sentinels had retreated into the towers for shelter, the
-brave two hundred stole out of the town, carrying ladders on
-their backs. They wore little clothing, that they might
-climb and run the easier. That they might step the more
-quietly their right feet were bare, while on the left each
-wore a shoe to keep him from slipping in the mud.</p>
-
-<p>Stealthily they made their way across a ditch and reached
-the wall unseen, unheard. Twelve of the bravest scaled the
-wall and killed the sleepy sentinels, who had sought shelter in
-the towers from a storm of wind and rain.</p>
-
-<p>The others then mounted the wall, fixed their ladders on
-the farther side and reached the ground in safety, while the
-twelve, who had waited to the last, began to descend.</p>
-
-<p>All would have been well, had not one man slipped and
-knocked a tile off the top of the wall. It rattled and fell
-to the ground with a noise that roused the Spartans, who
-scrambled up the wall in great haste. But the darkness was
-so dense that they could see nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Those of the garrison who had stayed in the city did all
-that they could to perplex the enemy, by making a sally
-on the side of the town farthest from that by which their
-friends had fled. And when the Spartans lit torches and
-flashed danger signals to the Thebans whose city was not
-far off, the Plataeans lit beacons, so that the signals were
-confused.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the fugitives, having reached the ground in
-safety, were met by a band of three hundred Spartans.
-These were carrying lights, so the Plataeans were able to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">213</span>
-send a shower of arrows among them with sure and deadly
-aim. In the confusion that followed, all save one archer
-succeeded in crossing a ditch, covered with ice, but too thin
-to bear the weight of the fugitives. They struggled through
-the icy water, and after many narrow escapes two hundred
-and twelve weary men reached Athens in safety.</p>
-
-<p>Plataea held out gallantly until the summer of 427 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>,
-when famine at length forced her to surrender.</p>
-
-<p>Five judges were sent from Sparta to decide the fate of
-the prisoners. But the trial was a mere form, for the
-Thebans had already persuaded the Spartans how to treat
-the unfortunate men.</p>
-
-<p>Each prisoner as he was brought before the judges was
-asked if he had helped the Spartans in their war against
-Athens. As each one answered ‘No,’ he was led out and
-put to death. In this way two hundred Plataeans and
-twenty-five Athenians lost their lives, while the city they
-had so bravely defended was razed to the ground.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">214</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIV">CHAPTER LXIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SENTENCE OF DEATH</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the fourth year of the Peloponnesian War the city of
-Mytilene threw off the yoke of Athens. Mytilene was the
-capital of Lesbos, an island near the coast of Asia. The city
-had belonged to the Delian league, and when the league
-became the empire of Athens, the city remained faithful
-to the empire. But as time passed the Mytileneans
-became afraid lest Athens should treat them as she had
-treated the Samians, and should make them subjects
-instead of allies.</p>
-
-<p>While Athens was at war with Sparta she would have
-little time, thought the Mytileneans, to trouble about their
-small island, so they revolted and asked the Spartans to
-support them, if that should be necessary. The Spartans
-promised to help the Mytileneans if the Athenians should
-punish their disloyalty, but, as so often happened, they
-did not attempt to keep their promise until it was too
-late.</p>
-
-<p>Athens was angry when she heard of the revolt at
-Mytilene. Although she could ill spare the men, she sent an
-army under a general named Paches to blockade the town
-by sea and by land and so to starve her into submission. At
-all costs Mytilene must not fall into the hands of Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>Before long, so strict was the blockade, food began to
-run short in the hapless island, and the Spartans failed to
-send the help they had promised.</p>
-
-<p>But when the citizens were desperate with hunger, a
-messenger from Sparta reached the town. He had passed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">215</span>
-the Athenian army unnoticed and had entered Mytilene, to
-the delight of the starving people. When he assured them
-that ships laden with corn were on the way and would reach
-them soon, their joy was unbounded.</p>
-
-<p>Day after day, week after week passed, but the Spartan
-ships did not come, and hope began to die out of the hearts
-of the Mytileneans. It was plain that they must either
-surrender or starve to death; so they determined to
-surrender.</p>
-
-<p>They sent for Paches, and agreed to give up the city, and
-to leave their fate to be decided by the Athenian assembly.
-In the meantime about one thousand of the inhabitants were
-sent as prisoners to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians had been bitterly angry with the
-Mytileneans for revolting when their hands were already
-full with war at home and with the misery caused by the
-plague. They were in no mood now to deal mercifully
-with them.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon, a leather-merchant, who by his own efforts had
-risen to a high position in the State, roused the temper of the
-people by his rough and noisy eloquence, and Pericles was
-no longer alive to restrain it, as he had so often done, by
-his wiser, calmer speech.</p>
-
-<p>When the assembly met, it was Cleon who proposed that
-all those able to bear arms should be put to death, and that
-the women and children should be sold as slaves. In its
-angry mood the assembly voted as Cleon wished.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner was the sentence of death passed, than a ship
-was despatched to the island to bid Paches, the Athenian
-general, carry out the terrible decision of the assembly.</p>
-
-<p>But a little later, when the assembly broke up and
-escaped from the influence of Cleon’s eloquence, the members
-began to be ashamed of their cold-blooded sentence.</p>
-
-<p>Ambassadors from Mytilene had come to Athens to plead
-the cause of their people. When they saw that the Athenians
-were uneasy, they persuaded them to call another meeting of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">216</span>
-the assembly the following morning, to reconsider the sentence
-that they had passed.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon had felt no regret at the fate of the rebels, and he
-was indignant that the assembly should dream of revoking
-its decree. When it met on the following day he spoke even
-more vehemently than before, urging the members to see
-that the sentence was carried out.</p>
-
-<p>But Diodotus, a noble Athenian, whose name has never
-been forgotten, spoke as well as Cleon. So wise were his
-words that those who had already wished to alter the sentence
-for pity’s sake, were now sure that wisdom also demanded
-that the Mytileneans should be spared. Diodotus won the
-day, for Cleon was defeated by a small majority.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner was the sentence revoked than in hot haste a
-ship was manned, and the crew was bidden to do its utmost
-to overtake the vessel which was carrying the sentence of
-doom to Mytilene. Already it was twenty-four hours since
-the ship had left Athens. Was it possible to carry the good
-news in time?</p>
-
-<p>The ambassadors promised large rewards to the oarsmen
-if they reached the city before the terrible sentence had been
-carried out. In their anxiety they provided barley, wine,
-oil for the crew.</p>
-
-<p>There was no lack of zeal on the part of the sailors. They
-rowed with all their strength, taking but scant rest, and
-eating the barley, which had been soaked in wine and oil
-and made into cakes, as they sat at their oars. They
-knew that on their speed depended the life or death of
-thousands.</p>
-
-<p>Swifter and swifter flashed the oars of the second ship.
-In the first vessel the sailors pulled slowly, for they were in
-no haste to deliver the dread tidings which they carried.
-And it was well that they had no heart for their task, for
-with every muscle strained to the utmost the crew of the
-second boat reached Mytilene only just in time.</p>
-
-<p>The death sentence had already reached Paches, and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">217</span>
-was preparing to carry it out, when with a glad, triumphant
-shout the second boat swung into the harbour, and the
-Mytileneans were saved.</p>
-
-<p>But even so they paid heavily for their rebellion, for
-about thirty of their leading citizens were executed, their
-fleet was taken by the Athenians, and the walls of their city
-were destroyed.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">218</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXV">CHAPTER LXV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">BRASIDAS LOSES HIS SHIELD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> 425 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the seventh year of the war, an Athenian fleet of
-about forty ships, under an admiral named Eurymedon, was
-forced by stormy weather to seek shelter on the promontory
-of Pylos in Messenia. Pylos stood on the Bay of Pylos, which
-you now know as the Bay of Navarino.</p>
-
-<p>To give the men something to do until the storm allowed
-them to sail, Demosthenes, an officer on board one of the
-ships, bade them begin to build a fort. But it was not only
-to employ the men that he did this, but because he believed
-that Pylos would make a good fortress from which to attack
-the western shore of Peloponnesus.</p>
-
-<p>At first the men took little interest in the work, for they
-expected each day to leave Pylos. But as the storm continued,
-they began to work with a will, and soon a fortress
-that looked fit to defy an enemy was finished.</p>
-
-<p>It had not been easy work, for the men had no iron tools.
-They could not cut stones, but were forced to pick out those
-that fitted into each other.</p>
-
-<p>When mortar was needed they had to carry it on their
-backs, bending forward that it might not fall, and clasping
-their hands behind to help to keep it in place.</p>
-
-<p>At length the storm was over and the fleet sailed away,
-leaving Demosthenes with five ships to hold the new fortress.
-Now the entrance to the Bay of Pylos was almost blocked by
-a narrow, thickly wooded island called Sphacteria.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans soon heard that the Athenians had taken
-possession of Pylos, which was on their territory. They<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">219</span>
-determined to expel them, and an army under Epitadas
-was at once sent out and took possession of the wooded island
-of Sphacteria, while a Spartan fleet sailed into the Bay of
-Pylos. On board one of the ships was a famous Spartan
-named Brasidas.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes had just time to send to Eurymedon to beg
-him to return with his forty ships, when the Spartans sailed
-up to the promontory, meaning to attack and capture
-the fort.</p>
-
-<p>But it proved impossible to land. Again and again the
-Spartan admiral made the attempt, but each time he was
-forced to withdraw, lest his ships should be dashed upon the
-rocks.</p>
-
-<p>Brasidas refused to give in, and he bade his men wreck
-their vessels rather than be beaten back. ‘Be not sparing
-of timber,’ he cried, ‘for the enemy has built a fortress in
-your country. Perish the ships and force a landing.’</p>
-
-<p>Spurred on by his words, the men drove their ship
-upon the beach, while Brasidas stood fearlessly on the
-gangway ready to leap upon the shore. But the Athenians
-saw the bold figure too well, and he became a target for
-every arrow.</p>
-
-<p>As he fell back wounded, his left arm hung helpless over
-the side of the vessel and his shield slipped off and fell into
-the water. The waves washed it toward the shore, whereupon
-the enemy dashed down to the edge of the water and
-drew it in triumph up to the beach.</p>
-
-<p>After a desperate struggle the Spartans were forced to
-withdraw, and the Athenians celebrated their victory by
-erecting a trophy of their spoils, placing, where every eye
-could see it, the shield of Brasidas.</p>
-
-<p>For two days the Spartans still fought to gain the fortress,
-but in vain. On the third day, Eurymedon returned with
-the Athenian fleet, and as the Spartan ships did not come
-to meet him he sailed in at the two entrances to the bay of
-Pylos: for the openings had not been secured by the enemy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">220</span></p>
-
-<p>A desperate battle took place. Many of the Spartan
-ships were empty, as their crews were on shore. The
-Athenians tried to drag away these empty vessels, so that
-the enemy would have no way of escaping from Sphacteria.</p>
-
-<p>But the Spartans knew that they must save their vessels
-at all costs, so they fought with redoubled fury and succeeded
-in rescuing most of the deserted ships. Yet their
-efforts proved of little use in the end, for though only five
-ships were captured, the rest of the fleet was so damaged
-that the Athenians were left in possession of the bay. They
-at once began to blockade Epitadas and his army in
-Sphacteria.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_220" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_220.jpg" width="1802" height="2499" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">He became a target for every arrow</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">221</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVI">CHAPTER LXVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SPARTANS SURRENDER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> Epitadas found that he was shut up on the island of
-Sphacteria, he sent a messenger to Sparta to tell what had
-befallen him. The ephors were so disturbed by his tidings
-that they at once sent some of their number to the Bay of
-Pylos to see what could be done to set free Epitadas and
-his men.</p>
-
-<p>They soon saw that it would be too difficult a task to
-relieve the island, so they begged Eurymedon to grant a
-truce until they sent ambassadors to Athens to sue for peace.</p>
-
-<p>Their request was granted, and the Spartan ambassadors
-at once set sail for Athens.</p>
-
-<p>When they entered the assembly, Athens, had she but
-known it, might have ended the war with honour. But
-Pericles was no longer there to tell her that to do so would
-be well. Cleon still ruled the assembly with his rough
-eloquence. Nicias, the leader of those who desired peace,
-although he bitterly disliked Cleon, was not strong enough
-to overthrow him.</p>
-
-<p>The assembly, urged by its leader, offered the Spartan
-ambassadors terms which it knew they would not accept.
-After rejecting them, as the Athenians expected, the ambassadors
-returned indignant to Pylos, and the truce was at an
-end. But Sphacteria was not taken so easily as the Athenians
-had dreamed. In spite of the strict blockade, food was
-taken to the island, so that the Spartans were in no danger
-of starving.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes swimmers carrying with them linseed, poppy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">222</span>
-seeds and honey, reached the island. Sometimes Helots,
-tempted by promise of freedom, would manage, when the
-sky was dark and the sea stormy, to sail past the enemy’s
-ships, taking cheese, meal and even wine to the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>In Athens, the people were growing impatient of the
-long blockade. When Demosthenes sent messengers to the
-city to ask for reinforcements, they began to be sorry that
-they had not offered more reasonable terms to the ambassadors.
-They looked darkly at Cleon, and began to whisper
-that but for his counsel peace would certainly have been made.</p>
-
-<p>A meeting of the assembly was called, and Cleon, losing
-his temper when Nicias urged that peace should be arranged
-without delay, said, ‘It would be easy enough to take
-Sphacteria if our generals were men. If I were general I
-would do it at once.’</p>
-
-<p>Nicias was a quiet man, but these scornful words roused
-him to anger, and he retorted that if Cleon thought he was
-able to take the island it would be well that he should go
-and do so. He was himself a general, while Cleon was only
-a leather-merchant, but he was willing to resign in his favour.</p>
-
-<p>At first Cleon thought that Nicias was but jesting, and
-he pretended that he really wished to go to the help of
-Demosthenes. But when he found that his opponent was
-in earnest, he declined the honour, saying that while Nicias
-was a general, he himself had no training in military affairs.</p>
-
-<p>But the people were not willing to let the leather-merchant
-escape the consequences of his rash words. They shouted
-that he must go and prove that he could do as he had said.</p>
-
-<p>When Cleon saw that there was no escape he grew reckless,
-and boasted that he would not only go to Sphacteria,
-but that he would take the island within twenty days, and
-either kill all the Spartans on it or bring them prisoners to
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Some there were who mocked at his words, others
-laughed. But all were glad that the merchant should go,
-for they were tired of his rough ways and rougher speech.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">223</span>
-If he went he might return with his promise unfulfilled and
-his power with the people would then be lost. If he came
-back in triumph, the Spartans would have been defeated.</p>
-
-<p>Before long, Cleon set out at the head of an army for
-Pylos. When he arrived he found Demosthenes already
-prepared to attack the island.</p>
-
-<p>A large part of the forest on Sphacteria had just been
-burned down by some Athenian soldiers. They had been
-sent to the island to reconnoitre, and while making a fire
-to cook their dinner the trees were accidentally set alight.</p>
-
-<p>The wood had sheltered the Spartans from the enemy,
-and the fire spoiled their chief defence, so that they were
-the less prepared to face the army of nearly fourteen thousand
-Athenians, which, led by Cleon and Demosthenes, now
-landed on the island.</p>
-
-<p>Outnumbered as the Spartans were, for their army consisted
-of only about four hundred and twenty soldiers and
-the same number of Helots, they fought bravely as was
-their custom.</p>
-
-<p>But the arrows of the Athenians soon greatly reduced
-their number, while to add to the distress of the wounded,
-as well as of those who had escaped, the ground over which
-they marched was hot with still smouldering ashes of burnt
-wood.</p>
-
-<p>At length Epitadas, the Spartan general, was slain, and
-the few soldiers who were still able to fight retreated to a
-hill on which was an old ruined fort. Here they took their
-stand, determined to keep the enemy at bay. And they
-did so until the Athenians found a path up a steep crag,
-from the top of which they could command the Spartan fort.</p>
-
-<p>Unseen by the brave defenders, the enemy scaled the
-almost precipitous path, and when they reached the top
-they at once began to shoot arrows down upon the startled
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>But soon Cleon bade them stay their arrows while he
-sent a herald to the Spartans to bid them surrender.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">224</span></p>
-
-<p>Spartan troops had never yet yielded to a foe. Ever
-they had conquered or fought to the death. Cleon believed
-that now, as their brave fellows at Thermopylae had done,
-they would rather die than yield.</p>
-
-<p>But the Spartans dropped their shields and waved their
-hands above their heads to show that they would cease to
-fight. They begged to be allowed to ask the advice of their
-friends on the mainland. Their request was granted, and
-their friends bade them ‘to take counsel for themselves,
-but to do nothing disgraceful.’</p>
-
-<p>Two hundred and ninety-two Spartans, who were all
-that were still alive on Sphacteria, then surrendered, one
-hundred and twenty of these belonging to the noblest
-families in Sparta. Never after this surrender were the
-Spartans considered invincible.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon was now able to return to Athens, which he reached
-within twenty days from the time he left the city, bringing
-with him, as he had boasted that he would do, his Spartan
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians rejoiced at the success of their army,
-but they laughed as they thought of the strange general
-who had led it to victory.</p>
-
-<p>As for the prisoners, they were glad to hold them as
-hostages. The Spartans would be less likely to invade
-Attica while their comrades were in Athens.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">225</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVII">CHAPTER LXVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">BRASIDAS THE SPARTAN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Athenians were encouraged by the victory they had
-gained at Sphacteria to hope for still greater success to
-their arms, and in 424 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> they marched boldly into the
-country of Boeotia. At Delium they seized and fortified
-a temple, sacred to Apollo.</p>
-
-<p>Now the Boeotians were indignant with the Athenians
-for invading their land, but they were still more angry that
-they had dared to enter their temple. They at once marched
-against the enemy and defeated them with great loss, but
-the temple was still left in the hands of the Athenians.</p>
-
-<p>As was the custom in those days, the defeated generals
-asked the victors to allow them to bury their comrades who
-had fallen on the battlefield. But the Boeotians answered
-‘When you give us back our temple you shall bury your
-dead.’</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians refused to do this, saying that Delium,
-the site on which the temple stood, belonged to Attica, and
-they had a right to stay in their own land.</p>
-
-<p>‘If you are in your own land,’ retorted the Boeotians,
-‘do as you wish without asking our consent.’ It was easy
-to say this, for they knew that the defeated army was not
-strong enough to defy them.</p>
-
-<p>When the invaders still refused to leave the temple, the
-Boeotians determined to drive them away by setting fire
-to the wooden barricades with which the Athenians had
-fortified the temple.</p>
-
-<p>So they took a large beam of wood, and scooping out the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">226</span>
-centre made it into a hollow tube. To one end they fastened,
-by an iron chain, a huge caldron. In the caldron they
-placed charcoal and sulphur, while to the other end of the
-tube they tied bellows, by which a strong current of air
-could be blown through to the other end. When this was
-done the charcoal and the sulphur in the caldron were
-fanned into a great blaze, and the fortifications of the temple
-were soon on fire.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians tried to quench the flames in vain, and
-at length they were forced to flee, leaving the temple to the
-triumphant Boeotians, who no longer refused to let them
-bury their comrades.</p>
-
-<p>The defeat of Delium was followed by many other
-disasters, and was the beginning of the downfall of the
-empire of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Brasidas had recovered from the wound that
-he had received at Pylos.</p>
-
-<p>Never had there been so strange a Spartan as Brasidas.
-His countrymen spoke as little as possible, and what they
-did say they said in a brief, concise manner. In later days
-such short, pithy speech was termed laconic. This name
-was used because Sparta was also called Laconia. But
-Brasidas was not laconic, he spoke quickly and with ease,
-and while his comrades liked to do things in the way their
-fathers had done, Brasidas loved new ways and bold
-adventures.</p>
-
-<p>Spartans were seldom liked by strangers, for they were
-rough, often even discourteous in their manner; but Brasidas
-had winning ways, and wherever he went he made friends.
-He was not only pleasant, he was also just, and strangers
-soon learned that his word could be trusted.</p>
-
-<p>This was the man who was now sent with an army through
-Thessaly. The country was for the most part loyal to
-Athens, yet the Spartans reached Macedon unhindered.</p>
-
-<p>Brasidas had been told that the city of Acanthus was
-ready to fling open her gates to him, but he found them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">227</span>
-guarded. He asked to be allowed to enter that he might
-tell the people why he had come to their city, and they,
-won by his kind and simple manner, admitted him.</p>
-
-<p>His first words pleased them, for he told them that he
-knew how powerful they were, and that if they refused to
-throw off their allegiance to Athens many other cities
-would be encouraged by their example.</p>
-
-<p>If they would trust themselves to Sparta, he promised
-that their city should be free. ‘But should you refuse,’
-and his voice grew stern, ‘and say that I have no right to
-force an alliance on a people against its will, I will ravage
-your land, and force you to consent. And for two reasons
-will I do this. The tribute you pay to Athens injures Sparta
-by making her foe stronger, and your example will make
-other cities resist the claims of Sparta.’</p>
-
-<p>The Acanthians were afraid that Brasidas would fulfil
-his threat and destroy their fields, and trample on their
-grapes which were now ripe and ready to pluck, so they
-determined to trust Sparta and throw off their allegiance to
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Brasidas was pleased, for, as he had foreseen, other cities
-quickly followed the example of Acanthus.</p>
-
-<p>Encouraged by his success the Spartan general now
-determined to attack Amphipolis, an important town in
-Thrace, standing on the bank of the river Strymon.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">228</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVIII">CHAPTER LXVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">AMPHIPOLIS SURRENDERS TO BRASIDAS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Amphipolis</span> belonged to the Athenians, who had sent Thucydides
-and Eucles to guard the city lest it should be attacked
-by the Spartans. Thucydides had not only the city but a
-large district also to protect, and he was at this time stationed
-with his troops at some distance from Amphipolis, while
-Eucles was in the city itself.</p>
-
-<p>The bridge over the Strymon, which led to the city, was
-carelessly guarded. So when, on a cold and wintry day,
-Brasidas reached the river, he took the bridge without
-difficulty, making prisoners the few soldiers who held it.</p>
-
-<p>Messengers were at once sent to Thucydides to tell him
-that the Spartans had seized the bridge, and to beg him to
-come as quickly as possible to protect the city. Before the
-day was over, Thucydides had reached Eion, at the mouth
-of the Strymon. But his speed was of no avail, for Amphipolis
-had already surrendered, tempted by the easy terms
-that Brasidas had offered.</p>
-
-<p>When the Athenians heard that the city was lost, they
-were indignant with Thucydides, and chiefly through the
-influence of Cleon, who disliked him, he was sent into
-exile.</p>
-
-<p>The punishment was severe, but Thucydides was not
-idle during his banishment. He travelled from place to
-place, and everywhere he went he paid great attention to
-the ways of the people and to the manner in which their
-cities were governed. He himself wrote, ‘Associating with
-both sides, with the Peloponnesians quite as much as with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">229</span>
-the Athenians, because of my exile, I was thus enabled to
-watch quietly the course of events.’</p>
-
-<p>After having studied the ‘course of events,’ Thucydides
-began to write about the Peloponnesian war, and he became
-the greatest of all the historians of Greece.</p>
-
-<p>After the surrender of Amphipolis in 424 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, city after
-city forsook its allegiance to Athens. Scione did not even
-wait for the Spartans to demand admission, they opened
-their gates and begged Brasidas to enter. His presence
-pleased the people well, and when he had spoken to them
-their enthusiasm knew no bounds. They sent for a crown
-of gold and placed it on his head, calling him the ‘liberator
-of Hellas.’ Many of the people, too, cast garlands over him
-as they were used to do to victors at a race.</p>
-
-<p>Until now Brasidas had fought loyally for the sake of
-his country, but after the crown of gold had rested on his
-head he grew more ambitious to win fame for himself than
-glory for his country. It was his ambition that made him
-now do all that he could to keep Sparta from making peace
-with Athens, as she wished to do.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon, too, was eager that the war should continue, not
-in order to win renown for himself, but rather that Athens
-might regain the empire that Brasidas was snatching from
-her grasp.</p>
-
-<p>Two years after the surrender of Amphipolis, Cleon
-urged the Athenians to make an effort to retake the city.
-His rough eloquence persuaded them to undertake the
-task. He was himself appointed general, and was sent to
-Thrace at the head of a large army.</p>
-
-<p>As he marched through the country he took several
-towns before he reached Eion, at the mouth of the river
-Strymon.</p>
-
-<p>Here he halted, meaning to wait for reinforcements.
-But his soldiers had little respect for their general. Was
-he not after all only a leather-merchant? What could he
-know about war? And they clamoured to be led at once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">230</span>
-against the enemy. Cleon did not dare to refuse to do as
-his army wished, and he ordered his whole force to march
-toward Amphipolis to find out the strength of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Brasidas was encamped with his army on the top of a
-hill, near to the city, from which he could watch every movement
-of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw the Athenians approaching, he ordered
-his men to march into the town where the Spartan Clearidas
-was now governor.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon at once supposed that Brasidas had taken shelter
-within the walls of Amphipolis so as to avoid a battle.
-Feeling no longer anxious, he left his army near the city, but
-not drawn up ready for battle, and himself rode carelessly
-forward to look at the surrounding country.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile some Athenian soldiers heard the restless
-movement of men and horses within the walls, others looking
-under the gates saw many feet gathering together. It was
-clear that preparations were being made by the Spartans
-to sally out and attack them.</p>
-
-<p>A messenger was sent in haste to find Cleon. The
-general no sooner heard the report than he hurried back to
-his army, and commanded it at once to retreat toward Eion.
-To do this the Athenians had to march past Amphipolis
-with their right sides unprotected, for their shields were
-carried always on their left arm, which was now the farthest
-from the walls of the city.</p>
-
-<p>The men had no confidence in their general, and they
-began to retreat in disorder. From within the city, Brasidas
-was watching with keen eyes the movements of the enemy.
-Suddenly he cried, ‘These men will never withstand our
-onset. Look at their quivering spears and nodding heads.
-Men who are going to fight never march in such a fashion
-as this. Open the gates at once that I may rush on them
-forthwith.’</p>
-
-<p>So the gates of the city were flung open and out dashed
-Brasidas followed by his men, as he charged right into the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">231</span>
-centre of the Athenian army. The left wing, seized with
-panic, fled. Clearidas meanwhile led a body of men against
-the right wing, and a fierce struggle followed.</p>
-
-<p>Cleon, less at home on a battlefield than in the assembly
-at Athens, grew frightened at the unusual sights and sounds,
-and fled, leaving his army without a leader. As he fled an
-arrow pierced him and he fell to the ground, wounded to
-death.</p>
-
-<p>Brasidas also, as he turned to go to the help of Clearidas,
-was wounded. His followers carried him within the walls of
-the city. He lived long enough to know that the Athenians
-were utterly defeated.</p>
-
-<p>The people of Amphipolis had learned to love Brasidas,
-and he was buried with great splendour in the market-place.
-A temple was built to his honour, and every year sacrifices
-were offered and games were held in memory of the brave
-soldier.</p>
-
-<p>So deep was the affection of the people that they determined
-to forget that their city had been founded by an
-Athenian, and henceforth to count Brasidas the Spartan the
-true founder of Amphipolis.</p>
-
-<p>As Cleon and Brasidas were both dead, the peace party,
-with Nicias at its head, was able to arrange terms with the
-king of Sparta, and in spring, 421 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the Peace of Nicias
-was signed. The first part of the Peloponnesian War, which
-had begun ten years before, was ended.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">232</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIX">CHAPTER LXIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALCIBIADES THE FAVOURITE OF ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Peace of Nicias, which was made for fifty years, did not
-last more than six. Thucydides tells us that it did not really
-last even so long. For although for six years neither Spartans
-nor Athenians invaded each other’s land, yet they did as
-much harm as they could to one another.</p>
-
-<p>‘So that,’ says the wise historian, ‘if any one objects to
-consider it a time of war, he will not be estimating it rightly.’</p>
-
-<p>Almost as soon as peace was signed, Sparta and the State
-of Argos quarrelled. Each wished to get help from Athens,
-so each sent ambassadors to her. The Argives boldly begged
-Athens to join them against Sparta; the Spartans were
-content to remind her that she had signed the Peace of
-Nicias.</p>
-
-<p>In Athens at this time there was a rich young noble named
-Alcibiades, who wished the Athenians to make an alliance
-with the Argives.</p>
-
-<p>But the Spartan ambassadors had already been welcomed
-by the Athenians, because they had come with full power
-to arrange fair terms. Alcibiades was as determined as he
-was angry. To gain what he wished he resolved to play a
-trick on the Spartan ambassadors. So he went to them in
-secret, and told them how foolish they had been to tell the
-Athenians what great powers they had, for the assembly would
-certainly wrest from them more than they wished to give.</p>
-
-<p>‘When the assembly meets, tell the people,’ said Alcibiades,
-‘that you have no power, but that you will send
-their demands to the Spartan council. I will support you<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">233</span>
-and all will be well, for you will have time to think over their
-wishes.’</p>
-
-<p>The ambassadors thought that the young noble knew
-better than they how his countrymen should be treated, and
-they promised to follow his advice.</p>
-
-<p>So when the assembly met the next day, the Spartans
-declared that they had come only to report what the Athenians
-should say, that they had no power to arrange terms until
-they had heard from their own council.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had they spoken than Alcibiades jumped to
-his feet, and to the dismay of the ambassadors he pointed
-to them with scorn, saying, ‘These men say one thing one
-day, and another thing the next day; they are not to be
-trusted. Let us refuse to have anything more to do with
-them.’</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians at once agreed with Alcibiades that it
-was useless to treat with such unreliable ambassadors, and
-they then made an alliance with the Argives.</p>
-
-<p>When the Spartans reached their own country they told
-how they had been deceived by Alcibiades, and how rudely
-they had been treated by the assembly. And this, as well
-as the alliance which the Athenians had made with the
-Argives, was the cause of the second part of the Peloponnesian
-War.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans were thirsting to avenge the battle of
-Sphacteria, and to wipe out the memory of their surrender.
-When they met the Athenians in 418 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> at Mantinea they
-fought with the courage and the fierceness that had made
-them invincible until the fatal day of Sphacteria.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades, whose trick had been the cause of so much
-mischief, was the son of an Athenian, named Clinias.</p>
-
-<p>While Alcibiades was still young his father died, and
-Pericles became one of his guardians. He was a beautiful
-baby, a handsome boy, and when he grew to be a man he
-was so brave and so winning in his ways that he made friends
-very easily.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">234</span></p>
-
-<p>But he made enemies as well as friends, for he was wild
-and wayward, while his pride often made him behave with
-scant courtesy even to those whom he should have treated
-with reverence and respect.</p>
-
-<p>Staid, sensible folk were shocked at his careless, extravagant
-ways. Nicias distrusted him. But the citizens
-loved him and forgave him much, for he spent his wealth
-freely among them, and often entertained them with public
-shows.</p>
-
-<p>‘They love and hate and cannot do without him,’ wrote
-Aristophanes, as he watched the Athenians now cherishing,
-now chiding, their favourite.</p>
-
-<p>One day, he was a mere lad at the time, he was wrestling
-with a playmate, when, thinking he was going to be thrown,
-he suddenly bit his companion’s hand with all his strength.
-His friend quickly let go his hold, crying, ‘You bite, Alcibiades,
-like a woman.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ answered the boy, ‘like a lion.’</p>
-
-<p>Another day he was throwing dice in the street with
-his playmates, when a wagon pulled by two horses
-approached. It was the turn of Alcibiades to throw, and
-he shouted to the driver to stop, but the man paid no heed
-to the boy and drove on. The other children scampered
-out of the way, but the wilful little noble flung himself down
-in front of the horses and cried to the driver to go on now
-if he pleased.</p>
-
-<p>Afraid lest he should hurt the boy the man at once pulled
-up his horses, while those who had been looking on in terror
-rushed forward and dragged the foolish little fellow out of
-danger. But Alcibiades had made the driver pull up and
-he was content.</p>
-
-<p>His want of self-control became greater as he grew older.
-When he was at a grammar school he one day asked the
-schoolmaster to lend him one of Homer’s books. The master
-said that he did not possess it, whereupon the rude boy
-struck him and then turned and walked away. Some years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">235</span>
-later he struck a citizen whose talent in the theatre had outshone
-his own.</p>
-
-<p>When he was a young man he walked into the assembly
-with a pet quail hidden under his cloak. This would have
-raised a storm of indignation had it been done by anyone
-else.</p>
-
-<p>In the law court one of Alcibiades’ friends was accused,
-when the favourite at once seized the writ and tore it in
-pieces before the face of the judge.</p>
-
-<p>The young nobleman was rich, and much of his wealth
-he spent on horses. He sent seven chariots to the Olympic
-games, and once, to the great delight of the Athenians, their
-favourite won the first, second, and third prizes.</p>
-
-<p>Euripides, the poet, sang of the triumph of Alcibiades
-in these lines:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent14">‘But my song to you,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Son of Clinias, is due.</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Victory is noble; how much more</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To do as never Greek before;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To obtain in the great chariot race</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The first, the second, and third place;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">With easy step advanced to fame,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To bid the herald three times claim</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The olive for one victor’s name.’</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>At one time Alcibiades owned a very large, handsome
-dog, for which he had paid an enormous price. He ordered
-his tail, which Plutarch tells us was ‘his principal ornament,’
-to be cut off.</p>
-
-<p>His friends said that it was a stupid deed, and told him
-that every one in Athens was angry that he had spoiled the
-noble appearance of his dog. But Alcibiades only laughed,
-saying, ‘Just what I wanted has happened then. I wished
-the Athenians to talk about this, that they might not say
-something worse of me.’</p>
-
-<p>It was natural that so reckless and generous a youth
-should be surrounded by a crowd of flatterers, ready to
-applaud his foolish and sometimes insolent acts.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">236</span></p>
-
-<p>But Alcibiades had no love for these careless admirers,
-although he would spend hours with them at feasts and
-revels. His affection he gave to one whom you would
-scarcely have expected the gay young nobleman to notice—to
-Socrates, the great philosopher and teacher of Athens.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">237</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXX">CHAPTER LXX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">SOCRATES THE PHILOSOPHER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Socrates</span> was born in 469 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> He was not a noble like
-Alcibiades, but a man of humble birth. Nor was he handsome
-as was his disciple, but plain, even ugly, the people
-said. He was small, too, and dressed with little care.</p>
-
-<p>If anyone wished to find the philosopher, he knew that
-he had only to go to the market-place or into the streets.
-Here, from early morning until late at night, Socrates was
-to be seen, and always he was talking, talking to all who
-were willing to listen. And there were ever many who
-were not only willing but eager to hear what the teacher
-had to say, for his words were so wise, his conversations so
-strange.</p>
-
-<p>Socrates believed that the gods had sent him to teach
-the Athenians. From his boyhood he had heard a voice
-within him, bidding him to do this, not to do that. He
-often spoke of this voice to those who became his disciples.
-It became known as the dæmon of Socrates.</p>
-
-<p>The philosopher was a soldier as well as a teacher, and
-his philosophy taught him how to endure hardship as well
-as or even better than could the ordinary Athenian.</p>
-
-<p>In heat or in cold he wore the same clothing, and in all
-weathers he walked with bare feet. He ate little and drank
-less whether he was in the camp or in the city.</p>
-
-<p>Xanthippe, the wife of Socrates, had not a good temper,
-and she would often scold the philosopher. That may have
-been because while he was teaching wisdom in the market-place,
-Xanthippe was at home wondering how to provide<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">238</span>
-food for her husband and their children with the few coins
-she possessed. Socrates was never paid by his disciples,
-and so it often happened that Xanthippe found it difficult
-to get food and clothing for her household.</p>
-
-<p>The philosopher taught for many years, but at length, in
-399 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, his enemies accused him of speaking against the
-gods of Athens. He had even dared, so they said, to speak
-of new gods whom the people should worship, and that was
-a crime worthy of death.</p>
-
-<p>Socrates took little trouble to defend himself against the
-accusations of his enemies. His dæmon, he said, would not
-allow him to plead for his life. So he was condemned to
-death, but only by a majority of five or six votes out of
-six hundred.</p>
-
-<p>For thirty days Socrates was in prison, and he spent the
-time in talking to his friends just as he had been used to do
-in the market-place.</p>
-
-<p>One of his disciples, named Crito, bribed the jailer to
-allow his prisoner to escape, but Socrates refused to flee.
-He did not fear death, but faced it calmly as he had faced
-life.</p>
-
-<p>On the day before the sentence was carried out, he
-talked quietly to his disciples of the life to which he was
-going, for he believed that his soul, which was his real self,
-would live after he had laid aside his body as a garment.</p>
-
-<p>When the cup of hemlock, a poisoned draught, was
-brought to him, his friends wept, but he took the cup in his
-hand, and drank the contents as though it were a draught
-of wine.</p>
-
-<p>His last words to Crito were to remind him to pay a debt.
-‘Crito, we owe a cock to Asclepius,’ he said. ‘Discharge the
-debt and by no means omit it.’ Asclepius was the god of
-medicine, and in this way Socrates showed his reverence
-for the religious customs of his country.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_238" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_238.jpg" width="1820" height="2513" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">He drank the contents as though it were a draught of wine</div></div>
-
-<p>This was the man who found in Alcibiades, despite his
-wild ways, a noble mind and a kind heart. These he determined<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">239</span>
-to educate. And his pupil was quick to see that
-Socrates spoke truth to him. He soon learned to appreciate
-his kindness and to stand in awe of his virtue. Sometimes,
-indeed, the words of his master ‘overcame him so
-much as to draw tears from his eyes, and to disturb his very
-soul.’</p>
-
-<p>So dear did the philosopher become to Alcibiades that
-he often lived in the same tent with him and shared his
-simple meals. Yet sometimes he was tempted by his
-flatterers when they begged him to come to spend the days
-in pleasure and the nights in feasting. Then he would
-yield to their entreaties and for a while desert and even
-avoid his master.</p>
-
-<p>But the philosopher did not leave his pupil unchecked
-to do as he wished. He ‘would pursue him as if he had
-been a fugitive slave.... He reduced and corrected him
-by his addresses, and made him humble and modest, by
-showing him in how many things he was deficient, and how
-very far from perfection in virtue.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">240</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXI">CHAPTER LXXI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALCIBIADES PRAISES SOCRATES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">One</span> of the most famous disciples of Socrates was Plato.
-He loved his master well, and wrote down many of his conversations,
-so that his words may still be read.</p>
-
-<p>In a book, named the <i>Symposium</i>, Plato tells us that
-Socrates and his friends met at a banquet one day and spoke
-to each other in praise of love.</p>
-
-<p>When it came to Alcibiades’ turn to speak, he was eager
-to tell of the love he had for Socrates. He began by begging
-the others not to laugh if he said first of all that Socrates
-was like the images of the god Silenus, which they had often
-seen in the shops of Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Now Silenus was a satyr, a strange figure that was half
-man, half goat. In his mouth were pipes and flutes upon
-which he played, while his images were made to open, and
-within each might be seen the figure of a god.</p>
-
-<p>As the gay company thought of the uncouth figure of
-the satyr, at which they had often stared in shop windows,
-they could not but laugh at Alcibiades for comparing his
-master to such an image.</p>
-
-<p>But when the young nobleman went on to speak of the
-god that was hidden in Socrates, just as the image of one
-was concealed in the body of the satyr, it may be that the
-laughter of the gay company was hushed. For in truth the
-disciple could say no greater thing about the master he
-loved than this, that within him he bore the likeness of a god.</p>
-
-<p>But Silenus was not the only satyr that reminded
-Alcibiades of his master. Marsyas, a wonderful flute-player<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">241</span>
-also made him think of Socrates. For, said Alcibiades,
-‘Are you not a flute-player, Socrates? That you
-are, and a far more wonderful performer than Marsyas. He
-indeed with instruments used to charm the souls of men by
-the power of his breath. But you produce the same effect
-with your voice only, and do not require the flute; that is
-the difference between you and him.’</p>
-
-<p>Pericles, and other great Athenian orators, Alcibiades had
-heard, he said, unmoved, while Socrates’ words, ‘even at
-second hand and however imperfectly repeated, amaze and
-possess the souls of every man, woman and child who comes
-within hearing of them.’</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades then told his astonished listeners how his
-master’s eloquence held him as with chains of gold.</p>
-
-<p>‘This Marsyas,’ he says, ‘has often brought me to such
-a pass that I have felt as if I could hardly endure the life
-which I am leading ... and I am conscious that if I did
-not shut my ears against him, and fly from the voice of the
-siren, he would detain me until I grew old, sitting at his feet.
-For he makes me confess that I ought not to live as I do,
-neglecting the wants of my own soul, and busying myself
-with the concerns of the Athenians; therefore I hold my
-ears and tear myself away from him.’</p>
-
-<p>So greatly did the words of Socrates disturb Alcibiades
-that sometimes he even wished that his master were dead
-and could trouble him no more, and ‘yet I know,’ he adds
-quickly, ‘that I should be much more sorry than glad if he
-were to die; so that I am at my wit’s end.’</p>
-
-<p>But it was not only his master’s eloquence that Alcibiades
-praised before the gay company of revellers, it was
-his deeds as well.</p>
-
-<p>During the Peloponnesian War both Socrates and Alcibiades
-were present at the siege of Potidæa.</p>
-
-<p>‘There we messed together,’ said Alcibiades, ‘and I had
-the opportunity of observing his extraordinary power of
-sustaining fatigue and going without food. In the faculty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">242</span>
-of endurance he was superior not only to me, but to everybody;
-there was no one to be compared to him, yet at a
-festival he was the only person who had any real power
-of enjoyment.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Cold, too,’ Alcibiades said, ‘Socrates could bear without
-flinching. The winter at Potidæa was severe, the frost
-intense. The Athenian soldiers stayed indoors when they
-could; when they were forced to be out they put on as many
-extra clothes as they could find, their feet they swathed in
-felt and fleeces.’</p>
-
-<p>But Socrates, ‘with his bare feet on the ice and in his
-ordinary dress, marched better than the other soldiers who
-had shoes, and they looked daggers at him, because he
-seemed to despise them.’</p>
-
-<p>Yet another tale of his endurance Alcibiades told to the
-listening company.</p>
-
-<p>‘One morning,’ he said, ‘Socrates was thinking about
-something which he could not resolve; he would not give
-it up, but continued thinking from early dawn until noon—there
-he stood, fixed in thought; and at noon attention was
-drawn to him, and the rumour ran through the wondering
-crowd that Socrates had been standing and thinking about
-something ever since the break of day. At last, in the evening,
-after supper, some Ionians out of curiosity (it was now
-summer) brought out their mats and slept in the open air
-that they might watch him, and see whether he would stand
-all night. There he stood all night until the following
-morning, and with the return of light he offered up a prayer
-to the sun and went his way.’</p>
-
-<p>Not even yet had Alcibiades exhausted the praises of
-his master, and the gay company listened spell-bound and
-bewildered to the young noble. They had not guessed how
-well he loved, how gravely he had studied the words and
-ways of Socrates. Now it was of the courage of his master
-that he wished to tell, for Socrates had saved his life in
-battle.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">243</span></p>
-
-<p>‘This was,’ said Alcibiades, ‘the engagement in which I
-received the prize of valour; for I was wounded and he
-would not leave me, but he rescued me and my arms; and
-he ought to have received the prize of valour which the
-generals wanted to confer on me, partly on account of my
-rank, and I told them so (this Socrates will not impeach or
-deny), but he was more eager than the general that I and
-not he should have the prize.’</p>
-
-<p>When the Athenians fled after the defeat of Delium,
-the young nobleman was on horseback, and being himself
-safe, he watched Socrates, who was among the foot-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>‘There you might see him,’ said Alcibiades, ‘just as he
-is in the streets of Athens, stalking like a pelican, and rolling
-his eyes, calmly contemplating enemies as well as friends,
-and making very intelligible to anybody even from a distance
-that whoever attacked him would be likely to meet
-with a stout resistance; and in this way he and his companions
-escaped.’</p>
-
-<p>With one more tribute to his master, Alcibiades ended
-his discourse on love:</p>
-
-<p>‘His absolute unlikeness to any human being that is or
-ever has been is perfectly astonishing. His are the only
-words which have a meaning in them, and also the most
-divine, ... extending to the whole duty of a good and
-honourable man. This, friends, is my praise of Socrates.’</p>
-
-<p>You will be glad to know that Socrates valued the love
-of his disciple and returned it.</p>
-
-<p>‘I only love you,’ said the philosopher, ‘whereas other
-men love what belongs to you; and your beauty, which is
-not you, is fading away, just as your true self is beginning
-to bloom. And I will never desert you, if you are not
-spoiled and deformed by the Athenian people: for the
-danger which I most fear is that you will become a lover of
-the people, and will be spoiled by them. Many a noble
-Athenian has been ruined in this way.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">244</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXII">CHAPTER LXXII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE IMAGES OF HERMES ARE DESTROYED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the island of Sicily there were many different states. In
-some of these dwelt Greeks who owned Corinth as their
-mother-city. Trade between Sicily and Corinth was good,
-and because of this Corinth was growing more powerful
-than Athens liked.</p>
-
-<p>War broke out in 416 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> between Segesta and Selinus,
-two cities in the west of Sicily. When Selinus was joined
-by another town named Syracuse, the Segestans in dismay
-sent to the Athenians to ask for their help.</p>
-
-<p>It had long been the ambition of Alcibiades to conquer
-Sicily. He believed, too, that it would add to the glory of
-Athens if the island became part of the Athenian empire.</p>
-
-<p>So he now urged the assembly to send a fleet to Sicily,
-reminding them that if it could conquer Syracuse, it would
-then be in its power to ruin the trade of Corinth with Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>He did not tell the Athenians how great his ambitions
-were, but he told them enough to make them wish to help
-the Segestans, that they might in this way gain new
-territory for Athens.</p>
-
-<p>The assembly made up its mind to send ambassadors to
-Segesta, to find out if the town was able, as she said she was,
-to provide money to carry on the war, if the Athenians provided
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>When the ambassadors returned in the spring of 415 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>
-they brought back with them a sum of money from the
-grateful Segestans. They reported, too, that the wealth of
-the city was far greater than they had dreamed. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">245</span>
-although the ambassadors did not know until too late, they
-had been deceived by the townsfolk.</p>
-
-<p>For the rich plate and splendid ornaments with which
-the Segestans had adorned each feast to which the ambassadors
-had been invited, were taken secretly from house
-to house. So that the gold and silver dishes that dazzled
-the eyes of the Athenians were always the same, although
-they believed that each of their hosts owned the splendid
-dishes with which his table was laden.</p>
-
-<p>The sacred treasures of their temples, too, the Segestans
-pretended were of gold, while in reality they were of silver.</p>
-
-<p>But the ambassadors were convinced that the people
-they had visited were rich, and their report made the
-Athenians ready to do as Alcibiades and his party wished.
-So it was agreed that sixty vessels should be sent to the
-help of Segesta.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias, bent as ever on peace, did all he could to hinder
-the expedition. But when, in spite of all he could say, the
-assembly still determined to send a fleet to Sicily, he persuaded
-it at least to increase the number of ships from sixty
-to a hundred. Nicias himself, along with Lamachus and
-Alcibiades, was appointed commander of the expedition.</p>
-
-<p>But the night before the fleet was to sail a strange event
-took place.</p>
-
-<p>All over the city, at the corner of streets, in some niche
-of a public building, in front of the houses of the citizens,
-stood statues or busts of the god Hermes, on short pedestals
-or pillars.</p>
-
-<p>These figures were reverenced by the Athenians, just as
-the image of the Madonna by the roadside or in villages and
-towns abroad is worshipped by Roman Catholics.</p>
-
-<p>On the night before the expedition the statues of Hermes
-were chipped and broken, so that the god could no longer
-be recognised.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning as the Athenians went along the streets
-of the city, bent on their usual business, these poor defaced<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">246</span>
-images stared them in the face. Little groups gathered
-at street corners, before public buildings, wherever they
-had been used to see the statues of Hermes. At first they
-gazed at their mutilated god in fear, but fear soon changed
-to anger.</p>
-
-<p>Who had dared to do this impious thing, they asked one
-another. It would surely bring down the wrath of the gods
-on the Sicilian expedition.</p>
-
-<p>It was perhaps natural that the people should suspect
-their favourite Alcibiades. Was he not often reckless and
-ever a mischief maker? They were too excited to remember
-that he was not likely to do anything to delay the expedition
-on which his heart was set.</p>
-
-<p>When he heard that the people thought that he had
-defaced the images, Alcibiades demanded to be brought to
-trial. But no proof had yet been found of his guilt, and it
-was decided that the fleet should sail, and that Alcibiades
-should go with it.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">247</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXIII">CHAPTER LXXIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALCIBIADES ESCAPES TO SPARTA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">A great</span> crowd gathered at the Piræeus to see the fleet set
-sail for Sicily. Groups clustered together, talking eagerly
-of the new empire that was to be won in the West, and the
-glory that Athens would gain from her conquests. It was
-a noisy, happy crowd.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the heralds called for silence, and a hush fell
-upon the light-hearted folk as the priests prayed to the
-gods for the success of the expedition. Sacrifices, too, were
-offered by officers and sailors alike. Then to the strain of
-a hymn, in which the crowd of onlookers joined, the anchors
-were raised and the fleet sailed slowly away.</p>
-
-<p>When the ships reached Sicily each commander had a
-different plan to propose.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias, having learned how the ambassadors had been
-deceived, wished to sail homewards, without helping the
-Segestans. Lamachus, a brave, blunt soldier, wished to sail
-at once to Syracuse, and take the city by a sudden attack.
-Alcibiades proposed that they should do nothing until they
-had made allies of those cities that were not friendly to
-Syracuse, and to this plan the other commanders at length
-agreed.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile two ships from Athens had followed Alcibiades
-to Sicily, for the assembly had determined to arrest
-him, and bring him home to be tried for the destruction of
-the images of Hermes.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades went quietly on board one of the ships, but
-he knew that if he went back to Athens he would be condemned
-to death. So daring a deed as the spoiling of their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">248</span>
-god was more than the Athenians could forgive even to their
-favourite. And there were many who believed he was guilty.</p>
-
-<p>So when the ship reached a seaport town in Italy, Alcibiades
-slipped on shore and escaped from his enemies. In
-his absence the Athenians condemned him to death and
-confiscated his property, while the curses of the gods were
-called down upon his head.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades was very angry when he heard what his
-countrymen had done, and in his wrath he cried, ‘I will
-make them feel that I am alive.’ And he fulfilled his threat.
-For he went at once to the Spartans, the enemies of his own
-country, and told them the plans of the Athenian generals.
-He bade them send a clever general, named Gylippus,
-with an army to Syracuse, to help the city to withstand
-the attacks of the Athenians. He also advised them to
-build a fort at Decelea, a town in Attica, and to send troops
-there to harass the Athenians as much as possible.</p>
-
-<p>To betray his country in this way would have been an
-unworthy deed for any Athenian; it was the more unworthy
-in Alcibiades, because he had learned from Socrates the true
-meaning of honour and righteousness.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans were eager to profit by the advice of the
-traitor, and they saw for themselves the wisdom of his
-words. But in their hearts they did not trust the man who
-had betrayed his country.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades stayed in Sparta for some time, and while he
-was there he tried to win the confidence of the people by
-doing as they did.</p>
-
-<p>‘People who saw him wearing his hair cut close, bathing
-in cold water, eating coarse meal and dining on black broth,
-doubted or rather could not believe that he had ever had
-a cook in his house, or had even seen a perfumer or had worn
-a mantle of purple.’</p>
-
-<p>It was said that Alcibiades was like a chameleon; because
-just as it can change its colour as it chooses, so could the
-Athenian change his dress and his customs as he willed.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">249</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXIV">CHAPTER LXXIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SIEGE OF SYRACUSE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Nicias</span> and Lamachus now determined to attack Syracuse
-without delay.</p>
-
-<p>They succeeded in seizing the high ground which joined
-the town to the mainland of Sicily. Across this ground
-they began to build a wall, meaning to cut the Syracusans
-off from help by land. The Athenian fleet then sailed into
-the harbour of Syracuse, that so no help might reach the
-city by sea.</p>
-
-<p>But before the wall was finished, two things had happened
-to frustrate the plans of the Athenians.</p>
-
-<p>The Syracusans did not mean to let the enemy finish the
-wall if they could prevent it, so they sailed out of the city to
-drive them away. In the struggle which followed Lamachus
-was killed, and Nicias was left alone to carry on the siege.</p>
-
-<p>But what was perhaps even worse for the Athenians
-than the death of their general, was the arrival of Gylippus
-the Spartan commander.</p>
-
-<p>Almost before the Athenians were aware, Gylippus, at
-the head of his troops, marched into Syracuse. Nor did
-he rest until he had driven them from the hill on which they
-were encamped, and forced them to take up their position
-close to the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias was ill, and his illness made him more hopeless
-than perhaps he would otherwise have been. He wrote to
-the assembly to tell it that the Spartans had wrested from
-the Athenians all that they had gained, and that they were
-now themselves in danger of being besieged.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">250</span></p>
-
-<p>The fleet, he said, had been drawn up on the beach for
-months, and would have to be repaired before it was seaworthy.
-Even then it would be difficult to man the vessels,
-for many of the crew had died and many more were out of
-practice.</p>
-
-<p>So faint of heart was the Athenian general that, at the
-end of his gloomy report, he urged that the whole enterprise
-should be given up, or if not, that at least a new fleet might
-be sent out without loss of time. For himself he begged
-that he might be recalled, as he was ill and unfit for his duties.</p>
-
-<p>The assembly refused this last request, but it sent a new
-fleet to his help, commanded by Eurymedon and Demosthenes.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Gylippus was not idle. He attacked the
-Athenians both by land and sea. By land he was victorious,
-but at sea he was defeated.</p>
-
-<p>Undaunted, he at once ordered that the bows of the
-Spartan vessels should be made heavier and shorter. When
-this had been done he again attacked the enemy’s fleet, and
-when the battle ended Gylippus held the entrance to the
-harbour.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians were now in great peril, for they were
-besieged both by land and sea. They could not leave the
-harbour unless they cut their way through the fleet of the
-victorious Syracusans, and this they had no courage to
-attempt.</p>
-
-<p>But on the day after the battle which had seemed to seal
-their fate, hope awoke once more in the Athenian ranks, for
-the new fleet, under Eurymedon and Demosthenes, came in
-sight.</p>
-
-<p>The new commanders at once determined that the hill
-above Syracuse must be retaken. So on a moonlight night
-the attempt was made. But although a band of Athenians
-gained the hill, took a fort and repulsed six hundred of the
-enemy, they were soon afterwards put to flight. Many
-of the soldiers flung away their shields, as they were driven<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">251</span>
-down the hill, and fell over the cliffs. Others were pushed
-back upon their comrades who were still climbing upwards,
-so that soon the whole army was in confusion.</p>
-
-<p>This disaster crushed the spirit of the Athenians. Many
-of the soldiers, too, had fever caused by the marshy ground
-on which their camp was pitched. Many more were ill or
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Eurymedon and Demosthenes advised Nicias to order
-the whole army to sail away before the entrance to the Great
-Harbour was entirely blockaded, but to this he would not
-consent. It seemed that he was afraid to return to Athens
-to tell that the expedition had failed.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes then urged Nicias at least to leave the
-harbour and sail to a point where their supplies could not
-be stopped by the enemy. This too, Nicias refused to do.</p>
-
-<p>But soon after his refusal, large reinforcements reached
-the Spartans, and the general’s obstinacy gave way. He
-ordered the fleet to prepare to leave the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>The men were glad to desert their unhealthy quarters and
-got ready in haste, but secretly, that the Syracusans might
-not suspect their plans.</p>
-
-<p>All was ready, when, on 27th August 413 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the night
-before the fleet was to sail, an eclipse of the moon took place.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias was filled with superstitious fears. What might
-the eclipse not portend? He sent to the soothsayers, who
-said that the fleet must on no account leave the harbour for
-twenty-seven days. To disobey the oracle would be fatal,
-so Nicias believed, and he at once forbade the fleet to
-sail until the twenty-seven days had passed.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">252</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXV">CHAPTER LXXV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE ATHENIAN ARMY IS DESTROYED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Athenians made their preparations to retreat as
-secretly as possible, but the Syracusans soon discovered their
-plans. When they heard that their departure was delayed for
-twenty-seven days, they determined to attack the Athenian
-fleet once more, and again they were successful.</p>
-
-<p>On land the Athenians repulsed Gylippus, but they
-gained little by this success, for the Syracusans had made
-up their mind that the whole Athenian army should be
-destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>So, as Demosthenes had foreseen, they barricaded the
-entrance to the Great Harbour, drawing their ships across
-it and lashing them together with chains.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias saw that a battle must be fought, and he ordered
-a great number of the land troops to go on board the fleet.
-At all costs he must strengthen his navy.</p>
-
-<p>The first thing the Athenians had to do was to break
-through the ships that were lashed together at the mouth
-of the harbour. But before the chains could be broken the
-enemy was upon them, surrounding them on every side.
-Despair gave the Athenians courage, and so desperately
-did they fight that for a time it seemed that they might yet
-escape.</p>
-
-<p>Above the crash of vessels rose the cheers or groans of
-those who watched the battle from the shore.</p>
-
-<p>Thucydides gives us a picture of the hopes and fears, the
-triumph and despair of those who fought as of those who
-watched. He says:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">253</span></p>
-
-<p>‘The fortune of the battle varied, and it was not possible
-that the spectators on the shore should all receive the same
-impression of it. Being quite close and having different
-points of view, they would some of them see their own ships
-victorious; their courage would then revive, and they would
-earnestly call upon the gods not to take from them their
-hope of deliverance. But others, who saw their ships
-worsted, cried and shrieked aloud, and were by the sight
-alone more utterly unnerved than the defeated combatants
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>‘Others again who had fixed their gaze on some part of
-the struggle which was undecided were in a state of excitement
-still more terrible; they kept swaying their bodies
-to and fro in an agony of hope and fear, as the stubborn
-conflict went on and on; for at every instant they were all
-but saved or all but lost. And while the strife hung in the
-balance, you might hear in the Athenian army at once
-lamentation, shouting, cries of victory or defeat, and all
-the various sounds which are wrung from a great host in
-extremity of danger.’</p>
-
-<p>At length the Athenians were pushed back and yet
-further back, until the fleet was stranded on the shore.
-The soldiers who had been left on land now rushed forward
-and succeeded in saving sixty of their ships from the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes urged the men to embark and try once
-again to cut their way out of the harbour, but they refused,
-so crushed were they by their defeat. To retreat by land
-was all that the Athenians could now try to do, yet in their
-hearts they knew that the retreat must end in slavery or
-in death.</p>
-
-<p>The sick and the wounded were left behind. But those
-who were stricken with fever, caused by the marsh land on
-which they had been encamped, clung to their comrades,
-and scarce knowing what they did, begged that they might
-not be left behind. But their strength soon failed, and
-they sank down by the wayside to die.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">254</span></p>
-
-<p>Nicias, ill as he was, did all in his power to encourage and
-cheer his men. He himself led the van, Demosthenes brought
-up the rear.</p>
-
-<p>After marching for several days, the Athenians were
-parched with thirst. When at length they reached a stream,
-it was to find the enemy awaiting them on the farther bank.</p>
-
-<p>But their thirst was intolerable, and paying no heed to
-the foe, the soldiers rushed to the water. As they stooped
-to drink, the Syracusans fell upon them and put them to
-death.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes and his men had fallen behind the rest of
-the army, and had already been forced to surrender. Nicias
-now saw that he, too, must submit to Gylippus.</p>
-
-<p>Seven thousand prisoners were sent by the Spartans to
-work in stone quarries. These quarries were like dungeons,
-but they were open to the sky, and during the day the
-scorching sun beat down piteously on the miserable prisoners,
-while at night the cold was so intense that sleep was
-impossible.</p>
-
-<p>Here they were kept for seventy days, with only enough
-food to keep them alive, and with scarcely any water to
-drink. Many of the men died, those who survived were
-sold as slaves.</p>
-
-<p>Nicias and Demosthenes were both put to death. It is
-said that they were tortured, although Gylippus did all
-he could to save them from the angry Syracusans. Thus
-in disaster and defeat ended the expedition that sailed forth
-so bravely from Athens two years before.</p>
-
-<p>Thucydides says that this expedition was ‘the greatest
-adventure that the Greeks entered into during this war,
-and, in my opinion,’ he adds, ‘the greatest in which the
-Greeks were ever concerned; the one most splendid for the
-conquerors and most disastrous for the conquered, for
-they suffered no common defeat, but were absolutely
-annihilated—land-army, fleet and all—and of many thousands
-only a handful ever returned home.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">255</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXVI">CHAPTER LXXVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALCIBIADES RETURNS TO ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Alcibiades</span> fled from the Athenians to Sparta, but he did
-not stay there long, for he soon grew tired of living as simply
-and frugally as the people of that country. He had, too,
-made an enemy of one of the kings of Sparta, so in the
-autumn of 412 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he fled to Miletus in Asia Minor, where
-Tissaphernes, the Persian governor, ruled for the great king.</p>
-
-<p>Tissaphernes was a cruel man, but he was easily pleased
-by flattery. Alcibiades soon discovered the governor’s
-weakness, and he determined to win his favour by his agreeable
-speeches. He succeeded so well that the Persian
-named some of his parks and pavilions Alcibiades, in honour
-of the eloquent Athenian.</p>
-
-<p>The luxury and ease with which the Persians were surrounded
-pleased Alcibiades after his course of Spartan fare
-and discipline, and he indulged for a time in even greater
-magnificence than did Tissaphernes. His anger against the
-Athenians had gradually grown less vehement, and he now
-began to wish that they would forget their hatred of him
-and recall him from exile.</p>
-
-<p>But they had little thought to spare for the traitor, for
-troubles were pouring in upon them on every side. They
-had but lately heard of the complete overthrow of their
-fleet and army in Sicily, and they were now building a new
-fleet with money which Pericles had put aside long before,
-lest at any time Attica should be invaded by sea.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans, too, were still at Decelea, where they had
-built a fort, not fourteen miles from the city. Town after<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">256</span>
-town that had been allied with Athens in the time of her
-prosperity now became her enemy.</p>
-
-<p>In their despair the Athenians had taken a desperate step—they
-had asked their old enemies the Persians to come to
-their aid.</p>
-
-<p>It was then that Alcibiades saw an opportunity, as he
-thought, to help the people whom he had so cruelly betrayed,
-and at the same time to please the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent a message to the Athenians to say that if they
-would place the government of Athens in the hands of a
-party named ‘The Four Hundred,’ he would be able to
-persuade Tissaphernes to make an alliance with them. For
-his master, the great king, would make no terms with
-Athens as long as she was a democracy.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenians followed Alcibiades’ advice, and the
-government of the city was entrusted to The Four Hundred
-for a short time. But Alcibiades had not so much influence
-as he had believed, and the Persian government still
-refused to help the Athenians.</p>
-
-<p>Partly perhaps in anger with Tissaphernes, partly because
-the Athenians were not satisfied with the rule of The Four
-Hundred, Alcibiades helped to overthrow them and to
-make Athens once again a democracy.</p>
-
-<p>So grateful were the people for his help, that they declared
-his exile was at an end, and bade him return to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>But although Alcibiades longed to go back to Athens,
-he was content to wait until he could return covered with
-glory. By his own request he was given the command of a
-few ships, and with these he set sail for the Hellespont.
-Mindarus, the Spartan admiral, with a large army was there,
-hoping to stop the corn supply of Athens on its way to the
-city from the Black Sea. If the corn supply was stopped,
-Athens would starve, and Mindarus knew that the city
-would then soon be in the hands of the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>The Athenian fleet was in three divisions, and the one
-commanded by Alcibiades passed the Hellespont unseen by
-the enemy and took Mindarus by surprise.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">257</span></p>
-
-<p>By land and sea desperate battles were fought, and in
-both the Athenians were victorious. Mindarus was slain,
-and the Spartan fleet was destroyed. The Hellespont was
-not blocked, and Athens was no longer in danger of starving.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartans in their own laconic way sent a brief
-message to Sparta to tell of their defeat. The despatch
-was seized by the Athenians before it reached its destination.
-This is what the victorious people read: ‘The ships
-are gone; Mindarus is slain; the men are starving; we
-know not what to do.’</p>
-
-<p>For two years, from 409 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> to 407 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Alcibiades
-stayed at the Hellespont retaking cities which had thrown
-off their allegiance to Athens and joined Sparta. Then
-feeling that now he might return with glory, he set sail for
-Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Plutarch tells us that as Alcibiades drew near to the
-Piræus he was afraid to venture on shore, until he saw
-friends waiting to welcome him:</p>
-
-<p>‘As soon as he was landed the multitude who came out
-to meet him scarcely seemed so much as to see any of the
-other captains, but came in throngs about Alcibiades and
-saluted him with loud acclamations, and still followed him;
-those who could press near him crowned him with garlands,
-and they who could not come up so close, yet stayed to
-behold him afar off, and the old men pointed him out and
-showed him to the young ones.’</p>
-
-<p>In the assembly, crowns of gold were placed on his head,
-and he was created general, with absolute power, over both
-the land and the sea forces.</p>
-
-<p>His estates were given back to him, and a ‘holy herald’
-was bidden to absolve him from the curses which had been
-pronounced against him.</p>
-
-<p>The high priest alone refused to obey, for he said, ‘If he
-is innocent, I never cursed him.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">258</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXVII">CHAPTER LXXVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ANTIOCHUS DISOBEYS ALCIBIADES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> king of Persia was not pleased with his governor
-Tissaphernes, because he had made an alliance with neither
-the Athenians nor the Spartans. So he now sent his younger
-son Cyrus to take the place of Tissaphernes, bidding him
-make terms with the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>Lysander was now in command of the Spartan fleet.
-He was as brave and as skilful an admiral as Brasidas had
-been, although he could not win the trust of strangers as
-his famous countryman had done. But he gained the affection
-of his men and cared for their welfare.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus invited Lysander to a feast and tried to bribe
-him to join the Persians, but in vain.</p>
-
-<p>The Persian prince then offered to give him whatever
-he chose to ask. Lysander wished nothing for himself, but,
-to the surprise of all who were present, he begged that the
-daily wage of his sailors might be increased.</p>
-
-<p>In September 407 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the Spartan sailed with his fleet
-close to the harbour of Ephesus. About the same time,
-Alcibiades, with the Athenian fleet, arrived at Notium,
-from which port he could watch the movements of the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>As he had little money with which to pay his men, he
-determined to leave the fleet in charge of his pilot, Antiochus,
-while he, taking with him a few ships, sailed away to plunder
-a neighbouring city. In this way he hoped to find the
-money that he needed. Alcibiades strictly forbade Antiochus
-to risk a battle.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_258" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_258.jpg" width="1812" height="2502" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">The multitude saluted him with loud acclamations</div></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">259</span></p>
-
-<p>No sooner, however, had the admiral gone than the
-pilot disobeyed his orders, and with a number of ships
-he sailed past the Spartan fleet, challenging Lysander to
-fight.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan in reply merely sent a few vessels to drive
-away the reckless pilot, but the ships that had been left at
-Notium soon noticed that Antiochus was being chased, and
-they at once hastened to join him.</p>
-
-<p>In a short time the two fleets were engaged in battle.
-Antiochus was slain, and fifteen of the Athenian ships were
-taken or sunk. Those that escaped sailed to Samos, where
-Alcibiades soon joined them. He determined, if it were
-possible, to avenge the punishment the Spartans had inflicted
-on the Athenian vessels, so he sailed to Ephesus and
-offered battle to Lysander. But the Spartan had won a
-great victory and he did not mean to risk a defeat. He
-refused to fight again.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades still had enemies in Athens, and they were
-so angry with him for having left the charge of the fleet to
-Antiochus that they clamoured for his command to be
-taken from him. The assembly was forced to yield to them,
-and Alcibiades was deposed, while the command was given
-to an Athenian named Conon.</p>
-
-<p>The admiral then fled to a city on the Hellespont, where
-he had long ago bought a castle, lest at any time he should
-need a place of refuge from his enemies.</p>
-
-<p>Conon, the new commander, gained a great victory, at
-the island of Arginusæ, on the coast of Asia. After the
-victory a storm arose, and a dozen Athenian vessels which
-had been disabled in the battle went down with all their
-crews on board.</p>
-
-<p>No attempt was made to rescue the unfortunate sailors,
-and eight Athenian generals were ordered to come home to
-be tried for neglect of duty. Six only obeyed.</p>
-
-<p>The assembly met and condemned the generals, but
-their sentence was left undetermined. On the day after the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">260</span>
-trial a festival was held in the city, at which solemn family
-gatherings took place.</p>
-
-<p>When the relations of those who had perished at Arginusæ
-appeared, clad in black, their number roused the people to
-fresh fury against the condemned generals.</p>
-
-<p>The assembly met shortly afterwards, and one of the
-members demanded that the people should vote without
-delay, and if the generals were found guilty that they should
-be put to death.</p>
-
-<p>Now the generals had not yet finished their defence;
-moreover, there was a law in Athens that prisoners should
-be judged and sentenced one at a time.</p>
-
-<p>At first the assembly wished to obey this law, but the
-mob was so fierce that it yielded, and pronounced sentence
-of death on all the generals at once. To each was brought
-a cup of hemlock.</p>
-
-<p>Socrates was present in the assembly, and he was not
-afraid to denounce the sentence as unlawful. Nor would he
-withdraw his protest in face of the angry crowd. This was
-a brave deed, such as you would expect from the great
-philosopher.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">261</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXVIII">CHAPTER LXXVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE WALLS OF ATHENS ARE DESTROYED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> last battle of the Peloponnesian War was fought in the
-Hellespont in 405 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> The Athenians had drawn up their
-ships near a desolate spot named Ægospotami, and they
-soon found that it was an awkward place from which to get
-provisions for the army. There were no houses near, from
-which they could demand help, so the sailors were forced
-to leave their ships and scour the country round about for
-food. So dreary was the spot that the Athenians longed to
-fight at once.</p>
-
-<p>But Lysander was in a strong position on the other side
-of the strait; he had, too, a plentiful supply of food, so that he
-did not mean to let himself be forced into a battle.</p>
-
-<p>Again and again the Athenians sailed across the strait,
-hoping to tempt the Spartans to fight, but Lysander refused
-to move.</p>
-
-<p>As the weeks passed, the Athenians grew careless of an
-enemy that seemed too lazy or too cowardly to fight. They
-left their ships well-nigh unguarded, and wandered over the
-country in large numbers in search of food.</p>
-
-<p>Alcibiades, from his castle not far off, saw that the
-Athenians were in a dangerous position, and that they were
-leaving their ships unprotected. He rode over to Ægospotami
-to warn the generals to seek a safer position. At
-Sestos, a town but two miles off, they would be better able
-to defend themselves from the Spartans, should they be
-attacked. They would also be able to command provisions.</p>
-
-<p>But the generals did not wish to listen to Alcibiades, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">262</span>
-their pride forbade them to follow his advice. They spoke
-rudely to him, telling him to be gone, that now not he but
-others had the command of the forces.</p>
-
-<p>The very day after Alcibiades had warned them, the
-Athenians, leaving their ships for the most part unmanned,
-set out to search the countryside for food.</p>
-
-<p>Lysander knew how the enemy usually spent the afternoons.
-Now that they had grown heedless of danger he
-determined to attack the forsaken ships without further
-delay.</p>
-
-<p>So he ordered his vessels to row quickly across the strait
-and he found, as he expected, the Athenian fleet utterly
-unprepared for battle.</p>
-
-<p>There was indeed no battle fought, for the Spartans
-easily captured one hundred and seventy ships, and took
-more than four thousand prisoners, among whom were three
-or four admirals.</p>
-
-<p>Conon alone, with eight ships, succeeded in escaping.
-But he dared not return to Athens with tidings of the disaster,
-for he knew that if he did so he would be condemned to
-death. So he sent a ship to carry the terrible news to the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>It was evening when the vessel reached Piræus.</p>
-
-<p>‘The noise of wailing spread all up the Long Walls into
-the city, as one passed the tidings on to another; that night
-no one slept.’ For now there was no fleet to hinder the
-Spartans from stopping the supply of corn, and the Athenians
-knew that they must starve or surrender.</p>
-
-<p>For a little while the city refused to yield. But she had
-no allies, no ships, no money, and no corn could enter the
-town. The wretched people were dying of hunger before
-Athens surrendered to the Spartans in March 404 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>She expected no mercy from her conqueror. Even as
-she had destroyed many a Spartan town, so she thought
-that now she herself would be utterly ruined.</p>
-
-<p>But Sparta proved less harsh than Athens had deemed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">263</span>
-was possible. The city was indeed to be ‘rendered harmless
-for ever, but not destroyed.’</p>
-
-<p>All that was left of her fleet was taken away, and the
-walls of Piræus and the walls leading to Athens were pulled
-down.</p>
-
-<p>Lysander stood near, looking on, as the Athenians and
-the Spartans together began to break down the walls.</p>
-
-<p>It was not so gloomy a scene as you might have expected.
-Perhaps the Athenians were glad that at length the long and
-desperate struggle had come to an end. Flute players and
-dancers were present, and added a strange touch of gaiety
-to the crowd.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after the surrender of Athens, Lysander was ordered
-to put Alcibiades to death, lest he should encourage the
-Athenians at any time to throw off their allegiance to Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>Plutarch tells us that ‘those who were sent to assassinate
-him had not courage enough to enter the house, but surrounded
-it first and set it on fire.</p>
-
-<p>‘Alcibiades, as soon as he perceived it, getting together
-great quantities of clothes and furniture, threw them upon
-the fire to choke it, and having wrapped his cloak about his
-left arm, and holding his naked sword in his right, he cast
-himself into the middle of the fire, and escaped securely
-through it, before his clothes were burnt.</p>
-
-<p>‘The barbarians, as soon as they saw him, retreated, and
-none of them durst stay to wait for him, or to engage with
-him, but, standing at a distance, they slew him with darts
-and arrows.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">264</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXIX">CHAPTER LXXIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE MARCH OF THE TEN THOUSAND</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> 404 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, soon after the disaster of Ægospotami, Darius,
-king of Persia, died. His eldest son Artaxerxes succeeded
-to his father’s throne.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus, the younger son, who was present at his father’s
-death, was accused by Tissaphernes of trying to secure the
-throne for himself.</p>
-
-<p>Artaxerxes believed Tissaphernes, and Cyrus was arrested,
-and would have been put to death had not his mother
-pleaded that his life might be spared.</p>
-
-<p>The king listened to his mother’s request and set his
-brother free. He even allowed him to govern the provinces
-that had been his in his father’s lifetime.</p>
-
-<p>But Cyrus felt no gratitude to his brother, he hated him,
-and was determined if it were possible to seize his throne.</p>
-
-<p>So he hired a large number of Greek soldiers, for now
-that there was peace between Athens and Sparta, many of
-them were idle and glad to take service under Cyrus.</p>
-
-<p>The prince pretended that he was going to fight against
-Tissaphernes, and no one save himself and the Spartan,
-Clearchus, who was the leader of the Greeks, knew that the
-army was going to Babylon to fight against Artaxerxes, king
-of Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Greek soldiers was Xenophon, a scholar and
-a pupil of Socrates, who wrote the story of this expedition.</p>
-
-<p>Early in 401 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Cyrus assembled his troops at Sardis.
-When they arrived at Tarsus, a city on the coast of Cilicia,
-the soldiers began to suspect that Cyrus was going to lead<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">265</span>
-them against Artaxerxes. They were not afraid of the
-great king, but they were afraid to leave the sea behind
-them, for that was ever a terrible thing to the Greeks. So
-they refused to march farther.</p>
-
-<p>Clearchus, who was a stern commander and no favourite
-with his men, tried in vain to quell their rebellion, but all
-his efforts were vain. Not a step forward would they march.</p>
-
-<p>He had used his authority and failed, now he resolved
-not to command but to persuade. So he called his men
-together again, and as he looked at them he wept.</p>
-
-<p>Their grim, stern commander shedding tears! The
-soldiers stared at him in open-eyed wonder.</p>
-
-<p>Then Clearchus bade them see in how difficult a position
-they had placed him, for he must either fail Cyrus or
-forsake them. Forsake them he could not, so he declared,
-for were they not ‘his country, his friends, and his allies’?</p>
-
-<p>These words pleased the soldiers well, but what pleased
-them even more was that when Cyrus sent to ask their
-commander to go to his tent, he refused to go.</p>
-
-<p>But they were less content when Clearchus reminded
-them that as they refused to follow Cyrus, they could no
-longer expect him to give them food or wages. What, he
-asked them, did they mean to do?</p>
-
-<p>All that they could do was to send a few of their number
-to the prince to ask him where he intended to lead them.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus answered that he was taking them to the river
-Euphrates, to fight against a Persian rebel, and at the same
-time he offered to increase their wages if they would obey
-Clearchus.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks were far from home, and not knowing what
-else to do, they agreed to follow their commander. But they
-did not trust Cyrus, and they still suspected that he wished
-to march beyond the river Euphrates. And when they
-reached the river their suspicions proved true, for Cyrus
-told them plainly that he was going to Babylon to dethrone
-his brother Artaxerxes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">266</span></p>
-
-<p>As the Euphrates was unusually shallow, the army was
-able to cross over on foot, and soon afterwards it was in the
-desert of Arabia.</p>
-
-<p>Xenophon tells us that the desert was ‘smooth as a sea.’
-There were no large trees in all the great expanse, but there
-were many shrubs that had a pleasant scent.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers did not find the march across the desert
-dull, for they saw many strange beasts, unlike any they had
-ever seen—wild asses, ostriches, antelopes,—and these they
-hunted with zest.</p>
-
-<p>When the desert lay behind them they found themselves
-in a land where fields had been dug and gardens tended.
-Here, too, a little before them, was Artaxerxes, with a great
-army, ready to fight to the death for his crown.</p>
-
-<p>The king was encamped at a place called Cunascæ, where
-in the summer of 401 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a battle was fought. Strange
-as it may seem, before a blow was struck, the Persians were
-seized with panic and turned to flee. Only Tissaphernes at
-the head of the cavalry stood firm.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus with a small body of men, about six hundred in
-number, dashed upon the centre of the army, for there, surrounded
-by six thousand horsemen, was Artaxerxes. The
-guards scattered before his fierce attack, and the king
-turned to fly with them.</p>
-
-<p>Then Cyrus, careless of aught save his desire to slay his
-brother, and gain his crown, galloped after him, attended
-by only a few of his own bodyguard.</p>
-
-<p>As he drew near to the king, he hurled a javelin at him
-and wounded him slightly. Almost at the same moment
-Cyrus himself was wounded in the eye, and shortly after he
-fell from his horse and was slain.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus was dead, and ten thousand Greek soldiers were
-left alone with their generals in a strange land, surrounded
-by enemies. Tissaphernes pretended to be a friend to the
-Greeks, and offered to guide them safely home. So the two
-armies set out together, but before long the Greek soldiers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">267</span>
-grew suspicious of the Persians. To reassure the men,
-Tissaphernes invited Clearchus and his captains to his tent.</p>
-
-<p>The Greek general accepted the invitation, and, never
-dreaming of treachery, he went to the Persian’s tent with
-four other generals, twenty captains and a few soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had they entered than the captains and soldiers
-were seized and put to death by the order of Tissaphernes.
-Clearchus and the other generals were loaded with chains
-and sent to the king. Artaxerxes commanded that they,
-too, should be put to death.</p>
-
-<p>The Persians believed that the Greek army would now
-be forced to surrender. For, alone in an unknown land,
-without a leader, how could they hope to reach their own
-country?</p>
-
-<p>But the greatness of their danger roused the courage of
-the Greeks. Xenophon, who was at the time only a young
-man, made an eloquent speech to the army, bidding them
-choose new generals and obey them, for in this way only
-could they hope to escape from their enemies.</p>
-
-<p>The men did as he advised, choosing Xenophon himself
-as one of the new generals.</p>
-
-<p>And now began the retreat of the ten thousand through
-untold difficulties. To go back the same way as they had
-come was impossible, for the roads would be guarded by
-the Persians. So they turned to the north and marched
-through a wild and barren country, where fierce hillmen
-held the narrow passes through which they must pass.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes the savage tribes hurled down upon them
-from the heights great pieces of rock, and the soldiers lived
-in dread of being crushed to death by their unseen foes.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached Armenia it was December and
-bitterly cold. They were overtaken by a snowstorm so
-severe that many of the men lost their way. In vain they
-tried to rejoin their comrades, and at length, utterly worn
-out, they stumbled into great snowdrifts or lay down on the
-road to die.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">268</span></p>
-
-<p>Still the army struggled bravely on, in the face of the
-biting north wind, until at length it reached a tributary of
-the river Euphrates. This they crossed in safety, to find
-that most of their difficulties were over, for soon after they
-reached a city called Gymnias.</p>
-
-<p>Gymnias was a prosperous mining town, and the inhabitants
-welcomed the ten thousand gladly and gave them
-food and shelter, after they had heard of the terrible difficulties
-through which the men had come.</p>
-
-<p>But the soldiers did not linger long at Gymnias. They
-were eager to set out again, for a guide promised that in five
-days he would bring them to the sea.</p>
-
-<p>‘On the fifth day the Greeks came to a hill, and when the
-van reached the summit a great cry arose. When Xenophon
-and those at the rear heard it they thought that an enemy
-was attacking in front; but when the cry increased as fresh
-men continually came up to the summit, Xenophon thought
-it must be something more serious, and galloped forward to
-the front with his cavalry.</p>
-
-<p>‘As he drew near he heard what the cry was—“The Sea,
-the Sea.”’</p>
-
-<p>A few days more and the ten thousand were on Greek
-soil. Here they rested for a month, offering glad sacrifices
-of thanksgiving to Zeus, who had brought them back
-in safety to their own land.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">269</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXX">CHAPTER LXXX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">PELOPIDAS AND EPAMINONDAS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> Sparta heard that Artaxerxes had been able neither
-to force the ten thousand to surrender nor to slay them, she
-thought that his army could not be very powerful. So,
-confident in her own strength she went to war against the
-great king, dreaming that she would conquer Persia and add
-it to her dominions.</p>
-
-<p>But instead of conquering the country, the Spartans
-were so often defeated that, in 387 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, they were willing
-to make peace on any terms which Artaxerxes chose to
-make.</p>
-
-<p>And the king saw to it that the terms were severe, for
-he demanded that the Greek cities in Asia, which had now
-been free for ninety years, should once again acknowledge
-him as their lord.</p>
-
-<p>To those Greeks who loved their country truly, it seemed
-better to fight to death than to accept such terms. Nor
-will you wonder at this as you read the proud words in
-which the king couched his demands.</p>
-
-<p>‘King Artaxerxes thinks it just,’ he wrote, ‘that the
-Greek cities in Asia should belong to him. He also thinks
-it just to leave all the other Grecian cities both small
-and great independent, except three cities which are to
-belong to Athens as of old. Should any parties refuse to
-accept this peace I will make war upon them, along with
-those who are of the same mind, both by land and sea, with
-ships and with money.’</p>
-
-<p>The states of Greece accepted these terms, which were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">270</span>
-carved on stones and placed in their temples, so that it
-could be seen by all that Greece was no longer free.</p>
-
-<p>Although Sparta had been defeated by the Persians, she
-was the most powerful state in Greece. Wishing to add to
-her possessions, she determined to seize the little town of
-Thebes, which at this time was friendly with Athens.</p>
-
-<p>The two governors of Thebes, Leontiades and Ismenias,
-did not get on well together. Leontiades disliked his colleague
-so bitterly that he was ready even to betray his
-city, if by doing so he could injure Ismenias.</p>
-
-<p>In September 382 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a Spartan army, led by a general
-named Phœbidas, chanced to be marching through Bœotia.
-Not far from the walls of Thebes the soldiers halted to rest.</p>
-
-<p>Leontiades thought this was the opportunity for which he
-had been waiting. He would be able to get rid of Ismenias
-with the help of the Spartans. They had already determined
-to seize the town, but this the traitor did not know.
-He went secretly to the camp, asked for Phœbidas, and
-was admitted to the general’s tent. He at once offered to
-open the gates of Thebes to the Spartans on the following
-day.</p>
-
-<p>It would be an easy matter to seize the citadel if the
-gates were opened, for on the morrow a festival kept by
-women alone was to be held there, while at noon the men
-would be in their houses dozing during the hottest part of
-the day.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan general was as eager to take the city as
-Leontiades could desire, and the traitor slipped back to
-the city thinking of nothing save that Ismenias would soon
-be out of his way.</p>
-
-<p>At noon on the following day, the Spartans marched to
-the gates of Thebes, and there, according to his compact,
-was Leontiades waiting to admit them. Silently he drew
-the keys from under his cloak, unlocked the gates, and
-Phœbidas at the head of two thousand men entered the
-city. They made their way at once to the citadel, took<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">271</span>
-possession of it, and made the women, who were keeping
-the festival, prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Before long the men of Thebes roused themselves from
-their noontide nap, to find, to their dismay, that their wives
-and daughters were in the hands of the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>Leontiades ordered his rival Ismenias to be arrested, and
-soon after the miserable governor was sent to Sparta and
-cruelly put to death.</p>
-
-<p>Three hundred Thebans, who were determined not to
-submit to Sparta, succeeded in escaping from the city and
-reaching Athens. Many who wished to flee did not dare to
-do so, lest in their absence harm should befall their wives
-and daughters.</p>
-
-<p>Leontiades was rewarded for his treachery by being
-still allowed to rule in Thebes, along with a Spartan general.
-So harshly did Leontiades use his power that the people
-hated him, but years passed before the tyrant’s power was
-wrested from him.</p>
-
-<p>During these years those who had fled to Athens often
-heard from the miserable Thebans of the hardships they
-suffered under the stern rule of Leontiades.</p>
-
-<p>Among the exiles was a young nobleman named Pelopidas.
-Often he would tell his fellow exiles that it was dishonourable
-to dwell in comfort in Athens while their city
-was not free, and he would urge them to march against the
-Spartans, and banish them from Thebes.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas had a great friend in Thebes named Epaminondas.
-And although the two friends did brave deeds not
-only for their city, but for Greece, they are remembered
-most of all for the great love they bore each to the other.</p>
-
-<p>Both were of noble birth, but Pelopidas was rich, while
-Epaminondas was poor. Pelopidas had a generous nature,
-and used his money to help those who were not so well off
-as he was. Even among his friends many were quick to
-accept his kindnesses, but Epaminondas would never take
-from him either gold or gifts.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">272</span></p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas resolved that if Epaminondas would not share
-his wealth, he would share his friend’s poverty. So he bade
-his slaves lay aside his soft, silk robes, that he might clad
-himself in garments as simple as those of Epaminondas.
-He would allow no rich dishes to be set before him at table,
-but he ordered that his food should be both plain and
-scanty. In the camp he endured hardships as a common
-soldier, in war he showed himself bold as a lion.</p>
-
-<p>The friends were clever and well-trained, both in mind
-and body, but Pelopidas was often to be found in the fields,
-while Epaminondas was listening to lectures.</p>
-
-<p>Each longed to serve his country well, but no touch of
-jealousy disturbed the beauty of their friendship. It was
-founded deep on reverence and love.</p>
-
-<p>Some years before the treachery of Leontiades, when
-the Spartans were at war with Athens, the Thebans had sent
-a troop of soldiers to the aid of Sparta. Among the soldiers
-were the two friends Pelopidas and Epaminondas.</p>
-
-<p>The company with which the Theban soldiers fought was
-beaten, and many fled from the field. But Pelopidas and
-Epaminondas joined their shields together and fought on
-bravely. Pelopidas was wounded seven times, and at length,
-faint with the loss of blood, he fell to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas thought that his comrade was dead, but
-he resolved that the enemy should have neither the arms nor
-the body of his friend. So he stood over him with his shield,
-willing rather ‘to die than forsake his helpless Pelopidas.’</p>
-
-<p>Soon Epaminondas himself was so severely wounded
-that he was no longer able to defend the body of his friend.
-Had not the king of Sparta chanced to see his danger, and
-with a few followers dashed to his rescue, he would have been
-slain by the foe. But the king carried off both Epaminondas
-and Pelopidas, who was then found to be still alive.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas recovered, although his wounds had been
-severe, and never did he forget that it was his friend who
-had saved his life.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">273</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXI">CHAPTER LXXXI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SEVEN CONSPIRATORS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Three</span> years passed before the Theban exiles, encouraged by
-Pelopidas, formed a plot to deliver their city from the
-Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>They were helped in their plans by Phyllidas, a Theban
-who had stayed in the city and become secretary to the
-Spartan governors Archias and Philippus. He had taken
-this position under the enemy that he might be able the
-better to help his own countrymen. He agreed with Pelopidas
-that the time to act had now come.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas was also in Thebes, but he would have
-nothing to do with the plot. He would fight when the time
-for fighting came, but to slay even tyrants unawares was
-not to his liking.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas and six other exiles did not share the scruples
-of Epaminondas. They disguised themselves as farmers or
-country folk, and one evening reaching Thebes as it began
-to grow dark, they slipped one by one at different times into
-the city. They then found their way to the house of a citizen
-named Charon, who had promised to shelter them.</p>
-
-<p>Snow was falling and the streets were nearly deserted,
-so that the return of the exiles was unnoticed.</p>
-
-<p>On the following day, Archias and Philippus were to be
-present at a great banquet. Phyllidas, the secretary, had
-promised to bring to the feast seven beautiful Theban
-women. He told no one that the promised guests were the
-seven exiles, who had resolved to don a second disguise to
-enable them to be present at the banquet.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">274</span></p>
-
-<p>The day of the feast passed slowly for the conspirators,
-but at length evening came, and the exiles were putting on
-the garments that were to make them appear like beautiful
-women, when a loud knock came to the door.</p>
-
-<p>Already the long day had tried them sorely, and the
-knock filled them with foreboding.</p>
-
-<p>When the door was opened their hearts beat quicker,
-for there stood a soldier who bade Charon come to the banqueting
-hall without delay.</p>
-
-<p>Had Charon betrayed them? The exiles looked uncertainly
-one at the other. Then they grew ashamed of
-their distrust and bade their host hasten to Archias to
-allay his suspicions, if indeed they had been aroused.</p>
-
-<p>Charon was brave and true and he knew that the lives
-of the seven men were in his hand. He hoped that they
-trusted him, yet he wished to dispel any doubt that they
-might have. So he hastened to the nursery of his little son,
-and carrying the child to Pelopidas, he placed him in his
-arms, saying, ‘If you find me a traitor, treat the boy as an
-enemy without any mercy.’</p>
-
-<p>But the exiles protested, and truly, that they trusted
-him well and needed no such hostage, while Pelopidas bade
-him take the child back to his nurse.</p>
-
-<p>Then Charon, staying only to ask the help of the gods,
-hastened to the banqueting hall.</p>
-
-<p>Archias and his secretary were awaiting him, and Archias
-said, ‘I have heard, Charon, that there are some men just
-come lurking into the town. We fear lest they have come
-to stir up the citizens.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Who are they? Where are they hidden?’ asked
-Charon. For he wished to find out how much Archias
-knew.</p>
-
-<p>But Archias knew nothing. It was but a rumour that
-had reached him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do not disturb yourself because of a rumour,’ said
-Charon, who had now no fear of discovery. ‘There are many<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">275</span>
-tales told in the market-place. But I will find out if there
-is truth in what you have heard.’</p>
-
-<p>Archias was glad to leave the matter to Charon, for he
-was impatient to go back to the feast. So Charon hastened
-back to his house to tell Pelopidas and his comrades that
-their fears were needless, for Archias suspected nothing.</p>
-
-<p>But although Charon did not know it, a letter was at
-that moment being placed in the hands of Archias that
-might easily have ruined both him and the conspirators.
-For it told Archias the whole plot, as well as the names of
-those who were to take part in it.</p>
-
-<p>The letter had been sent from Athens, and as the messenger
-handed it to the Spartan governor, he said, ‘The writer of
-this desired that it might be read at once; it is on urgent
-business.’</p>
-
-<p>But Archias could think of nothing that night save the
-banquet and the beautiful Theban women, who should now
-soon arrive.</p>
-
-<p>Thrusting the letter unopened under the cushion on
-which his head rested, Archias cried, a smile upon his face,
-‘Urgent business to-morrow.’ And these words were ever
-after used as a proverb by the Greeks.</p>
-
-<p>The conspirators had now reached the hall. Their
-beautiful dresses were wide and loose, for beneath their
-splendour they wore armour. On their heads were garlands
-of pine and fir, so that their faces might not be seen.</p>
-
-<p>Archias and his guests clapped their hands gleefully.
-Here at last were the beautiful Theban women whose presence
-Phyllidas had promised should grace the banquet.</p>
-
-<p>But in a moment the conspirators had torn off their
-disguise. Archias and Philippus were slain almost before
-they had time to realise their danger, while the guests who
-had rushed to their aid were also put to death.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas and his comrades then hastened to the house
-of Leontiades. But he heard them knocking at the door,
-and when they rushed into his room a few seconds later,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">276</span>
-he met them with his sword drawn, and slew the first man
-who entered.</p>
-
-<p>A terrible struggle then took place between Leontiades
-and Pelopidas, but at length the traitor was wounded to
-death.</p>
-
-<p>The conspirators then ran to the prison, ordered the
-gates to be opened, and the prisoners to be set free and
-armed, for their only crime had been loyalty to their city.</p>
-
-<p>As day began to dawn, troops from Athens poured into
-the city to help the Thebans. The Spartans fought fiercely,
-but after a few days the garrison was forced to surrender,
-and once again Thebes was free.</p>
-
-<p>The grateful citizens then assembled in the market-place,
-where the priests crowned Pelopidas and Charon, while the
-people appointed them governors of the city.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">277</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXII">CHAPTER LXXXII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF LEUCTRA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Thebes</span> had always been a dull, unambitious, little town,
-but now her ambition awoke. She was not content only
-to be free, she wished to become the most important town
-in Bœotia.</p>
-
-<p>And there was one of her citizens who was so great a
-soldier and so wise a statesman, that he was able to do for
-Thebes more than she dreamed. Epaminondas not only
-made Thebes the chief city in Bœotia, but several years
-later, he conquered the Spartans, and so made her the most
-important town in Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas, too, fought for the glory of his country. He
-became the captain of a band of three hundred young
-Thebans, who had sworn to defend their city with their lives.</p>
-
-<p>These three hundred soldiers, more strictly trained than
-other youths, were named the Sacred Band, because each
-member was a friend to the other. As they had sworn to
-defend their city so they had promised to stand by one
-another unto death.</p>
-
-<p>After many victories, of which you will read, the Sacred
-Band fell on the battlefield. Even their conqueror, as he
-looked upon them shed tears, saying, ‘Perish any man who
-suspects that these men either did or suffered anything that
-was base!’</p>
-
-<p>For two years after Thebes won back her freedom, Sparta
-never ceased to try to wrench it from her. But at the end
-of two years she was forced to leave the Thebans alone, for
-all her soldiers were needed to fight against the Athenians,
-who had once more declared war against their ancient foe.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">278</span></p>
-
-<p>While the Spartans and the Athenians waged war one
-against the other Epaminondas was not idle, for he subdued
-the Bœotian cities which had dared to help Sparta while
-Thebes was in her power.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas, too, won a great victory in 375 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> against
-the Spartans at Orchomenus. He had with him only the
-Sacred Band and a small company of cavalry when he
-found himself unawares facing a large Spartan army.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are fallen into the midst of the enemy,’ cried one of
-the Band. ‘Why so, more than they into the midst of us?’
-said Pelopidas.</p>
-
-<p>The rare confidence of their captain inspired the Band to
-fight even more valiantly than usual, and to win a great
-victory over the large army of the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>This victory encouraged the Thebans so much that in
-the following year they succeeded in banishing the Spartans
-from Bœotia.</p>
-
-<p>Thebes was now at the head of the Bœotian Confederacy,
-just as Sparta was ruler of the Laconian Confederacy.
-Four years later, in 371 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, the Greek States met to arrange
-terms of peace among themselves.</p>
-
-<p>It was agreed that each city should be treated as independent.
-But when Agesilaus, king of Sparta, rose to take
-the oath, he took it not alone for his own city, but for
-the cities that belonged to her allies as well.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas sprang to his feet to remonstrate, saying
-that if Agesilaus was allowed to take the oath for the allied
-cities, he too must be permitted to take it for all the cities
-of Bœotia.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan king, angry with the bold demand of the
-Theban, taunted him with taking away the liberty of the
-Bœotian cities.</p>
-
-<p>‘And what do you do with the liberty of the cities of
-Laconia?’ retorted Epaminondas.</p>
-
-<p>Agesilaus was astonished at what he considered the
-insolence of the Theban. In a rage he snatched up the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">279</span>
-treaty of peace, struck out the name of Thebes, crying that
-if the Thebans wished war they should have it. The other
-cities signed the treaty, so Sparta and Thebes were left to
-settle their quarrel alone.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas hastened back to Thebes, where he was
-at once chosen general of the Theban army.</p>
-
-<p>Without delay he set out to secure a pass by which he
-thought the Spartans would attempt to enter Bœotia.</p>
-
-<p>But the Spartans, led by Cleombrotus, one of their kings,
-did not try to enter by the pass. Finding a narrow mountain
-track, they succeeded in eluding Epaminondas, and marching
-within eight miles of Thebes.</p>
-
-<p>Here, on the plain of Leuctra, the Spartans encamped
-in 371 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Near to Leuctra were the tombs of two Bœotian maidens.
-Many years ago they had slain themselves, because of the
-cruelty with which the Spartans had treated them.</p>
-
-<p>An old prophecy said that some day the Spartans would
-be defeated at the tombs of the maidens. Epaminondas,
-although he did not greatly believe in soothsayers, encouraged
-his captains to fight by reminding them of this old saying.</p>
-
-<p>Before the battle Pelopidas had a strange dream. In
-his dream he saw the two maidens of Leuctra alive and
-wandering about the plain. Their father, too, was there,
-and Pelopidas heard him say that if the Thebans wished
-for victory, they must sacrifice to the gods a maiden with
-chestnut hair.</p>
-
-<p>When he awoke, Pelopidas told his dream to the other
-captains, and as they were wondering what to do, a colt of
-a bright chestnut colour ran through the camp.</p>
-
-<p>‘So,’ cried a soothsayer, ‘the sacrifice is come. Expect
-no other, but use that which the gods have sent.’</p>
-
-<p>Then the colt was solemnly offered in sacrifice at the
-tombs of the maidens. And the army was content, for the
-gods, they were sure, would give them the victory.</p>
-
-<p>Until now a Greek army had always been drawn out in a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">280</span>
-long, narrow line. But Epaminondas arranged his men in
-a new way. His left wing was only a few men wide, but it
-was fifty men deep, which made it unusually strong.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas with his Sacred Band was placed in front of
-the heavy left wing, while the rest of the army was arranged
-as usual.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan cavalry attacked the Theban horse, but
-it was soon driven from the field. Cleombrotus was with
-his right wing and he now led it against the strong left wing
-of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Bravely as the Spartans fought, they could not withstand
-the onslaught of the left wing, led by the Sacred Band.</p>
-
-<p>Cleombrotus fell and was carried from the field, wounded
-to death. The Spartans still struggled bravely, although
-their king was slain. But when Epaminondas called to his
-men, ‘Give me a step more and the day is ours,’ the Thebans
-spurred on to one more effort, broke the Spartan line and
-put it to flight. The Thebans had won the day, with but
-little loss of life, while four hundred Spartans had been slain.</p>
-
-<p>Cleombrotus was the first Spartan king who had fallen
-on a battlefield since the fatal day of Thermopylae.</p>
-
-<p>The terrible news of the defeat of Leuctra was sent to
-Sparta, but the citizens were too well disciplined to show
-the dismay which they must have felt.</p>
-
-<p>They had been beaten by the inhabitants of the dull
-little town of Thebes, yet no sound of grief was heard in
-their streets, nor was any sign of mourning to be seen.</p>
-
-<p>It was on a festive day that the fateful tidings reached
-the city, and sacrifices were offered and games held as though
-nothing had happened to interrupt the usual rites.</p>
-
-<p>Those whose friends had fled looked sullen and ashamed,
-for it was counted a disgrace to leave a lost battlefield alive.
-Those whose friends had fought to the death were to be
-seen in the streets the following day, with faces that were
-calm and content. Of such stern stuff were the Spartans
-made.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">281</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXIII">CHAPTER LXXXIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE DEATH OF EPAMINONDAS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Thebes</span> was now the most powerful city in Greece. But
-Epaminondas was not yet content. He wished to invade
-Sparta.</p>
-
-<p>In November 370 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he marched with his army into
-Arcadia, which lay to the north of Laconia. Here he was
-joined by all those who wished to throw off the Spartan
-yoke. His army soon numbered forty thousand, some
-even say it was seventy thousand strong.</p>
-
-<p>Sparta could hardly believe that any one had dared to
-invade her territory. She was used to fighting in other
-states of Greece or in other countries, but it would be a
-new experience if she was forced to fight for her own homes.
-Yet there was Epaminondas and his army encamped within
-sight of the city.</p>
-
-<p>The Spartan women had never before seen the smoke
-of an enemy’s fire camp, and they gave way to despair, in
-spite of their stern training in self-control.</p>
-
-<p>But the Theban general was too wise to attack the city.
-He knew that the Spartans had gathered together a large
-army, and that they would fight to the death for their homes.
-So, satisfied that he had encamped in sight of Sparta, he
-turned away, destroying the land through which he passed.
-The Spartans were eager to follow and fight with the enemy
-who had defied them, but their king refused to lead them
-to battle.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas was not yet ready to leave Spartan territory.
-He led his army to the country of Messenia, which the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">282</span>
-Spartans had conquered many centuries before, banishing
-or making slaves of the people.</p>
-
-<p>The Theban general roused the descendants of these
-slaves, and encouraged them to build a new city on Mount
-Ithomé, where Aristomenes had made his gallant stand
-against the Spartans.</p>
-
-<p>While the first stones of the new city were being laid, the
-sound of flutes was heard. When it was finished it was
-named Messenia. A large piece of ground which belonged to
-Sparta was given by Epaminondas to the citizens of the
-new town. Those who had been slaves or Helots were now
-free men.</p>
-
-<p>The army then marched back to Thebes, which it reached
-four months after the time for which Epaminondas had been
-appointed commander.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of all he had done for his country, his enemies
-wished him to be punished, because he had not laid down
-his command on the proper day. But he appealed to the
-people, and they gladly made him, along with Pelopidas,
-general for another year.</p>
-
-<p>When the year had passed, Epaminondas was treated
-coldly, not only by his enemies but by the people also,
-because he had failed to surprise and take the city of
-Corinth.</p>
-
-<p>In Thessaly at this time there was a cruel king named
-Alexander. So badly did he treat his subjects, that they
-begged the Thebans to come to their help.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas was sent to Thessaly to punish Alexander,
-unless he promised to treat his people less harshly. The
-king was forced to listen to the Theban general, but he was
-angry because Pelopidas had dared to interfere with him
-and he resolved to punish him.</p>
-
-<p>For some time the king found no opportunity to reach
-his enemy, but at length Pelopidas was foolish enough to
-go through Thessaly with only a few followers.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was overjoyed to have the general in his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">283</span>
-power, and he at once sent a band of men to capture him
-and throw him into prison.</p>
-
-<p>But the Thebans were very angry when they heard that
-their favourite general was a prisoner, and they determined
-to set him free. So they sent a large army into Thessaly
-to rescue Pelopidas.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas went with the army as an ordinary soldier,
-and you can imagine how he must have longed to be at its
-head, so that he might himself deliver his friend.</p>
-
-<p>The Theban generals were not clever, and though they
-did all they could to conquer the army that Alexander sent
-against them, they soon saw that the battle was going
-against them.</p>
-
-<p>Then they showed that if they were not clever they were
-wise, for they went to Epaminondas, and begged him to
-take command of the army.</p>
-
-<p>But it was too late for even a clever general to rescue
-Pelopidas, and all Epaminondas could do was to save the
-Theban army from being destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>The Thebans were so grateful to Epaminondas for his
-help that they made him general once more, and sent him
-back to Thessaly with a larger army that he might save
-his friend.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander knew that he need not hope to conquer the
-great Theban general, and a few days after Epaminondas
-entered Thessaly, the king set Pelopidas free. He then
-asked the Thebans to make peace with him.</p>
-
-<p>Three years later, in 364 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, Pelopidas was ordered to
-go at the head of an army against his old enemy.</p>
-
-<p>As he was ready to leave Thebes, the sun was eclipsed
-and the soothsayers did not hesitate to say that this was a
-bad omen. Many of the soldiers were afraid to march,
-and Pelopidas was too angry to wait to force them to go
-with him, so he set out with only a few men. When he
-reached Thessaly he bade all those who hated the tyrant to
-join him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">284</span></p>
-
-<p>Thousands who had groaned under the cruelty of the
-king flocked to his side, but even then the army of Alexander
-was twice as large as his.</p>
-
-<p>The two forces met at a place called Cynoscephalæ, where
-a great battle was fought.</p>
-
-<p>Pelopidas led his men well, and himself fought so bravely
-that the battle was all but won in spite of the greater
-strength of the enemy. Suddenly Pelopidas caught sight
-of Alexander, and forgetting everything save his desire to
-avenge his imprisonment, he sprang forward to slay the
-tyrant. Ere his followers could reach him, he himself was
-struck down and killed.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was defeated and his kingdom was taken from
-him. But the Thessalians could not rejoice, because Pelopidas,
-to whom they owed their deliverance, had been slain.
-They buried him with great pomp on the field where he had
-fallen.</p>
-
-<p>Epaminondas was filled with grief at the loss of his dear
-friend. He tried to forget his sorrow in serving his country.</p>
-
-<p>In 362 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he fought at Mantinea against the Spartans,
-on the field where long before he had saved the life of Pelopidas.</p>
-
-<p>Never had Epaminondas fought more bravely than on
-this day, leading the Bœotians against the foe ‘as a war-galley
-ploughs through the waves with its beak.’</p>
-
-<p>The victory was well-nigh gained, when a Spartan thrust
-his pike through the breast of Epaminondas. He fell, and
-his men carried him off the field to a little hill, from which
-the battle could be seen.</p>
-
-<p>For a short time the great general lay unconscious, but
-at length he opened his eyes and asked if his shield was
-safe. He was told that it was safe and that the battle
-was won.</p>
-
-<p>Then he begged to see his two chief officers. They
-had fallen on the field, and when the news was broken to
-him, the dying man said,</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">285</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Then you had better make peace.’</p>
-
-<p>The head of the spear that had struck the general was
-still in the wound. As it was withdrawn he breathed
-his last.</p>
-
-<p>It was Epaminondas who had made Thebes great. After
-his death she slowly slipped back into her old insignificant
-position.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">286</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXIV">CHAPTER LXXXIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE TWO BROTHERS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> city of Corinth stood upon the narrow isthmus that
-joined the mainland of Greece to the Peloponnesian peninsula.
-She had two harbours, a large fleet, and she carried
-on a prosperous trade with other countries.</p>
-
-<p>As the city grew strong and populous, she began to plant
-colonies in other lands. One of the wealthiest of these
-colonies was the town of Syracuse in Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>In 346 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Syracuse was in the power of a tyrant named
-Dionysius. The other cities in Sicily would have been in
-the same plight had their inhabitants not fled to a neighbouring
-town, and sought the aid of a powerful prince named
-Icetes. Icetes had a large army, and with its help they
-hoped to be able to overthrow Dionysius.</p>
-
-<p>But trouble after trouble overtook the people, for the
-Carthaginians had sailed from Africa and had reached their
-shores. Sicily was in despair lest they should conquer the
-island and make it their own.</p>
-
-<p>In their distress, the Sicilians sent messengers to Corinth,
-their mother-city, to beg her to help them to get rid of both
-the Carthaginians and Dionysius.</p>
-
-<p>Icetes pretended to approve of this, but no sooner had
-the ambassadors set out for Corinth than he made friends
-with the Carthaginians. He hoped that if they drove
-Dionysius away, he himself would become tyrant of Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>In Corinth, about twenty years earlier, there dwelt two
-brothers of noble birth—one was named Timophanes, the
-other Timoleon. Never were two brothers more unlike<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">287</span>
-save that both were brave. Timophanes was cruel and
-ambitious, while Timoleon was gentle and content. Yet
-under his quiet ways Timoleon had one strong passion and
-that was the love he bore his country.</p>
-
-<p>Timophanes was a captain in the Corinthian army; his
-brother served in the ranks.</p>
-
-<p>Once when the captain was sent against a neighbouring
-state, he was thrown from his horse, which had been wounded.
-He fell close to the enemy and his men fled, leaving him in
-danger of being taken prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon saw what had happened, and rushing from the
-ranks, he stood over Timophanes with his shield, and defended
-him from the spears which were being hurled at him by the
-enemy. Although he himself was sorely wounded, he never
-flinched. But at length his comrades rushed to his aid and
-drove off the foe. Timoleon had saved his brother’s life.</p>
-
-<p>Not long after this, Timophanes was given the command
-of four hundred foreign soldiers. This pleased the captain,
-but to the dismay of the citizens he used the troops to make
-himself tyrant of the city.</p>
-
-<p>All who dared to oppose him he put to death, while he
-ruled so harshly that he was hated and feared by everyone.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon was ashamed of his brother’s behaviour. He
-begged him to treat the people more kindly, and if he must
-rule at least to rule with justice. But Timophanes first
-mocked at his brother’s words, and then he grew angry and
-refused to listen to them.</p>
-
-<p>Gentle as Timoleon was, he could be strong when there
-was need to be so. In a short time he went again to his
-brother, taking with him two friends who used to admire
-Timophanes.</p>
-
-<p>Together the three men besought the tyrant to give up
-the power he had so wrongfully seized, and to serve his
-country in an upright way.</p>
-
-<p>Again Timophanes laughed at his friends, but when they
-persisted in their entreaties he grew angry, and rudely bade<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">288</span>
-them begone. Then Timoleon hid his face in his cloak and
-wept, while the others put his brother to death.</p>
-
-<p>The Corinthians, for the most part, praised Timoleon
-because he loved his country so well that he sacrificed his
-brother for her sake. But there were some citizens who
-blamed Timoleon for allowing his brother to be put to death
-before his eyes. His mother refused to see him and called
-down upon him the curses of the gods. This pained Timoleon
-more than anything else, and he begged her to see him, if it
-were but once. But she would not allow him to enter her house.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon loved his mother, and her treatment made him so
-sad that he refused either to eat or to drink. He resolved to
-starve himself to death rather than endure his mother’s
-reproaches.</p>
-
-<p>His friends did all they could to comfort him, and at
-length they succeeded in persuading him to eat. But his
-sorrow was too great to let him stay in Corinth, so he left
-the city, and for several years he lived by himself. Even
-when he returned to Corinth, he still refused to take part in
-any public business.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon was fifty years old when in 346 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the Syracusans
-sent to the Corinthians to beg for help against the
-Carthaginians.</p>
-
-<p>The Corinthians determined to send an army to Sicily
-to help their fellow-countrymen, but they could find no one
-willing to go at its head.</p>
-
-<p>Some one proposed that Timoleon should be made commander
-of the force that had been raised, and he was at once
-appointed.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Timoleon thought that it was now time that he
-should do something for his country; in any case he undertook
-the task that was given him with goodwill.</p>
-
-<p>One worthy citizen bade Timoleon act ‘like a man of
-worth and gallantry. For,’ said he, ‘if you do bravely in
-this service we shall believe that you delivered us from a
-tyrant; but if otherwise, that you killed your brother.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">289</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXV">CHAPTER LXXXV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">TIMOLEON SENDS DIONYSIUS TO CORINTH</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Timoleon</span> was ready to sail to Sicily with a fleet of seven
-vessels and a force of about one thousand men, when a
-message from Icetes reached the Corinthians.</p>
-
-<p>The traitor told them it was useless to try to help the
-people of Sicily, for he had joined the Carthaginians, and
-their combined army would easily crush any force that was
-sent against them.</p>
-
-<p>This made the Corinthians so angry that they at once
-added two hundred soldiers to Timoleon’s small army, as
-well as three vessels to his fleet.</p>
-
-<p>Even so, Timoleon’s task seemed hopeless. Athens, with
-hundreds of ships and with tens of thousands of men, had
-failed to take Syracuse. How then could the Corinthian
-hope to do so with his handful of men and his small fleet?</p>
-
-<p>Before he sailed, Timoleon journeyed to Delphi to offer
-sacrifices to Apollo. As he prayed in the temple, a wreath
-slipped from its place and fell upon his head. It seemed
-to Timoleon that Apollo was already crowning him with
-victory.</p>
-
-<p>At length all was ready, and the army embarked and
-set sail with a favourable wind. Suddenly a bright flame
-leaped out from the sky and hovered over the ship in which
-Timoleon sailed. The flame soon changed into a torch
-which guided the ships until they reached Rhegium, a town
-in Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>Here Timoleon learned that Icetes had already defeated
-Dionysius, who was now shut up in the citadel of Syracuse,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">290</span>
-and that he had sent the Carthaginians with twenty warships
-to Rhegium to keep the Corinthians from reaching Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon had only ten vessels, and he knew it would be
-impossible to leave Rhegium unless he could in some way
-cheat the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>So he pretended to agree to Icetes’ demands, and then
-begged the Carthaginian generals to go with him to the
-assembly to tell the people what they had agreed. Meanwhile
-he had given orders to his fleet to be ready to sail
-the moment he returned.</p>
-
-<p>In the assembly the generals and the people of Rhegium
-began to talk, and they grew so interested in what they were
-saying that they paid very little attention to Timoleon. The
-generals indeed forgot all about him, which was just what
-the Corinthians had hoped would happen.</p>
-
-<p>By and by when the conversation seemed most engrossing,
-Timoleon slipped quietly out of the hall and hastened
-to the harbour. The moment he was on board his ship,
-the fleet set sail and before long reached Sicily in safety.</p>
-
-<p>Without their generals, the Carthaginians had not known
-what to do, and while they had hesitated Timoleon had
-escaped. But when the Carthaginian generals found out
-how they had been tricked, their indignation knew no bounds.</p>
-
-<p>Not far from the small town at which the Corinthians
-landed was a city named Adranum, where there was a
-temple consecrated to the god Adranus. This deity was
-reverenced throughout the whole island.</p>
-
-<p>The city was divided into two parties, one of which sent
-for Icetes, the other for Timoleon, to help them each against
-the other.</p>
-
-<p>Both generals at once set out for Adranum, Icetes with
-five thousand, Timoleon with only twelve hundred men.
-On the second day the Corinthians found that in spite of
-all their haste they had been outstripped by the army of
-Icetes. It was already encamped close to the city.</p>
-
-<p>The Corinthian officers begged Timoleon to order a halt,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">291</span>
-as there seemed no need for further haste, and their men
-needed food and rest after their hurried march.</p>
-
-<p>But Timoleon wished to take the enemy by surprise.
-He thought that if they did not delay they would reach
-Icetes and his men while they were putting up their tents
-and preparing supper. So instead of listening to his officers,
-he seized his shield, and going to the head of his army he bade
-them follow him and he would lead them to victory. The
-enemy’s camp was still three and a half miles away, but the
-Corinthians marched on bravely.</p>
-
-<p>As Timoleon had hoped, he reached the camp of the
-enemy while the men were getting ready a meal and were
-unprepared to fight.</p>
-
-<p>Before they were aware of his approach, Timoleon had
-fallen upon them and put them to flight, taking the camp
-as well as many prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>The people of Adranum at once opened their gates to
-the victorious general, and told him that when the battle
-began, the doors of their temple suddenly opened of their
-own accord. On the threshold stood their god, holding his
-javelin in his hand. It was trembling as though the god
-was weary with its weight.</p>
-
-<p>Other cities, when they heard of the victory of the
-Corinthians, gladly entered into alliance with them.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Dionysius, shut up in Syracuse by Icetes, was
-growing tired of his position, and food was becoming scarce
-in the citadel. He, too, thought it would be well to make
-terms with Timoleon.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent to the Corinthian general to offer to surrender
-the citadel if he would promise to send him in safety to
-Corinth.</p>
-
-<p>When Timoleon heard this he felt more than ever sure
-that the gods were on his side. He gladly accepted the
-tyrant’s offer, and at once sent two of his officers and a
-company of men to receive the keys of the citadel.</p>
-
-<p>Dionysius treated the Corinthians well, leaving to them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">292</span>
-a number of horses, a store of weapons and two thousand
-soldiers. He himself escaped from the city and fled to the
-camp of Timoleon. Soon afterwards he set sail for Corinth.</p>
-
-<p>Tidings of his arrival was sent before him, and as the
-ship drew near to the harbour, the people gathered there in
-excited groups. They had often shuddered at the tale of
-the cruel deeds of the man who was now coming to their
-city, shorn of his power. They were eager to see him.</p>
-
-<p>A few weeks later they wondered if this man had really
-been as cruel as they had been told. They saw him contentedly
-loitering in the market-place or spending long hours
-in the shops of the perfumers, and it seemed to them as
-though he must always have been as harmless as he was
-now. In later years the tyrant is said to have taught the
-boys and girls of Corinth to read, and he also trained
-those who wished to sing in public.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon had not been fifty days in Sicily before Dionysius
-was on his way to Corinth. The Corinthians were so pleased
-with their general that they determined to send him reinforcements,
-both of cavalry and infantry. But it was some
-time before the fresh troops reached Timoleon, for the
-Carthaginian fleet was waiting near the coast of Italy to
-bar the way.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">293</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXVI">CHAPTER LXXXVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ICETES TRIES TO SLAY TIMOLEON</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> small band of Corinthians who now held the citadel of
-Syracuse was closely besieged by Icetes. But soon he grew
-tired of waiting for it to surrender and hit, as he thought, on
-a quicker way of driving the enemy out of the island.</p>
-
-<p>Without Timoleon he would not fear the Corinthians, so
-he resolved to get rid of him without delay. He hired two
-foreign soldiers and sent them to Adranum with orders to
-kill the general.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon went about without a bodyguard, as Icetes
-knew. When the assassins reached the city, he was in
-the temple, sacrificing to the gods, for it was a festival.</p>
-
-<p>With their daggers hidden beneath their cloaks, the
-men slipped in among the crowd of worshippers and were
-soon standing together, close to the altar.</p>
-
-<p>As they hesitated to strike the fatal blow, a sword
-flashed out behind, and one of them fell slain to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>His companion, in his terror, forgot to kill Timoleon,
-and laid hold of the altar lest he too should be slain by an
-unseen foe.</p>
-
-<p>When his terror grew a little less he did not try to obey
-Icetes’ orders, but begged Timoleon to spare his life and he
-would tell him everything.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon promised that his life should be safe, and then
-the miserable man confessed that he and his friend had been
-hired by Icetes to kill the Corinthian general.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the stranger who had killed one of the
-assassins had fled to the top of a great precipice that overlooked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">294</span>
-the city. Here he was captured, and as he was
-hurried before Timoleon he told the guards that the man
-he had slain was one who years before had killed his father.
-He pleaded that he had done right to punish the evil-doer.</p>
-
-<p>It may be that the Corinthians and the citizens of
-Adranum agreed with their prisoner; in any case they were
-so grateful that he had saved the life of Timoleon that they
-gave him a gift of money and set him free.</p>
-
-<p>As the attack on Timoleon had failed, the Carthaginians
-thought they would try to frighten the citadel of Syracuse
-into surrendering. So they decked the masts of their ships
-with wreaths, and hung Grecian shields over the sides of
-their vessels. Then with shouts of victory they sailed
-toward the harbour.</p>
-
-<p>From the citadel, the garrison saw the ships and heard
-the shouts, but it was not so easily deceived as Mago, the
-general of the Carthaginians, had expected. The Corinthians
-were sure that Timoleon would have managed to let
-them know had he been defeated, so they laughed at the
-enemy’s trick and stayed safe within their walls.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after this the reinforcements sent from Corinth
-joined Timoleon, and he then marched to Syracuse.</p>
-
-<p>Mago had already begun to doubt the loyalty of Icetes.
-He feared that he was trying to make terms with Timoleon.
-When, a little later, he saw the soldiers of both generals
-talking together in a friendly way as they fished for eels in
-the marshes near to the city, he grew more suspicious.
-Day by day his fears grew, until at length in a panic, he
-ordered his troops to embark and set sail for Africa.</p>
-
-<p>The very day after Mago had deserted his post, Timoleon
-himself reached Syracuse. He looked at the empty harbour.
-Where was the enemy? Not a single Carthaginian vessel
-was to be seen.</p>
-
-<p>When Timoleon learned how Mago had fled, he laughed at
-his cowardice, and still laughing he offered a reward to anyone
-who would tell him where the Carthaginians had hidden.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">295</span></p>
-
-<p>But although Mago had fled, Icetes and his men still
-held the city. But the wisdom of Timoleon and the valour
-of his troops soon put them to flight, and without the loss
-of one Corinthian soldier the city was taken.</p>
-
-<p>This wonderful success was said by everyone to be due to
-the good fortune that followed all that Timoleon undertook.</p>
-
-<p>The citizens of Syracuse thought that Timoleon would
-now make himself tyrant. To their surprise as well as to
-their joy, he proclaimed that they themselves were to
-govern the city. He ordered the public crier to go through
-the streets, bidding all those who were willing, to come
-with pickaxe and hammer to pull down the citadel which
-Dionysius had built.</p>
-
-<p>The people did not need to be asked twice. With right
-goodwill they destroyed not only the citadel, but the palaces
-in which the tyrants of Syracuse had dwelt. And while
-they pulled down the walls, flutes sounded and women
-danced and sang. On the places where the palaces had
-stood, Timoleon ordered courts of justice to be built.</p>
-
-<p>So neglected and forsaken had the city been during the
-rule of the tyrants, as well as during the siege, that grass
-was growing in the market-place, grass enough to feed the
-soldiers’ horses.</p>
-
-<p>All over Sicily, cities had been deserted, and in some
-of them deer and wild boars wandered up and down the streets.</p>
-
-<p>Timoleon saw that if the island was to grow prosperous
-again, those who had fled must be brought back, and new
-citizens must come and settle in the different cities.</p>
-
-<p>So he sent to Corinth to ask her to send out colonists
-to the island. This she did, and she also sent vessels to Asia
-to bring back to their island home those who had taken
-refuge there. Soon sixty thousand citizens were added to
-the inhabitants of Sicily.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">296</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXVII">CHAPTER LXXXVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF CRIMISUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> exiles who had returned to Sicily, and the colonists who
-had come to settle there, were needed, not only to till the
-ground but to defend the island. For the Carthaginians,
-angry with Mago’s failure, now sent to Sicily an enormous
-army, seventy thousand strong.</p>
-
-<p>The Syracusans were frightened to see so large a force,
-and not more than three thousand men were willing to go
-with Timoleon against the enemy. He hired four thousand
-soldiers, but of these one thousand deserted before a battle
-was fought.</p>
-
-<p>Near the river Crimisus the Carthaginians encamped,
-and thither Timoleon hastened with his faint-hearted army.</p>
-
-<p>On their way they met a number of mules laden with
-baskets of parsley. Now the Sicilians were used to place
-wreaths of parsley upon the tombs of their dead, so they
-were sure that it was a bad omen to meet the mules, and
-they grew still more uneasy.</p>
-
-<p>But Timoleon laughed at their fears, telling them that
-in Corinth the victors at the games were crowned with
-chaplets of parsley. He then lifted some from the baskets,
-and twisting it into a wreath he placed it on his head, his
-officers first and then the soldiers following his example.</p>
-
-<p>At that moment two eagles flew toward the army. One
-carried in its talons a snake, which it had killed, the other
-uttered loud cries as of victory. Here was a good omen!
-It was ever a sign of success to see an eagle, and the soldiers
-thanked the gods and plucked up courage.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">297</span></p>
-
-<p>Before long Timoleon led his men to the top of a hill that
-looked down on the river Crimisus. But at first he could
-see nothing, for a thick mist veiled the river.</p>
-
-<p>The hill was still hidden from sight when the mist lifted
-from the river, and Timoleon saw that the Carthaginians
-had begun to cross to the other side, but they had no idea
-that the enemy was near.</p>
-
-<p>Now was the time, thought Timoleon, to charge the
-enemy, while it was crossing the river. So bidding the
-trumpets sound, he seized his shield and ordered his troops
-to advance.</p>
-
-<p>The courage of the men had returned, and with cheers
-they rushed down the hill and charged the Carthaginians,
-who, taken by surprise, yet fought bravely. They wore
-heavy armour and their breastplates were able to resist the
-thrust of the Corinthian spears. Soon the men were at close
-quarters with swords drawn, and a terrible struggle began.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed that now one side, now the other would conquer.
-While the victory still hung in the balance, a violent storm
-broke over the battlefield.</p>
-
-<p>The thunder crashed so that the orders of the officers
-could no longer be heard. Lightning flashed in the eyes
-of the startled horses and blinded them, while torrents of
-rain and hail dashed in the faces of the Carthaginians.</p>
-
-<p>As the ground grew muddy, the soldiers slipped and
-fell to the ground. The Sicilians, who wore light armour,
-easily struggled to their feet, but their foes found it almost
-impossible to rise.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the river overflowed its banks and swept across
-the battlefield. This was more than the Carthaginians
-could bear, and they turned and fled, but many were overtaken
-by the swift-footed Sicilians and slain.</p>
-
-<p>The victorious army found more spoil than they had
-thought possible—a thousand breastplates and ten thousand
-shields of marvellous workmanship, as well as ornaments of
-gold and silver were taken.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">298</span></p>
-
-<p>When tidings were sent to Corinth of the great victory
-of Crimisus, the richest of the spoil was also sent to the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>On the booty were written these words, ‘The people of
-Corinth and Timoleon, their general, having redeemed the
-Greeks of Sicily from Carthaginian bondage, make oblation
-of these to the gods, in grateful acknowledgement of their
-favour.’</p>
-
-<p>Sicily was now free, and the people in their gratitude
-begged Timoleon to become their king. But this he would not
-do, nor would he even keep the command of the army. His
-wife and children whom he had left in Corinth joined him,
-and for a time he lived with them in Syracuse as quietly
-as any other citizen. When he left the city it was to live
-in a beautiful country house which was given to him by the
-grateful people of Syracuse.</p>
-
-<p>As he grew older, Timoleon’s eyesight failed, and at length
-he became quite blind. But old and blind as he was the
-people did not forget all that he had done for them, and they
-loved and trusted him as in happier days.</p>
-
-<p>If trouble arose in the assembly, they would beg him to
-come to give them his advice. And the old man would
-order his car, which was drawn by mules, and be driven to
-the hall. Here he would sit and listen to the troubles of
-the people, and when he spoke it was seldom that his words
-were not obeyed.</p>
-
-<p>Three or four years after the battle of Crimisus, Timoleon
-died. The grief of the Syracusans was deep, for they had
-loved their deliverer well.</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of men and women, clad in white and crowned
-with garlands, followed his body as it was carried slowly
-through the city, past the places where once the palaces
-of the tyrants had stood.</p>
-
-<p>As the bier was laid on the funeral pile, a herald cried
-aloud, ‘The people of Syracuse inter Timoleon the Corinthian
-at the public expense and decree that his memory be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">299</span>
-honoured for ever, by games held each year, the prizes to
-be competed for in music, in horse-races and all sorts of
-bodily exercises, and this because he suppressed tyrants,
-overthrew the barbarian, replenished the principalities that
-were desolate with new inhabitants, and then restored the
-Sicilian Greeks to the privilege of living by their own laws.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">300</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXVIII">CHAPTER LXXXVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DEMOSTHENES WISHES TO BECOME AN ORATOR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Demosthenes,</span> the great Athenian orator, was born in 384 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>
-He was a shy and delicate boy, and often stammered when
-he spoke. Some of his companions were cruel enough to
-laugh at him and even to imitate his stammer. So he would
-often slip away from his playmates, but when they saw that
-he did not join in their games, they but laughed at him the
-more.</p>
-
-<p>The father of Demosthenes was a rich man, He died
-when his little son was seven years old, leaving his fortune
-to his child. But the guardians who took charge of
-Demosthenes and his wealth were careless and dishonest
-men. Some of the boy’s money they lost, some they spent
-on themselves.</p>
-
-<p>As the child grew older, his guardians found that there
-was little money left to use for his education. They could
-not afford to get the best teachers, nor did they pay well
-those whom they employed. So that Demosthenes was
-often taught carelessly or not at all.</p>
-
-<p>Of the boy’s mother we are told little, save that she was
-kind to her delicate little son and tended him with care.
-But she, too, died while he was still young.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes did not learn his lessons well or quickly,
-but he was interested in all that went on around him, and
-he soon began to distrust his guardians. Long before he
-was sixteen years old, he knew that they had lost his money,
-and even then he hoped that some day he would be able to
-punish them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">301</span></p>
-
-<p>The boy loved the beautiful city of Athens in which he
-grew up. Never did he tire of gazing at the wonderful
-temples, the noble statues which made her renowned
-throughout Greece.</p>
-
-<p>There were in these as in other days famous orators in
-Athens, to whom the citizens were ever eager to listen. For
-they were well pleased to be reminded of the glorious days
-of Thermopylae, and of Marathon, though now they were
-not anxious to win glory on the battlefield. They had
-grown rich and indolent, and were content to stay at home,
-content to go to games and to theatres.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes often heard his teachers talk of the great
-orators of Athens, and he wished that he might listen to
-their eloquent speeches.</p>
-
-<p>One day Callistratus, a famous orator, was to speak at
-a great trial that was taking place in the city.</p>
-
-<p>The boy begged to be allowed to go, and his tutor at
-length agreed to find a corner in the hall where the boy
-might sit to see and to hear all that went on.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes could imagine no greater treat than to be
-there, hidden away in the midst of the crowd, to listen to
-Callistratus.</p>
-
-<p>The speech was a great one, and when it was over the
-Athenians crowded round the orator, eager to applaud, while
-many followed him to his home. Demosthenes came away
-with his ambition roused. He said to himself, ‘I too will
-be an orator and make the people do as I wish. They shall
-applaud me, even as they have applauded Callistratus
-to-day.’</p>
-
-<p>But another reason that made him wish to speak in
-public was that he might expose the dishonesty of his
-guardians in the law courts. For he could not be content
-until they were punished.</p>
-
-<p>When the boy had made up his mind to be an orator
-he lost no time in beginning to study. He knew that he
-must work hard if he would succeed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">302</span></p>
-
-<p>For two years he read history, wrote speeches, and when
-it was possible, went to hear famous orators. When he was
-eighteen he thought that he was ready to speak in public.
-So he went to the law courts and accused his guardians of
-theft.</p>
-
-<p>At first little notice was taken of what the lad said, but
-he pleaded his cause again and again, until at length he
-won his suit, and his guardians were punished. But it was
-too late to recover the money, which was now nearly all
-lost.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">303</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXXXIX">CHAPTER LXXXIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DEMOSTHENES THE GREATEST ORATOR OF ATHENS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Demosthenes</span> had spoken in the law courts, but he was not
-content. His great ambition now was to speak in the
-assembly of Athens. He wished to remind the Athenians
-of their glorious past, he wished to encourage them to fight
-against the enemies of their country.</p>
-
-<p>His first attempt was a failure. His voice was weak,
-his sentences long, and before he had finished what he wished
-to say, the people were laughing and jeering, so that he was
-forced to sit down.</p>
-
-<p>As he left the assembly he was so unhappy that he
-thought he would never speak to the people again. He
-walked along the streets, scarcely knowing, in his distress,
-where he went.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he felt some one touch his arm, and looking
-up he saw a very old man who had been in the assembly,
-and had heard him speak. He had seen how disappointed
-Demosthenes was as he left the hall, and he had determined
-to encourage him. So first he praised the crestfallen
-orator, saying that his speech had reminded him of the great
-orator Pericles, and then he upbraided the young man for
-being so easily discouraged by the laughter of the people.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes allowed himself to be comforted and made
-up his mind to try again, thinking that perhaps after all
-he would be able to make the people listen to him. But in
-spite of all his efforts he could not hold their attention, and
-he left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak that none
-might see his sorrow.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">304</span></p>
-
-<p>An actor, named Satyrus, who knew him well, followed
-him home, for he guessed that Demosthenes would be in
-despair. The orator did not hide his trouble from his
-friend. ‘The citizens will listen to any one, even to those
-who have not studied, rather than to me,’ he said in bitter
-anger. ‘A sailor with a foolish story will make them applaud,
-while if I tell them tales of the glorious deeds of their own
-countrymen they pay no heed.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You say true, Demosthenes,’ answered Satyrus, ‘but
-I will soon tell you how this is if you will recite to me some
-lines from one of our great poets.’</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes did as his friend asked. But although he
-said the words correctly, his voice was dull and his attitude
-was stiff and awkward.</p>
-
-<p>Satyrus said nothing when his friend ended, but himself
-began to repeat the same lines. Yet you would scarcely
-have known that they were the same, for the eyes of the actor
-flashed, his voice rang clear, then sank to a whisper, his
-body swayed now this way, now that, as he sought to make
-the meaning of the poem plain.</p>
-
-<p>Then Demosthenes understood as he had never done
-before how it was that his carefully studied speeches did
-not interest the Athenians. He must not only read or recite
-them, he must act them, so that the things of which he spoke
-might become real to those who listened.</p>
-
-<p>From that day Demosthenes began to work in a different
-way. He made one of the cellars of his house into a study,
-that there, undisturbed, he might practise his voice and
-gestures. He stayed in this strange study for two or three
-months at a time, and lest he should be tempted to go to
-theatres or games, he shaved one side of his head, ‘that
-so for shame he might not go abroad, though he desired it
-ever so much.’</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_304" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_304.jpg" width="1807" height="2501" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">He left the assembly, hiding his face in his cloak</div></div>
-
-<p>At other times to strengthen his voice he would go to
-the seashore while a storm was raging, and putting pebbles
-in his mouth he would try to make his words heard above<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">305</span>
-the roar of the waves. He also recited speeches while he
-was out of breath from running up some steep hill, and at
-home he would stand before a large mirror to watch his
-gestures and the expression of his face.</p>
-
-<p>And his hard work and perseverance were rewarded,
-for Demosthenes became what he most desired to be, the
-greatest orator of Athens. His enemies learned to fear his
-speeches, his friends to count upon them to aid their cause.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes was thirty-three years of age when he made
-his first speech against Philip of Macedon, who now, in
-356 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, invaded Greece.</p>
-
-<p>The king would gladly have made an alliance with the
-Athenians and gained their goodwill. But they, wishing to
-recover Amphipolis, which he had taken from them, refused
-to make peace.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes lost no opportunity to speak against Philip.
-He reminded his countrymen that the king was ‘not the
-man to rest’ content with that he has subdued, but is
-always adding to his conquests, and casts his snare around
-us while we sit at home postponing.’ In another speech
-he told the Athenians that they chose their captains, ‘not
-to fight, but to be displayed like dolls in the market-place.’</p>
-
-<p>These and other speeches against the king of Macedon
-were called ‘The Philippics’ of Demosthenes, and still to-day,
-if some one makes a speech against a special person,
-although his name is not Philip, we call the speech a
-‘Philippic.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">306</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XC">CHAPTER XC<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE SACRED WAR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Philip</span> of Macedon began to reign in 359 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> When he
-was sixteen years of age he was taken by Pelopidas as a
-hostage to Thebes. Here he stayed for three years, reading
-Greek literature and learning to love it, studying Greek art
-and learning to admire it. The craft of war he gained from
-the great Theban general Epaminondas.</p>
-
-<p>When Philip went back to Macedon as king, he trained
-his army in the movements he had first seen used by the
-Theban troops under their famous general.</p>
-
-<p>At this time a war called the Sacred War was going on
-in Greece.</p>
-
-<p>Delphi, where the temple of Apollo stood, had been
-seized by the Phocians, who were led by a bold commander
-named Philomelus. The home of the Phocians was near
-Mount Parnassus.</p>
-
-<p>In the temple vast treasures had been stored; these, said
-Philomelus, should be safe as of old. But when he fortified
-the city and brought a large army of soldiers to guard it,
-the other Greek states said it was time to interfere—that
-Delphi must be taken from the Phocians.</p>
-
-<p>Philomelus at once resolved to increase his army, but he
-had no money to pay more soldiers. The Phocians had
-already spent all that they possessed on the war, and the
-citizens of Delphi had been so heavily taxed that they
-could give no more.</p>
-
-<p>Money Philomelus must have! So he began to borrow
-from the treasures of the temple, which he had promised
-should be untouched. As the war went on he took more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">307</span>
-gold, more of the sacred treasures, none of which he was able
-to replace.</p>
-
-<p>When the Thebans and their allies met Philomelus, he
-and his hired troops were soon put to flight. Philomelus
-fled alone to the top of a precipice, pursued by the enemy.
-He must either leap into the awful abyss or be captured by
-the angry soldiers. In a moment he had made his choice,
-and when the Thebans reached the spot where he had been
-seen but a second before, he was no longer there.</p>
-
-<p>But other leaders replaced Philomelus, and they too
-rifled the temple of Apollo.</p>
-
-<p>At length the Phocians grew so bold that they determined
-to attack Philip of Macedon who had invaded
-Thessaly, and drive him from Greek territory. They forced
-the king to return to Macedon, but he soon came back with
-a large army and the Phocians retreated to the famous
-pass of Thermopylae. They hoped that Athens would help
-them to hold the pass against Philip, but in spite of the
-Philippics of Demosthenes, she did nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Alone, the Phocians were not strong enough to resist
-Philip’s attack, and they were forced to surrender. The
-pass, which the king had long resolved to gain, was in his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>When the Athenians heard of the disaster they were
-dismayed, and when Demosthenes again urged them to
-take up arms against the invaders, his appeal was not made
-in vain.</p>
-
-<p>In August 338 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the united army of Athenians and
-Thebans marched against the Macedonians, and met them
-in the plain of Chæronea, where a great battle was fought.</p>
-
-<p>Philip’s famous son Alexander, who was then only
-eighteen years old, was in command of one of the wings
-of the Macedonian army. Young as he was, it was his
-attack upon the Sacred Band of Thebans that determined
-the battle.</p>
-
-<p>The Sacred Band fought to the last, and was cut down<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">308</span>
-where it stood. Soon the rest of the Greek army fled from
-the fatal field, Demosthenes, who was among the foot
-soldiers, taking flight with his comrades.</p>
-
-<p>On the roadside, not far from the town of Chæronea and
-near to Thebes, is a tomb, where the fallen heroes of the
-Sacred Band were laid.</p>
-
-<p>Standing over the tomb is the statue of a lion, now partly
-in ruins, which was placed there as though to protect the
-bodies of the slain.</p>
-
-<p>The victory of Philip at Chæronea left Athens, and indeed
-all Greece, at the mercy of the king, and he treated her well.
-His chief ambition was to conquer the kingdom of Persia,
-and the army he meant to lead against the great king was
-to be made up of Greeks as well as of Macedonians.</p>
-
-<p>But in 336 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, before his plans could be carried out,
-Philip was murdered.</p>
-
-<p>When Greece heard the tidings she rejoiced, for now
-again she hoped to be free. None was more glad than
-Demosthenes, for he, as you know, had always been a bitter
-enemy of the king.</p>
-
-<p>The orator was wearing black clothes at the time, because
-he had but lately lost his daughter. When he heard that
-Philip had been murdered, he put them away and clad himself
-in gay garments, while he placed a wreath upon his head.</p>
-
-<p>Only one Athenian was found to reprove the Athenians
-for their hasty and foolish joy.</p>
-
-<p>Phocion, who was both a general and an orator, said
-gravely, ‘Nothing shows greater meanness of spirit than
-expressions of joy at the death of an enemy. Remember
-that the army you fought at Chæronea is lessened by only
-one man.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">309</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCI">CHAPTER XCI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALEXANDER AND BUCEPHALUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Alexander,</span> the son of Philip of Macedon, became king in
-336 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> The queen-mother adored her brave son and
-dreamed of the great things he would do when he became a
-man. She did all she could to awake his ambition, telling
-him that he was descended from Achilles, the hero of Troy,
-and bidding him, when he was older, strive to do nobler
-deeds than his great ancestor had done. One of his tutors
-called the young prince Achilles, while he named himself
-Phœnix, after the tutor of the old Greek hero.</p>
-
-<p>The Iliad of Homer, which tells of the deeds of Achilles,
-Alexander knew by heart. When he was a man he always
-carried a copy with him on his campaigns. It is said that
-he slept with it as well as his sword beneath his pillow.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander might almost have been a Spartan boy, so
-simple was his training. He learned to ride, to race, to
-swim, but he never cared to wrestle as did most lads of his
-time. Nor would he offer prizes for such contests at the
-games which were held each year.</p>
-
-<p>When the prince was asked if he would run in the
-Olympic games, for he was fleet of foot, he answered, ‘Yes,
-if I could have kings to race with me.’</p>
-
-<p>Even as a lad he was eager to win glory, and when he
-heard of a great victory gained by his royal father, or of a
-town that had been subdued by him, he was more sorry
-than glad, and said to his companions, ‘My father will
-make so many conquests that there will be nothing left for
-me to win.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">310</span></p>
-
-<p>One day, while Alexander was still a boy, a Greek from
-Thessaly arrived at the court of Macedon, bringing with
-him a noble horse, named Bucephalus, which he offered to
-sell for £2600.</p>
-
-<p>Philip went with his son and his courtiers to look at the
-horse and to test its powers. But when any one approached
-or tried to mount, Bucephalus reared and kicked, and became
-so unmanageable that the king, growing angry, bade the
-Thessalian take the animal away.</p>
-
-<p>The prince had been watching the horse keenly, and as
-he was being led away, the lad exclaimed, ‘What an
-excellent horse do they lose for want of skill and courage
-to manage him!’</p>
-
-<p>Philip heard what his son said, but at first he took no
-notice of his words. But when the prince said the same
-thing again and again, he looked at Alexander, and saw
-that he was really sorry that the horse was being sent away.</p>
-
-<p>Then, half mocking, the king said, ‘Do you reproach
-those who are older than yourself, as if you knew more and
-were better able to manage him than they?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I could manage the horse better than others have done,’
-answered the prince.</p>
-
-<p>‘And if you fail what will you forfeit?’ asked the king.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will pay the whole price of the horse,’ said Alexander
-quickly.</p>
-
-<p>The courtiers laughed at the confidence of the prince,
-but paying no attention to them, he ran toward the horse
-and seizing the bridle turned Bucephalus, so that he faced
-the sun. For the prince had noticed that the steed was
-afraid of his own shadow as it flitted backward and forward
-with his every movement.</p>
-
-<p>After speaking quietly to the horse and patting him, the
-prince flung aside the mantle he was wearing, and nimbly
-mounted on his back. Using neither whip nor spur, he let
-the animal choose his own pace. And Bucephalus was
-content to go at a quiet trot.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_310" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_310.jpg" width="1812" height="2506" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">He ran toward the horse and seized the bridle</div></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">311</span></p>
-
-<p>Gradually Alexander urged him on to a gallop, with
-voice and spur. As the pace grew quicker and quicker, the
-king looked on in fear lest the lad should be thrown. But
-when he saw that the horse was well under control, and
-that Alexander had turned and was coming back, he burst
-into tears of joy, while the courtiers loudly applauded the
-prince.</p>
-
-<p>As he leaped from the horse, Philip kissed him and said,
-‘O my son, look thee out a kingdom equal to and worthy
-of thyself, for Macedon is too little for thee.’</p>
-
-<p>Soon after this the king sent for a famous philosopher,
-named Aristotle, to teach his son.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was quick to learn, and his eager interest in
-his studies pleased Aristotle. In after days, when the
-prince had become a king and was adding kingdom after
-kingdom to his possessions, he wrote to his old tutor, ‘I
-assure you I had rather excel others in the knowledge of
-what is excellent than in the extent of my power and
-dominions.’</p>
-
-<p>When Philip was murdered, Alexander was twenty
-years of age, ‘a stripling,’ Demosthenes said, making light
-of his youth. But had Demosthenes known the character
-of the prince, he would not have spoken thus slightingly
-of his years.</p>
-
-<p>The orator not only rejoiced when Philip was murdered,
-but he urged the people to rouse themselves and throw off
-the yoke of Macedon. The old days when the Athenians
-would not listen to Demosthenes were long past. Now
-his matchless eloquence could hold them spellbound, even
-when they refused to be guided by his advice. But in
-Athens, as in many other cities, discontent had long been
-smouldering, and fanned by his words it broke out into
-a blaze.</p>
-
-<p>The young king found that he must put down rebellion
-in Greece before he set out, as he wished to do, to conquer
-Persia.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">312</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCII">CHAPTER XCII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALEXANDER AND DIOGENES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> Alexander marched at the head of his army into
-Thessaly, not a blow was struck. His presence seemed
-enough to gain the allegiance of the Thessalians.</p>
-
-<p>The king then went to Corinth, where ambassadors from
-many of the Greek states met him. Young as he was, they
-chose Alexander to be general over the Greek troops which
-were to go with the Macedonians to invade Asia.</p>
-
-<p>Every one in Corinth was eager to see the king. From
-the surrounding towns, too, the people crowded into the
-city, that they might look at the young monarch who was
-going to lead their soldiers on so great an expedition.</p>
-
-<p>They did not dream of all that he would do, how he
-would spread their customs, their language, their culture
-over Asia first, and then over all the world. But looking
-at him they knew that he would be a conqueror.</p>
-
-<p>Among those who wished to see Alexander were many
-philosophers and great men. But one strange philosopher,
-called Diogenes, showed no interest in the king.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander heard of this man, who was said to sit all
-day in a tub or barrel. As Diogenes did not come to see
-him, he resolved to go to see Diogenes. He found the
-philosopher outside the gates of Corinth, sitting in a tub
-which was placed so that the rays of the sun fell upon
-him.</p>
-
-<p>When the philosopher saw the king and the courtiers
-who accompanied him, he roused himself from his meditations
-and looked at the young sovereign.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">313</span></p>
-
-<p>Alexander spoke kindly to him, and asked if there was
-anything he wished.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ answered Diogenes, ‘I would have you not stand
-between me and the sun.’</p>
-
-<p>The courtiers were indignant at such an answer, but
-Alexander laughed, and being pleased with the philosopher’s
-indifference to his rank, he said to them, ‘If I were not
-Alexander, I should like to be Diogenes.’</p>
-
-<p>Soon after this the king, believing that he had secured
-the fealty of Greece, went back to Macedon. In the spring
-of 335 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he hoped to set out to invade Asia.</p>
-
-<p>But the wild tribes on the borders of Macedon began to
-be restless, and the king was forced to subdue these foes
-nearer home before he went to Asia. While he was driving
-them beyond his borders, a rumour that he was dead reached
-Greece.</p>
-
-<p>If Alexander was dead it was a good chance, thought
-the Thebans, to drive the Macedonians from their citadel, and
-without waiting to find out if the rumour was true they
-revolted. Demosthenes tried to persuade the Athenians to
-go to the help of the Thebans, but although his eloquence
-moved them it had not power to make them act.</p>
-
-<p>The Thebans soon found to their cost that Alexander
-was not dead. He was, indeed, on his way to Greece to
-punish them for revolting.</p>
-
-<p>Outside the walls of their city he halted, so that the
-citizens might submit, if so they willed. But they, still
-dreaming of liberty, refused to surrender.</p>
-
-<p>Then Alexander attacked the city and captured it with
-little difficulty. He determined to give the other cities
-in Greece a lesson by punishing the rebels severely. So
-he pulled down their houses and utterly destroyed their
-town, leaving untouched only the temples, and a house in
-which a great poet named Pindar had dwelt.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes was bitterly disappointed that the Athenians
-had not sent to help the Thebans. He feared, too, that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">314</span>
-Alexander would now march against Athens, and destroy
-her as he had destroyed Thebes. But the king only sent
-to demand that eight of the orators who had done their best
-to incite the people to rebel against him, should be sent to
-him as hostages.</p>
-
-<p>Demosthenes would have been among the eight, and he
-urged the Athenians not to ‘hand over their sheep-dogs to
-the wolf.’ But Phocion said that it would be wise to do
-as Alexander asked.</p>
-
-<p>At length the assembly sent Damocles to the king to
-plead the cause of his comrades, for he was, after Demosthenes,
-the greatest orator in Athens.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander listened to Damocles and was persuaded to
-leave the orators in their own city, for he believed that the
-fate of Thebes would make Athens afraid to rebel.</p>
-
-<p>Of the loyalty of the Greek troops the king was sure,
-for were they not going to avenge the invasion of Greece by
-Xerxes?</p>
-
-<p>The king did not mean to return to Macedon to reign,
-rather did he dream of a throne in one of the great cities
-which he was going to conquer. So before he marched
-away, he divided his royal domain and his wealth among
-his friends.</p>
-
-<p>Perdiccas, one of his friends, was dismayed at the
-generosity of the king, and asked him what he was keeping
-for himself.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hope,’ answered Alexander. Then Perdiccas refused
-to accept his share of the king’s gifts, saying, ‘We who go
-forth to fight with you need share only in your hope.’</p>
-
-<p>Antipater, one of his father’s generals, Alexander left
-in Macedon to look after his kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>At length in the spring of 334 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, after saying good-bye
-to his mother, whom he dearly loved, the king marched with
-an enormous force to the Hellespont and crossed it. The
-great expedition had really begun.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">315</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCIII">CHAPTER XCIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF GRANICUS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Before</span> Alexander crossed the Hellespont he had seen that
-the opposite shore was held by his Macedonians. While the
-army landed he himself sailed to the ‘Harbour of the
-Achæans.’ Midway in the strait he took a golden dish in
-his hand, and flung from it an offering to Poseidon and to
-the Nereids. It is said that the king himself steered the
-ship in which he sailed to the Mysian shore.</p>
-
-<p>Crossing the plain of Troy, the king climbed the hill of
-Ilion, and here in a forsaken little town he found a temple
-to Athene, to whom he offered sacrifice. He left his own
-armour in the temple, taking in its place an ancient suit
-that had once been hung upon the walls, a trophy of war.</p>
-
-<p>On the tomb of his ancestor, Achilles, he laid a garland,
-while Hephæstion, his beloved friend, placed one on the grave
-of Patroclus. The old Greek stories had entered into the
-very fibre of the young king, and in this way he did honour,
-as he deemed, to his glorious ancestor. He felt ready now
-to do deeds as great as his hero had done.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander rejoined his army, it had advanced
-to the river Granicus, and there, on the opposite bank, was
-a great force under Darius, king of Persia. Alexander
-would have to conquer this great host before he could
-advance into Asia.</p>
-
-<p>One of his officers, named Parmenio, begged the king to
-wait to cross the river until early the next morning, when
-the enemy would not be drawn up in battle array.</p>
-
-<p>‘I should be ashamed,’ answered the king, ‘having<span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">316</span>
-crossed the Hellespont to be detained by a miserable stream
-like the Granicus.’ He then ordered the army to advance,
-and himself dashed into the river, followed by his horse-guards.</p>
-
-<p>The Granicus was not a river to be despised, for the
-current was strong, and the horses kept their feet with
-difficulty.</p>
-
-<p>A storm of arrows was poured upon the struggling horses
-and their riders, and it seemed as though the attempt to
-cross in the face of the foe would be useless. But the king
-refused to be daunted, and the soldiers followed their intrepid
-leader, until at length they reached the opposite bank.</p>
-
-<p>But to clamber up the bank was no easy matter. The
-sides of the river were slippery, and the horses having no
-firm foothold, stumbled and fell. Only after great and
-repeated efforts did Alexander and those who followed him
-reach the top of the bank. Wet and exhausted, they had
-no time to form their ranks before the Persians dashed upon
-them. A desperate hand-to-hand fight was at once begun.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy was quick to notice Alexander, for he wore
-a large plume of white feathers in his helmet, while his
-buckler was more splendid than that of any of his soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Two Persian officers, wishing to win the glory of having
-killed the king, attacked him together. One of them, riding
-close to Alexander, rose in his stirrups, and brought his
-battle-axe down with all his strength upon the helmet of
-the king. So fierce was the blow that the crest was torn
-away along with one of the plumes, while the axe cut its
-way through the helmet, until the edge touched Alexander’s
-hair.</p>
-
-<p>Again the officer raised his axe, but ere he could strike,
-Clitus, the foster-brother of Alexander, slew the officer with
-his sword and the king was saved.</p>
-
-<p>The famous phalanx of the Macedonians now threw itself
-upon the enemy, and the Persians tried in vain to repel the
-fierceness of the attack. Soon the whole army was put to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">317</span>
-flight, all save a band of Greek soldiers who were fighting
-for Darius.</p>
-
-<p>These withdrew to a height above the battlefield, and
-sent to Alexander to ask for quarter. But the king refused
-their request, and ordered his men to attack the little
-company.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks fought desperately, and Alexander lost more
-men in this struggle than he had lost in all the rest of the
-battle. His horse, which was not the famous Bucephalus,
-was killed on the field.</p>
-
-<p>While in this great battle, fought in 334 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> on the banks
-of the Granicus, the Persians lost a great number of men,
-only thirty-four Macedonians, it is said, were slain.</p>
-
-<p>The spoil was enormous, and Alexander determined that
-the Greeks should have a generous share. To Athens he
-sent three hundred Persian bucklers to be offered to Athene,
-with these words inscribed, ‘Alexander, son of Philip, and
-the Grecians, except the Lacedæmonians, won these from
-the barbarians who inhabit Asia.’</p>
-
-<p>Athens accepted the king’s offering to their goddess, but
-they churlishly refused to send ships to help him to conquer
-the coast towns which he must now attack.</p>
-
-<p>While dividing the spoil of the Granicus, Alexander did
-not forget his mother. To her he sent all the plate he had
-taken, as well as beautiful cloth of wonderful purple dye.
-For himself he kept but little.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">318</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCIV">CHAPTER XCIV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE GORDIAN KNOT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">After</span> the battle of Granicus, many Persian towns submitted
-to the conqueror. Those along the coast of Asia
-Minor that refused to open their gates, the king quickly
-subdued.</p>
-
-<p>During the winter he reached a city called Gordion,
-about which a strange story is told.</p>
-
-<p>In the citadel of Gordion was an old, roughly built wagon,
-which had once belonged to a peasant named Gordius.
-Long, long ago Gordius had ridden into the town in his
-wagon, and the oracle had declared that this peasant had
-been chosen by the gods to be king of Phrygia, in which
-country Gordion stood.</p>
-
-<p>When Gordius was made king, almost the first thing he
-did was to dedicate his wagon to the gods, tying the yoke
-to the pole with fibre taken from the bark of a tree. The
-Gordion knot, as it was named, was twisted and tangled in
-a bewildering way, and looked as though it would defy the
-most skilful fingers to untie. Yet an oracle had said that
-whoever should succeed in undoing this wonderful knot
-would become king over all Asia.</p>
-
-<p>Many men who wished to wear a crown came to Gordion
-to try to undo the knot, but not one of them had been able
-to unravel the twisted fibre.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander, with his victorious army, rode into
-Gordion, every one wondered if the king would be able
-to untie the famous knot.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was not long in going to see the ancient wagon.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">319</span>
-He looked at the puzzling knot and soon saw that he would
-not be able to untie it.</p>
-
-<p>But he did not mean to be beaten. He would solve the
-problem in his own way. So taking his sword in his impatient
-hands, with one swift stroke he cut the formidable
-knot in two.</p>
-
-<p>The onlookers, both Phrygians and Macedonians, shouted
-with delight, for lo! the oracle was fulfilled, and Alexander
-would become monarch of Asia.</p>
-
-<p>As the knot was cut in twain, a great thunderstorm raged
-over the town, and the people said, ‘It is Zeus who sends
-the storm to show that he is pleased that the prophecy is
-fulfilled.’</p>
-
-<p>While Alexander had been conquering the towns along
-the coast of Asia, Darius had been gathering together another
-great army, which numbered, so it was said, six hundred
-thousand men. The king himself commanded the vast
-army, and in the spring of 333 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he set out to find
-Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>Darius was not a skilful general, nor was he a brave king,
-but he had no doubt that he would conquer Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander still lingered in one of the coast towns,
-Darius deemed that it was cowardice that kept him there,
-so little did he know of the character of his foe. It was illness
-alone that kept Alexander from advancing against the
-great king.</p>
-
-<p>Some said that it was the hardships of the battlefield
-that had made the king ill, others that while he was still
-heated after a long march he had bathed in a river, the waters
-of which were very cold.</p>
-
-<p>To the dismay of his soldiers, who adored their brave
-leader, the king grew worse and worse. He was so ill that
-it seemed that he must die.</p>
-
-<p>His physicians were afraid to give the king medicine, for
-should he die they would be accused of giving him poison.</p>
-
-<p>At length one of the physicians, named Philip, to whom<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">320</span>
-Alexander had shown great kindness, determined that whatever
-happened to him, he would do his utmost to save the
-king’s life.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander himself was content to take what Philip
-ordered, so impatient was he to be well and at the head of
-his army once again.</p>
-
-<p>So Philip left the king for a few moments to prepare
-the medicine that he believed would cure him.</p>
-
-<p>While he was absent, a letter was brought to Alexander
-from his officer Parmenio. It besought the king not to trust
-Philip, as he had been bribed by Darius to poison him. Vast
-sums of money and the hand of the great king’s daughter,
-said Parmenio, were to be the reward of the physician.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander had read the letter, he put it under his
-pillow, showing it to no one, not even to his beloved friend
-Hephæstion. He had no sooner done so than Philip returned
-with the medicine. The king took it without hesitation.
-Then, drawing the letter from beneath his pillow, he bade
-his physician read it.</p>
-
-<p>Philip was horrified as he read the false accusation, and
-flinging himself down by the bed, he entreated the king to
-trust him and to fear nothing.</p>
-
-<p>The drug was a powerful one, and after taking it the
-king was unconscious for hours. His nurses whispered to
-one another that he was dead.</p>
-
-<p>But after a time he opened his eyes, weak indeed, but
-no longer in danger. Philip tended him until his strength
-returned, and he was at length able to go out to show himself
-to his Macedonians. For they had been in constant fear
-lest aught should befall their king, and nothing would satisfy
-them until they had seen his face.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">321</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCV">CHAPTER XCV<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DARIUS GALLOPS FROM THE BATTLEFIELD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">As</span> soon as he had recovered from his illness, Alexander
-led his army to meet Darius. He found the great king
-in the pass of Issus, in October 333 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Darius had first encamped on the plain of Issus, in a
-strong position, where his vast army would have had room
-to fight.</p>
-
-<p>But he dreamed that Alexander would try to escape him,
-so he ordered his men to march through the narrow mountain
-passes to meet the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>A Macedonian, who had deserted, begged Darius not
-to leave the plain. ‘But,’ said the king, ‘if I stay here,
-Alexander will escape me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That fear is needless,’ answered the Macedonian, ‘for
-assure yourself that far from avoiding you, he will make all
-speed to meet you, and is now most likely on his march
-toward you.’</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander knew that Darius had left the plain for
-the pass of Issus, he was pleased, for he knew that the enemy
-would now be hemmed in between the mountains and the
-sea.</p>
-
-<p>Before long the two armies were close together. Alexander
-led his right wing against the left wing of the Persians. Here
-he was soon victorious, and free to attack the centre of the
-enemy, where Darius sat in his chariot, surrounded by a band
-of Persian nobles.</p>
-
-<p>As the great king saw Alexander and his followers drawing
-nearer and nearer, he began to grow afraid. Soon he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">322</span>
-could bear his fears no longer, and leaping from his chariot,
-he mounted a horse and fled from the field.</p>
-
-<p>When the Persians saw that their king had fled, they
-stayed to fight no longer. Even the cavalry, which had
-withstood every attack, now wavered, then broke and fled
-with the rest.</p>
-
-<p>The great hosts sought to hide themselves from their
-pursuers among the mountain passes, but thousands were
-captured and slain.</p>
-
-<p>Darius in his haste had left his shield and his royal cloak
-behind, but he would not stay to recover them. On and
-on he fled until he reached a town on the river Euphrates.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was well pleased with his great victory,
-but he would fain have captured the Persian king. To a
-wound in his thigh he paid little attention, nor did it prove
-dangerous. But it made it impossible for him to overtake
-Darius.</p>
-
-<p>When the king returned from the pursuit of his enemy,
-he found his men pillaging the Persian camp. The tent of
-Darius, which was beautifully furnished, and which also had
-a great store of gold and silver, was set apart for Alexander
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let us now cleanse ourselves from the toils of war in
-the baths of Darius,’ said the king as he entered the tent of
-the defeated monarch.</p>
-
-<p>‘Not so,’ answered one of his followers, ‘but in Alexander’s
-rather; for the property of the conquered is and should be
-called the conqueror’s.’</p>
-
-<p>Alexander’s early training had been simple as that of a
-Spartan, and the luxury of the great king’s tents amazed
-him.</p>
-
-<p>In one there were numerous baths and many boxes
-of ointment, in another a table was spread for a magnificent
-feast. As Alexander looked at it all, he turned to
-his followers and said, ‘This, it seems, is royalty.’</p>
-
-<p>But his early training still influenced him, and he kept<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">323</span>
-his simple tastes and cared little for dainty fare or other
-luxuries.</p>
-
-<p>Once a queen to whom Alexander had been kind sent
-to his tent, day by day, some of the dishes which had been
-prepared for her own table. And at length, that he might
-always fare well, she sent cooks and bakers.</p>
-
-<p>But the king would not accept them, for he said that his
-old tutor had given him the best possible cooks. They were,
-‘a night march to prepare for breakfast, and a moderate
-breakfast to create an appetite for supper.’</p>
-
-<p>He told the queen, too, how when he was a boy his tutor
-Leonidas used to look often in his wardrobe, lest his clothes
-were too fine, and in his room, to see that his mother had not
-given him cushions for his couch or soft pillows for his bed.</p>
-
-<p>As Alexander sat down to supper on the evening of the
-victory of Issus, the sound of wailing and weeping fell upon
-his ear. It seemed to him as the weeping of women, and
-he demanded to be told at once who was in trouble.</p>
-
-<p>His officers said that it was the mother, and wife and
-children of Darius who were weeping. For they had heard
-that Alexander had returned with their lord’s shield and
-cloak, and they thought that he must have been slain.</p>
-
-<p>Then the king bade one of his followers go tell the royal
-mourners that Darius lived, and that they need fear no
-harm from Alexander. For he made war upon Darius not
-because he bore him ill will, but because he wished to gain
-his dominions. He promised that he would provide them
-with all the comforts which they had been used to receive
-from the great king.</p>
-
-<p>When Darius was safe beyond the Euphrates, he remembered
-that his wife and mother had been left to the mercy
-of his conqueror. So he wrote to Alexander, begging that
-they might be sent to him and offering to make a treaty
-with the king.</p>
-
-<p>Here is part of the proud answer that Alexander sent to
-Darius.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">324</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I am lord of all, Darius,’ he wrote, ‘and therefore do
-thou come to me with thy requests. Thou hast only to
-come to me to ask and receive thy mother and wife and
-children, and whatever else thou mayest desire. And for
-the future, whenever thou sendest, send to me as to the
-great king of Asia, and do not write as to an equal, but tell
-me whatever thy need be, as to one who is lord of all that
-is thine. Otherwise I will deal with thee as with an offender.
-But if thou disputest the kingdom, then wait and fight for
-it again, and do not flee; for I will march against thee,
-wheresoever thou mayest be.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">325</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCVI">CHAPTER XCVI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">TYRE IS STORMED BY ALEXANDER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Alexander</span> did not cross the Euphrates in search of
-Darius. He knew that the great king could do him no
-harm, even should he again assemble a large army. So for
-a time he left Darius to do as he pleased, while he himself
-went on with his own plan.</p>
-
-<p>Nearly all the towns in Syracuse were ready to open
-their gates to Alexander. Some that had found Darius a
-hard master, hailed him as a deliverer.</p>
-
-<p>Tyre alone, while saying that she was ready to do as
-the king willed, refused to receive either a Persian or a
-Macedonian into the city.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander wished to offer sacrifice to the deity of Tyre,
-whose temple was within the city, and when the people refused
-to open their gates, he was so angry that he at once
-laid siege to the town.</p>
-
-<p>Tyre stood on an island, about half a mile from the mainland.
-Near the coast the water was shallow, while close to
-the walls of the city it was deep.</p>
-
-<p>The Tyrians believed that they could hold their city
-against Alexander, for the walls were built high, on the top
-of a steep and dangerous cliff.</p>
-
-<p>As the king had no fleet, he could not attack the city
-until he had built a causeway from the mainland to the
-island, so he ordered his men to begin the work without
-delay.</p>
-
-<p>But when the causeway stretched almost to the island,
-the Tyrians did all that they could to hinder the workmen.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">326</span>
-They sent among them showers of arrows, and hurled down
-upon them great pieces of rock, so that they found it impossible
-to complete the causeway.</p>
-
-<p>But the king was not easily beaten. He ordered the
-men to build towers along the causeway, and to tie leather
-screens from one tower to another, so that they might be
-protected from the arrows and missiles of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Tyrians dragged a ship, loaded with dry wood,
-as near to the causeway as they dared to venture, and set
-it on fire. The towers were soon in flames, and while the
-Macedonians tried in vain to extinguish them, the enemy
-never ceased to send showers of arrows among the unfortunate
-men, so that many of them lost their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Although the Tyrians had destroyed the work of months,
-Alexander still refused to give in. He now sent to the cities
-round about, and bade them send ships to guard his soldiers
-until the causeway was finished. In seven months from
-the time it was begun, the causeway reached to the foot of
-the rock on which the city stood.</p>
-
-<p>In July 332 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a breach was made in the wall, and,
-led by Alexander himself, the Macedonians rushed in triumph
-into the city that had so long defied them.</p>
-
-<p>The Tyrians fought fiercely, for they knew they need not
-look for mercy if the city was taken. But they were soon
-overpowered, and the town was given up to plunder. The
-soldiers were eager for spoil, but spoil alone could not satisfy
-them. As they thought of the weary months which they
-had spent in trying to reach the island, they wreaked their
-rage on the miserable citizens, massacring all on whom they
-could lay their hands.</p>
-
-<p>After Tyre had fallen, Alexander was master of Syria,
-and could control the eastern Mediterranean.</p>
-
-<p>From Tyre, the king marched southward until he reached
-Egypt. Here, after making himself lord of the country, he
-founded the city which is still called after him, Alexandria.</p>
-
-<p>During the siege of Tyre, Darius had again sent to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">327</span>
-Alexander, offering to him a large ransom for his family,
-as well as the hand of his daughter and all the provinces
-west of Euphrates.</p>
-
-<p>While Alexander and his generals were talking over the
-offer of Darius, Parmenio exclaimed, ‘If I were you I should
-accept these terms.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And I,’ answered the king, ‘would accept them if I
-were Parmenio.’</p>
-
-<p>To Darius, Alexander’s reply was haughtier than ever.
-‘If thou comest,’ so ran his words, ‘and yield thyself up
-into my power, I will treat thee with all possible kindness;
-if not, I will come myself to seek thee.’</p>
-
-<p>Soon after this the wife of Darius died. Alexander had
-always treated her well, and now he buried her with great
-honour.</p>
-
-<p>One of her servants fled to Darius to tell him the sad
-tidings. He told him, too, of the kindness Alexander had
-ever shown to his royal captive.</p>
-
-<p>‘O king,’ said the servant, ‘neither your queen when
-alive, nor your mother, nor children wanted anything of
-their former happy condition, unless it were the light of
-your countenance. And after her decease, Statira, the
-queen, had not only all due funeral ornaments, but was
-honoured also with the tears of your very enemies; for
-Alexander is as gentle after victory as he is terrible in the
-field.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">328</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCVII">CHAPTER XCVII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE BATTLE OF GAUGAMELA</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">It</span> was now almost two years since the battle of Issus, and
-Alexander determined once more to meet Darius, who had
-again assembled a large army.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring of 331 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the king went back to Tyre,
-and by August he had reached Thapsacus, a town on the
-banks of the river Euphrates. He wished to go on to
-Babylon, the capital of the Persian empire, but the direct
-way to the city, which was down the Euphrates, was guarded
-by Cyrus with a large army. So Alexander struck off across
-the north of Mesopotamia, and reaching the Tigris marched
-along the river on the eastern side. Above Nineveh he
-crossed to the other bank, and after marching southward
-for several days, he heard that Darius was encamped on a
-plain near Gaugamela, on the river Bumōdus.</p>
-
-<p>Even to the brave Macedonian generals, the vast hosts
-of the Persians looked formidable.</p>
-
-<p>Parmenio looking at them begged the king to surprise the
-enemy by a night attack rather than risk a battle in daylight.</p>
-
-<p>‘I will not steal a victory,’ answered Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>The night before the battle the king slept soundly, as
-though nothing preyed upon his mind. In the morning
-his generals found him still fast asleep, so without disturbing
-him they themselves bade the soldiers have breakfast.</p>
-
-<p>At length Parmenio went to wake the king, and having
-with difficulty roused him, he asked how it was possible he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">329</span>
-could sleep so soundly when the most important battle of
-his life had to be fought that day.</p>
-
-<p>‘You slept, sire, as though you were already victorious,’
-said the anxious general.</p>
-
-<p>‘Are we not so indeed,’ answered the king, ‘since we
-are at last relieved from the trouble of wandering in pursuit
-of Darius, through a wide and wasted country, hoping in
-vain that he would fight us?’</p>
-
-<p>Alexander, who was already dressed, now put on his
-helmet, which was of iron, yet so polished was it that it
-shone as silver. Great skill had been lavished on the decoration
-of his belt, which was indeed the most splendid part of
-his dress. He then ordered his army to be drawn up in
-battle array, while he mounted Bucephalus, who was old
-now, yet eager for battle.</p>
-
-<p>Before the king gave the signal to attack, he stretched
-out his right hand to heaven, and called upon the gods to
-defend and strengthen the Greeks, if he indeed were the
-son of Zeus.</p>
-
-<p>By the side of Alexander rode a soothsayer, clad in a
-white robe and wearing on his head a crown of gold. He
-pointed to the sky, and the soldiers looking up saw an eagle
-flying over the king’s head and on toward the Persian army.
-‘It is a good omen,’ they cried, and shouted to be led at
-once against the foe.</p>
-
-<p>A moment later the order was given, and the Macedonians
-rushed upon the great hosts of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Darius thought that his war-chariots would cause deadly
-havoc among his enemies, for scythes were fastened to the
-wheels to mow down all who came within reach.</p>
-
-<p>But the Macedonian archers drew their bows and sped
-their arrows among the charioteers, while the strongest
-seized the reins of the horses, and pulled the drivers from
-their seats. Then the soldiers opened wide their ranks
-so that those chariots that still had drivers rattled harmlessly
-past them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">330</span></p>
-
-<p>Alexander was already attacking the centre of the
-Persian army, where, as at the battle of Issus, Darius sat
-in his chariot, looking on at the struggle.</p>
-
-<p>All at once he saw Alexander with his chosen companions
-drawing nearer and nearer, and once again his courage failed.
-Fiercer and fiercer raged the battle, closer and closer drew
-Alexander to the Persian king.</p>
-
-<p>The horsemen grouped in front of Darius were driven
-backward and fled, all save the bravest who never flinched,
-but fell in a supreme effort to keep the enemy from approaching
-any nearer to the king’s chariot.</p>
-
-<p>Even as they fell they still tried to keep back the foe,
-clinging desperately to the legs of the horses as they galloped
-over their wounded bodies.</p>
-
-<p>Darius was in immediate danger of being captured. In
-vain the driver tried to turn the royal chariot, the bodies of
-the fallen soldiers would not allow the wheels to move.
-The horses plunged and kicked in an agony of fear, and the
-charioteer was helpless.</p>
-
-<p>Then, as the king had done on the field of Issus, he
-did now. He leaped from the chariot, mounted a horse and
-fled from the battlefield.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander followed the king in swift pursuit; it seemed
-impossible that he could escape. But Parmenio, who was
-commanding the left wing, was almost overpowered by the
-enemy. He sent a messenger to overtake Alexander, and
-beg him for help.</p>
-
-<p>The king reluctantly gave up his pursuit of Darius, and
-rode back with his companions to give his general the help
-he had entreated. But by the time he reached the left wing
-his aid was no longer needed. Parmenio had wrested victory
-from the foe.</p>
-
-<p>So the king again set out in pursuit of Darius, but all
-that he captured was the chariot, the shield and the bow of
-the coward king.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">331</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCVIII">CHAPTER XCVIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALEXANDER BURNS PERSEPOLIS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> battle of Gaugamela in 331 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> decided the fate of
-the Persian empire. Darius was no longer the great king,
-for Alexander took the title as well as the dominions of
-his foe.</p>
-
-<p>At Babylon, to which city Alexander now marched, the
-gates were thrown open to welcome him, the people coming
-out to meet the conqueror, led by their priests.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander received them kindly, and bade the Babylonians
-not be afraid still to worship their own national god.</p>
-
-<p>Here, in this great city, the king dreamed that he would
-set up his throne. Babylon should be the capital of his new
-empire.</p>
-
-<p>Not far from Babylon was the city of Susa, where the
-Persian kings usually spent the winter months. Susa also
-surrendered to the great king without a blow being struck.</p>
-
-<p>There were many treasures and much gold in both
-Babylon and Susa; perhaps the most wonderful treasure
-was a piece of purple cloth, which was worth an enormous
-sum of money. Although it had been laid aside for one
-hundred and ninety years, yet its marvellous colour was as
-perfect as it had ever been.</p>
-
-<p>The spoils for which the Greeks cared most were some
-that had been carried away by Xerxes. Among those that
-they found at Susa were statues of Harmodius and Aristogeiton.
-By the order of Alexander, they were now sent
-back to Athens.</p>
-
-<p>But even greater treasures than any the king had yet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_332">332</span>
-found were stored in palaces hidden among the highlands of
-Persia. To these palaces Alexander resolved to march,
-although the way led through narrow mountain passes which
-were guarded by a Persian army.</p>
-
-<p>By attacking the enemy both in the front and in the
-rear, Alexander caught the Persians in a trap. They were
-speedily cut to pieces or fell down the dangerous mountain
-tracks in a vain effort to escape.</p>
-
-<p>Then unhindered by any foe, the king marched on to
-one of the great cities of the Persian kings, which the Greeks
-called Persepolis, or ‘the richest of all the cities under the sun.’</p>
-
-<p>So great were the treasures stored in the palace of Persepolis,
-that ten thousand pairs of mules and five thousand
-camels were needed to carry them away.</p>
-
-<p>For four months Alexander lingered in the city. His
-soldiers were proud indeed of their king when for the first
-time they saw him sitting under a canopy of gold on the
-throne of the Persian monarchs.</p>
-
-<p>A Corinthian, who was a great friend of Alexander’s,
-exclaimed at the sight, ‘How unfortunate are those Greeks
-who have died without beholding Alexander seated on the
-throne of Darius!’</p>
-
-<p>Before he left Persepolis to go in search of Darius,
-Alexander gave a great feast.</p>
-
-<p>It was then that the king, urged by the excited revellers,
-allowed the palace to be burned.</p>
-
-<p>With a wreath of flowers on his head and a lighted torch
-in his hand, the king, followed by his guests, surrounded
-the palace, and set light to it. The soldiers also seized torches
-and amid shouts and merriment they, too, helped to destroy
-the palace of the Persian kings.</p>
-
-<p>The Macedonians thought that the burning of the palace
-was a sign that Alexander did not mean to dwell among the
-barbarians, and they rejoiced. For they were growing
-weary of marching into unknown countries, and they were
-beginning to think wistfully of their homeland.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_333">333</span></p>
-
-<p>Alexander was soon sorry for the wild impulse which had
-seized him, and he gave orders to put out the fire as speedily
-as might be.</p>
-
-<p>The officers in Alexander’s army had become rich with
-the spoils of conquered cities, and the king found that they
-were growing as fond of ease and luxury as the Persians.
-Their tables were loaded with delicacies, servants attended
-to their slightest wish. One officer even had his shoes made
-with silver nails.</p>
-
-<p>Such indulgence annoyed the king and he reproved his
-officers, telling them that toil was more honourable than
-pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>‘How is it possible,’ he said, ‘if you cannot attend to
-your own body, that you look well after your horse, or keep
-your armour bright and in good order? You should surely
-avoid the weaknesses of those you have conquered.’</p>
-
-<p>To set his army an example, the king now began to
-hunt more than was his custom and with less care for his
-own safety. When the soldiers were sent against an enemy,
-Alexander himself went with them, and endured the same
-hardships and dangers as his men.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_334">334</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XCIX">CHAPTER XCIX<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALEXANDER SLAYS HIS FOSTER-BROTHER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Early</span> in 330 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Alexander left Persepolis to go in search
-of Darius.</p>
-
-<p>After a long and difficult march of three hundred miles,
-to which his soldiers took only eleven days, the king heard
-that Darius had passed the defile called the ‘Caspian Gates.’
-For five days he allowed his men, who were utterly exhausted,
-to rest, before he again started in pursuit of the fugitive.</p>
-
-<p>After passing through the Caspian Gates, Alexander
-heard that Bessus, a kinsman of Darius, who was also his
-officer or satrap, had made him a prisoner. Loaded with
-chains, Darius was being carried away to the district over
-which Bessus ruled.</p>
-
-<p>This made the king the more determined to reach the
-unfortunate captive. For four days he hurried on until
-at length he reached a village where Bessus and his men
-had stayed the evening before. He was told that the satrap
-was going to make a forced march that night.</p>
-
-<p>The king learned of a shorter road, by which he might
-overtake the fugitives, but there was no water to be found
-on the way. Alexander did not hesitate. With only a
-small company he set out the same evening, and when
-morning dawned he had ridden forty-five miles. The
-fugitives were now within sight.</p>
-
-<p>When the barbarians who were with Bessus saw the king
-in the distance they fled. The satrap quickly took the
-chains off his captive, bidding him mount a horse and
-follow them. When Darius refused he stabbed him and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">335</span>
-rode away, leaving the wretched king to die or to fall into
-the hands of his enemy.</p>
-
-<p>A few Macedonians who were riding in front of the king
-reached the wounded man first, and gave him water, for
-which he begged. Darius then lay back and before Alexander
-arrived, he had breathed his last.</p>
-
-<p>The king looked at his fallen foe with pity, and then
-flung over him his own cloak. His body he sent to the
-queen-mother, that it might be buried beside the other
-Persian kings at Persepolis.</p>
-
-<p>Bessus was betrayed into the hands of Alexander not
-long afterwards. Naked and chained he was placed on
-the road by which Alexander’s army must pass.</p>
-
-<p>The king stopped when he reached the satrap, and asked
-him why he had murdered Darius, who had always treated
-him well.</p>
-
-<p>Bessus answered that he did it to win Alexander’s favour.</p>
-
-<p>His reply won no pity from the king, who ordered him
-to be scourged and sent to prison. Some time after he was
-brought to trial and sentenced to a cruel death.</p>
-
-<p>Until now Alexander had lived almost as simply as when
-he was a lad, and but lately he had reproved his officers for
-their indolent and luxurious habits. Now he gradually
-began to adopt the customs of the East. He dressed in
-purple and surrounded himself with Persian courtiers, and
-acted as though he was indeed a descendant of the gods.
-The Macedonians were quick to take offence at the favour
-their king showed to the Persians.</p>
-
-<p>Philotas, a son of Parmenio, resented the king’s deeds,
-more perhaps than any other of his generals. He was
-proud and his haughty ways had made his men dislike him.</p>
-
-<p>Parmenio would sometimes say to him, ‘My son, to be
-not quite so great would be better.’ But Philotas would
-take no notice of the rebuke.</p>
-
-<p>One day he declared that but for him and his father, the
-king would never have conquered Asia. ‘Yet it is he, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">336</span>
-boy Alexander who enjoys the glory of the victories and the
-title of king,’ said the foolish officer.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was told of the boastful way in which Philotas
-had spoken, but he neither reproved nor punished him.</p>
-
-<p>A little later a plot was made against his life, and Philotas
-would not allow those who wished to warn the king to enter
-his presence. Then Alexander, who knew of this also, ordered
-Philotas to be seized and imprisoned.</p>
-
-<p>He was tried before an assembly of Macedonians and
-confessed that he had known of the plot to kill the king, and
-yet had neither warned him nor allowed others to do so.</p>
-
-<p>The Macedonians condemned him to death, and themselves
-carried out the sentence, throwing at him their
-javelins.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander had been patient with Philotas and his
-punishment was just, but now the king did a cruel deed.
-For thinking that his old and faithful general Parmenio
-might have shared in the treachery of his son, he sent a
-messenger to slay him.</p>
-
-<p>The king’s despatch was taken to Parmenio and put into
-his hand. As he began to read it he was stabbed in the
-back.</p>
-
-<p>From this time the king’s temper grew less and less controlled.
-At one of the royal feasts he lost it altogether. A
-guest sang a song which made a jest of some Macedonians
-who had been beaten by the Persians. The old soldiers were
-indignant, the more so that Alexander paid no heed to their
-anger and bade the singer sing on.</p>
-
-<p>Clitus, the king’s foster-brother, had a quick temper,
-and he cried out, ‘It is not well done to expose the Macedonians
-before their enemies; since though it was their
-unhappiness to be overcome, yet are they much better
-men than those who laugh at them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Clitus pleads his own cause,’ said the king, ‘when he
-names cowardice misfortune.’</p>
-
-<p>The king spoke half in jest, half in anger, for he knew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">337</span>
-well that Clitus and all his Macedonians were brave men
-and no cowards.</p>
-
-<p>But Clitus sprang to his feet at Alexander’s words and
-cried, ‘Yet, O king, it was my cowardice that once saved
-your life from the Persians, and it is by the wounds of
-Macedonians that you are now the great king.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Speak not so boldly,’ answered the king, and in his
-voice there was a threat, ‘or think not you will long enjoy
-the power to do so.’</p>
-
-<p>Clitus was now too angry to care what he said, and he
-spoke to the king yet more bitterly, until Alexander could
-brook no more. He took an apple from the table before
-him, and flinging it at his foster-brother, felt for his sword.
-But one of his guards, foreseeing what might happen, had
-removed it. His guests now gathered around the king,
-trying to soothe his anger. Alexander pushed them aside,
-and ordered one of his guard to sound the alarm. This
-would have assembled the whole army and the man hesitated,
-whereupon Alexander struck him on the face.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile a friend had hurried Clitus out of the room,
-but he slipped back again by another door, and boldly
-taunted the king with the way in which he treated his old
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Then in a passion Alexander snatched a spear from one
-of his guards, rushed upon Clitus and stabbed him to death.</p>
-
-<p>A moment later the king’s anger faded away, and he
-looked in horror upon the dead body of his foster-brother.
-He seized the spear again and tried to kill himself, but his
-guards wrenched it away, and led him to his own room.
-There he lay all through the long night and all through the
-following day, weeping for his foster-brother whom he had
-slain.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_338">338</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_C">CHAPTER C<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">PORUS AND HIS ELEPHANT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">The</span> Macedonians had now for some time been longing to
-march homeward rather than into new and unknown lands.
-But Alexander’s ambition was not yet satisfied, and in
-327 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> he determined to march into India, to add that land
-also to his conquests.</p>
-
-<p>The army was laden with booty, and the king saw that
-unless it were left behind the men would not be able to
-march. It would be no easy matter to make the soldiers
-give up their plunder, but Alexander knew well how to
-manage men.</p>
-
-<p>He ordered all his own share of plunder, all his unnecessary
-clothing, almost all his ornaments, to be burned. His
-courtiers did as they saw their king do, and when the soldiers
-were ordered to follow Alexander’s example, they did so
-without a murmur, while some even cheered.</p>
-
-<p>Without the plunder the soldiers marched easily, and
-soon reached the Punjab, where the king of the district
-brought to Alexander’s aid five thousand men.</p>
-
-<p>The army marched on unopposed, until it came to the
-river Hydaspes, or as we call it now the Jhelum. Here it
-was forced to halt, for on the opposite bank was a powerful
-Indian king, named Porus, and a large army.</p>
-
-<p>Porus had with him a number of elephants, and when
-they trumpeted, the horses of the Macedonians took flight.
-The banks of the river were slippery, and the enemy was
-ready with arrows, should the king order his army to cross
-the river.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">339</span></p>
-
-<p>Alexander had made up his mind to cross the Hydaspes,
-but first he wished to put Porus off his guard.</p>
-
-<p>So night after night, by the king’s orders, a trumpet
-called the cavalry to march. It advanced always to the
-edge of the river, while Porus, thinking the whole army was
-going to cross, commanded his elephants to be moved to
-the bank, and his great hosts to be drawn up ready for battle.</p>
-
-<p>Hour after hour the Indians waited, but the Macedonians
-never attempted to cross, and so they grew listless and each
-night less vigilant. Even Porus began to think the Macedonians
-must be cowards, and he paid less and less attention
-to their movements. This was what Alexander had expected
-would happen.</p>
-
-<p>But one stormy night, when the Indians were off their
-guard, the king with part of his army crossed to a wooded
-island that lay in the middle of the river. It was a terrible
-night. Lightning flashed, thunder crashed, and several of
-Alexander’s men were killed as they struggled breast high in
-the water. With great difficulty the others reached the farther
-side, to find that Porus had realised his danger. A thousand
-horsemen and sixty armed chariots awaited the daring king.
-But Alexander captured the chariots and slew four hundred
-of the cavalry.</p>
-
-<p>The whole Macedonian army had now joined the king,
-and a desperate battle was fought. Hour after hour the
-conflict raged, neither side gaining the victory.</p>
-
-<p>At length, when the elephants were dead or their riders
-slain, when the Indians were flying in every direction, Porus
-knew that the day was lost.</p>
-
-<p>Yet he disdained to flee and fought on, seated upon an
-elephant of enormous size, for he himself was more than six
-feet in height. Only when he was wounded in his shoulder,
-did he turn to ride away from the field.</p>
-
-<p>It is told that while the battle was raging the elephant
-took the greatest care of his master. And when the animal
-saw that the king was faint from his wounds, he knelt down<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340">340</span>
-carefully that Porus might not fall. Then with his trunk
-he drew out the darts that were left in the body of the king.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander had seen how bravely his enemy had fought,
-As he watched him riding from the field, he thought he would
-like to speak with so great a warrior, and he sent to ask him
-to return. He himself went out to meet the king, and was
-amazed at his great height and at his beauty.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander asked Porus how he wished to be
-treated, he answered, ‘As a king.’</p>
-
-<p>‘For my own sake I will do that,’ replied the great king;
-‘ask a boon for thy sake.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That,’ said Porus, ‘containeth all.’</p>
-
-<p>As was his way, Alexander treated the fallen king right
-royally, giving back to him his kingdom and adding to it
-new territories.</p>
-
-<p>Two cities were built close to the battlefield. One was
-named Bucephala, after Alexander’s famous horse which,
-some say, was wounded and died after the battle. But
-others tell that Bucephalus had died shortly before the battle
-of old age, for he had lived for thirty years. The king
-grieved for the loss of his noble steed as for the loss of a
-friend.</p>
-
-<p>This terrible battle made the Macedonians still more
-unwilling to advance farther into India.</p>
-
-<p>Before them lay a desert which would take eleven days
-to cross. The soldiers could not face a long march in a
-strange land, without water and without guides.</p>
-
-<p>When Alexander ordered the army to advance, the
-Macedonians who had followed him loyally through every
-difficulty, refused to obey.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing he could say would make them advance a step
-farther.</p>
-
-<p>‘There they stood, looking hard at the ground with tears
-trickling down their cheeks, yet resolute still not to go
-forward.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Alexander dismissed them in anger. But the next<span class="pagenum" id="Page_341">341</span>
-day he sent for them again and told them that he was going
-to advance. They, if they chose to forsake him in a hostile
-land, could go back to Macedon.</p>
-
-<p>Still in anger the king left them and went to his tent, and
-shut himself up for two days, refusing to see any of his
-companions.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps he thought his obstinate Macedonians would
-yield. But although it grieved them to thwart their king,
-the soldiers remained firm.</p>
-
-<p>On the third day Alexander left his tent and offered
-sacrifices to the gods, as he always did before beginning a
-new adventure. But the signs were unfavourable, and
-against this the king was not proof. So he sent to tell the
-army that he had determined to lead them in the direction
-of home.</p>
-
-<p>In a transport of joy the faithful Macedonians hastened
-to the king’s tent. Some of them wept as they thanked
-‘the unconquered king that he had permitted himself to be
-conquered for once by his Macedons.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_342">342</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_CI">CHAPTER CI<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">ALEXANDER IS WOUNDED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">Alexander</span> determined to begin the homeward journey by
-sailing down the Hydaspes to the Indus in order to reach
-the ocean.</p>
-
-<p>The king himself with part of the army embarked in the
-ships which awaited them on the Hydaspes. The rest of
-the army was divided into two companies, and marched on
-either bank of the river, one being under Hephæstion, the
-king’s friend.</p>
-
-<p>On the way the fleet and the army joined their forces
-in order to subdue some of the warlike tribes that refused to
-submit to them.</p>
-
-<p>One of these tribes, the Malli, Alexander pursued to their
-chief city, which stood where the town of Multan has since
-been built.</p>
-
-<p>The city was easily taken, but not so the citadel in which
-the Malli had taken refuge.</p>
-
-<p>Before the walls surrounding it could be scaled, ladders
-were needed, and two were hurriedly brought to the spot.
-But it was difficult to place them in position, for the Malli
-hurled upon the soldiers every missile on which they could
-lay their hands.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander growing impatient, seized one of the ladders,
-and covering himself with his shield he placed it in position
-and began to mount.</p>
-
-<p>Peucestas, carrying the sacred shield of Troy, and
-Leonnatus, two of the companions, followed closely after
-their king, while Abreas began to climb the second ladder
-which was now also ready for use.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_343">343</span></p>
-
-<p>The king was soon standing alone on the top of the wall,
-having flung down those of the Malli who were keeping guard
-at that point.</p>
-
-<p>In despair the Macedonians saw the danger to which their
-king had exposed himself. He was a mark for every weapon
-hurled from the citadel.</p>
-
-<p>They rushed in a body to the ladders, and began to
-mount in such numbers that the ladders both gave way,
-Peucestas, Leonnatus and Abreas alone having first reached
-the top of the wall.</p>
-
-<p>His friends called aloud to Alexander, entreating him to
-come back. But he leaped down on the other side among
-his foes. Fortunately he landed on his feet, and at once
-placing his back against the wall, he strove to keep back
-the enemy as they rushed upon him.</p>
-
-<p>The foremost fell before the swift stroke of the king’s
-sword, as did also those who followed him. At two more
-the king hurled stones which felled them to the ground.
-After that the Malli were afraid to approach close to the
-great king, but they began to throw at him stones and great
-pieces of rock.</p>
-
-<p>A moment later his three companions had leaped down
-and were by the side of their king, ready to defend him with
-their lives.</p>
-
-<p>Abreas fell at his feet almost at once, pierced by a dart.
-Alexander himself was wounded, but fought on until at
-length, faint through loss of blood, he fell fainting on his
-shield.</p>
-
-<p>Peucestas covered him with the sacred shield, while
-Leonnatus fought on desperately until help came.</p>
-
-<p>A few of the Macedonians, maddened by the thought of
-their king’s danger, scrambled up on each other’s shoulders,
-and leaped down on the other side to rescue him and his
-three companions if they still lived.</p>
-
-<p>Some ran to the gates, and opened them, and the
-anxious soldiers poured in and took the citadel. They<span class="pagenum" id="Page_344">344</span>
-believed that their king was dead, and they wreaked their
-fury on the miserable inhabitants, leaving neither men,
-women nor children alive.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was not dead, and although his wound was
-severe, he recovered. But the rumour of his death had
-reached the camp near the river where the main body of
-the army had been left. No letters, no messages could
-make the grief-stricken soldiers believe that their king still
-lived.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander was brought down the river in a ship. He
-was lying on a couch in the stern of the vessel as he drew
-near to the camp, and he ordered the canopy which screened
-him to be raised that his soldiers might see him.</p>
-
-<p>At first they thought it was but his lifeless body which
-they beheld, but as he drew nearer still, the king waved his
-hand. Then a great shout of joy rent the air.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_345">345</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_CII">CHAPTER CII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">THE DEATH OF ALEXANDER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">In</span> the autumn of 325 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Alexander began to march through
-the desert of Gedrosia on his way to Babylon.</p>
-
-<p>The heat was terrible, and the soldiers were soon parched
-with thirst, while sinking sand added to the hardship of
-the march.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander tramped by the side of his men across the
-dreary waste, sharing all their privations and cheering them
-by his presence. But before he left the desert of Gedrosia,
-the king had lost more than a fourth part of the army that
-had set out with him from India two short months before.</p>
-
-<p>At length the exhausted soldiers reached Susa, and here
-the king allowed them to rest. He himself found much to
-do, for many of the satraps whom he had left in charge of
-different provinces had betrayed their trust. They had
-treated cruelly those who were in their power, and had
-formed plots to make themselves kings over their own provinces.
-It may be that they thought Alexander would
-never come back from his perilous journey in the East.</p>
-
-<p>When he had punished those who had proved faithless,
-were they Macedonians or Persians, he turned to a matter
-on which his heart was set—the union of the peoples of the
-East and the West.</p>
-
-<p>The king tried to accomplish this in different ways. He
-had already built cities in the East, and left in them Greeks
-and Macedonians along with the native Asiatics.</p>
-
-<p>Now he himself wedded Statira, the daughter of Darius,
-Hephæstion married her sister, while several Macedonian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_346">346</span>
-generals, following the example of the king, took the daughters
-of Persian nobles to be their wives. Many of the soldiers,
-too, married women of the East.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander hoped that little by little the two races
-would learn to know each other better and to have the
-same interests.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring of 324 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Alexander went to Ecbatana,
-where the Persian kings had been used to spend the summer
-months. Shortly afterwards he met his whole army at
-Opis, not far from Babylon, and discharged many of the
-Macedonian veterans who were no longer fit to fight because
-of old age or because of the wounds from which they had
-suffered. The king promised to provide for these old warriors
-for the rest of their lives. He expected them to welcome
-their dismissal and their reward.</p>
-
-<p>But the Macedonians had been growing more and more
-jealous of the favours Alexander had been showing to the
-Persians, and now the feelings that they had been forced
-to hide found words.</p>
-
-<p>They bade the king discharge not only the veterans
-but his loyal Macedonians. Some even dared to shout, ‘Go
-and conquer with Zeus, your father.’</p>
-
-<p>The king, in sudden anger, sprang from his seat, down
-among the angry throng, and ordered thirteen of the ring-leaders
-to be put to death. He then bade the others go
-away if they wished. They had been only poor shepherds
-on the hills of Macedon, he reminded them, until his father
-Philip had made them rulers of Greece. He had shared
-with them the wealth of the East, and had kept nothing for
-himself, save his purple robe and his royal diadem.</p>
-
-<p>Alexander then went to his palace, and in three days
-he sent for the Persian nobles, to whom he gave the
-posts of honour which until now had been held by the
-Macedonians.</p>
-
-<p>Plutarch tells us that when the Macedonians, who had
-stayed in their quarters in spite of their dismissal, heard what<span class="pagenum" id="Page_347">347</span>
-Alexander had done, ‘they went without their arms, with
-only their undergarments on, crying and weeping, to offer
-themselves at his tent, and desired him to deal with them
-as their baseness and ingratitude deserved ... yet he
-would not admit them to his presence, nor would they stir
-from thence, but continued two days and nights before his
-tent, bewailing themselves, and imploring him as their lord
-to have compassion on them. But on the third day he came
-out to them, and seeing them very humble and penitent,
-he wept himself a great while, after a gentle reproof spoke
-kindly to them and dismissed those who were too old for
-service with magnificent rewards, and with recommendation
-to Antipater that when they came home, at all public
-shows and in the theatres, they should sit in the best and
-foremost seats, crowned with chaplets of flowers.’</p>
-
-<p>During the summer which he spent at Ecbatana, a great
-sorrow befell the king. Hephæstion, his dearest friend, took
-ill, and in seven days he was dead. For three days the king
-would touch no food. No one could comfort him, for well
-the king knew that no one would ever fill the place that
-Hephæstion had held in his heart. The body of his friend
-the king ordered to be taken to Babylon, where it was burnt
-on a pyre adorned with great magnificence. Chapels were
-built in his honour in Alexandria and other cities.</p>
-
-<p>In June 323 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, a month after the funeral rites, Alexander,
-who was preparing for a great expedition by sea,
-went to the river Euphrates to inspect some new harbours
-which he had ordered to be built.</p>
-
-<p>The place was unhealthy, because of the many marshes
-that lay round about the river, and the king was attacked
-by fever. He refused to take any care and daily he grew
-worse, until at length he was forced by weakness to stay in
-bed.</p>
-
-<p>A rumour that he was dead reached the Macedonians, and
-they hastened to the palace, begging to be allowed to see
-their king once more.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_348">348</span></p>
-
-<p>Alexander was not dead, but he was too weak to speak,
-as one by one the soldiers were permitted to walk quietly
-past his bed. With an effort he looked at them as they
-passed, and feebly raised his hand in farewell.</p>
-
-<p>‘After I am gone will you ever find a king worthy of
-such heroes as these?’ he murmured as they slowly filed out
-of the room.</p>
-
-<p>Then he drew his signet ring from his finger and gave it
-to an officer, saying that he left his kingdom ‘to the best
-man.’ So the great king passed away at the age of thirty-three.</p>
-
-<div id="if_i_348" class="figcenter" style="max-width: 29em;">
- <img src="images/i_348.jpg" width="1807" height="2513" alt="" /><div class="caption">With an effort he looked at them as they passed</div></div>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_349">349</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_CIII">CHAPTER CIII<br />
-
-<span class="subhead">DEMOSTHENES IN THE TEMPLE OF POSEIDON</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="in0"><span class="firstword">When</span> Alexander set out on his great expedition to Asia,
-Demosthenes was living in Athens, and for five years nothing
-happened to disturb the quiet habits of his life.</p>
-
-<p>He loved his city well, and with his own money he had
-rebuilt the walls of Athens. Many other services he had
-done for his countrymen, and because of these, one of the
-Athenians proposed to the people that a hero’s crown of gold
-should be bestowed upon Demosthenes.</p>
-
-<p>This they were very willing to do. So at one of the great
-Athenian festivals, when the people were assembled in the
-theatre, a herald proclaimed that a golden crown had been
-awarded to the orator because of all that he had done for
-his city.</p>
-
-<p>But Æschines, another great orator, was angry that this
-honour should have been given to Demosthenes, whom he
-happened to dislike. So he brought a lawsuit against him,
-and attacked his enemy in a speech that became famous.</p>
-
-<p>But Demosthenes defended himself in a still more brilliant
-speech, and won his case, which so annoyed Æschines that
-he left Athens and never again returned to the city.</p>
-
-<p>Six years later, Demosthenes was accused of having
-taken bribes. It was not proved that he had done so,
-yet he was found guilty and sentenced to pay a heavy
-fine.</p>
-
-<p>As he had not money enough to pay the fine, he was
-thrown into prison. Before long he escaped and fled to the
-sea-coast town of Ægina, not far from Athens. Often he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350">350</span>
-would sit on the shore or pace up and down the sands, looking
-wistfully toward the city he loved.</p>
-
-<p>When tidings of the death of Alexander reached Athens,
-the Greeks resolved once more to try to fling off the yoke
-of Macedon. Demosthenes was recalled to the city, and his
-voice encouraged the Athenians in their determination to
-fight for liberty.</p>
-
-<p>But Antipater hastened to Attica with an army, and
-soon put down the revolt of the Athenians. He then condemned
-Demosthenes to death, for it was well-known that
-his Philippics had often roused the Athenians to show their
-hatred of Philip, and he had, too, continually spoken against
-his son Alexander.</p>
-
-<p>When Demosthenes heard that he had been condemned,
-he fled to the temple of Poseidon, in the island of Calauria.
-Antipater at once sent soldiers, led by a man named Archias,
-to capture the fugitive. Archias had once been an actor,
-and was well known to Demosthenes.</p>
-
-<p>Archias reached Calauria, and going to the temple he
-begged Demosthenes to come out of the sanctuary, saying
-that if he did so he would be pardoned.</p>
-
-<p>But Demosthenes knew that this was a false promise
-and he said, ‘O Archias, I am as little affected by your promises
-now as I used formerly to be by your acting.’</p>
-
-<p>Now Archias had been proud of his acting, so this made
-him very angry with Demosthenes, and he began to threaten
-him with all kinds of evil.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now,’ said the orator, ‘you speak like an oracle of
-Macedon; before, you were acting a part. Therefore wait
-only a little, while I write a word or two to my family.’</p>
-
-<p>Then he rose and went into the inner temple, and taking
-a tablet and his own pen in his hand, he sat down as though
-to write. He had a habit of putting his pen into his mouth
-and biting it, and he did so now. It seemed as though he
-was thinking what he would write. But all the while he
-was sucking poison which he had concealed in his pen.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_351">351</span></p>
-
-<p>Then, knowing that the poison would soon do its work,
-Demosthenes leaned on the altar, his face hidden in his
-cloak.</p>
-
-<p>Archias had now grown tired of waiting, and he went
-into the temple again and bade Demosthenes come, without
-more delay.</p>
-
-<p>The orator rose, uncovering his head, and looking at
-Archias, he said, ‘I will depart while I am alive out of this
-sacred place.’ But as he tried to walk toward the door he
-staggered and fell by the altar. The poison had done its
-work.</p>
-
-<p>Antipater had no interest in the art or in the culture of
-Greece, and her glory soon faded under his rule. Athens,
-Sparta, Corinth, as well as the smaller states, all ceased
-to be independent.</p>
-
-<p>As the power of Greece grew less, that of Rome was
-growing greater and greater. In 196 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> she conquered
-Macedon and restored to Greece her liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Fifty years later, Corinth defied the Roman power, and
-treated her ambassadors with insult. The Roman consuls
-then sent an army into Greece to conquer the country, and
-add it to their great dominions.</p>
-
-<p>But although the Romans conquered Greece, and so
-made her subject to them, they could not escape her influence.
-The Greek language was spoken by every educated
-Roman, Greek plays were acted at Rome, Greek literature
-was read and studied.</p>
-
-<p>Wherever the Romans went they carried with them the
-habits and the culture of the people whom they had conquered.
-And the greatest and most precious thing the
-Greeks had to teach the world was, ‘the just consideration
-of the truth of things everywhere.’</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<div class="chapter"><div class="index">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_353">353</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDEX">INDEX</h2>
-
-<ul class="index">
-<li class="ifrst">Achæans, the, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Achilles, and Briseis the Fair-cheeked, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">fatal quarrel with Agamemnon, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">the horses of, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>; Hector slain by, <a href="#Page_48">48</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death of, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acrisius, king of Argos, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">killed by Perseus, <a href="#Page_29">29</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Acropolis at Athens, the, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Admetus, king, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ægis of Athens, the, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ægospotami, disaster at, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æolians, the, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æschines, lawsuit against Demosthenes, <a href="#Page_349">349</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Æschylus, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Agamemnon, king, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Agesilaus, king of Sparta, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alcibiades, <a href="#Page_232">232–236</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">friendship with Socrates, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_238">238</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">expedition to conquer Sicily, <a href="#Page_244">244–248</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">flight to Sparta, <a href="#Page_247">247–248</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">betrayal of Athenians to the Spartans, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">return to Athens, <a href="#Page_255">255</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Antiochus’ disobedience, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death of, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexander the Great, at battle of Chæronea, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and his horse Bucephalus, <a href="#Page_309">309</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">conquests in Greece, <a href="#Page_312">312</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and Diogenes, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">conquest of Persia, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>, <a href="#Page_315">315</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">cutting of the Gordian knot, <a href="#Page_318">318</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">illness of, <a href="#Page_319">319</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat of Darius at Issus, <a href="#Page_322">322</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">treatment of Darius and his wife and family, <a href="#Page_323">323</a>, <a href="#Page_327">327</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">siege of Tyre by, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat of Darius at Gaugamela, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">burning of Persepolis by, <a href="#Page_331">331</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">pursuit of Darius, <a href="#Page_334">334</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">treatment of Philotas, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">slays his foster-brother, <a href="#Page_336">336</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">conquests in India, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">victory over King Porus, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">wounded at siege of the citadel of Malli, <a href="#Page_342">342</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">east and west united by, <a href="#Page_345">345</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death of, <a href="#Page_345">345</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Alexander, king of Thessaly, Pelopidas’ expedition against, <a href="#Page_282">282</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amphictyonic Council, the, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Amphipolis, surrender of, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Andromache and Hector, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Andromeda and the sea-monster, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antinous, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antiochus, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Antipater, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aphrodite, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Apollo, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and Hyacinthus, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arachne, story of, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Archias, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_274">274</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">and Demosthenes, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Archidamus, invasion of Attica by, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">siege of Plataea under, <a href="#Page_210">210–213</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Arginusæ, battle of, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Argos, war with Sparta, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Argus, the hound, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristagoras, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristides, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140–144</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_168">168</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristodemus, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristogiton, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristomenes and the fox, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristophanes, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Aristotle, <a href="#Page_311">311</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Artaphernes, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Artaxerxes, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">march of Cyrus against, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Spartan expedition against, <a href="#Page_269">269</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Artemisium, battle of, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athene, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athenian Empire, foundation of, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athenians, the, taking of Salamis by, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">alliance with Ionians against Darius, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat of Persian army at Marathon, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">victory in bay of Pylos over the Spartans, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">surrender of Spartans at Sphacteria to, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">invasion of Bœotia by, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat at Syracuse, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252–254</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat by Spartans under Lysander, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Athens, city of, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196–199</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war with Dorians, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">oligarchic government of, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">three parties of, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Persian attack on, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">sea-power of, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war with Sparta, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">great men of, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">jealousy of Sparta causing Peloponnesian war, <a href="#Page_202">202</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_354">354</span></li>
-<li class="isub1">revolt of Mytilene against, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">second Peloponnesian war, <a href="#Page_233">233</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">surrender to the Spartans, <a href="#Page_261">261–263</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Atlas, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Attica, Spartan invasion of, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Babylon, taken by Alexander the Great, <a href="#Page_331">331</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bessus, <a href="#Page_334">334</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bœotia, invasion of, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bœotian League, the, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bow of Odysseus, the, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Brasidas the Spartan, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226–231</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bridge of Boats, Darius’, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Briseis the Fair-cheeked, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Bucephalus, <a href="#Page_309">309</a>, <a href="#Page_329">329</a>, <a href="#Page_340">340</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Callistratus, <a href="#Page_301">301</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Carthaginians, the, expedition against Syracuse, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_288">288</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeated by Timoleon at Crimisus, <a href="#Page_296">296</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cassiopeia, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cecrops, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Chæronea, battle of, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charilaus, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Charon, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_274">274</a>, <a href="#Page_275">275</a>, <a href="#Page_276">276</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cimon, <a href="#Page_179">179</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189–193</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clearchus, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_267">267</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleisthenes, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115–116</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleombrotus, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleomenes and Aristagoras, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cleon, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222–224</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228–231</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Clitus, <a href="#Page_336">336</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Codrus, the last king of Athens, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Conon, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Conspiracy of the Seven Thebans, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Corinth, the two brothers of, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Crimisus, battle of, <a href="#Page_296">296</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Croesus, king of Lydia, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cyclopes, the, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cylon, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cynoscephalæ, battle of, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Cyrus, king of Persia, and Croesus, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— march against king Artaxerxes, <a href="#Page_264">264–268</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Damocles, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Danae, story of, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Darius, king of Persia, war against Greece, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Histiaeus rewarded by, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Ionian rebellion against, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">expedition against Athens, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat at Marathon, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death of, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— king of Persia, wars with Alexander the Great, <a href="#Page_315">315</a>, <a href="#Page_319">319</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat near the pass of Issus, <a href="#Page_321">321</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat at battle of Gaugamela, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">retreat and death, <a href="#Page_334">334</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Delian League, the, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Delium, defeat of Athenians at, <a href="#Page_226">226</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Demeter, story of, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Demosthenes, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252–254</a>, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>, <a href="#Page_311">311</a>, <a href="#Page_313">313</a>, <a href="#Page_349">349</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Diodotus, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Diogenes, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dionysius of Syracuse, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dorians, the, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Draco, code of laws of, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Dryads, the, <a href="#Page_1">1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Elpinice and Pericles, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epaminondas, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_269">269</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271–272</a>, <a href="#Page_277">277</a>, <a href="#Page_280">280–285</a>, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ephialtes the treacherous Greek, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ephialtes the statesman, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epirus, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Epitades, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Erechtheum, the, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eros, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eucles, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Euaeus the swineherd, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Euripides, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Europa, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eurybiades, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Eurymedon, <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Gaugamela, battle of, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gordian knot, the, <a href="#Page_318">318</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gorgo, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gorgons, the, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Grææ, the, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Granicus, battle of, <a href="#Page_315">315</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Greece, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Gylippus, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Harmodius, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hecate, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hector, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hecuba, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Helen of Troy, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hellespont, the scourging of the, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Helots, the, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hephæstion, <a href="#Page_342">342</a>, <a href="#Page_345">345</a>, <a href="#Page_347">347</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hephæstis, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hera, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hermes, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Herodotus, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hipparchus, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hippias, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Histiaeus, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Homer, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Hyacinthus, story of, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355">355</span></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Icetes, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ictinus, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx"><i>Iliad, The</i>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ionians, the, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— revolt of, <a href="#Page_123">123–130</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ismenias, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Lacedæmonians, the, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lamachus, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leonidas, king of Sparta, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_155">155–158</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leontiades, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_276">276</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Leuctra, battle of, <a href="#Page_277">277–280</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lotus-eaters, the, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lycurgus the lawgiver, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_88">88</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Lysander, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Mago, <a href="#Page_294">294</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mantinea, battle of, <a href="#Page_233">233</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Marathon, battle of, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mardonius, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Masistius, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Medusa, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Menelaus, king, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Megabetes, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Messenia, city of, <a href="#Page_282">282</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Messenian war, the first, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— the second, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Miltiades, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mindarus, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mycale, battle of, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Mytilene, revolt against Athens, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Naiads, the, <a href="#Page_1">1</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Nicias, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— peace of, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Odeon of Athens, the, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Odysseus, story of, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i></li>
-
-<li class="indx"><i>Odyssey, The</i>, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Olympian Games, the, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Olympus, Mount, <a href="#Page_2">2</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Oracles, the Grecian, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Orchomenus, battle of, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ostracism, law of, <a href="#Page_116">116</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Paches, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pan, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Paris, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parmenio, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>, <a href="#Page_327">327</a>, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>, <a href="#Page_330">330</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Parthenon, the, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Patroclus, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45–47</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pausanias, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>, <a href="#Page_179">179–181</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pelopidas, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_277">277</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>, <a href="#Page_282">282</a>, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Peloponnesian war, the first, <a href="#Page_202">202–231</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— the second, <a href="#Page_233">233–263</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Penelope, story of, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67–71</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perdiccas, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pericles, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194–195</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persephone, story of, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persepolis, burning of, <a href="#Page_331">331</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Perseus, story of, <a href="#Page_18">19</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Persia, wars with Greece, <a href="#Page_118">118–139</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145–177</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">conquest by Alexander the Great, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>, <a href="#Page_315">315</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pheidias, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip, king of Macedonia, <a href="#Page_305">305</a>, <a href="#Page_306">306–308</a>, <a href="#Page_310">310</a>, <a href="#Page_311">311</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philip, the physician of Alexander, <a href="#Page_319">319</a>, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philippus, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Philomelus, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phocians, the, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phocion, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phœbidas, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Phyllidas, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_274">274</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pirates, the Grecian, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pisistratus, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_109">109–112</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Polydectes, king, <a href="#Page_20">20</a>, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Polyphemus, the giant, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Porus and his elephant, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Poseidon, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Potidæa, siege of, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plague in Athens, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_209">209</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plataea, battle of, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>; siege of, <a href="#Page_210">210–213</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plato, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Plutarch, <a href="#Page_209">209</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>, <a href="#Page_346">346</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pluto, <a href="#Page_4">4</a>, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Priam, king of Troy, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Propylæa, the, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Protagoras, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Pylos, sea-fight of, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Rome, rise of, <a href="#Page_351">351</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Sacred Band of Thebans, <a href="#Page_277">277</a>, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>, <a href="#Page_307">307</a>, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sacred war, the, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Salamis, siege of, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">—— battle of, <a href="#Page_169">169–172</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Samos, revolt against Athens, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sardis, destruction of, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Satyrus and Demosthenes, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Scythians, Darius’ war against, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sicily, Alcibiades’ expedition against, <a href="#Page_244">244</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war with Carthaginians and Dionysius of Syracuse, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">freed by Timoleon, <a href="#Page_299">299</a>.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356">356</span></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Socrates, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">friendship with Alcibiades, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240–243</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Solon the lawgiver, <a href="#Page_99">99</a>, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sophists, the, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sophocles, <a href="#Page_200">200</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sparta, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war with Messenians, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war against Persia, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156–160</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">wars with Athens, <a href="#Page_195">195</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_333">333</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">destruction of Athenian army at Syracuse, <a href="#Page_249">249–254</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">victory over Antiochus under Lysander, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">surrender of Athens to, <a href="#Page_261">261–263</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">expedition against Thebes, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i></li>
-
-<li class="indx">Spartans, the, training of, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Sphacteria, blockade of, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Syracuse, siege of, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Corinthian expedition under Timoleon to, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_289">289</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i></li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Telemachus, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_62">62</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Ten Thousand, the march of, <a href="#Page_264">264–267</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thebes, war with Plataea, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">conspiracy to obtain freedom from Sparta, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">rise of, <a href="#Page_277">277</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Sacred War against Phocians, <a href="#Page_306">306</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Themistocles, rivalry with Aristides, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140–144</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">war against Xerxes, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at pass of Thermopylae, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">at battle of Artemisium, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">tactics to defeat Persian fleet at Salamis, <a href="#Page_163">163–167</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Spartans deceived by, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">ostracised, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">death of, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thermopylae, battle of, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156–160</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Theseus, king, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thetis, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thrace, city of, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Thucydides, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Timoleon, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_288">288</a>, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_296">296</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Timophanes, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tissaphernes, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Trojan War, the, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Troy, city of, <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tyrants, Grecian, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tyre, siege by Alexander, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Tyrtaeus, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Xenophon, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>, <a href="#Page_267">267</a>, <a href="#Page_268">268</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Xerxes, king of Persia, <a href="#Page_139">139</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">his dream, <a href="#Page_145">145</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">invasion of Greece by, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">scourging of Hellespont by, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">Athens plundered by, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>;</li>
-<li class="isub1">defeat of his fleet at Salamis, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="ifrst">Zephyrus, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>.</li>
-
-<li class="indx">Zeus, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="p4 center smaller">PRINTED  IN  GREAT  BRITAIN  BY<br />
-THOMAS NELSON AND SONS, LTD.</p>
-
-<div class="chapter"><div class="transnote">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="Transcribers_Notes">Transcriber’s Notes</h2>
-
-<p>Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling, including
-ligatures, were made
-consistent when a predominant preference was found
-in the original book; otherwise they were not changed.</p>
-
-<p>Simple typographical errors were corrected; unbalanced
-quotation marks were remedied when the change was
-obvious, and otherwise left unbalanced.</p>
-
-<p>Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned
-between paragraphs and outside quotations. In versions
-of this eBook that support hyperlinks, the page
-references in the List of Illustrations lead to the
-corresponding illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>The index was not checked for proper alphabetization
-or correct page references.</p>
-
-<p>“Potidæa” and “Potidaea” occur with equal frequency
-in the text; both spellings have been retained.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF GREECE: TOLD TO BOYS AND GIRLS ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 849a84e..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_001.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 422821f..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_002.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_002.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c490567..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_002.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_004.png b/old/66070-h/images/i_004.png
deleted file mode 100644
index daecf88..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_004.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_006.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_006.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7e43670..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_006.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_010.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_010.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bef5d96..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_010.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_018.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_018.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8a5ab9f..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_018.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_020.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_020.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a020012..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_020.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_034.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_034.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1fcc754..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_034.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_068.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_068.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7f67638..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_068.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_096.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_096.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d7910ed..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_096.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_102.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_102.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3576d2e..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_102.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_136.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_136.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 770041e..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_136.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_170.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_170.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 848c30f..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_170.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_188.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_188.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3f15bf1..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_188.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_196.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_196.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index eb5b874..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_196.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_220.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_220.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index af16096..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_220.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_238.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_238.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f4e0652..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_238.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_258.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_258.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1a5b167..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_258.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_304.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_304.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 952ef52..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_304.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_310.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_310.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 457b066..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_310.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66070-h/images/i_348.jpg b/old/66070-h/images/i_348.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 45bac68..0000000
--- a/old/66070-h/images/i_348.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ